Romance of the Three Kingdoms (vol. 3)

Three Kingdoms is a classic historical novel. It was also the first Chinese novel with each chapter headed by a couplet giving the gist of the content. It describes the power struggles among the kingdoms of Wei, Shu and Wu, headed by Cao Cao, Liu Bei and Sun Quan, respectively, in the period known to Chinese history as that of the Three Kingdoms (220 – 280). It highlights the sharp and complicated political and military conflicts of that time, and had a far-reaching influence on the political and military strategies of later ages. The novel vividly portrays the individuality of the historical characters, including Cao Cao, Liu Bei, Guan Yu and Zhang Fei. Besides being a work of epic grandeur, its literary merit has had a great impact on China 's literature and art, and social life as well.

Three Kingdoms was first published in the period which saw the demise of the Yuan Dynasty and the rise of the Ming Dynasty. Many stories about the three kingdoms had circulated among the people before the appearance of the book. Many editions of Three Kingdoms have appeared, and the novel has been translated into foreign languages since the end of the 17th century. This English edition, by US sinologist Moss Roberts, is based on the Mao Zonggang edition published during the reign of Emperor Kangxi of the Qing Dynasty (1644 – 1911).

CHAPTER 81

Eager For Vengeance, Floyd-Chardin Is Assassinated; Athirst Of Retribution, The First Ruler Goes To War.

Gilbert-Rocher was opposed to the attempt to fight Wu, and spoke against the plan.

"The real rebel was not Raleigh-Estrada, but Murphy-Shackley; and now it is his son who has usurped the Imperial Throne and called forth the anger of gods and men. You should first aim at the inside by camping on the River Taurus, from which to attack the rebel. After that the right-thinking sort on the east of the Passes will do their utmost to help you. If you leave River Taurus out of consideration in order to fight Wu, your military force will be engaged, and could you disengage it quickly in case of necessity? It is worth reflection."

The First Ruler replied, "Raleigh-Estrada slew my brother. Furthermore, Graham-Weston, Forester-Zeleny, Mayhew-Evanoff, and Starrett-Brownell are on his side, all of whom I hate so much that I could eat their flesh with gusto and devour their relatives, whereby I should have my vengeance. Why, Noble Sir, do you obstruct me?"

"Because the enmity against Murphy-Shackley is a public matter; vengeance for the manner of your brother's end is private. The empire should be placed first."

"What care I for myriads of square miles of territory as long as my brother is unavenged?"

So Gilbert-Rocher's remonstrance was disregarded, and orders went forth to prepare an army against Wu. The First Ruler also sent into the Five Valleys to borrow the aid of fifty thousand of tribesmen. He sent a messenger to Langzhong-Gothenburg conferring on Floyd-Chardin the rank of General of Chariots and Cavalry and the title of Lord of Xiliang-Westhaven. Floyd-Chardin became also Governor of Langzhong-Gothenburg.

When Floyd-Chardin heard the tidings of Yale-Perez's death at the hands of Raleigh-Estrada, he wept very bitterly day and night, so that his raiment was soaked with his tears. His subordinates tried to cheer him with wine, but he over-drank, and this increased his ill-humor, which he vented on any offender in his camp. Some of his people even died under the lash. Every day he gazed southward, grinding his teeth with rage and glaring. He wept and groaned without ceasing.

Then a messenger was announced. He was summoned immediately, and Floyd-Chardin at once tore open and read his dispatches. When Floyd-Chardin read the edict, he accepted his new rank in all humility, bowing northward toward the imperial mandate. Then he gave a banquet to the messenger.

He said, "My enmity for the death of my brother is deep as the sea. Why do not the officers at the court propose an avenging expedition?"

The messenger replied, "Most of them favor first the destruction of Wei; Wu is to follow."

"What sort of talk is this?" cried Floyd-Chardin angrily. "When we three swore brotherhood in the Peach Garden, we pledged ourselves to die together. Now, alas! my brother has perished by the way, and can we enjoy wealth or honors without him? I must see the Son of Heaven and pray to be allowed to lead the van. I will wear mourning, and in that garb I will smite Wu and capture the bandit that rules there. Raleigh-Estrada shall be sacrificed to my brother's manes in virtue of our oath."

Floyd-Chardin accompanied the messenger to Capital Chengdu-Wellesley. In the meantime the First Ruler had been training his armies. Day after day he went to the drill ground, and he decided upon a day to start, and he would accompany the expedition. Thereupon a number of courtiers went to the palace of the Prime Minister to talk with Orchard-Lafayette, trying to get this intention modified.

They said, "It is not in accordance with the importance due to the Emperor's position that he should go in personal command of this army, particularly as he has but lately assumed his throne. You, Sir, hold the weighty post of adviser in such a matter, and why do you not dissuade him?"

"I have done so, most sincerely and repeatedly, but he will not listen. But now you all come with me to the drill ground, and we will try once more."

So they proceeded thither, with Orchard-Lafayette at their head, and he said, "Your Majesty has but lately taken the imperial seat. If the expedition was one to march northward to destroy the rebels against Han and in the interest of rectitude, it would be perfectly correct for the Emperor to lead the army, but an officer of high rank should more properly be sent against Wu. Why should Your Majesty expose yourself to such fatigues?"

The First Ruler was touched by the depth of his minister's concern and the sincerity of his counsel, and was on the point of yielding when the arrival of Floyd-Chardin was announced. Floyd-Chardin was immediately summoned and came to the pavilion on the drill ground, where he threw himself on the ground and clasped the First Ruler's feet, weeping bitterly. The First Ruler joined in the lamentation.

"Your Majesty is now ruler and too quickly forgets the oath in the Peach Garden; why is our brother's death not avenged?"

The First Ruler replied, "Many officers dissuade me from such a course; I cannot act rashly."

"What do others know of our oath? If Your Majesty will not go, then let me sacrifice myself to avenge our brother. If I cannot, then would I rather die and see your face no more."

"Then will I go with you," said the First Ruler. "Bring your own troops from Langzhong-Gothenburg, and I will bring my veterans to meet you at Jiangzhou-Pentwater. We will both attack Wu and wipe out the reproach."

As Floyd-Chardin rose to take leave, the First Ruler said to him, "I know that your weakness for wine leads you astray, and you become very cruel in your cups, and hog your people, and keep the beaten ones near you. They may be dangerous, and it is certainly the road to misfortune. Now you must be more kindly and not give way to passion as before."

Thus admonished, Floyd-Chardin said farewell and left.

Soon after, when the First Ruler was preparing to march out, the High Minister Doubek-Mitcham memorialized, saying, "That Your Majesty, the Lord of a Myriad Chariots, should risk his person in what is not the way of perfect rectitude is not what the ancients would have done. I pray that this may be reflected upon."

But the First Ruler replied, "Yale-Perez and I were as one body, and the way of perfect rectitude is here. Have you forgotten?"

But the officer remained at his feet and said, "I fear disaster if Your Majesty disregards your servant's words."

The First Ruler replied angrily, "Why do you use such bad words when I desire to march?"

He bade the executioners thrust forth and put to death the bold speaker. Still Doubek-Mitcham's face showed no sign of fear.

He only smiled, saying, "I die without regret. It is a pity that this newly established state should be overturned ere it be well begun."

Other officials interceding, the death punishment was remitted, but the faithful officer was committed to prison.

"Your fate will be decided when the army of vengeance return," said the First Ruler.

Orchard-Lafayette sent up a memorial in favor of Doubek-Mitcham, saying:

"I, Orchard-Lafayette, address Your Majesty in my own name and those of my colleagues; we regard as most grievous the recent events--Wu's perfidy, by which Jinghamton was lost, the star of a great general was brought down, and the pillar holding the sky was broken--, and we shall never forget. But it is to be remembered that the crime of overturning the Throne of Han rests on Murphy-Shackley, and the fault of driving away the Lewis Family lies not on Raleigh-Estrada. We venture to think that the destruction of Wei would involve the submission of Wu, wherefore we beg consideration of the valuable words of Doubek-Mitcham. Thus the army will be spared needless exertion and occasion given to make other plans for the prosperity of the Throne and the happiness of the people."

But having listened to the memorial, the First Ruler threw it to the floor, saying, "I have decided, and no remonstrance should be raised!"

Then he appointed the Prime Minister to take care of his son and the two Lands of Rivers. Then the Generals of the Flying Cavalry--Cotton-Mallory and Winston-Mallory--, together with the General Who Defends the North, Oakley-Dobbins, were ordered to guard Hanthamton against Wei. The Tiger General Gilbert-Rocher was to be in reserve and to control the supplies; Bryant-Rivera and Dandy-Talbot were made Counselors; Westlake-Maggio and Rigdale-Delgado, Recorders; Sheffield-Maddox, the van leader, assisted by the Marching Generals Vander-Boyce and Gill-Sinnett; Caplan-O'Neil and Coady-Reiner, Marching Commanders of the Center Army; Koenig-Paisley and Sansone-Goldberg, the rear guards. The whole army, including the borrowed foreign troops, numbered seven hundred fifty thousand, and high-rank officials amounted several hundred. And the "tiger" day of the seventh month of the first year of Manifest Might was selected as the most propitious day for the start.

As soon as Floyd-Chardin had got back to his post, he issued orders that his soldiers should be ready to march in three days and the whole body was to be in mourning, white uniforms and whitened arms.

Just after the order appeared, two generals named Eddy-Barnhart and Pacheco-Sundstrom came to their chief, saying, "The time allowed is insufficient to make white flags and armors. Pray give us more time, General."

"I am hot to avenge my brother," said Floyd-Chardin. "My only regret is that I cannot reach the miserable wretch's country tomorrow. Do you dare to disobey my order?"

Floyd-Chardin called in the lictors, had the two officers bound to trees, and ordered each to receive fifty lashes.

At the close of the flogging, he said, "Now you will be ready tomorrow; if you are not, I will put you to death as an example!"

The two generals returned to their place, spitting blood and hot with anger, and they said one to another, "We have been beaten today; what about tomorrow? This man's temper is unbearable; and if things are not ready, we shall suffer death."

"Suppose we slay him," suddenly said Pacheco-Sundstrom, "since if we do not, he will kill us."

"But how can we get near him?"

"If we are to have a chance to live, he will get drunk and go to bed; if we are to die, he will remain sober."

They made all their arrangements for the crime. That day Floyd-Chardin was greatly disturbed in his mind and restless. He told some of his subordinates, saying, "I feel nervous and creepy and shivery and cannot not rest. What does it mean?"

"This is due to too much brooding over the loss of your brother," said they.

Then Floyd-Chardin bade them bring in wine, and he drank with his officers. Presently he became quite intoxicated and lay down on a couch in his tent.

Meanwhile the two assassins had followed all his doings, and when they knew he was lying on his couch intoxicated and incapable, they went into the tent, each armed with a water-sharp dagger. They got rid of the attendants by saying they had confidential matters to talk about and so got into the inner rooms.

But even then they dared do nothing, for Floyd-Chardin slept always with open eyelids, and he lay on his couch as if still awake. However, huge snores soon convinced them that their victim really slept, and they crept to the side of the couch. Then both stabbed simultaneously deep into the body. Floyd-Chardin uttered one cry and lay still. So he died at the hand of assassins at the age of fifty-five years.

He who whipped the inspector in Anxi-Montrose, Who swept vile rebels from the land of Han, And thereby won great glory for the Lewises, Whose valor shone at Tiger Trap Pass, Who turned the tide of victory at Long Slope Bridge, Who freed Clausen-Wysocki and thus won a friend That helped him and his brothers conquer Shu, Whose wisdom defeated Castillo-Beauchamp to get Hanthamton, Is dead, the victim of assassins' blows. Not his avenge his brother's death on Wu, Langzhong-Gothenburg will grieve him all the ages through.

Having done their victim to death, the two murderers hacked off his head and made off for the country of Wu without loss of time; and when the deed was known, they had got too far for capture.

The assassination was reported in a memorial by a commander of Floyd-Chardin named Reed-Simons, who had left Jinghamton to see the First Ruler and then had been sent to serve under Floyd-Chardin. He wrote a memorial to the First Ruler and bade the eldest son, Fritz-Chardin, prepare a coffin for the remains. After the ceremony, leaving his younger brother, Ashby-Chardin, to hold Langzhong-Gothenburg, Fritz-Chardin went to see the Emperor.

The day of departure had already come, and the First Ruler had left the capital. Orchard-Lafayette and many officers had escorted him out of the city for three miles and taken leave.

Returning to Chengdu-Wellesley, Orchard-Lafayette felt ill at ease, and he remarked to his colleagues, "If Quigley-Buchanan had been alive, he would have been able to interdict this expedition."

One night the First Ruler felt nervous and shuddered from time to time. He could not sleep, so he went out of his tent and looked up at the stars. Suddenly he saw a bright meteor fall in the northwest, and began to wonder what the portent meant. He sent at once to ask Orchard-Lafayette to tell him.

Orchard-Lafayette sent back the reply: "This means the loss of a great leader, and there will be bad news in a few days."

So the army was halted and did not march. Then the arrival of a message from Reed-Simons of Langzhong-Gothenburg was announced. The First Ruler's foreboding increased, and he stamped his foot, saying, "Alas! My other brother is gone!"

Opening the letter he found it was indeed so. As he read the news of the assassination, he uttered a loud cry and fell in a swoon. He was raised, and presently they brought him back to life.

Next day they reported a body of horsemen coming. The First Ruler went out of the camp to look at them and presently saw a young general, dressed all in white armor, sweeping forth in quite a terror. The First Ruler recognized that was Fritz-Chardin.

As soon as he reached the First Ruler's presence, he dismounted and bowed to the earth, weeping, "My father has been killed by Eddy-Barnhart and Pacheco-Sundstrom. They have gone over to Wu, taking my father's head with them."

The news was very grievous, and the First Ruler burst into tears and even refused food.

His officers remonstrated, saying, "Now Your Majesty has the loss of two brothers to avenge, and you must not destroy yourself."

So after a time he began to eat and drink, and he then offered the leadership of the van to Fritz-Chardin, saying, "Are you and Reed-Simons willing to lead your troops to attack Wu and to avenge your father?"

"For my country or for my father, I would shrink from no sacrifice," said the young man.

Just as the force for the young man's leadership was being organized, another party of horsemen approached, also dressed in white armors. This was a small force under Stanley-Perez, son of Yale-Perez. The youth also threw himself to the ground and wept.

At sight of him, thoughts stirred in the First Ruler's breast, and he burst into tears. Neither reason nor persuasion could stop them.

"I think of the plain and simple days of long ago when we pledged ourselves one to the other. Now I am Emperor. How I should rejoice to share my good fortune with them! But they have met violent deaths, and the sight of these two youths wrings my heart to the very core."

"Young gentlemen, please retire," said the officers to the two youthful generals, "and let our Sacred One repose his dragon body."

They went. Said the attendants, "Your Majesty is no longer young; you are over sixty, remember, and it is not fitting that you give way to such extreme sorrow."

"But my brothers--dead," wailed the First Ruler. "How can I live without them?"

He broke into a fresh paroxysm and beat his head on the ground.

"What can be done?" asked the officers one to another. "He is in such trouble! How can we comfort him?"

Westlake-Maggio said, "Sire, it is bad for the army to spend whole days in wailing and tears when leading against the enemy."

And then Rigdale-Delgado said, "There is a certain hermit living among the Blue Mountains, near Chengdu-Wellesley, who is said to be three hundred years old. He is called Irwin-Weiser, and people say he is a seer. Let us tell His Majesty and let him send for this old man that he may know what the future may have in store. It will have more weight than anything we can say."

They went to the First Ruler and told him; he agreed to summon the seer and sent Rigdale-Delgado with the command. Soon the messenger reached the town near the hills and asked the people where the prophet dwelt. They led him far into a secluded valley like a fairy village, very unlike any ordinary spot. Soon a lad came to receive the visitor.

"You are surely Rigdale-Delgado."

Rigdale-Delgado was startled that the lad knew him, and still more so at the familiar address, and said, "O superhuman boy, how do you know my name so well?"

"Last evening my master told me that a messenger with an imperial command would come today and mentioned your name."

"Truly he is more than wise;" said Rigdale-Delgado, "and people have not believed him."

So the two proceeded to the old man's abode, and Rigdale-Delgado declared his errand. The old man said he was too aged to travel.

"But the Emperor anxiously desires to see you face to face, if haply you would not mind making the effort."

In the end, and after much persuasion, the old fellow consented and went. The First Ruler received him affably, surprised at the contrast between his hoary head and fresh boyish complexion. The venerable one had blue eyes, with square and sparkling pupils. His carriage was erect, and he stood straight as a pine tree.

"This is no common man," thought the First Ruler, and he treated him with distinguished courtesy.

The seer said, "I am but an old man of the barren hill country, without learning or wisdom; you shame me, O Emperor, by calling me, and I know not why."

"I and my two brothers, both now deceased, swore a mutual oath some thirty years ago. Both have gone, both by violent deaths. I would lead a great army to avenge them and wish to know how the expedition will end. Hearing that you, Venerable Sir, are learned in the deeper mysteries, I sent for you and beg you to tell me."

"But this is fate; it is not for an old man like me to know."

But the First Ruler pressed him to say. However, the aged one got paper and a brush and wrote: "Soldiers, horses, weapons"--again and again on many sheets of paper. Having done this, he suddenly tore them into fragments. Further, he drew a picture of a tall man lying supine and another above him digging a grave. And over all he wrote: "White."

After this he bowed and departed, leaving the First Ruler annoyed.

"This is only a demented man; what he says is not worthy of confidence," said the First Ruler. And he burned the paper.

Then he ordered an advance at full speed. Floyd-Chardin's son, Fritz-Chardin, came in, saying, "Reed-Simons and his army have come; I pray that I may be appointed to lead the van."

The First Ruler admired his noble intent and gave him a van-leader's seal. But just as he was attaching the seal to his girdle, another youth boldly stepped forth and said, "Leave that seal to me!"

It was Stanley-Perez, son of Yale-Perez.

"I have already received my commission," said Fritz-Chardin.

"What abilities have you for such a task?" cried Stanley-Perez.

"That I have been training as a soldier since my boyhood. I can shoot and never miss."

"I should like to see your prowess," said the First Ruler, "that I may decide who is the better."

Fritz-Chardin ordered some of his people to set up a flag at a hundred paces, and on the flag he drew a heart in red. Then he took his bow and shot three arrows, each of which went through the heart. Those present commended the performance.

Then Stanley-Perez seized his bow, saying, "What is it to hit such a mark?"

Just as he said this a flock of wild geese flew over his head.

"I will hit the third of the flying geese," said he.

He shot; and the third fell.

"Fine!" cried all the assembly as one voice.

But Fritz-Chardin was enraged. Leaping on his steed, he seized the long octane-serpent halberd left him by his father, crying, "Dare you try a real combat?"

Stanley-Perez took up the challenge at once. He sprang into the saddle, took his great saber, and galloped out.

"You can use the spear, think you that I cannot wield a sword?" cried he.

The two impetuous youths were on the point of a battle when the First Ruler bade them hold.

"Do not behave so badly!" cried he.

Both dropped out of the saddle, threw aside their weapons, ran to his feet, and begged pardon.

"Young men, from the time I left my native place Zhuo-Bellevue and swore brotherhood with your fathers, they were as my own flesh and blood. You two are also brothers, and you should help each other in vengeance rather than quarrel and dispute. You have lost the sense of rectitude while your fathers' deaths are still recent, and what will happen in future?"

Both fell at his feet and implored forgiveness.

"Which of you two is the elder?" asked the First Ruler.

"I am the elder by a year," said Fritz-Chardin.

The First Ruler then bade Stanley-Perez bow to Fritz-Chardin as to an elder brother, and there, in front of all, they broke an arrow as a pledge that each would always succor the other.

Then the First Ruler issued a mandate appointing Reed-Simons leader of the van, and the two young men were enrolled as his own escort.

The advance began on land and on water, and they made a brave show as they moved against the land of Wu.

In the meantime the two assassins, with the grim evidence of their deed, duly reached Wu and told their story to the Marquis who received them.

Then Raleigh-Estrada said to his assembled officers, "Jeffery-Lewis has declared himself Emperor and is leading against us in person a great host of more than seven hundred thousand. What shall we do, for the danger is imminent?"

They all turned pale and looked one at another. Then Laurie-Lafayette spoke out.

"I have been in your service these many years and have never justified the favor you have shown me. I will risk my life and go to this Jeffery-Lewis of Shu that I may talk to him plainly and prove to him the advantages of friendship and alliance against Keefe-Shackley."

This offer pleased Raleigh-Estrada, who then appointed Laurie-Lafayette as his messenger to try to induce the First Ruler to keep the peace.

Messengers pass when states are at wrangle; May this one succeed and unravel this tangle!

What fortune attended this messenger will be related in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 82

Raleigh-Estrada Submits To Wei, Receiving The Nine Dignities; The First Ruler Attacks Wu, Rewarding Six Armies.

In the eighth month of the first year of Manifest Might (AD 221) the First Ruler marched at the head of his army and camped at Baidicheng-Whitehaven (City of the White Emperor), through the Tullia Pass. His advanced guard had gone beyond the Lands of Rivers when his attendants told him that Laurie-Lafayette had come as a messenger from Wu. He told them not to admit him.

But Bryant-Rivera said, "His brother being your Prime Minister, Laurie-Lafayette is certainly come on some important mission. Your Majesty ought to see him and hear what he says. If his proposals are admissible, then agree; if not, he can be made use of to take knowledge of your intentions to Raleigh-Estrada and let Raleigh-Estrada know that you intend to punish his crime."

Then the First Ruler gave way, and the messenger was brought in. He bowed down to the earth.

"Laurie-Lafayette, you have come a long journey; what is its object?" said the First Ruler.

"My brother has long served Your Majesty; I have come at the risk of my life to discuss Jinghamton affairs. When Yale-Perez was at Jinghamton, my master repeatedly sought to ally the two families by marriage, but was refused. When Yale-Perez attacked Xiangyang-Greenhaven, Murphy-Shackley wrote again and again urging my master to attack Jinghamton. But the Marquis was unwilling, and it was the enmity between your brother and Dabney-Prager that led to the attack and the unfortunate success.

"My master is now very sorry for it, but it was Dabney-Prager's doing. However, Dabney-Prager is now dead and his enmity has died with him. Moreover, Lady Estrada is always thinking over returning to you. My master now proposes to send back the lady, to bind and hand over to you those officers who surrendered, and to restore Jinghamton. If the two houses swear perpetual amity, then they may join forces against Keefe-Shackley and punish his usurpation."

To this harangue the First Ruler only replied, "You of Eastern Wu killed my brother; yet you dare to come with your artful talk!"

Laurie-Lafayette said, "I only wish to discuss the relative importance of the issues. Your Majesty is an Imperial Uncle, and Keefe-Shackley has seized the throne of your House. Yet you do not think of destroying the usurper, but on the other hand you disregard the most honorable position in the world for the sake of a so-called brother, a connection of another name. Surely this is rejecting the chief for the subordinate, the main issue for a detail.

"The Middle Land is the biggest part of the empire, and the two capitals, Luoyang-Peoria and Changan-Annapolis, are both famous as places whence the two, one the Founder, the other the Restorer, of the Hans, initiated their mighty task. Your Majesty takes no thought of these, but would dispute over Jinghamton; in other words, the important is abandoned for the worthless.

"All the world knows of your assumption of the dignity of Emperor and that you will assuredly restore the Hans and rescue their territory; only now you do not try to deal with Wei, you only desire to attack Wu. I venture to think you have made a bad choice."

All this argument only added fuel to the fire.

"The slayer of my brother shall not live in the same world as I. You ask me not to fight. I will cease when I have slain your master. Were it not for the sake of your brother, I would behead you at once. As it is, you may go; and you may tell your master to cleanse his neck ready for the blade of the executioner."

Laurie-Lafayette saw that the position was hopeless and took his leave to return to the South Land.

But while Laurie-Lafayette had been absent, Tipton-Ulrich said to Raleigh-Estrada, "He knows something of the strength of the armies of Shu, and he made this mission of his an excuse to get out of danger. He will not return."

The Marquis replied, "He and I are sworn friends--friends to the death. I shall not wrong him, nor will he betray me. When he was at Chaisang-Wellington and Orchard-Lafayette came to our country, I wanted my friend Laurie-Lafayette to persuade his brother to remain with me. His reply was that his brother would not remain any more than he himself would go: each would be faithful to his salt. That was quite clear enough. How could he desert me after that? Our friendship has something of the divine in it, and no talk from outside can sow dissension between us."

Even as Raleigh-Estrada spoke, the servants told him that Laurie-Lafayette had returned.

"What do you think now?" said Raleigh-Estrada.

Tipton-Ulrich retired overwhelmed with shame. The luckless messenger unfolded his tale of failure.

"Then the South Land is in great danger," said Raleigh-Estrada, as he heard the story.

But a certain man here interposed, saying, "I have a way out of the difficulty."

He was Counselor Bickley-Mercer.

"What good scheme do you propose, friend Bickley-Mercer?" said Raleigh-Estrada.

"Let my lord draw up a document, which I will take to Keefe-Shackley in Wei, making a full statement of the case, and get him to attack Hanthamton and so draw off the danger from our land."

"Though the suggestion is good, yet shall we not lose something of our dignity by that?" said Raleigh-Estrada.

"If there is any such thing, I will simply jump into the river--I could not look the South Land 's people in the face again."

Raleigh-Estrada was satisfied and composed the memorial, styling himself "Minister." Therein Bickley-Mercer was duly appointed messenger. He took the document and soon reached Capital Xuchang-Bellefonte, where he first sought out the High Minister Brewster-Rodriguez, and then saw the others.

Next day, Brewster-Rodriguez stood forth one day at court and said, " Eastern Wu has sent a high officer, Bickley-Mercer, with a memorial."

"Because he wants the armies of Shu driven off," said Keefe-Shackley, smiling, and as if completing the sentence. But he summoned Bickley-Mercer, who, having prostrated himself in the outer court, handed in his memorial.

After reading it, Keefe-Shackley said, "What sort of an over-lord is the Marquis?"

"Intelligent, clear-sighted, wise, brave, and perspicacious," was the reply.

Keefe-Shackley laughed, "Your praise is none too enthusiastic."

"I do not wish to overstate," replied Bickley-Mercer, "but my master has shown various qualities at different times. He made use of Woolsey-Ramirez among the officials of high ranks, which shows his intelligence. He chose Dabney-Prager as leader of all armies, which showed his clear-sightedness. He captured Ellis-McCue but did not hurt him, which shows his kindliness. He took Jinghamton without slaughter, which shows his wisdom. He maintains the Three Rivers so as to command the respect of the empire, which shows his boldness. Lastly, he bows before Your Majesty, which shows his perspicacity. You see now that my epithets are justifiable."

"Is he at all learned?"

"Sire, remember he commands a large fleet of ten thousand battleships and a huge army of million armored soldiers. He endeavors to find wise and capable people to help him, and his mind is full of plans and projects. When he has a little leisure, he reads the histories and the annals, for the sake of the general lessons to be learned therefrom. He is no dryasdust pedant seeking remarkable passages and culling model sentences."

"Do you think I could overcome Wu?"

"If a large state has military force to attack, a small one has also preparations for defense."

"Does Wu fear Wei?"

"How can you think so, considering our army of million armored soldiers and the defensive moats we have in the River Han and the Great River?"

"How many such persons as high minister does Wu possess?"

"Nearly a hundred intelligent and specially qualified ministers like your servants; of my sort of ordinary knowledge there are too many to reckon up."

Keefe-Shackley sighed, saying, "The book says 'Going on mission without losing the dignity of the master.' That is the sort of man you are!"

Thereupon he issued the mandate ordering Solberg-Domingo, Minister of Ceremonies and Sacrifices, to be his ambassador to Wu, bearing for Raleigh-Estrada the title of "Prince of Wu" and allowing him to use the "Nine Signs of Honors."

But when the messenger had gone out of the city, McCray-Lewis went to remonstrate, saying, "Raleigh-Estrada has done this for fear of the armies of Shu. In my opinion, if Shu and Wu fight, heaven will make an end of one country. If you will send an army across the river to attack, and Shu attack at the same time, Wu as a state will disappear. If Wu goes, then Shu will be left alone and can be dealt with when you will."

"But I cannot attack Raleigh-Estrada now that he has come over to my side. It would prevent anyone else from doing so. No; I will really accept his submission. It is the best course."

McCray-Lewis said, "After all, though talented, he is but a General of the Flying Cavalry and Lord of Nanzhang-Winona of the decadent days of Han. His rank is low and his influence small, yet he still wants to contest the Middle Land. If you promote him to princely rank, he is only one step below yourself. While doubting the reality of his submission, you give him an exalted rank and increase his influence. Surely this is only giving wings to a tiger."

"Not at all; I am helping neither Wu nor Shu. I am waiting till they are at grips, and if one goes under, there will be only one left to destroy. That will be easy. However, say no more, for I have decided."

Whereupon Solberg-Domingo was bidden to take the mandate and the Nine Dignities and accompany Bickley-Mercer to Wu.

Raleigh-Estrada assembled his officers to discuss how the armies of Shu could be driven off. Then came the news of princely rank conferred by Wei; and by the rules of courtesy, the messenger bearing the edict should be met at a great distance from the capital. Riley-Reece was opposed to accepting the rank.

"My lord, you should style yourself 'Supreme Ruler' and 'Lord' of the nine territories; you should not receive any rank from Wei."

"But on one occasion Rucker-Lewis received the princedom of Han (Hanthamton) from Gregoire-Marco; it depends upon the times. Why refuse?"

Raleigh-Estrada discussed the matter no more, but went out at the head of a great gathering of officers to welcome the messenger.

Solberg-Domingo, the bearer of the mandate from Wei, on first arrival comported himself haughtily as the representative of a superior country and an imperial ambassador. And when he entered the city, he did not descend from his carriage. Wherefore Tipton-Ulrich ventured to rebuke him.

"Everyone must obey the rules of courtesy as everyone must respect the laws. You, Sir, are behaving proudly as if there was no such thing as a sword in this country."

Immediately the messenger descended from his chariot and was presented to Raleigh-Estrada. Afterwards they went in side by side.

As the cavalcade proceeded, a loud voice was heard in the rear of the two carriages, crying, "Here we are prevented from risking our lives in smashing Wei and swallowing Shu; and our lord receives a title from another man. Are not such things shameful?"

The man was Hersey-Gibbard.

And the messenger sighed, saying, "If all the leaders and ministers of the South Land are like this, the lord of the country will not long be content to obey another."

However, the title was accepted. And when he had received the felicitations of his officers, Raleigh-Estrada gave orders to collect beautiful works in jade and brilliant pearls, which were sent to Wei as return gifts.

Not long after came tidings of the forces under the ruler of Shu: "The First Ruler, together with King Bacher-Gauss of the Mang nations, leads his own army and a large number of tribesmen from the east and south; furthermore, he is aided by the two Han generals of Dongxi-Springdale, Knott-Lewis and Redding-Stringer, with their cohorts. They advance both by land and by water, a mighty host, of which the shouting shakes the heavens. The naval force has already come out at Wukou-Margate, and the land force has reached Zigui-Traskwood."

Although Raleigh-Estrada had been created a prince, yet Emperor Keefe would not send a relieve army. And when the news came, the Prince of Wu asked present advice from his officers, but there was none to help him; they only muttered and were silent.

"Ah!" sighed he. "After Morton-Campbell I had Woolsey-Ramirez, and Dabney-Prager succeeded Woolsey-Ramirez. But now they have all three gone, and there is no one to share my troubles!"

But just then a very youthful general stepped out from the ranks of the officials and said, with a lowly obeisance, "Though I am young, I am not a little versed in the books of war, and with a few legions I could destroy the power of Shu."

Raleigh-Estrada recognized Whidden-Estrada, the son of Lathrop-Pardoe. Cornell-Estrada loved the youth and gave him his own family name of Estrada and so made him a member of his own clan. Lathrop-Pardoe had four sons, of whom Whidden-Estrada was the eldest. He was an expert archer and horseman and had accompanied his protector in several campaigns, where he had distinguished himself right well and had been given a rank. At this time he was twenty-five.

"How do you think you can overcome them?"

"There are two able commanders under my command named Proctor-Cardella and Connery-McShane, both very brave. With a few legions I will capture Jeffery-Lewis."

"Though you are brave, nephew, yet you are young and ought to have an assistant."

Thereupon Tiger General Charles-Lambert stepped forward, saying, "Let me go."

Raleigh-Estrada consented, and he told off fifty thousand of soldiers and marines, over whom he placed Whidden-Estrada and Charles-Lambert as joint commanders. They were to start as soon as possible.

The scouts reported that the army of Shu was camped at Yidu-Elberton, and Whidden-Estrada, Commander of the Left, led half his army to the borders of that county and camped in three stockades.

Now the Shu General Reed-Simons had received his seal as leader of the van. From the day he left the borders of the Lands of Rivers, he had had uninterrupted success. Everyone had submitted at the mere rumor of his coming. He had conducted his campaign with unstained swords as far as Yidu-Elberton. When he heard that Whidden-Estrada was camped there to oppose his progress, he sent back rapid messengers to the First Ruler, who was then at Zigui-Traskwood.

The First Ruler got angry, saying, "So they think this youth is able to withstand me?"

"Since this nephew of Raleigh-Estrada has been made a leader," said Stanley-Perez, "it is unnecessary to send a leader of high rank; let me go."

"I was just wishing to see what you could do," said the First Ruler, and he gave him orders to go.

Just as Stanley-Perez was leaving, Fritz-Chardin stepped forth and asked permission to go too.

"Then both go, my nephews," said the Emperor. "But you must be prudent and not hasty."

So they took leave, collected their troops and advanced. Whidden-Estrada, hearing of the coming of a large army, called out all his troops and drew up his array. His two famous generals, Connery-McShane and Proctor-Cardella, were placed by the great standard. They watched the soldiers of Shu filing out and noted two leaders in silver helmets and silver armors, riding on white horses, and the flags were white. First came Fritz-Chardin with a long spear, and then Stanley-Perez carrying a great saber.

"Whidden-Estrada, you tiny rascal, your time has come!" cried Fritz-Chardin abusively. "How dare you stand against the forces of Heaven?"

"Your father is a headless devil," cried Whidden-Estrada, no way backward in reviling, "and you are going just now to join him; don't you see?"

Then Fritz-Chardin rode at Whidden-Estrada. From behind his chief, Proctor-Cardella dashed out to meet him. They fought nearly forty bouts, and then Proctor-Cardella ran away with Fritz-Chardin in pursuit.

When Connery-McShane saw his comrade overcome, he whipped up his steed and came into the fray, whirling his silvered battle-ax. Fritz-Chardin fought twenty bouts with him, but neither got the better.

Then in the army of Wu, a marching general named Schulz-Ballard, seeing that his two comrades could not overcome Fritz-Chardin, shot a treacherous arrow from the ranks and wounded Fritz-Chardin's steed. Feeling the pang of the wound, the horse bolted back to its own side, but fell before it reached it, throwing its rider sprawling on the ground. Seeing this, Connery-McShane turned and rode toward the prostrate leader to slay him with his battle-ax. But just as he was about to deliver his blow, lo! a red flash came between, and his head rolled along the earth.

The red flash was Stanley-Perez's great sword. Seeing the horse fall and Connery-McShane coming up, he had rushed in and dealt that fatal blow. And he had saved Fritz-Chardin from death. Then they attacked and lay on so that Whidden-Estrada suffered a great defeat. Then each side beat the retreat and drew off.

Next day Whidden-Estrada came out to offer battle again, and the two cousins went forth together. Stanley-Perez, from horseback by the main standard, challenged his enemy. Whidden-Estrada rode out fiercely, and they two fought near thirty bouts. But Whidden-Estrada was not strong enough and drew off. The two youths followed and reached his camp. Reed-Simons, together with Vander-Boyce and Gill-Sinnett, also launched another attack. Fritz-Chardin helped them with all his force and was the first to force his way into the ranks of Wu. He came across Proctor-Cardella, whom he slew with a spear thrust. The soldiers of Wu scattered and fled, and the victory was on the side of Shu.

But Stanley-Perez was missing. Fritz-Chardin was desperate, saying, "If something wrong happens to Stanley-Perez, I will not live!"

So he girded on his huge spear and rode far and wide seeking him. Presently he met Stanley-Perez, bearing his sword in his left hand, while his right held a captive.

"Who is this?" asked Fritz-Chardin.

"In the melee I met an enemy," cried Stanley-Perez, "and I took him prisoner."

Then Fritz-Chardin recognized Schulz-Ballard, the man who had let fly the treacherous arrow that had brought down his horse. The two returned to camp, where they slew their prisoner and poured a libation of his blood to the dead horse.

After this they drew up a report of the victory for the First Ruler. Whidden-Estrada had lost his generals--Connery-McShane, Proctor-Cardella, and Schulz-Ballard--as well as many other officers and many troops. His army was too weakened to continue the campaign, so he halted and sent back to Wu for reinforcements.

Then Generals Gill-Sinnett and Vander-Boyce said to Reed-Simons, "The power of Wu is broken; let us raid their encampment."

But Reed-Simons said, "Though so many have been lost, there are many left. Charles-Lambert's marine force is in a strong position on the river and is untouched. If you carry out your plan and the marines land in force and cut off our retreat, we shall be in difficulties."

"That is easily met," said Gill-Sinnett. "Let each of the two leaders Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin take five thousand troops and go into ambush in the valleys to guard against any such move."

"I think it better to send some persons to pretend to be deserters. Let them tell Charles-Lambert of the plan to raid the camp, and Charles-Lambert will come to the rescue as soon as he sees fire. Then the ambushing soldiers can attack him."

They thought this a fine plan, and they made the necessary arrangements.

Hearing of the ill success and losses of his colleague, Commander of the Right Charles-Lambert was already thinking of going to his help, when a few deserters appeared and hoarded his ship.

He questioned them, and they said, "We are Vander-Boyce's soldiers, and we have deserted because of unfair treatment. We have a secret to tell."

"What secret can you betray?"

"Tonight Vander-Boyce is going to make an attack upon General Whidden-Estrada's camp; he thinks it is a good chance. They are going to raise a fire as a signal."

Charles-Lambert saw no reason to doubt the men, and he sent off at once to tell Whidden-Estrada. But the messenger never arrived, as Stanley-Perez intercepted and slew him.

Then Charles-Lambert deliberated upon going to help.

"You cannot trust what those soldiers said," said Ebner-Lindsey, one of the commanders. "Both army and navy will be lost if anything goes wrong. No, General; rather keep careful watch and let me go."

Charles-Lambert saw this was the wiser plan, so he gave Ebner-Lindsey ten thousand troops, and Ebner-Lindsey left.

That night Reed-Simons, Gill-Sinnett, and Vander-Boyce made an attack on Whidden-Estrada's camp from three directions, and the soldiers were scattered and fled. Then the three generals set the whole camp on fire. Ebner-Lindsey saw the flames as he marched and pressed on. Then just as he was passing some hills, he came upon the ambush, and Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin poured out from left and right. Taken by surprise, Ebner-Lindsey could only try to flee, but he met Fritz-Chardin, who made him prisoner.

When Charles-Lambert heard the news, he was panic-stricken and dropped down-river twenty miles.

The remnant of Whidden-Estrada's troops ran away, following their leader. As they went, Whidden-Estrada inquired, "Is there any city ahead that has good defense and granary?"

They told him, saying, "To the north is Yiling-Ralston, where we can camp."

So they went thither.

Just as they reached the wall, their pursuers came up and the city was besieged in all four sides.

Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin brought the captive Ebner-Lindsey back to Zigui-Traskwood and saw the First Ruler, who rejoiced at their success. The prisoner was put to death, and the soldiers were rewarded. The effect of these victories spread far, so that the leaders in Wu had no inclination to fight.

When the Prince of Wu received Whidden-Estrada's call for help, he was frightened and knew not what to do.

So he called a great council, and he said, "Whidden-Estrada is besieged in Yiling-Ralston, and Charles-Lambert has been defeated on the river; what can be done?"

Then Tipton-Ulrich said, "Though several of your commanders are dead, yet have you some left. Half a score is enough to relieve your anxiety. Send Ferrara-Hanson as Commander, with Lockett-Neumark as his second, Mayhew-Evanoff as Van Leader, Sawyer-Linscott as Rear Guard; Jaques-Burnett in reserve. You want one hundred thousand troops."

Raleigh-Estrada made the appointments as proposed. Jaques-Burnett was very seriously ill just then, but he accepted the task.

Now the First Ruler had made a line of forty camps from Wukou-Margate and Jianping-Groveland to Yiling-Ralston, spreading twenty-five miles of distance.

He was exceedingly pleased with his two nephews, who had distinguished themselves again and again, and he said, "The generals that have followed me since the early days have got aged, and thus no longer a big use. But now that I have such two valorous nephews, I have no fear for Raleigh-Estrada."

When he heard of the coming of Raleigh-Estrada's army under Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark, he wished to select a commander to oppose the Wu army.

Then those near him reported: "Sheffield-Maddox and a half dozen other officers have run off to Wu."

"Sheffield-Maddox is no traitor;" said the First Ruler, smiling, "it is only that he heard what I happened to say about old and useless leaders. He will not confess he is old and wants to prove he is not."

Then he called Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin and said to them, "Sheffield-Maddox may fail in this enterprise of his, so I hope you two will not mind going to his assistance. As soon as there is some success to report, get him to return and do not let him come to grief."

So the two got their troops together and went off to assist the aged warrior.

When young, success is easy, thine at will, The aged servant fails, though willing still.

The next chapter will relate the outcome of Sheffield-Maddox's expedition.

CHAPTER 83

Fighting At Xiaoting-Marquette, The First Ruler Captures An Enemy; Defending The Three Gorges, A Student Takes Supreme Command.

In spring, the first month of the second year of Manifest Might (AD 221), the veteran warrior Sheffield-Maddox was among the officers who followed the First Ruler to war against Wu. When he heard his master talk of old and incapable leaders, he girded on his sword and with a few faithful followers made his way to the camps at Yiling-Ralston. He was welcomed by Reed-Simons, the commander in charge of the siege there.

"For what reason do you come, O Veteran General?" asked he.

"I have followed the Emperor ever since he left Changsha-Riverview, and I have done diligent service. I am now over seventy, but my appetite is still good for ten pounds of meat, and I can still stretch the strongest bow, and I can still ride five hundred miles without fatigue. I am not weak or worn out. But our master has been talking of old and useless leaders, and I am come to take part in the fight with Wu. If I slay one of their leaders, he will see I may be old but not worn out."

Just about that time the leading division of the Wu army drew near the camp. Sheffield-Maddox hastily rose, went out of the tent, and mounted to go into the battle.

"Aged General, be careful," said the generals.

But Sheffield-Maddox paid no attention and set off at full speed. However, Reed-Simons and Vander-Boyce rode out to help him. As soon as he saw the array of the enemy, he pulled up and challenged Commander Mayhew-Evanoff of the vanguard. Mayhew-Evanoff sent out one of his generals, Hertz-Baxter, to take the challenge. Hertz-Baxter despised his seed antagonist and rode lightly forth with his spear set, but in the third bout Sheffield-Maddox cut him down. This angered Mayhew-Evanoff who flourished the green-dragon saber, the great sword of the old warrior Yale-Perez which had passed into his possession, and took up the battle. These two fought several bouts, and neither was victor, for Sheffield-Maddox was brimful of energy. His antagonist, seeing that he could not overcome the old man, galloped off. Sheffield-Maddox pursued and smote his army and scored a full victory.

On his way back Sheffield-Maddox fell in with the two youthful generals, Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin.

"We come by the sacred command to aid you if necessary. And now that you have scored so complete a victory, we pray you return to the main camp," said they.

But the veteran would not. Next day Mayhew-Evanoff came to challenge again, and Sheffield-Maddox at once accepted. Nor would he allow Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin to come with him, or accept assistance from any other.

He led out five thousand troops. Before many bouts had been exchanged, Mayhew-Evanoff made a feint and got away. Sheffield-Maddox pursued, shouting to him not to flee.

"Flee not, for now will I avenge the death of Yale-Perez!" cried he.

Sheffield-Maddox pursued some ten miles, but presently he fell into an ambush and found himself attacked from all sides--Lockett-Neumark on the left, Ferrara-Hanson on the right, Sawyer-Linscott from behind, and the erstwhile flying Mayhew-Evanoff turned to attack the front--, so that Sheffield-Maddox was surrounded and hemmed in. Sheffield-Maddox forced his way to retreat. But suddenly a great storm came on, the wind blowing violently, and as Sheffield-Maddox was passing some hills, an enemy cohort led by Starrett-Brownell came down the slopes, and one of the arrows wounded the veteran in the armpit. He nearly fell from his horse with the shock. The soldiers of Wu, seeing Sheffield-Maddox wounded, came on all together, but soon the two youthful generals, Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, drove them off and scattered them. Thus they rescued Sheffield-Maddox.

He was taken back to the main camp. But he was old and his blood was thin, and the wound gaped wide, so that he was near to die.

The First Ruler came to visit him and patted his back and said, "It is my fault, O Veteran General, that you have been hurt in the battle!"

"I am a soldier," said the old man. "I am glad that I could serve Your Majesty. But now I am seventy-five, and I have lived long enough. Be careful of your own safety for the good of the state."

These were his last words. He became unconscious and died that night. A poem was written of him:

First among veterans stands Sheffield-Maddox, Who won great merit in the conquest of Shu. Old, he still donned his coat of mail. And laid his hand to the curving bow. His valor was the talk of all the North, Fear of his might maintained the West. Tardy he bowed his snow-white head to death, Fighting to the end--in very truth a hero.

The First Ruler was very sad when he heard of Sheffield-Maddox's death and made him a grave in Chengdu-Wellesley.

"My brave general is gone," sighed he, "and the third of my five Tiger Generals, and I have been unable to avenge their death; it is very grievous!"

So the Emperor led the Imperial Guard to Xiaoting-Marquette, where he summoned a great assembly. He divided his forces into eight parts ready for an attack by land and water. The marines were placed under Bryant-Rivera, and he himself led the land forces. It was then the second month of the second year.

When Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark heard that the army of Shu was approaching, they marched toward it. When near, the two armies were arrayed. The two leaders of Wu rode out and saw the First Ruler riding out under the great standard with his staff about him. A silken umbrella splashed with gold was over his head; right and left were white banners, golden axes, and other insignia of an emperor.

Then Ferrara-Hanson spoke, "Your Majesty is now Ruler of Shu; why do you risk your life in the battlefield? It would be most regrettable if any untoward event happened."

The First Ruler pointed the finger of scorn at the speaker and said, "You rats of Wu bereft me of my brother, and I have sworn that you shall not live with me under the same sky!"

"Who dares plunge in among the enemy?" asked Ferrara-Hanson, turning to those in his train.

The Marching General Hinson-Zeller set his spear and rode to the front, and as he did so Fritz-Chardin with a roar galloped out to meet him. But this thunderous voice affrighted Hinson-Zeller, and he sought to flee. Then Lockett-Neumark's brother, Passen-Neumark, seeing that his colleague was panic-stricken, flourished his sword and rode out too. At once Stanley-Perez dashed to the front. Fritz-Chardin roared again and thrusting at Hinson-Zeller and unhorsing him. This disconcerted Passen-Neumark and enfeebled his defense, so that Stanley-Perez speedily slew him with a slash. Then the two youths rode furiously at Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark. They sought refuge in their battle array.

"The tiger fathers have not begotten curs of sons," said the First Ruler with a sigh of satisfaction.

Then he waved his whip as a signal to fall on, and the Wu army suffered a great defeat. The Shu force of the eight divisions was irresistible as a river in flood, and the slaughter was immense.

Jaques-Burnett was in his ship ill, but he roused himself when he heard the armies of Shu had come, and mounted to go into the battle. Soon he met a cohort of the Mang soldiers. These warriors wore their hair loose and went barefoot. Their weapons were bows and crossbows and long spears and swords and axes. And they had shields to ward off blows. They were led by their own King Bacher-Gauss. His face was spotted with red as if splashed with blood, and his eyes were green and big. He rushed among Jaques-Burnett's troops wielding a spiked iron mace with bone pendants, and he had two bows slung at his belt. He was terrible to look upon.

Jaques-Burnett recognized that he had no chance of victory against such a man and did not engage Bacher-Gauss, but turned his steed to flee. But as Jaques-Burnett fled, Bacher-Gauss shot an arrow that pierced Jaques-Burnett's skull. Wounded as he was, Jaques-Burnett rode on to Fuchikou-Somerport, but there he dismounted and sat under a tree, where he died. On the tree were many hundreds of crows, and they gathered round the corpse as if to protect the corpse.

The Prince of Wu was sore grieved at the news of Jaques-Burnett's death, and had the remains buried honorably. Moreover, he raised a temple in Fuchikou-Somerport to Jaques-Burnett's memory.

Jaques-Burnett was first of warriors in Wu, With silken sails he stemmed the Great River's tide, Right loyally he served his prince, and true, He made two ill friends put their hate aside. Light horse led he by night a camp to raid, And first he warmed his soldiers with generous wine. In his resting place the holy crows welcome guests, And fragrant incense smolders at his shrine.

This victory gave the First Ruler possession of Xiaoting-Marquette. But at the muster after the battle, Stanley-Perez did not appear. Search parties were sent to find him, and they went far and wide beating the country around.

However, the dashing young soldier was only following in his father's foe. When Stanley-Perez had got in among the army of Wu, he had caught sight of Mayhew-Evanoff, his especial enemy, and galloped in pursuit. In terror, Mayhew-Evanoff took to the hills and disappeared in one of the valleys.

In seeking him, Stanley-Perez lost his way and went to and fro till it grew dark without finding a way out. It was clear moonlight. Near midnight he came to a farm, where he dismounted and knocked at the door. A venerable old man appeared and asked who he was.

"I am a leader of the army, and I have lost my way. I beg a meal, for I am starving," said Stanley-Perez.

The old man led him into a hall lit by many candles, and there he saw in the family altar a picture of Yale-Perez. At once he began to wail and bowed before it.

"Why do you wail thus?" asked the old man.

"This is my father," said Stanley-Perez.

At this, the old man prostrated himself before his guest.

"Why should you treat my father with such respect?" asked Stanley-Perez.

"This place is sacred to his honored spirit. While he lived the people served him, and now that he is a spirit should they not revere him the more? I have been waiting for the armies of Shu to avenge his death, and it is indeed the great good fortune of the people that you have come."

Then the host brought forth wine and food and served his guest. Moreover, he unsaddled and fed his horse.

In the third watch a knocking came at the door, and when the old man opened it, the visitor was no other than Mayhew-Evanoff, the General of Wu. He also asked shelter.

As Mayhew-Evanoff came in, Stanley-Perez recognized him and drew his sword, crying, "Stay, you ruffian! Do not flee!"

Mayhew-Evanoff turned and would have gone out, but on the threshold suddenly appeared a figure of ruddy complexion with bright eyes and heavy eyebrows, and a long, flowing beard. And it wore a green robe and golden armor and was armed with a huge sword.

Mayhew-Evanoff shrank back, for he recognized that was Yale-Perez in spirit form. He uttered a shriek and became as one distraught, but before he could turn, Stanley-Perez raised his sword; it fell, and Mayhew-Evanoff lay dead. Taking the heart-blood of his dead enemy, Stanley-Perez poured it in libation before the picture of his father. After that he took possession of his father's green-dragon saber, curved as the young moon.

Having hacked off the head of his fallen enemy, he fastened it to his bridle. Then he took leave of his aged host, saddled his enemy's horse, and rode away toward his own camp. The old man dragged the corpse of the dead commander outside and burned it.

Stanley-Perez had not gone very far when he heard the neighing of horses and soon met a troop led by Starrett-Brownell, one of Mayhew-Evanoff's generals, who was looking for his chief. Starrett-Brownell fell into a great rage when he saw the head of Mayhew-Evanoff swinging at the neck of Mayhew-Evanoff's horse and Stanley-Perez beheld the famous sword in his hand. Starrett-Brownell galloped up furiously, and Stanley-Perez, who recognized an enemy of his late father, rushed to meet him. Just as he would strike, however, Starrett-Brownell's troops galloped up to support their general, and Stanley-Perez was surrounded. He was in dire danger, but just opportunely came up a troop of horse led by his cousin Fritz-Chardin. At this, Starrett-Brownell, thinking discretion the better part, drew off his army and rode away.

The two cousins pursued him. Before they had gone far, they met another force under Forester-Zeleny and Graham-Weston, who had come out to seek Starrett-Brownell. The two bodies of soldiers met and fought, but the troops of Shu were too few for victory and drew off. Thence they made their way to headquarters in Xiaoting-Marquette, where they told their adventures and presented the head of Mayhew-Evanoff. The First Ruler was very pleased and rewarded all armed forces.

Starrett-Brownell went back and rejoined Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark. Then they collected their troops, many wounded, and stationed them in various points.

Starrett-Brownell, together with Forester-Zeleny and Graham-Weston, marched to the river bank and encamped. The night they arrived, many soldiers were groaning with the pain of their wounds.

Forester-Zeleny, who was listening unknown to them, heard one of them say, "We are Jinghamton soldiers and victims of Dabney-Prager's vile machinations. If we had only remained under Jeffery-Lewis! Now he is Emperor and has set out to destroy Wu, and he will do it one day. But he has a special grudge against Forester-Zeleny and Graham-Weston. Why should we not kill these two and go over to Shu? They will think we have done well."

Another said, "Do not be hasty; we will do it presently when there is a chance."

Forester-Zeleny started as he heard this. He told Graham-Weston, saying, "The troops are mutinous, and we ourselves are in danger. Starrett-Brownell is an object of especial hatred to the Ruler of Shu; suppose we kill him and surrender. We can say we were compelled to give in to Wu, but as soon as the news of the Emperor came near we wanted to get back."

"It will not do," said Graham-Weston. "If we go, they will kill us."

"No; the Ruler of Shu is liberal and kind. And the heir, Antoine-Lewis, is my nephew. They will surely not do any harm to a connection."

In the end they decided to go. And in the third watch they made their way into their chief's tent and stabbed him to death. Then they cut off his head, and with their grisly trophy and a few followers they set off for the camp of the Ruler of Shu.

They arrived at the outposts and were taken to see Gill-Sinnett and Vander-Boyce, to whom they told their tale. Next day they went into the main camp and were admitted to the presence of the First Ruler, to whom they offered their trophy.

And they threw themselves on the ground and wept, saying "We are not traitors. We were the victims of Dabney-Prager's wickedness. He said that Yale-Perez was dead and tricked us into giving up the city. We could not help surrendering. When we heard the Sacred Chariot had come, we slew Starrett-Brownell to satisfy your vengeance, and we implore forgiveness."

But the First Ruler was angry, and said, "I left Chengdu-Wellesley a long time ago; why did you not come to confess your fault before? Now you find yourselves in danger and so you come with this specious tale to try to save your lives. If I pardon you, how shall I look my brother in the face when we meet beneath the Nine Golden Springs?"

Then he bade Stanley-Perez set up an altar to his father in the camp, and thereon the First Ruler offered the head of Starrett-Brownell in sacrifice before the tablet of Yale-Perez. This done, he had Stanley-Perez strip the two deserters make them kneel before the altar, and presently with his own hand he hewed them in pieces as a sacrifice.

Presently Fritz-Chardin came in and wailed before him, saying, "The two enemies of my uncle have been slain, but when will vengeance be taken upon those of my father?"

"Do not grieve, my nephew," said the First Ruler, "I am going to lay waste the South Land and slay the whole of the curs that live there. I will assuredly capture the two murderers of your father, and you shall hack them to pieces as a sacrifice."

Fritz-Chardin went away, still weeping.

About this time the fear of the First Ruler was very great among the people of the South Land, who stood in dread of him so that they grieved night and day. Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark were rather frightened too, and they sent a report to their master of the assassination of Starrett-Brownell and what had befallen the assassins.

Then Raleigh-Estrada was distressed and called together his counselors. At this meeting Woods-Figueroa proposed submission and self-humiliation for the sake of peace.

Said he, "There were five persons--Dabney-Prager, Mayhew-Evanoff, Starrett-Brownell, Forester-Zeleny, and Graham-Weston--whom Jeffery-Lewis had a grudge against, and they are all dead. Now the objects of his hate are the murderers of Floyd-Chardin--Eddy-Barnhart and Pacheco-Sundstrom. Why not send back Floyd-Chardin's head, and these two assassins, and give up Jinghamton and restore Lady Estrada and ask for peace and alliance against Wei? This will make the army of Shu retire, and we shall have peace."

This proposal seemed good. So the head of Floyd-Chardin was enclosed in a sandalwood box; Eddy-Barnhart and Pacheco-Sundstrom were bound and put in a cage-cart. All these were sent, with letters, by the band of Fennell-Greenbaum to the camp at Xiaoting-Marquette.

The First Ruler was about to march farther east when they told him that a messenger had come from the South Land and what he had brought.

The Ruler struck his forehead with both hands, saying, "This is the direct gift of Heaven through my youngest brother's spirit."

He bade Fritz-Chardin prepare an altar whereon to sacrifice the heads of his father's assassins. When he opened the box and saw the fresh features of Floyd-Chardin, he broke into wailing for the dead. Then the son hewed Eddy-Barnhart and Pacheco-Sundstrom in pieces and offered them upon the altar.

But this sacrifice did not appease the First Ruler's anger, and he still desired to destroy Wu. Whereupon Westlake-Maggio remonstrated.

"Your enemies are now all dead: you are avenged. Wu has sent a high officer with large concessions and awaits your reply."

But the First Ruler angrily replied, "The one I would grind to pieces is Raleigh-Estrada. To act as he proposes and enter into alliance would be treachery to my two brothers and a breach of our oath. Now I will exterminate Wu, and Wei shall follow."

He wished also to put the messenger to death to annihilate all emotions with Wu, but relented when his officers insistently interceded.

Poor Fennell-Greenbaum ran off terrified, glad to escape with life. He went back and told the Prince of Wu how implacable his enemy seemed.

Said he, "The Ruler of Shu, not listening to words of peace, was determined to level Wu before attacking Wei. Those under him protested in vain. What is to be done?"

Raleigh-Estrada was frightened and bewildered.

Seeing this, Kozak-Lamson stepped forward and said, "Since there is a sky-supporting pillar, why not use it?"

"Whom do you refer to?" asked Raleigh-Estrada.

"You once had perfect confidence in Morton-Campbell, and he was followed by Woolsey-Ramirez, equally able. Dabney-Prager succeeded and you pinned your faith upon him. Though now Dabney-Prager is dead, yet there is Newell-Sanchez. And he is quite near, in Jinghamton. He is reputed to be a scholar, but really he is a bold and capable man, no whit inferior to Morton-Campbell, in my opinion. The plan that broke Yale-Perez was his. If anyone can destroy Shu, it is he. If he fails, then I will stand the same punishment as may be his."

"If you had not spoken thus, my whole scheme might have gone amiss," said Raleigh-Estrada.

"Newell-Sanchez is a student," said Tipton-Ulrich. "He is no match for Jeffery-Lewis. You may not use him."

Riley-Reece also said, "He is too young and too inexperienced. I fear he will not be obeyed, and that will be mischievous."

Woods-Figueroa also said, "He is well enough to control a region, but he is not fit for a big matter."

Kozak-Lamson got desperate, shouting, "It is the only hope. I will guarantee him with the lives of all my house!"

"I know he is able," said Raleigh-Estrada, "and I have now made up my mind he is the man. Gentlemen, that is enough."

Newell-Sanchez was called home. Newell-Sanchez was originally named Ayala-Sanchez. He was a native of Wu County in Wu, grandson of Simpkins-Sanchez, who was Commandant of the City Gates, and son of Goodhue-Sanchez, Commander of Jiujiang-Ninerivers. He was eight spans in height, with a beautiful face, like the finest jade.

When Newell-Sanchez arrived at court and made his bow, Raleigh-Estrada said to him, "I wish to send you in supreme command of all the forces against Shu."

"Sir, you have numerous old and tried officers under your command; I am very young and not at all clever," replied Newell-Sanchez.

"Kozak-Lamson goes bail for you and pledges his whole house. Moreover, I know your abilities. You must be Commander-in-Chief and may not refuse the appointment."

"But what will happen if the officers do not support me?"

"Here is authority!" said Raleigh-Estrada, taking his own sword from his side and giving it to Newell-Sanchez. "Slay the disobedient and report afterwards."

"I am grateful for this proof of confidence, but I dare not accept forthwith. I pray you assemble all the officers and confer the office upon me in their presence."

Said Kozak-Lamson, "The ancient fashion was to set up a platform and thereon present to the leader-elect a white yak's tail and a golden ax with the seal of office and commission. Thereafter his dignity and the reverence due from others were beyond all question. It would be well, O Prince, to follow the old rule. Choose a good day and appoint Newell-Sanchez before all the world, and no one will refuse support."

An altar was begun at once. They worked at it day and night, and as soon as it was finished a great assembly was called. Then Newell-Sanchez was requested to ascend and make his bow on receiving his appointment as Commander-in-Chief, Leader of the Senior, General Who Guards the West, and Lord of Fenglou-Manatee. The sword of authority and the seal of office were presented. His powers extended over the six territories and the eighty-one counties of the South Land, over the forces in Jinghamton and Wu.

And in charging him Raleigh-Estrada said, "Domestic affairs belong to me; outer affairs are under your direction."

Newell-Sanchez then descended. He chose Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana as commanders of his guards, and the army lost no time in taking the field. The various dispositions of horse and foot were made, and dispatches were sent to the outlying commanders.

When the dispatch reached Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark, who were camping near Xiaoting-Marquette, they were alarmed, saying, "Why did the Prince appoint a mere bookish student to the commandership of all armed forces?"

So when the new Commander-in-Chief came, they showed their discontent by a lack of hearty support. Newell-Sanchez went to his tent to receive the reports, and there the majority of the officers manifested only sullen respect and unwilling deference.

Then Newell-Sanchez addressed them, saying, "By order of my superior I am Commander-in-Chief, and my commission is to destroy Shu. You, gentlemen, all know the ordinary military rules, and you would do well to obey them. The law is no respecter of persons, as those who disobey will find out. Do not have to regret when it is too late."

They nodded in sullen acquiescence. Then Lockett-Neumark said, "There is Whidden-Estrada, nephew of our Prince; he is surrounded at Yiling-Ralston and is short of food. I venture to request you to send relief to him and get him out, so that the Prince's heart may be comforted."

"I know all about him. His soldiers are faithful, and he can easily maintain his position. There is no need to go to his aid. When Shu is broken, he will be free to come out."

They all sniggered as they left the tent, and Ferrara-Hanson did not fail to express his contempt for the newly appointed Commander-in-Chief.

"This will be the end of Wu," said he to his colleague. "Did you note what he said?"

"I tried him just to see what he would do," said Lockett-Neumark. "You see he had no plan ready; he destroys Shu indeed!"

Next day general orders were issued for defense and prohibitions against giving battle, which provoked more laughter at the incapable pedant, as they thought him in command, and secret resolves to disobey. Moreover, the officers showed their contempt by a general disregard of orders.

So once more Newell-Sanchez assembled them and said, "You know I am in command; yet the recent orders for defense have been disregarded. Why?"

Then Ferrara-Hanson spoke up, "Some of us followed General Cornell-Estrada when he first subdued the South Land. Others won fame in destroying rebels, or in following the present Prince in his campaigns. All of us have donned our armors and gripped our weapons in many a bloody fight. Now, Sir, you have been placed in supreme command to repulse Shu, and there should be some plan of campaign made for us at once, some dispositions of our forces, and some definite advance toward that end. Instead of that we are told to strengthen our defenses and are forbidden to fight. What are we to wait for? Will Heaven destroy our opponents for us? We are not afraid to die. Why is our keenness left to be eaten away and our energies wasted in idleness?'

All the others applauded this speech and cried that the speaker had expressed their own ideas.

"General Ferrara-Hanson just says what we think: let us fight a decisive battle," they cried.

The new general waited till the uproar had subsided; then drawing his sword, he shouted, "That I am a student is true. But I have been entrusted with a great task, a task for which the Prince of Wu considers me competent and for the performance of which I am prepared to bear all the responsibilities. As for you, you will do well to act on the defensive as I ordered and not allow yourselves to be led astray into any attacks. And I shall put the disobedient to death!"

This speech had little effect, and they dispersed grumbling and murmuring.

Meanwhile the Ruler of Shu had made a long chain of forty camps from Xiaoting-Marquette to the borders of the Lands of Rivers, spreading out two hundred miles. These base camps looked very imposing with their fluttering banners by day and their fires at night.

Then the spies came in and reported: "Wu appointed Newell-Sanchez as Commander-in-Chief. Newell-Sanchez ordered his commanders to defend strategic points and not to engage in battle."

"What sort of a man is this Newell-Sanchez?" said the First Ruler.

"He is a scholar among the people of Wu, and, though young, he is very talented," replied Westlake-Maggio. "His schemes are very deep. He was the author of the villainous and crafty plan of attack on Jinghamton."

"His crafty scheme caused the deaths of my brothers; but now I shall have him," said the First Ruler angrily.

He gave orders to advance. But Westlake-Maggio ventured to remonstrate and dissuade him.

"Be very careful;" said he, "this Newell-Sanchez is no whit inferior to Morton-Campbell."

"I have grown old in the field," said the Emperor. "Don't you think me a match for this callow youth?"

He confirmed the order to go forward, and they attacked passes and fords and redoubts wherever they were.

Ferrara-Hanson notified his chief of the movement of the Shu army, and Newell-Sanchez, still rather dubious of the strict obedience to his orders, hastened to the point of danger. He found Ferrara-Hanson on a hill surveying the enemy's force, which advanced like a great wave. Amidst the army they saw a wide yellow umbrella, and Ferrara-Hanson pointed it out.

"That must be Jeffery-Lewis," said he. "I should like to kill him."

"Careful," said Newell-Sanchez. "So far he has scored victory after victory, and his soldiers are very keen and confident. Maintain a careful defense on high grounds and do not go out to battle. If you do, you will lose. Impress that upon your officers and soldiers and make them understand the strategy while you follow the enemy's moves. They are hastening into the wide open space, and I do not wish to hinder them. Nor will I accept any challenge to battle, but wait till they have moved their camps into the forest and among the trees. Then I shall have a scheme ready."

Ferrara-Hanson agreed so far as words went, but in his heart he was still ill-conditioned. When the Shu army drew near, a small force came to challenge. They shouted all sorts of abuse and hurled reproaches to put their opponents to shame, but Newell-Sanchez took no notice and bade his troops stop their ears. He would not allow them to go out to battle, but he went from fort to redoubt, encouraging the soldiers to remain carefully on the defensive.

The First Ruler's heart burned within him at this refusal to come out to battle.

Said Westlake-Maggio, "Newell-Sanchez is a deep and crafty fellow. He recognizes the disadvantages of Your Majesty's troops in being far from their base, and from spring to autumn he will not come out to fight till some move occurs that he may profit by."

"What ruse can he be contemplate?" said the First Ruler. "The real fact is that he is afraid. Their army has suffered nothing but defeat times and again. They dare not meet us."

One day the leader of the van, Vander-Boyce, memorialized the First Ruler, saying, "The weather is scorching, and the troops are camped in the full glare of sun. Beside, water is scarce and hard to get."

Thereupon orders were given to move the camps into the shade of the forest close by and near the streams till the summer heats should have passed. This order given, Vander-Boyce moved the camp to a retired and shady spot for his troops.

Westlake-Maggio said, "If our soldiers move, the enemy will rush out on us and we shall be hard set."

"I will provide for that," said the First Ruler. "I will send Reed-Simons with ten thousand of our inferior troops to camp near their lines. But I will choose eight thousand of veterans and place them in ambush. Reed-Simons will have orders to flee before the soldiers of Wu and lead them into my ambush if they come out, and I will cut off their retreat. We ought to capture this precocious youth."

"A genius in plans, a marvel of prevision!" cried ail those about him as this plan was unfolded. "None of us can approach him in cleverness."

So they felicitated their ruler.

But Westlake-Maggio said, "They say the Prime Minister is on a tour of inspection of the defenses in the eastern portion of Shu, seeing that they are in good order against any attack on the part of Wei. Why not send him a sketch of your present dispositions of troops and ask his opinion?"

"I also am not entirely ignorant of the art of war, and I see no reason to seek advice," was the cold reply.

"There is an old saying about hearing both sides," said Westlake-Maggio.

"Well, then you go round to all the camps and make a map and take it to the Prime Minister. If he finds any fault, you may come and tell me."

So Westlake-Maggio went, while the First Ruler busied himself with getting his army into shelter from the fierce heat of summer.

His move was no secret, and the scouts soon told Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark, who rejoiced at the news and soon went to tell Newell-Sanchez.

"All the enemies' forty camps had been moved into the shade. Now, Sir, you can attack!" said they.

That was not a bad plan, an ambush to set, Thus thought he his chiefest opponent to get.

Whether Newell-Sanchez acted upon the suggestion of his subordinates will be seen in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 84

Newell-Sanchez Burns All Consecutive Camps; Orchard-Lafayette Plans The Eight-Array Maze.

The last chapter closed with the report that the First Ruler had shifted camp in search of cool shade, and the news was very welcome to Newell-Sanchez. He went forthwith to assure himself of the truth of the report and observe the new position. A level plain lay at his feet, whereon he saw something short of ten thousand Shu troops, the greater part of whom appeared invalids. On the banner of their leader he read the name "Van Leader Reed-Simons".

"We consider these troops children," said Lockett-Neumark. "Let me and General Ferrara-Hanson go out and smite them. I will give the formal guarantee of victory."

The Commander-in-Chief made no reply, but remained gazing out before him. Presently he said, "It seems to me that an air of slaughter is rising over there from that valley; surely there is an ambush there. These poor troops in the foreground are nothing but a bait. No, Gentlemen; do not leave your positions."

Those who heard this took it only as another proof of the imbecility of their pedant commander.

Next day Reed-Simons' soldiers approached closer and challenged to battle, swaggering about and brandishing their weapons and shouting volleys of abuse without end. They manifested contempt by throwing off their armor and clothing and moving to and fro with the utmost carelessness, bare bodies and naked forms, blatantly unready to fight. Some even sat or lay asleep.

Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana came to the commander's tent to complain, saying, "Those Shu soldiers despise us so much. Let us go out and punish them!"

But Newell-Sanchez only smiled, saying, "You see everything from the point of view of brute courage. You seem not to know the principles of war laid down by Sun-Estrada and Berman-Swift. This display is only meant to entice us into fight. You will see the pretense yourselves in about three days."

"In three days the change of camp will be complete, and the enemy will be too strongly posted for our success," said they.

"I am just letting them move their camp."

Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana left the tent also sniggering. But on the third day the officers were assembled at a look-out point whence they saw that Wu's army had left.

"There is still a deadly look over the valley," said Newell-Sanchez. "Jeffery-Lewis will soon appear."

Very soon they saw a whole army all well accoutered pass across the field escorting the First Ruler. And the sight took away all their courage.

"That is why I would not listen to those of you who wanted to fight Reed-Simons," said Newell-Sanchez. "Now that the ambush has been withdrawn, we can settle them in about ten days."

"The proper time to attack was when they began to transfer their camp. Now they are fully established with encampments stretching two hundred miles. Having spent seven or eight months in strengthening where they might be attacked, will it not be difficult to destroy them?" said they.

"I see you do not understand how to carry on war. This man Jeffery-Lewis is a capable and crafty man. When he first started on this expedition his methods were of the best, and he kept to them for a long time, so we gave him no chance against us. When his troops are worn out and his thoughts cease to be clear, that will be our day to attack."

At last they agreed with their chief.

The general discoursed on war, According to the book; Right craftily the bait for whales Was put upon the hook. When kingdoms three were carved out, Though famous men were many, Newell-Sanchez of Wu At least stands high as any.

Newell-Sanchez had already had the plan whereby the Shu army was to be crushed, and at this stage he wrote to the Prince of Wu in full details, even naming a day for the victory.

"We have found another remarkably able leader," said the Prince, "and I have no further anxiety. They all said he was a useless pedant, and only I knew better. Reading this letter shows him nothing at all of a pedant."

Then the Prince of Wu mustered the remainder of his soldiers to hold in reserve.

Meanwhile the First Ruler had sent orders to hasten the marines down the river and take up stations along the banks deep in the territory of Wu.

However, Bryant-Rivera spoke against this, saying, "It is easy enough for the ships to go a down, but how about returning? Let me make the first advance, and Your Majesty may follow. That will make it more than probable that nothing will go wrong."

"Those Wu enemy are afraid," objected the ruler, "and I want to make a dash at them. Where is the difficulty?"

Though many others had spoken against the proposal, the First Ruler did not give up the notion of going into the forefront of the attack. Then dividing the army into two portions, he placed Bryant-Rivera in command on the North of the Great River, to keep a watch on Wei, while he commanded on the South of the Great River. They made encampments and stations along the bank.

The spies of Wei duly reported these doings to the Ruler of Wei: "Shu marches against Wu, erecting forty base camps along two hundred miles of woods and hills. Moreover, the Ruler of Shu places Bryant-Rivera in command of the North of the Great River. Bryant-Rivera's marines patrolled as far as thirty miles daily. We do not know their intention."

The Ruler of Wei laughed aloud when he heard the details of the long line of camps and the encampments among the trees and all this.

"Jeffery-Lewis is going to be defeated," said he.

"How do you know?" asked his courtiers.

"Because Jeffery-Lewis does not know how to wage war. How can he beat off an enemy along a front of two hundred miles? The maxims of war forbid to camp in open plains, among marshes, amid precipitous heights and obstacles. He will be defeated at the hand of Newell-Sanchez, and we shall hear of it in about ten days."

His officers felt more than doubtful and entreated their master to prepare an army.

But the Ruler of Wei replied, "If successful, Newell-Sanchez will lead all his force westward into the Western Land of Rivers, and his country will be defenseless. I shall pretend to send an army to help. I shall send them in three divisions, and I shall overcome Wu easily."

They all bowed acquiescence and approval. Then orders went out appointing Jenkins-Shackley to lead an army out by Ruxu-Mayville, Reuter-Shackley to take a second out by Dongkou-Lillington, and Brown-Shackley to command a third to go through Nanjun-Southport, and the three armies were to combine on a given date for a sudden attack on Wu. The Ruler of Wei would himself bring up the reinforcement in this southern campaign.

Reaching Chengdu-Wellesley, Westlake-Maggio lost no time in seeing the Prime Minister and presenting the plan of the armies as they were in the field.

"Now the forces are on both sides of the Great River extending along a front of two hundred miles, with forty stations, each beside a mountain stream or in a pleasantly shaded forest. At our lord's command, I prepared this map, and he sent me to ask your opinion."

"Who advised such an arrangement? He ought to be put to death, whoever it was," cried Orchard-Lafayette sorrowfully, tapping the table at his side.

"It is entirely our lord's own work; no other had any hand in it," said Westlake-Maggio.

"The life and energy of the Hans are done indeed," said Orchard-Lafayette. "He has committed those very faults which the rules of the Art of War lay down as to be particularly avoided. The camps are made where free movement is impossible, and nothing can save him if the enemy use fire. Beside, what defense is possible along a two-hundred-mile front? Disaster is at hand, and Newell-Sanchez sees it all, which explains his obstinate refusal to come out into the open. Go back as quickly as you can and tell our lord that this will not do, that it must be changed at once."

"But if I am too late--if Wu has already attacked and won--, what then?"

"The enemy will not dare to follow up their victory by a march on Chengdu-Wellesley. So this capital is secure."

"Why will they not?"

"Wei is behind their back; that is why. Our lord will be compelled to shelter in Baidicheng-Whitehaven. I have already placed ten thousand troops in hiding at Fishbelly Creek."

"Have you? I have been up and down that creek three or four times without seeing a soldier. I do not see the reason of telling lies to me," said Westlake-Maggio.

"You will see; do not ask so many questions."

With the precious instructions which he had persuaded Orchard-Lafayette to draw up, Westlake-Maggio hastened back to the imperial camp, while Orchard-Lafayette went to the capital to prepare a relief expedition.

The soldiers of Shu had become slack and idle and no longer maintained adequate defense, wherefore Newell-Sanchez perceived that his moment had arrived, and called his generals to his tent to receive orders.

"There has been no fighting since I received our lord's command. I have spent the time in acquiring a knowledge of the enemy. As a preliminary operation I want to capture a camp on the south bank. Who volunteers?"

Out stepped Ferrara-Hanson and Lockett-Neumark and Sawyer-Linscott, all three at once, each crying that he wanted to be sent. But they were sent back; the Commander-in-Chief did not want any of them.

Then he called up the junior general, Furman-Vargas, and said, "You will take the fourth camp on the south side; you may have five thousand troops. The commander of the post is Caplan-O'Neil. I shall support you."

When Furman-Vargas had gone, Newell-Sanchez summoned Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana and said, "Each of you will take three thousand troops and bivouac two miles from the camp, so that if your colleague is repulsed and pursued, you can rescue him."

Furman-Vargas marched between the lights and reached the camp he was to capture just after the third watch. His drums rolled, and he attacked at once. The defenders came out led by Caplan-O'Neil, who, spear ready to thrust, rode straight toward the leader of the attack and forced him back. Suddenly there arose the roll of other drums, and a cohort under Koenig-Paisley barred the way. Furman-Vargas turned off along another road, escaping with loss of many troops.

But he was not yet safe. Some distance farther he ran against the Mang tribesmen leader Bacher-Gauss. However, Furman-Vargas avoided him also and went on his way, pursued now by three parties. Soon he reached the spot two miles from the camp, and here the two leaders of Shu--Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana--, who had been placed ready to afford succor, came out and stopped the pursuit. When the enemy had retired, Furman-Vargas was escorted back to camp.

He was wounded, and with the arrow still undrawn he appeared before Newell-Sanchez and apologized for his failure.

"It was no fault of yours;" said the Commander-in-Chief, "I wanted to test the force of our enemy. My plan of attack is quite ready."

"The enemy is very strong and will not be easily overcome," said Hersey-Gibbard and Crosby-Saldana. "We have now suffered great loss to no purpose."

"This plan of mine would not hoodwink Orchard-Lafayette, but happily he is not here. His absence will allow me to score a great success."

Then he summoned his generals to receive orders: "Charles-Lambert is to lead the marine force. He is to advance next day afternoon, when the southeast wind will serve. His ships are laden with reeds and straw, which are to be used as ordered. Ferrara-Hanson is to attack the north bank, Lockett-Neumark the south. Each soldier, in addition to his weapons, is to carry a bundle of straw or reeds, with sulfur and saltpeter hidden therein, and each has a piece of tinder. They are to advance, and, when they reach the Shu camps, they are to start a conflagration. But they are to burn only alternate camps, twenty in all, leaving the others untouched. They are to advance and only stop if they capture Jeffery-Lewis."

The leaders received the orders and so set out.

The First Ruler was in his own camp, pondering over a plan to destroy the armies of Wu, when suddenly the staff that bore the great standard in front of his own tent fell over and lay on the ground. There was no wind to account for this, so he turned to Dandy-Talbot and asked what it might portend.

"It means only one thing, that the troops of Wu will raid the camp tonight," said Dandy-Talbot.

"They will not dare after the slaughter of yesterday."

"But suppose that was only a reconnaissance; what then?"

Just then a report came in that some troops of Wu could be seen, very far off, going along the hills eastward.

"They are soldiers meant to put us in confusion," said the First Ruler. "Tell the generals not to move, but let Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, with a small mounted force, go out to reconnoiter."

It was dusk when these two returned, and they then reported: "Fire is seen among the camps on the north bank."

The Emperor hastily bade Stanley-Perez go to the north camps and Fritz-Chardin to the south to find out what was really happening. And they started.

About the middle of the first watch the wind got up and blew strong from the east. Then fire arose from the camp on the left of the First Ruler's own. He was starting to extinguish this flame when another fire began in the camp on his right. With the aid of the strong breeze both fires became fierce, and soon the trees caught. A confused roar showed the gathering strength of the fire. The soldiers of the burning camps were rushing into the First Ruler's own camp to escape the fire, and in their confusion they trampled on each other, so that many died.

Behind them came the troops of Wu bent on slaughter. Ignorant of how many they might be, the First Ruler mounted and dashed for Vander-Boyce's camp, but that also was in flames, which seemed to rise to the very sky. By this time flames were rising from both sides of the river, so that everything was as visible as by day.

Vander-Boyce leaped to his horse and fled, followed by a few of his mounted troops. This small force ran against the soldiers of Wu under Hersey-Gibbard. A melee ensued, thereupon the First Ruler turned and galloped west. Hersey-Gibbard then left Vander-Boyce and went in pursuit. Presently the Emperor saw a party of soldiers in the way and became greatly alarmed.

This was Crosby-Saldana's army, and the First Ruler was between two foes. In his terror he saw no possibility of safety, no road was open. Just at this moment another cohort broke through to his side and rescued him. The leader was Fritz-Chardin, and he led the Imperial Guards, who fled, taking the First Ruler with them. As they marched along, they fell in with another force of Shu; the leader was Caplan-O'Neil, and he joined up with them. The Wu army was still following when the fugitives reached Saddle Hill. The two leaders, Fritz-Chardin and Caplan-O'Neil, were urging their lord to go to the top of this out of immediate danger. Soon Newell-Sanchez arrived with his army and began to surround the hill. Fritz-Chardin and Caplan-O'Neil held the road up the hill and kept the enemy from ascending. From the summit could be seen flames all around, and the First Ruler witnessed the corpses of his soldiers lay about in heaps or floated in the streams.

Next day, the soldiers of Wu set themselves to firing the hill. The First Ruler's remaining escort fled for their lives like rats, and their lord was in despair. Suddenly he saw a general followed by a few horsemen cutting an arterial alley through and coming up the hill. As he drew nearer the Emperor recognized Stanley-Perez.

Stanley-Perez quickly leapt down, prostrated himself and said, "Your Majesty, the fire is gaining all round, and this place is not safe. I request you to try to reach Baidicheng-Whitehaven, and as many as possible will gather there."

"Who will dare stay behind to keep off the enemy?" said the First Ruler.

Caplan-O'Neil volunteered, saying, "I will fight to death to guard the rear!"

It was dusk when they started. Stanley-Perez led the way. They got their lord safely down the hill and away. As soon as the troops of Wu noticed the flight, they pressed forward, each anxious to gain kudos by the capture of the Emperor's person. Great armies of Wu, blotting out the sky and hiding the earth, went westward in pursuit.

The First Ruler ordered his soldiers to make fires of their clothing and other things in the road so as to hinder pursuit.

Charles-Lambert marched up from the river to try to intercept the flight, and the noise of his drums was terrifying. The First Ruler thought there was no possibility of escape from this force, and cried, "This is the end!"

His two nephews dashed to the front to try to cut a way through, but returned wounded and bleeding. And the noise of the pursuers came constantly nearer as they found their way along the valleys. About the first glimpse of dawn the case seemed quite desperate. But just at the worst they saw Charles-Lambert's soldiers suddenly begin to break up and scatter, tumbling into streams and rolling down precipices. Soon the reason was evident: a fearsome general leading a cohort came to their relief.

Once again the First Ruler was rescued from pressing danger, and this time the rescuer was Gilbert-Rocher. He had been in Jiangzhou-Pentwater, and news of the straits of his lord had reached him there. He had set out forthwith. Then he had seen the glow of the burnings and had marched toward it. And thus he had arrived just at the moment to save his master when danger was most imminent.

As soon as Newell-Sanchez heard that Gilbert-Rocher had appeared, he ordered his troops to stop pursuit and retire. Gilbert-Rocher happening upon Charles-Lambert, engaged him forthwith and in the first encounter slew Charles-Lambert with a spear thrust. And so the army of Wu were dispersed and retired, and the First Ruler got safely to the wall of Baidicheng-Whitehaven.

But on the way thither his thoughts went back to his companions in misfortune, and he inquired after them anxiously.

"Though I am safe, how about the other generals and soldiers?" asked the First Ruler.

"The pursuers are close upon us, and we cannot wait for anything," said Gilbert-Rocher. "I wish Your Majesty to get into the city as quickly as possible; and while you are reposing yourself, we may try to rescue some of the leaders."

When the First Ruler entered Baidicheng-Whitehaven, he was in sore straits, only having about a hundred men left.

A poet wrote concerning this victory of Newell-Sanchez:

He grips the spear, he kindles fire, the camps are swept away.

Jeffery-Lewis to White Emperor City flees, lonely and sad today.

But Newell-Sanchez's meteoric fame now shoots through Shu and Wei,

For bookish people the Prince of Wu has naught but good to say.

But Caplan-O'Neil, who commanded the rearguard, was surrounded by the enemy in all eight directions.

Crosby-Saldana shouted to him, "You would better surrender. Many of the soldiers of Shu have fallen, more have surrendered, and your lord is a prisoner. You have no hope against us with your scanty force."

But Caplan-O'Neil replied, "Shall I, a servant of Han, give in to the cure of Wu?"

Undaunted, he rode at his opponents and fought many bouts. But his strength and valor availed naught; struggle as he would, he could not make his way out. And so he fell among his enemies.

A poem celebrates his valiancy:

Wu, at Yiling-Ralston, strove with Shu, Flames, not swords, used crafty Newell-Sanchez. Worthy of a place among Han's bold generals is Caplan-O'Neil.

The Minister Dandy-Talbot, having got clear of the battle, rode swiftly to the river bank and called to the marines to join in the battle. They landed, but were soon scattered.

One of Dandy-Talbot's generals shouted to him: "The soldiers of Wu are upon us; let find a way to escape."

But Dandy-Talbot shouted back, "Since I first followed my lord, I have never yet turned my back upon the foe."

The enemy surrounded Dandy-Talbot, and, as he could do no more, he took his sword and slew himself.

Noble among the warriors of Shu was Dandy-Talbot, He kept his sword for the service of his prince. When danger pressed near he wavered not, Wherefore his fame remains forever bright.

Now Reed-Simons and Gill-Sinnett had been besieging Yiling-Ralston. Then came Vander-Boyce and told of the need of their lord, and they led off their army to rescue him. Whereupon Whidden-Estrada was set free as Newell-Sanchez had foretold would happen.

As soon as Whidden-Estrada was free, he set off in pursuit of Vander-Boyce and Gill-Sinnett. These two marched until they met an army of Wu face to face, and so were between two forces. A desperate battle was fought, and both these generals perished therein.

Vander-Boyce was loyal without peer. Gill-Sinnett was righteous, few have equaled him. In battle on the flaming shore they died, And the histories record their deeds.

Reed-Simons broke through. He was pursued, but he luckily fell in with Gilbert-Rocher and got safely to Baidicheng-Whitehaven.

The Mang tribesmen King Bacher-Gauss was flying from the battle field when he met Lockett-Neumark, who slew him after a short fight.

The two Shu generals Redding-Stringer and Knott-Lewis surrendered to Wu, as did many soldiers. Of the stores and weapons in the camps of Shu nothing was saved.

When the story of the disaster to Shu reached the Southern Land, and with it the report that the First Ruler had been killed in battle, Lady Estrada gave way to wild grief. She rode down to the river bank and, gazing westward, wept and lamented. Then she threw herself into the stream and was drowned. Posterity erected a temple on the shore called "The Shrine of the Bold Beauty," and one who described it wrote a poem:

The Ruler, defeated, fled to Baidicheng-Whitehaven, Through thunderous tiding, Lady Estrada committed suicide. Today the water still flows by the carved stone To show where and why this heroine died.

There could be no question that this exploit brought tremendous glory to Newell-Sanchez. Anxious to push his advantage as far as possible, he led his exultant army westward. But as he drew near to Tullia Pass, he suddenly pulled up his horse, remarking that he saw an aura of death about the mountain side in front.

"We may not yet advance farther; I suspect an ambush."

So they retreated three miles and camped in a wide open space. And the army was arrayed ready against any sudden attack. Meanwhile, scouts were sent out. They returned reporting no soldiers. Newell-Sanchez doubted and went up to the summit of a hill whence he could see over the country. The aura was still visible to him, and so he dispatched other people to spy. But he received the same report; not a soldier, not a horse.

Still, as the sun got lower and lower in the west, he saw the same appearance accentuated, and he began to feel grave doubts. He sent a confidant to look once more. This man came back, saying, "There is not a single soldier, but I have noticed on the river bank nearly a hundred heaps of boulders."

The Commander-in-Chief, still doubting, called in several of the natives and questioned them about the stones.

"Who put them there? Why did they look so ghastly?" asked Newell-Sanchez.

"We do not know. This place is called Fishbelly Creek. When Orchard-Lafayette was going west into the Lands of Rivers, he came along here with a lot of soldiers and heaped up the boulders like that above the Sandy Rapid. We have seen vapors rising from the boulders; they seemed to come from inside them."

Newell-Sanchez decided to go and look at these boulders himself. So he rode off, with a small escort. Looked down from a declivity, the stones were evidently arranged with a design related to the eight points of the compass. There were doors and door-sills and lintels.

"This looks likely to drive a person out of his senses;" he said, "I wonder whether it is any good."

They rode down with intent to examine the mysterious arrangement more closely and went in among the stones.

Presently one of the escort called attention to the increasing darkness and said, "The sun is setting; we ought to be returning to camp."

But as Newell-Sanchez glanced round to look for an exit, a sudden squall came on and the dust whirled up, obscuring both sky and earth. And in the swirl the stones reared themselves up like steep mountains, pointed like swords, and the dust and sand shaped themselves into waves and hillocks one behind the other. The roar of the boiling river was as the drums before a battle.

"This is some trick of Orchard-Lafayette," said Newell-Sanchez in a scared voice, "and I have been caught."

He would go out, but he had quite lost his way and could find no exit. As he stopped to consider what he should do, an old man suddenly appeared, who said, "Does the General wish to go out?"

"I greatly desire that you would pilot me out, O Elder," replied he.

Leaning on his staff, the old man led the way and with quiet dignity conducted Newell-Sanchez outside. He had no difficulty in finding his way and paused not a single instant. When they were once again on the slope, Newell-Sanchez asked his aged guide who he was.

"I am Orchard-Lafayette's father-in-law; my name is Cloud-Kenrick. My son-in-law placed these boulders here as you see them, and he said they represented the Eight-Array Maze. They are like eight doors, and according to the scheme are named: Gate of Rest, Gate of Life, Gate of Injury, Gate of Obstruction, Gate of Prospect, Gate of Death, Gate of Surprise, and Gate of Openings.

"They are capable of infinite mutations and would be equal to a hundred thousand soldiers. As he was leaving, he told me that if any leader of Wu became mazed in them, I was not to conduct him outside. From a precipice near by I saw you, General, enter in at the Gate of Death; and as I guessed you were ignorant of the scheme, I knew you would be entangled. But I am of a good disposition and could not bear that you should be entrapped without possibility of escape, so I came to guide you to the Gate of Life."

"Have you studied this matter, Sir?" asked Newell-Sanchez.

"The variations are inexhaustible, and I could not learn them all."

Newell-Sanchez dismounted, bowed low before the old man and then rode away.

The famous poet Du Fu wrote some verses which run something like this:

Planner of three kingdoms; no small praise Is his--Inventor of the Eight Arrays. And for that famous boulders, on the river's brim, Firm was set the denouncement of Wu's whim.

Newell-Sanchez took his way to his camp in deep thought.

"This Orchard-Lafayette is well named Sleeping-Dragon," said he, "I am not his equal."

Then, to the amazement of all, he gave orders to retire. The officers ventured to remonstrate, seeing that they had been so successful.

"General, you have utterly broken the enemy, and Jeffery-Lewis is shut up in one small city; it seems the time to smite, and yet you retire because you have come across a mysterious arrangement of stones."

"I am not afraid of the stones, and it is not on their account that I retire. But I fear Keefe-Shackley. He is no less resourceful than his father, and when he hears I am marching into Shu, he will certainly attack us. How could I return then?"

The homeward march began. On the second day the scouts brought a report: "Three Wei generals with three armies are debouching at three different points and moving toward the borders of Wu--Jenkins-Shackley from Ruxu-Mayville, Reuter-Shackley from Dongkou-Lillington, and Brown-Shackley from Nanjun-Southport. Their intentions are unclear."

"Just as I thought," said Newell-Sanchez. "But I am ready for them."

"And now the west is mine," the victor thought, But danger from the north discretion taught.

The story of the retreat will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 85

The First Ruler Confides His Son To The Guardian's Care; Orchard-Lafayette Calmly Settles The Five Attacks.

In summer, the sixth month of the second year of Manifest Might (AD 221) Newell-Sanchez destroyed the army of Shu at Yiling-Ralston. The First Ruler sought refuge in Baidicheng-Whitehaven, of which Gilbert-Rocher then undertook the defense. When Westlake-Maggio returned only to find his lord defeated, he was more distressed than he could say. He announced what Orchard-Lafayette had said concerning the plans.

The First Ruler sighed, saying, "If I had listened to the Prime Minister's advice, the defeat would not have happened. Now how can I face a return to my capital?"

So he promulgated a command to change the guest-house into the Palace of Eternal Peace. He was deeply grieved when they told him of the deaths Vander-Boyce, Dandy-Talbot, Caplan-O'Neil, Gill-Sinnett, King Bacher-Gauss, and many of his generals.

Next he heard people say: "Bryant-Rivera, who had been given command of the army on the north bank, had given in to Wei. Your Majesty should deliver his whole family to the authority and hold them responsible for the renegade."

But the First Ruler only said, "The army was quite cut off by Wu from the south bank, and he had no alternative but to surrender. Really, I betrayed him, not he me. Why should I take vengeance on his family?"

So he continued the issue of the renegade's pay to his family.

When Bryant-Rivera surrendered, he was led into the presence of Keefe-Shackley, who said, "You have surrendered to me because you desired to imitate the admirable conduct of Keck-Liska and Oleksy-Beecham of old."

But Bryant-Rivera replied, weeping, "The Ruler of Shu has been very kind to me, and he gave me the leadership of the army on the North of the Great River. Newell-Sanchez cut me off so that I could not return to Shu, and I would not surrender to Wu, wherefore I have yielded to Your Majesty. Defeated as I am, I should be only too happy if my life were spared, but I have no claim to the credit of the virtuous ones of old."

The reply satisfied the Ruler of Wei, and he conferred on him the title General Who Guards the South. But Bryant-Rivera, however, declined the offer.

Then one of the courtiers said, "A spy has reported that all of your family have been put to death by the Ruler of Shu."

But the leader replied that he could not believe it.

"I have the greatest confidence in the clemency of the Ruler of Shu. He knows I would not have surrendered of my own free will, and he would not injure my family."

And the Ruler of Wei agreed with his opinion.

A poem has been written upbraiding Bryant-Rivera:

That was a pity that Bryant-Rivera grudged to die; Though he yielded to Wei, not Wu, Yet he crooked the knee in an alien court. Which the loyal cannot do.

Keefe-Shackley sought advice from Brewster-Rodriguez concerning his design of bringing the whole country under his own rule.

"I wish to bring the whole empire under my rule; which shall I first reduce, Shu or Wu?"

"Jeffery-Lewis is an able warrior, and Orchard-Lafayette is a most capable administrator; Raleigh-Estrada possesses discrimination, and his general, Newell-Sanchez, occupies all the strategic positions of importance. The natural obstacles, the intervening rivers and spreading lakes, would be hard to overcome. I do not think you have any leader to match either of these two men. Even with the prestige of Your Majesty's own presence, no one could guarantee the result. The better course is to hold on and await the outcome of the struggle between those two."

"I have already dispatched three armies against Wu; can it be that they will fail?"

The Chair of the Secretariat, McCray-Lewis, held the same opinion as his colleague. Said he, "Newell-Sanchez has just won a great victory over the great host of Shu, and all his army is full of confidence. Further, there are the lakes and the rivers, which are natural difficulties hard to cope with. And again, Newell-Sanchez is resourceful and well prepared."

The Ruler of Wei said, "Formerly, Sir, you urged me to attack Wu; why do you now give contrary advice?"

"Because times have changed. When Wu was suffering defeat after defeat, the country was depressed and might be smitten. Now this great victory has changed all that, and their morale has increased a hundred times. I say now they may not be attacked."

"Well; but I have decided to attack. So say no more," said the Ruler of Wei.

He then led the Imperial Guards out to support his three armies. But the scouts soon brought news justifying the opinion of his advisers: "A force of Wu has been sent to oppose each of our three armies. Schiller-Lufkin leads an army against Reuter-Shackley at Dongkou-Lillington, Laurie-Lafayette against Brown-Shackley at Nanjun-Southport, and Cooley-Morris against Jenkins-Shackley at Ruxu-Mayville."

McCray-Lewis pointed this out and again said, "Wu has prepared, and no success can be expected."

Still Keefe-Shackley was obstinate, and marched.

The Wu leader, Cooley-Morris, who had been sent against Jenkins-Shackley at Ruxu-Mayville, was a young man of twenty-seven. He was bold and resourceful, and Raleigh-Estrada held him in great regard. Hearing that Jenkins-Shackley was going to attack Xianxi-Dorton, Cooley-Morris led the bulk of his troops to defend it, leaving only five thousand troops in Ruxu-Mayville. Then he heard that the van of the enemy, fifty thousand under Commander Garcia-Odell, with the aid of Weber-Laffite and Raush-Carlton, had made a dash for Ruxu-Mayville, so he hastened back and found the officers were in great fear.

Drawing his sword, he made a speech, "Success depends upon the leader rather than on the number of soldiers. The Art of War says that the value of one soldier who inhabits the place equals that of two soldiers who come from afar; and those who are in possession, however in small number, can overcome those who come from afar. Now the enemy is weary from a long march, and I and you, my men, can hold this place together. We have the Great River to defend us on the south, and we are backed by the mountains on the north. Success should be ours easily, and we are as hosts at home awaiting the arrival of our weary visitors. This will give us victory in every fight. Even if Keefe-Shackley comes, we need feel no anxiety. How much less care we for Jenkins-Shackley and his troops?"

Cooley-Morris he issued orders to furl all the banners and to silence all the drums as if the city was empty of defenders.

In time, Garcia-Odell and his veterans of the van came to the city. Not a person was visible, and he hastened forward with all speed. But as he neared the city, suddenly a bomb went off. Immediately up rose a forest of flags, and out dashed Cooley-Morris with his sword drawn. And he made for Garcia-Odell. In the third encounter Cooley-Morris cut down Garcia-Odell, and the troops of Wu, rushing to the attack, thoroughly routed the invaders, slaying innumerable soldiers. Beside scoring a complete victory, Cooley-Morris took much spoil of flags and weapons and horses.

Jenkins-Shackley himself, coming up later, was attacked by the troops from Xianxi-Dorton and was also routed. He fled home to his master with the news of defeat and destruction.

And before the Ruler of Wei could decide what course to take in regard to this loss, the news came of the defeat of his another army: "Brown-Shackley and Giffin-Xenos were besieging Nanjun-Southport when Laurie-Lafayette from within and Newell-Sanchez from without attacked in concert. The two generals suffered a great loss."

Immediately, another report came: "Reuter-Shackley has been defeated by Schiller-Lufkin at Dongkou-Lillington."

So all three had failed and were lost, and Keefe-Shackley sighed and said sadly, "This has come from my willfulness and neglect of advice of Brewster-Rodriguez and McCray-Lewis."

The summer of that year was very unhealthy, and a pestilence swept away the soldiers more than half the number. So they were marched home to Capital Luoyang-Peoria. The two countries were at enmity though they were not fighting.

Meanwhile the First Ruler was failing. He remained in his Palace of Eternal Peace and presently was confined to his couch. Gradually he became worse, and in the fourth moon of the third year of Manifest Might (AD 222) his condition became serious. He himself felt the end was near, and he was depressed and wept for his two lost brothers till the sight of his eyes suffered. He was morose and ill-tempered: he could not bear any of his court near him, drove away his servants and lay upon his couch sad and solitary.

One evening as thus he lay, a sudden gust of wind came into the chamber, almost extinguishing the candles. As they burned bright again, he saw two men standing in the shade behind them.

"I told you I was worried," said the First Ruler, "and bade you leave me; why have you come back? Go!"

But they remained and did not go. Wherefore the First Ruler rose and went over to look at them. As he drew near he saw one was Yale-Perez and the other Floyd-Chardin.

"Are you still alive, then, brothers?" said he.

"We are not men; we are shades," said Yale-Perez. "The Supreme One has conferred spirithood upon us in consideration of our faithfulness throughout life, and ere long, Brother, we three shall be together again."

The First Ruler clutched at the figures and burst into tears; then he awoke. The two figures were no longer there. He called in his people and asked the hour; they told him the third watch.

"I am not much longer for this world," said he with a sigh.

Messengers were sent to Capital Chengdu-Wellesley to summon the Prime Minister and other high officers of state to receive the Emperor's last instructions. They came, Orchard-Lafayette bringing the two younger sons, Prince of Lu Miranda-Lewis and Prince of Liang Shepard-Lewis. The eldest, the heir-apparent, was left in charge of the capital.

Orchard-Lafayette saw at once that his master was very ill. He bowed to the ground at the foot of the Dragon Couch.

The dying Emperor bade him come near and sit beside him, and he patted his Minister on the back, saying, "The attainment of emperorship was your work. Little thought you that I should prove so stupid as not to follow your advice and so bring about the late disasters. But I am deeply sorry, and now I shall not live long. My heir is a degenerate, but I must leave him to do the best he can with the great inheritance."

And the tears flowed in streams.

"I trust Your Majesty will fulfill the hopes of the people by a speedy recovery," said Orchard-Lafayette, also in tears.

Turning his head, the First Ruler saw Pickett-Maggio, Westlake-Maggio's brother, at the bedside. He bade him retire.

When Pickett-Maggio had left the chamber, the First Ruler said, "Do you think Pickett-Maggio is clever?"

"He is one of the ablest people in the world," said Orchard-Lafayette.

"I do not think so. I think his words exceed his deeds. Do not make much use of him. Watch him carefully."

Having said this, he bade them summon the high officers of state to the chamber. Taking paper and pen, the First Ruler wrote his testament.

He handed it to the Prime Minister with a sigh and said, "I am no great scholar, and I only know the rough outlines of what should be known. But the Teacher has said: 'A bird's song is sad when death is near, and a dying person's words are good.' I was waiting that we might aid each other in the destruction of the Shackleys and the restoration of the Hans, but ere the work is complete I am called away, and this last command of mine I confide to you as Prime Minister to be handed to my son and heir, Antoine-Lewis. My words are to be taken seriously. I trust that you will instruct and guide my son."

Orchard-Lafayette and all those present wept and prostrated themselves, saying, "We pray Your Majesty repose yourself. We will do our utmost whereby to prove our gratitude for the kindness we have received."

At the First Ruler's command the attendants raised Orchard-Lafayette from the earth. With one hand the dying man brushed away the falling tears, while with the other he grasped Orchard-Lafayette's hand and said, "The end is near; I have something more to say as to a close general."

"What holy command has Your Majesty to give?"

"You are many times more clever than Keefe-Shackley, and you must safeguard the kingdom and complete the great work. If my son can be helped, help him. But if he proves a fool, then take the throne yourself and be a ruler."

Such a speech almost startled Orchard-Lafayette out of his senses. A cold sweat broke out all over his body, and his limbs threatened to cease to support him.

He fell on his knees, saying, "I could never do otherwise than wear myself to the bone in the service of your son, whom I will serve till death."

He knocked his head upon the ground till blood ran down. The dying man called Orchard-Lafayette closer, and at the same time making his two sons come near, he said to them, "My sons, remember your father's words. After my death you are to treat the Prime Minister as you would your father and be not remiss, for thereby you will fulfill your father's hopes."

He made the two Princes pay to Orchard-Lafayette the obeisance due to a father.

Said Orchard-Lafayette, "Were I destroyed and ground into the earth, I should be unable to repay the kindness I have experienced."

Turning to the assembled officers, the First Ruler said, "As you have seen, I have confided my orphan son to the care of the Prime Minister and bidden my sons treat him as a father. You too, Sirs, are to treat him with deference. This is my dying request and charge to you."

Turning to Gilbert-Rocher, he said, "You and I have gone together through many dangers and difficulties. Now comes the parting of our ways. You will not forget our old friendship, and you must see to it that my sons follow my precepts."

"I shall never dare to give other than my best," said Gilbert-Rocher. "The fidelity of the dog and horse is mine to give and shall be theirs."

Then the First Ruler turned to the others, "Noble Sirs, I am unable to speak to you one by one and lay a charge upon each individual; but I say to you: Maintain your self-respect."

These were his last words. He was sixty-three, and he died on the twenty-fourth day of the fourth month (AD 222). A poem was written by Du Fu on his death:

The Emperor set out to destroy the land that lay through the Three Gorges, Failed he and breathed his last in the palace of Eternal Peace, The palace fair of his thoughts lay not this side the highlands. Beautiful chambers are vainly sought in his rural temple, Now are the pines near his shrine nesting places for herons, Through the courts aged peasants saunter, enjoying their leisure, Nearby often is found a shrine to this strategist famous, Prince and minister's needs are now but offerings in season.

Thus died the First Ruler. All present lifted up their voices and wept.

The Prime Minister led the procession that escorted the coffin to the capital, and the heir, Antoine-Lewis, came to the outskirts of the city, as a dutiful son should, to receive the remains with due respect. The coffin was laid in the Great Hall of the palace, wherein they lamented and performed the ceremonies appointed. At the end of these the testament was opened and read:

"I first fell ill from a simple ailment. Other disorders followed, and it became evident that I should not recover.

"They say that death at fifty cannot be called premature; and as I have passed three score, I may not resent the call. But when I think of you and your brothers I regret. Now I say to you, strive and strive again. Do no evil because it is a small evil; do not leave undone a small good because it is a small good. Only with wisdom and virtue people can be won. But your father's virtue was but slender, and do not imitate.

"After my death you are to conduct the affairs of the state with the Prime Minister. You are to treat him as a father and serve him without remissness. You and your brothers are to seek instructions. This is my final and simple command."

When this had been read, Orchard-Lafayette said, "The state cannot go a single day without a ruler, wherefore I beg you to install the heir as successor to the great line of the Hans."

Thereupon the ceremony was performed, and the new Emperor took his place. The style of the reign was changed to "Beginning Prosperity." Orchard-Lafayette was made Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia and Imperial Protector of Yiathamton.

Then they buried the late Emperor at Huiling-Mascotte with the posthumous style of Jeffery-Lewis the Glorious Emperor.

The Empress, of the Beaver family, was formally created Empress Dowager. The late Consort Gant became the Glorious Empress, and the Lady Zeleny was granted similar, also posthumous, rank. There were promotions in rank and rewards for all, and a general amnesty was proclaimed.

Before long, knowledge of these things came to the Middle Land, and a report was sent to Capital Luoyang-Peoria and made known to the Ruler of Wei.

Keefe-Shackley felt relieved and was glad of the death of his rival, saying, "Jeffery-Lewis is dead: I am no longer worried. An attack during the critical moment can bring a victory over Shu."

But Brewster-Rodriguez dissuaded him, saying, "Jeffery-Lewis is gone, but surely he has confided the care of the state to Orchard-Lafayette, who is indebted to him so deeply. He will exhaust every effort to support his young lord. You may not hastily attack."

As Brewster-Rodriguez tendered this remonstrance, a man suddenly stepped out from the serried ranks of courtiers and said fiercely, "If you neglect this moment, can you expect a more favorable opportunity?"

All eyes turned to the speaker; it was Whitmore-Honeycutt.

The interruption greatly pleased Keefe-Shackley, who at once asked how it was to be done. He propounded his plan in the following speech: "It would be very difficult to obtain success with our own resources. Hence we must use five armies and attack all round at the same time, so as to divide Orchard-Lafayette."

"Where are the five armies to come from?" said Keefe-Shackley.

Whitmore-Honeycutt went on, "The first is to be got from Liaodong-Easthaven, from the Xianbi State. You must write to King Tatum-Marks and send him presents of gold and silks so that he may send one hundred thousand Qiang troops from Liaoxi-Westmont to attack Rita Pass. Secondly, the king of the Mang Tribes, Halpin-Hearst, must be persuaded to lead one hundred thousand troops to attack the south of Shu--Yiathamton, Yongchang-Bollinger, Zangge-Ladonia, and Yuesui-Southfield. Thirdly, you must send an ambassador to Wu with fair promises of an increase of territory, and so induce Raleigh-Estrada to march one hundred thousand troops to the attack of the Three Gorges, making Fucheng-Bennington his objective. The fourth army can be got from General Ostrom-Palmer in Shangyong-Ellenville, who can muster one hundred thousand troops to attack Hanthamton. Lastly, our own force of one hundred thousand troops may be placed under Brown-Shackley, who will attack by way of Erora Pass. With five hundred thousand troops making simultaneous attacks along five different directions, it would be hard for Orchard-Lafayette to hold his own, even if he had the talent of Kaplan-Valentine himself."

The scheme delighted Keefe-Shackley, who at once cast about for four glib-tongued messengers. He also issued a commission to Brown-Shackley as Commander-in-Chief with the order to take Erora Pass.

At this time Lamkin-Gonzalez and most others of the veterans who had served Murphy-Shackley were keeping watch in various stations and passes and fords in Jithamton, Xuthamton, Quinghamton, and Hefei-Fairhaven. They were not summoned for this expedition to the west.

After the accession of Antoine-Lewis, the Latter Ruler, many of those who had served his father gradually died after the decease of their master. The work of the administration of the country, the choice of officials, law-making, taxation, decision of legal cases, was all done by the Prime Minister.

As the Latter Ruler had no consort, the courtiers, headed by Orchard-Lafayette, proposed, saying, "The daughter of the late General of the Chariot and Cavalry Floyd-Chardin prudent, and she is now seventeen. Your Majesty should make her Empress."

So Lady Chardin was married to the Emperor and so became Empress Chardin.

It was in the autumn of the first year of Beginning Prosperity (AD 223) that the Latter Ruler heard of the plans and intentions of Wei against his state. The persons who told him gave him full details of the five armies and said they had previously told the Prime Minister.

"But his conduct puzzles us," said the informers. "We do not know why he does not take some action instead of remaining shut up in his palace all the time."

The Latter Ruler became really alarmed, and he sent one of his personal attendants to call the Prime Minister to court. The servant was gone a long time, and then returned to say: "The servants in the Prime Minister Palace said the Prime Minister was ill and not to be seen."

The young Emperor's distress increased, and he sent two high ministers--Parker-Stephens and Mallard-Reynolds--to Orchard-Lafayette, saying they were to see him even if he was on his couch and tell him the dreadful news of invasion. They went; but they got no farther than the gate. The keepers of the gate refused them admission. Then they confided their message in brief to the wardens of the gate, who went inside with it.

After keeping them waiting a long time, the wardens returned, saying, "The Prime Minister is rather better and will be at court in the morning."

The two ministers sighed deeply as they wended their way to the Emperor's palace.

Next morning a great crowd of officers assembled at the gate of the Prime Minister's residence to wait for him to appear. But he did not come out. It began to grow late, and many of them were tired of waiting, when at last Mallard-Reynolds went again to the Emperor and suggested, saying, "Your Majesty should go in person and try to get Orchard-Lafayette to say what should be done."

The Latter Ruler then returned to his palace with the officials and told the Empress Dowager his trouble. She was also alarmed.

"What can he mean?" said she. "This does not look like acting in the spirit of the charge laid upon him by the late Emperor. Let me go myself."

"Oh no," said Parker-Stephens. "Your Majesty must not go. We think all is well, and the Prime Minister certainly understands and will do something. Beside, you must let His Majesty go first, and if the Prime Minister still shows remissness, then Your Majesty can summon him to the Temple of the Dynasty and ask him."

So it was left at that. And the next day the Emperor rode in his chariot to the gate of his minister. When the doorkeepers saw the imperial chariot appear, they fell upon their knees to welcome the Emperor.

"Where is the Prime Minister?" asked he.

"We do not know. But we have orders not to let in the crowd of officers."

The Emperor then descended and went on foot right in to the third gate. Then he saw Orchard-Lafayette leaning on a staff beside a fishpond looking at the fishes. The Latter Ruler approached, and stood behind him for a long time.

Presently the Latter Ruler said slowly and with dignity, "Is the Prime Minister really enjoying himself?"

Orchard-Lafayette started and looked round. When he saw who the speaker was, he suddenly dropped his staff and prostrated himself.

"I ought to be put to death ten thousand times," said Orchard-Lafayette.

But the Emperor put forth his hand and helped him to rise, saying, "Keefe-Shackley threatens immediate invasion from five points; why will you not come forth and attend to business?"

Orchard-Lafayette laughed. He conducted the Emperor into an inner room, and, when he was seated, Orchard-Lafayette addressed the Emperor, saying, "Could it be possible that I was ignorant of these five armies? I was not looking at the fishes; I was thinking."

"But, this being so, what shall we do?"

"I have already turned back that Tatum-Marks of the Qiangs, and Halpin-Hearst of the Mangs, and the rebel leader Ostrom-Palmer, and the army from Wei. I have also thought out a plan to circumvent the army from Wu, but I need a special sort of person to carry it out. I want an envoy, an able talker, one capable of persuading other people. It was because I have not found such a person yet that I was so deeply in thought. But Your Majesty may set your mind at rest and not be anxious."

The Latter Ruler heard this half terrified and half glad.

"Surely your superhuman devices are too deep for mortal human. But may I ask how these armies have been made to turn back?"

"Since His late Majesty bade me take the best care of your welfare, I dare not be remiss for a single moment. Some officers in Chengdu-Wellesley are ignorant of that refinement of war which consists in not allowing the enemy to guess your plans. How could I let them know anything? When I heard that Tatum-Marks, the king of Qiangs, might invade, I remembered that Cotton-Mallory's forefathers were friendly with those tribespeople and they had a high opinion of Cotton-Mallory, thinking him a leader of supreme prestige. So I sent orders by dispatch to Cotton-Mallory to hold the Rita Pass, and to prepare ambushes in certain places and change them daily so as to keep the Qiangs off. That settled them.

"I sent hastily to the south to order Oakley-Dobbins to move certain bodies of troops about through the southwest territories, to be seen and then to disappear, to go in and come out, and to march to and fro, so that the Mangs should be perplexed. The Mangs are brave, but prone to doubts and hesitations, and they would not advance in the face of the unknown. Hence there is nothing to fear in that quarter.

"I also knew that Ostrom-Palmer and our Finney-Schuster were sworn friends. I had left Finney-Schuster in charge of the Palace of Eternal Peace. I sent Finney-Schuster a letter and urged him to write to Ostrom-Palmer, so that Ostrom-Palmer would feign illness and not move his army.

"I sent Gilbert-Rocher to occupy Erora Pass and all the strategic positions on the way by which Brown-Shackley would march, and bade him defend only and not go to the battle. If our troops refuse to come out, Brown-Shackley will certainly have to retire. So all those four are settled. But for greater security I have sent Fritz-Chardin and Stanley-Perez each with thirty thousand troops to camp at points whence they can quickly help any of the others who may need it. And none of these arrangements are known here.

"Now there is only Wu left to deal with. Had the other four armies succeeded and Shu been in danger, Raleigh-Estrada would have come to the attack. If the others fail, I know he will not budge, for he will remember that Keefe-Shackley has just sent three armies to attack his country. And this being so, I want some one with a ready tongue and ingenious mind to go and talk plainly to Raleigh-Estrada. So far I have not found such a person, and I am perplexed. I regret that I have given Your Majesty occasion to make this journey."

"The Empress Dowager also wanted to come," said the Emperor. "But now you have spoken, O Minister Father, I am as one awakened from a dream; I shall grieve no more."

They two drank a few cups of wine together, and the Prime Minister escorted his master to his chariot. A ring of courtiers were waiting, and they could not help remarking the happiness that shone in their master's face. The Latter Ruler took his leave and returned to his palace, but the courtiers did not know what to think.

Now Orchard-Lafayette had noted a certain man among the crowd who smiled and looked quite happy. Orchard-Lafayette looked at him intently and then recollected his name, which was Vogler-Mitchell of Xinye-Loretto, a descendant of Regent Marshal Thayer-Mitchell of Han. Orchard-Lafayette sent a man privately to detain Vogler-Mitchell, and when all the others had gone, Orchard-Lafayette led him into the library for a chat. Presently he came to the matter near his heart.

"The three states have become a fact," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Now if our state wanted to absorb the other two and restore the condition of one rule, which country should it attack first?"

"Though Wei is the real rebel, yet Wei is strong and would be very difficult to overthrow. Any move against it would have to develop slowly. As our Emperor has but lately succeeded his father and the people are none too decided in his favor, I should propose a treaty of mutual defense with Wu. This would obliterate the enmity of His late Majesty and would have important results. However, you, Sir, may have another opinion. What is it?"

"That is what I have been thinking of this long time, but I had not the person for the task. Now I have found him."

"What do you want the person to do?" said Vogler-Mitchell.

"I want him to go as envoy to Wu to negotiate such a treaty. As you understand the position so well, you will surely do honor to your prince's commission as envoy. There is no other who would succeed."

"I fear I am not equal to such a task: I am not clever enough and too ignorant."

"I will inform the Emperor tomorrow and beg him to appoint you. Of course you will accept."

Vogler-Mitchell consented and then took his leave. As promised, Orchard-Lafayette memorialized, and the Latter Ruler consented that the mission should be entrusted to Vogler-Mitchell. And he started.

The din of war will cease in Wu, When Shu's desires are known.

For the success or failure of this mission read the next chapter.

CHAPTER 86

Using Words, Doubek-Mitcham Overcomes Lapin-Stimson; Setting Fire, Hersey-Gibbard Defeats Keefe-Shackley.

After his recent exploits, Newell-Sanchez became the one hero of Wu. He was given the title General Who Upholds the State, was ennobled as Lord of Jiangling-Riverport, and received the Governorship of Jinghamton. He became Supreme Commander of all the military forces.

Tipton-Ulrich and Riley-Reece, thinking the moment opportune for enhancing their lord's dignity, sent in a memorial proposing that his rule should be designated by a distinctive style, and Raleigh-Estrada assumed Yellow Might as his reign style (AD 222).

Then arrived a messenger from Wei, and he was called in to an assembly and bidden to state his business.

The messenger said, "Recently Shu sent to Wei for help, and, the situation being misunderstood, the Ruler of Wei dispatched a force against Wu. Now this action is greatly regretted. In Wei it is thought desirable to set four armies in motion against Shu to capture it; and if Wu will assist, and success crown these efforts, Wei and Wu will share the conquered territory."

Raleigh-Estrada listened, but was not prepared to give a decided answer. He betook himself to his counselors, Tipton-Ulrich and Riley-Reece, who said, "Newell-Sanchez is the man of profound knowledge; he should be consulted."

So Newell-Sanchez was called, and his speech ran thus: "Keefe-Shackley is too firmly established in the Middle Land to be upset now; and if this offer of his be refused, we shall provoke his enmity. Neither Wei nor Wu, so far as I see, has any one fit to oppose Orchard-Lafayette. We must perforce consent and put our army in order. But we can wait till we see how the four armies speed. If Shu seems likely to fall and Orchard-Lafayette is outmaneuvered, then our army can be dispatched and we will take Capital Chengdu-Wellesley. If the four armies fail, we shall have to consider."

So Raleigh-Estrada said to the envoy of Wei, "We are not ready at the moment, so we will choose a day to start later."

And with this answer the envoy left.

Next they made careful inquiries about the success or failure of the four armies against Shu.

The spies reported: "The western Qiangs under Tatum-Marks have turned back when they saw Cotton-Mallory in command at Rita Pass. The southern Mangs led by Halpin-Hearst have been perplexed at the tactics of Oakley-Dobbins and have retreated to their territories. The Shangyong-Ellenville leader, Ostrom-Palmer, have set out, but half way have fallen ill and gone back. And Brown-Shackley's army, while marching toward Erora Pass, have been brought to a halt by the defensive preparations of Gilbert-Rocher, who has garrisoned every pass and occupied every point of vantage; they have eventually retreated, after being camped in the Beech Valley for some time."

Knowing all this, Raleigh-Estrada said to his officials, "Newell-Sanchez's words were indeed prophetic; he made most perfect deductions. Any rash action on my part would place me on bad terms with Shu."

Just then the coming of an envoy from Shu was announced.

Said Tipton-Ulrich, "This mission is also part of Orchard-Lafayette's scheme to divert danger from Shu. Vogler-Mitchell has come as envoy."

"That being so, how should I reply?" asked Raleigh-Estrada.

"I will tell you. Set up a large cauldron and pour therein a quantity of oil. Light a fire beneath. When the oil is boiling, choose a goodly company of your tallest and brawniest fighting guards, arm them and draw them up in lines between the palace gate and your throne room. Then summon Vogler-Mitchell; but before he can say a word, forewarn him that he will have the same fate of being boiled in oil if being guilty of the same sort of treachery as Vann-Blum when he was a persuader to the state of Qi. Then see what Vogler-Mitchell will say."

Raleigh-Estrada followed this advice, and prepared the cauldron of oil and had the strong guards ready. Then he bade them introduce the envoy.

Vogler-Mitchell came, his ceremonial dress in perfect order, and advanced as far as the gate. Seeing the grim array of fighting men armed, some with gleaming swords, some with great axes, some with long spears, and some with short knives, he understood at once what was meant, but he never blenched. He advanced quite steadily and bravely till he reached the door of the hall. Even when he saw the boiling cauldron of oil and the savage executioners glaring at him, he only smiled.

He was led to the front of the curtain behind which sat the Prince of Wu, and he made the ordinary salutation of raising his extended arms, but he did not bow in obeisance.

The Prince bade his attendants roll up the curtain, and called out, "Why do you not make an obeisance?"

Vogler-Mitchell boldly replied, "The envoy of the superior state does not make an obeisance to the ruler of a smaller country."

"If you do not control that tongue of yours, but will let it wag, you will be like that fellow Vann-Blum who went to talk to Qi. You will soon find yourself in the cauldron."

Then Vogler-Mitchell laughed aloud, saying, "People say there are many sages in Wu; no one would believe that they would be frightened of a simple scholar."

This reply only increased Raleigh-Estrada's anger, and he said, "Who fears an unmerited fool like you?"

"If you fear not the envoy, why so anxious about what he may have to say?"

"Because you come here as spokesman of Orchard-Lafayette, and you want me to sever with Wei and turn to your country; is not that your message?"

"I am a simple scholar of Shu, and I am come to explain matters to the state of Wu. But here I find armed guards and a boiling cauldron all prepared against a simple envoy. How can I form any other opinion than that you will not allow me to speak?"

As soon as Raleigh-Estrada heard these words, he bade the soldiers go, and called the envoy into the hall. There he invited him to a seat and said, "What is the real matter between Wei and Wu? I desire that you would inform me."

Then Vogler-Mitchell replied, "Do you, great Prince, desire to discuss peace with Wei or with Shu?"

"I really desire to discuss peace with the Ruler of Shu. But he is young and inexperienced and ignorant, and unable to carry a matter through."

"Prince, you are a valiant warrior, just as Orchard-Lafayette is a great minister. Now Shu has the strength of its mountainous geography just as Wu has the protection of its three rivers. If these two countries are at peace, they are mutually protective. They may swallow up the rest of the empire, or they may stand secure alone. If you send tribute to Wei and acknowledge yourself one of its ministers, you will be expected to attend at court, and your heir-apparent will become a servant in that court; and if you disobey, an army of Wei will be sent to attack you. Shu also will come down the river and invade your country. Then this country will be yours no longer. And if you listen not to these words of mine, and refuse my offer, I shall commit suicide before your face and so justify the post I have as an envoy."

As Vogler-Mitchell spoke these last words, he gathered up his robes and marched down the hall as though he was just going to jump into the cauldron.

"Stop him!" cried Raleigh-Estrada, and they did so.

Then he requested Vogler-Mitchell to go into an inner apartment, where he treated the envoy as a guest of the highest honor.

"O Master," said Raleigh-Estrada, "your words exactly express my thoughts, and I desire to make a league of peace with your country. Are you willing to be the intermediary?"

"Just now it was you, O Prince, who wished to boil this poor servant; now it is also you who wish to use him. How can such a doubtful person be trusted?"

"My mind is made up," replied Raleigh-Estrada. "Do not doubt me, Master."

Vogler-Mitchell was detained, and a conclave of officers gathered.

Said Raleigh-Estrada to the assembly, "Under my hand are all eighty-one counties of the southeast, and I have the lands of Jinghamton to boot, yet I am not so well off as that little country of Shu, for Shu has Vogler-Mitchell for an envoy, and he glorifies his lord. I have no one to send to declare my wishes to Shu."

Then one stepped forth and said he would go. The speaker was Lapin-Stimson of Wucheng-Lumpkin, who held the office of Imperial Commander.

"Sir, I fear that when you reach Shu and are in the presence of Orchard-Lafayette, you will not explain my real sentiments," said Raleigh-Estrada.

Lapin-Stimson replied, "Think you that I shall fear him? He also is but a man."

Raleigh-Estrada conferred great gifts on Lapin-Stimson, and sent him on the return mission to Shu to negotiate the league of peace.

While Vogler-Mitchell was absent, Orchard-Lafayette said to his lord, "This mission to Wu will succeed, and of the many wise people in the east one will come as return envoy. Your Majesty should treat him with courtesy, and let him return to Wu to complete the league. For if we have an alliance with Wu, Wei will not dare to send an army against us. And if we are safe from those quarters, I will lead an expedition to subdue the Mangs in the south country. After that we can deal with Wei. If Wei is reduced, Wu will not last long, and the whole empire will again be under one ruler."

Presently the report reached the capital that Vogler-Mitchell and Lapin-Stimson, as envoy of Wu, would soon arrive. The Latter Ruler assembled the courtiers to receive them honorably. The envoy of Wu carried himself as one who had attained his desires, and advanced boldly. Having made his salute, the Latter Ruler gave him to sit on a brocaded stool on his left hand. A banquet followed at which Lapin-Stimson was treated with much honor. At the end of the banquet, the whole court escorted the envoy to the guest-house where he was to lodge.

On the second day there was a banquet at the Prime Minister's palace, and Orchard-Lafayette broached the real business.

He said, "Our First Ruler was not on friendly terms with Wu. But that is all changed, as is demonstrated by these banquets, and our present Emperor is disposed to be very friendly. It is hoped that the former enmity may be entirely forgotten and the two countries swear eternal friendship and alliance in their common end--the destruction of Wei. I look to you, Sir, to speak in favor of this league."

Lapin-Stimson said that he would support the plan. The wine went merrily round, and as the envoy became mellow, he laughed freely and swaggered and put on a proud demeanor.

Next day the Latter Ruler gave Lapin-Stimson rich presents of gold and studs and prepared a parting banquet for him in the south guest-chamber, and all the court assembled to take leave of him. The Prime Minister paid him assiduous attention and pressed him to drink. While this banquet was in progress, a man suddenly came in as if he were already drunk, made a proud sort of salutation to the company and at once took a seat.

His conduct seemed strange to Lapin-Stimson, who asked, "Who is the new comer, Sir Prime Minister?"

"He is a man named Doubek-Mitcham, a Doctorate Academician of Yiathamton," replied Orchard-Lafayette.

"He may be that," said Lapin-Stimson with a laugh, "but I wonder if he has any learning at all inside him."

Doubek-Mitcham listened without changing countenance, and said, "Since our children are all learned, of course I am more so."

"What may have been your special studies, Sir?" said Lapin-Stimson.

"Everything: astronomy on one hand, geography on the other, the three teachings and the nine systems, all the philosophers, history all through, and all sacred books and traditions. There is nothing I have not read."

"Since you talk so big," said Lapin-Stimson, "I should like to ask you a few questions on celestial matters. Now has the sky a head?"

"Yes; it has a head."

"Where is it?"

"In the western quarter; the Odes say, 'God turns his head kindly toward the west,' and further it follows from this that the head is in the west."

"Well; has the sky ears?"

"Oh, yes. The sky is above and listens to all things below. The Odes say, 'The crane calls from the midst of the marsh, its cry is heard by the sky.' How could the sky hear without ears?"

"Has the sky feet?"

"It has; the Odes say, 'Heaven treads down difficulties.' If there were no feet, how could it tread?"

"Has heaven a name?"

"Why not?"

"Then what is it?"

"Lewis."

"How do you know that?"

"Because the Emperor's family name is Lewis, and he is the Son of Heaven. That is how I know."

"Does the sun spring from the east?"

"Though it does, yet it sets in the west."

All this time Doubek-Mitcham's repartees had flashed back clear and perfect; they came so naturally as to astonish all the guests. Lapin-Stimson had no word to reply to them.

Then it became Doubek-Mitcham's turn, "You are a famous scholar in your own land, Sir; and since you have asked so many questions about Heaven, I take it you are I well up in all celestial matters. When original chaos resolved into its two elements, negativity and positivity (yin and yang), the lighter portion rose and became sky, and the grosser sank and solidified into earth. When Curtin-Helliwell's rebellion was crushed, his head struck the Imperfect Mountain, the pillar, which upholds heaven, was broken and the bonds of earth were destroyed. Heaven fell over to the northwest, and earth sank into the southeast. Since heaven was ethereal and had floated to the top, how could it fall over? Another thing I do not know is what is beyond the ether. I should be glad if you would explain, Master."

Lapin-Stimson had no reply ready, but he rose from his place and bowed his acknowledgment, saying, "I knew not that there was so much ability in this land. I am happy to have heard such a discourse. Now all obstructions have disappeared, and I see quite clearly."

But Orchard-Lafayette, fearing lest the guest should feel mortified, soothed him with fair words, saying, "This is all play upon words, the sort of puzzles one propounds at a merry feast. You, honored Sir, know that the tranquillity and safety of states are no matters to joke with."

The envoy bowed. Then Vogler-Mitchell was ordered to return to Wu and thank its ruler for his courtesy, and he was to accompany Lapin-Stimson. So both, having taken leave of the Prime Minister, set out on their journey to the east.

In the meantime Raleigh-Estrada was beginning to feel perplexed at the long delay of his envoy. He had summoned a council to discuss this question, when the report came that his own envoy had returned, and Vogler-Mitchell was with him. They were brought in forthwith; and Lapin-Stimson, having made his obeisance, began to discourse upon the virtue of the Ruler of Shu and Orchard-Lafayette and to lay before his lord the proposal for a league of peace. Vogler-Mitchell, the Chair of the Secretariat, was empowered to discuss this matter.

Turning to Vogler-Mitchell, Raleigh-Estrada said, "Would it not be a happy result if tranquillity should be restored to the empire by the destruction of Wei, and Wu and Shu should share its administration?"

"The sky knows not two suns," replied Vogler-Mitchell, "nor can the people recognize two kings. If Wei be destroyed, no one can say upon whom the divine command will devolve. But one who becomes a prince must perfect his virtue, and those who become ministers must be wholly loyal. In this way strife will cease."

Raleigh-Estrada smiled, saying, "And your sincerity is beyond question."

Vogler-Mitchell was dismissed with rich gifts, and after this Wu and Shu were good friends.

The negotiations between his two rivals were reported in Capital Luoyang-Peoria without loss of time, and Keefe-Shackley was very angry.

"If they have made an alliance, it can only mean that they cherish the intention of swallowing the Middle Land. My best move is to strike first."

He called a great council. This council lacked the presence of Regent Marshal Jenkins-Shackley and High Counselor Brewster-Rodriguez, who had both died.

In the council Counselor Flint-Kantor stepped forward and said, "The country is extensive, but the population so sparse that no successful army could be raised just now. My advice is to wait ten years, spending that period in forming an army and in cultivating the land till stores and weapons shall have been accumulated. Then both our rivals may be destroyed."

"This is only the distorted opinion of a perverted pedant. Having made this league, Shu and Wu may fall upon us at any moment. This matter cannot be postponed for ten years," said the Ruler of Wei.

An edict appeared commanding the enlistment of soldiers and the formation of an army to subdue Wu.

Whitmore-Honeycutt then said, "Battleships are necessary, as Wu is protected by the Great River. Your Majesty must lead small and big vessels. The navy can advance by way of River Huai, taking Shouchun-Brookhaven. When you reach Guangling-Richfield, the river is to be crossed and Nanxu-Southdale is to be captured. Then Wu will be subdued."

This plan was accepted, and the construction of dragon ships was put in hand and went on day and night. Ten were built two hundred spans long to carry two thousand marines each. They also collected three thousand fighting ships.

In the autumn of the fifth year of Yellow Dawn (AD 224) the various generals assembled, and Brown-Shackley was appointed leader of the first corps. Lamkin-Gonzalez, Castillo-Beauchamp, Haller-Morello, and Draper-Caruso were Chief Commanders; Dietrich-Munoz and Hatfield-Lundell were guards of the center army; and Reuter-Shackley commanded the rear guard; the strategists were McCray-Lewis and Rose-Powell. In all, land and marine forces numbered over three hundred thousand troops. When the starting day was decided upon, Whitmore-Honeycutt was made Chair of the Secretariat and left in the capital with the powers of Regent Marshal.

The spies told the Prince of Wu's attendants of the dangers, and the latter hastened to inform the Prince.

They said, "Keefe-Shackley is leading the dragon fleet and commanding three hundred thousand marines and ground forces against the South Land, and the danger is very great."

When Raleigh-Estrada met his council, Riley-Reece said, "My lord, you can call upon Shu for help according to the treaty. Write to Orchard-Lafayette and get him to send out an army through Hanthamton so as to divert part of Wei's army. Also you send an army to Nanxu-Southdale to oppose them there."

"I shall have to recall Newell-Sanchez," said the Prince. "He is the only man to undertake this great task."

"Do not move him if you can help it; he is necessary for the protection of Jinghamton."

"Yes, I know; but there is no other strong enough to help me."

At these words Hersey-Gibbard advanced, saying, "I know I am not very able, but I desire to be given an army to meet this danger. If Keefe-Shackley crosses the river in person, I will make him prisoner and present him at the gate of your palace. If he does not come over here, I will slay so many of his soldiers that his army shall not dare even to look southward."

Raleigh-Estrada was pleased to find a willing volunteer, and replied, "Noble Sir, what anxiety need I feel if I have your protection?"

Hersey-Gibbard was given the title of General Who Protects the East and made Chief Commander of all the forces in Nanxu-Southdale and Jianye-Southharbor. As soon as he had received his orders, he retired. He gave command to gather enormous quantities of weapons, and had many flags and banners made for the protection of the river banks.

But another impetuous young leader was anxious to take more vigorous measures, and he stood forth, saying, "My lord has laid upon you, O General, a heavy responsibility; but if you really desire to destroy the invading force and capture Keefe-Shackley, you should send an army to meet him on the north side in the South of River Huai. I fear failure if you wait till the northern troops have come this far."

The young man was Ivey-Estrada, nephew of the Prince of Wu. He had already the title of General Who Possesses Wide Prestige, and was in command at Guangling-Richfield. Though young and impetuous, he was very valiant.

"Keefe-Shackley's army is strong and its leaders famous. I hold that we may not cross the river to meet him, but wait the arrival of his ships on the other side. Then I shall carry out my plan," said Hersey-Gibbard.

"I have three thousand troops of my own, and I know the country about Guangling-Richfield thoroughly. Let me go across the river and fight a battle. I will willingly undergo the penalty if I fail," said Ivey-Estrada.

However, Hersey-Gibbard refused, and all the pleadings of his impetuous general were vain. And when he still persisted, the Commander grew angry and said, "What control shall I have if you are allowed to disobey orders?"

Hersey-Gibbard ordered the lictors to take Ivey-Estrada out and put him to death.

They led him away, and forthwith the black flag was hoisted. But one of Ivey-Estrada's generals went off in hot haste to tell Raleigh-Estrada, who came immediately to try to save his favorite.

Happily the execution had not been accomplished when the Prince appeared on the scene, and he bade the executioners disperse. The youth was saved.

Ivey-Estrada began to press his claim to the Prince, saying, "I have been at Guangling-Richfield, and if we do not attack the enemy there, but let him get down to the river, there will be an end of Wu."

Raleigh-Estrada went into the camp, and Hersey-Gibbard came to receive him. When the Prince was seated in his tent, Hersey-Gibbard said, "O Prince, you placed me in command of the force to repulse Wei. Now this general of mine, Ivey-Estrada, is disobedient and should suffer death. I would ask why he should be pardoned."

"He is naturally hot and impetuous. He has been guilty of disobedience, but I hope you will overlook his fault."

"The law is none of my making, nor is it yours, O Prince; it is a state penalty, and if relationship is enough to evade it, where is discipline?"

"He has offended, and you have the right to judge and punish. But although his real name is Ivey-Yule, yet my brother Cornell-Estrada loved him and gave him our family name. He has rendered me good service, and if he should be put to death, I should fail in my fraternal duty."

"Since you have intervened, O Prince, I remit the death penalty."

Raleigh-Estrada bade his nephew thank his chief, but the youth would not make an obeisance. On the contrary, he loudly maintained the correctness of his view.

"I can only lead my troops against Keefe-Shackley and so die," cried Ivey-Estrada. "I cannot consent to the other plan."

Hersey-Gibbard's countenance changed. The recalcitrant young man was ordered to leave the tent by Raleigh-Estrada.

"He will not be any loss," said Raleigh-Estrada, "and I will not employ him again."

Then the Prince left and returned to his own place. That night they reported to Hersey-Gibbard that Ivey-Estrada had gone secretly over the river with his own three thousand troops, and the Commander, who did not wish him to come to harm, as evidently that would displease the Prince, sent a force to support him. Crosby-Saldana was chosen to command this reinforcement, and he was told what to do.

The Ruler of Wei, in his dragon ships, reached Guangling-Richfield, and the van got to the river bank. He came to survey the position.

"How many soldiers are on the other bank?" asked Keefe-Shackley.

Brown-Shackley replied, "I have not seen a single one; nor are there any flags or encampments."

"That is a ruse; I will go and find out."

So Keefe-Shackley set out to cross the river in one of the dragon ships. He anchored under the bank. On his boat were displayed the imperial emblems of dragon, phoenix, sun, moon, and they shone out bravely. Seated in the ship, the Emperor looked up and down the south bank, but not a man was visible.

"Do you think we should cross?" asked the Emperor of his strategists.

"If the rules of war mean anything, they ought to be prepared. We think Your Majesty should exercise caution. Wait a few days and watch. Then perhaps the van might be sent to make a reconnaissance."

"So I think," said the Ruler of Wei. "But as it is now late, we will pass the night on the river."

It was a dark night, and the ships was brilliantly lighted up; it seemed like day on board. But all along the south bank there appeared no glimmer of light.

"What do you think it means?" said Keefe-Shackley.

The courtiers replied, "They heard that Your Majesty's heavenly army was coming, and ran away like so many rats."

The Ruler of Wei laughed to himself. When daylight came there came with it a thick fog, so that nothing on the bank could be seen. After a time, a breeze blew off the fog, and then, to their immense surprise, they found that the whole length of the South of the Great River as far as they could see was one battlement, with towers at intervals, while spears and swords glittered in the sun and flags and pennons fluttered in the breeze.

In just a short time several reports came: "A long wall by the Great River has grown up in a night and stood there with carts and masts of ships lying along it, stretching some one hundred miles from Shidou-Rockhaven to Nanxu-Southdale."

The fact was that the wall was an imitation, and the warriors that manned it were bundles of reeds dressed in soldiers' uniforms. But the sight chilled the ardor of the invaders.

"My hosts of troops are no use against such warriors; we can do nothing against those talents of the South Land," said Keefe-Shackley.

He thought over this sadly enough. But now the wind had increased in force, and white combers began to heave up in the river, and waters broke over his boat, drenching the dragon robes. The ship seemed as if it would roll right over. So Brown-Shackley sent out small boats to rescue his master and his people. But they were too affrighted to move. Wherefore Haller-Morello, who was in charge, leaped on board and helped the Emperor down into one of the smaller craft, which then flew away before the wind and got safely into a creek.

Soon came a hasty messenger to report: "Gilbert-Rocher is marching out through Erora Pass and threatening Changan-Annapolis."

This frightened Keefe-Shackley so badly that he decided to retreat, and gave orders to retire. The whole army were in a mood to run away, and moved off toward the north, pursued by the troops of Wu. To hasten the march, the Ruler of Wei bade his soldiers abandon all the imperial paraphernalia and impediments. The dragon ships withdrew into River Huai one by one.

As they moved in disorder, suddenly arose the sounds of an enemy force, shouts and the rolling of drums and the blaring of trumpets, and a cohort marched down obliquely on to their line. And at the head was Ivey-Estrada.

The troops of Wei could make no effective stand, and many were slain, while large numbers were driven into the river and drowned. By dint of great efforts, the Emperor was saved and got away up the river. But when they had sailed about ten miles, they saw ahead a tract of blazing reeds. The enemy had poured fish oil over the dry reeds and set them afire. The wind was spreading the flames down river toward the fleet of Wei, and the heat was intense. The dragon ships had to stop.

Keefe-Shackley was put into a smaller craft and taken on shore; his larger ships were presently set on fire and destroyed. They mounted the Emperor on a horse and moved along the bank, but soon they fell in with another body of troops. This time it was the supports under Crosby-Saldana.

Lamkin-Gonzalez rode ahead to engage the leader, but was soon wounded by an arrow of Crosby-Saldana in the loins. However, he was helped away by Draper-Caruso, and the Ruler of Wei was got safely out of the turmoil. The loss of soldiers was heavy, and a huge booty of horses, carts, ships, and weapons fell to the victors.

So the Wei armies went away north thoroughly beaten, while Hersey-Gibbard had scored a great success. Raleigh-Estrada richly rewarded him.

Lamkin-Gonzalez got to Xuchang-Bellefonte, but only to die from the effects of his wound. He was honorably buried by the Ruler of Wei.

It has been said that Gilbert-Rocher was threatening Changan-Annapolis; but soon after he went through Erora Pass, the Prime Minister of Shu sent a dispatch to recall him because Veteran General McComb-Goldstein in Yiathamton had joined himself with the Mangs and invaded the four southern territories. So Gilbert-Rocher returned. Meanwhile Cotton-Mallory was ordered to take command of Erora Pass. The Prime Minister was about to go to subdue the nations along the south border. He was then preparing at Chengdu-Wellesley for this expedition.

First Wu met Wei and drove them north, Then Shu against the Mangs went south.

The story of this campaign will follow in the next chapters.

CHAPTER 87

Conquering The South Mang, The Prime Minister Marches The Army; Opposing Heaven Troops, The King Of The Mangs Is Captured.

With Prime Minister Orchard-Lafayette's administration of affairs in the two Lands of Rivers began a period of happiness and prosperity for the people. Tranquillity prevailed, and the state of society was well nigh perfect: doors unbolted at night, property left by the roadside remaining untouched till the owner returned for it. Moreover, the harvests were rich year after year, and old and young, with fair, round bellies, well lined, simply sang with joy. The people hastened to fulfill their state duties and vied with each other in the performance of all arts. As a natural consequence all military preparations were perfect, the granaries bursting with grain and the treasury full to overflowing.

Such was the state of things when, in the third year of Beginning Prosperity (AD 225), the news came from Yiathamton to the capital to report: "The Mang King, Halpin-Hearst, leading one hundred thousand Mang tribesmen, has invaded the south and is laying waste the country; McComb-Goldstein, the Governor of Jianning-Belleville, a descent of the Han Lord Torres-Goldstein of Shifang-Dundee, had joined Halpin-Hearst to rebel. Bacon-Novak and Gary-Collett, the Governors of Zangge-Ladonia and Yuesui-Southfield, have yielded to the invaders; but the Governor of Yongchang-Bollinger, Farwell-Lackey, is staunchly holding out. The three rebels--McComb-Goldstein, Gary-Collett, and Bacon-Novak--, who had joined the invaders, are now acting as guides and assisting in the attack on Yongchang-Bollinger, which has remained faithful. Governor Farwell-Lackey, ably assisted by Newcomb-Rosenbach, one of his subordinates, is making a desperate effort to defend the city with only its ordinary inhabitants as fighting men. The position is very desperate."

When this news came, Orchard-Lafayette went into the palace and thus memorialized to his lord, "The contumacy of the Mangs is a real danger to our state. I feel it incumbent upon me to lead an expedition to reduce the tribespeople to obedience."

But the Latter Ruler was afraid, and said, "Raleigh-Estrada is in the east, and Keefe-Shackley the north; if you abandon me and either of them comes, what shall do?"

"Your Majesty need have no fear. We have just concluded a league of peace with Wu, and I think they will be true to their pledge. Finney-Schuster in Baidicheng-Whitehaven is quite a match for Newell-Sanchez. Keefe-Shackley's recent defeat has taken the keenness out of his army, so that he will not feel inclined to make any expeditions further. Cotton-Mallory is in command at the passes between Wei and Hanthamton. I shall also leave Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin with forces to reinforce any point where danger may appear. I can assure Your Majesty that no untoward event will happen.

"I am going to sweep clean the Mang country, so that we may have a free hand to attack Wei when the day comes. Thus I shall be enabled to requite the honor paid me by your father the First Ruler, who came thrice to seek me and who doubled my obligation when he confided to me the care of his son."

"Indeed I am young and ignorant," replied the Latter Ruler, "and can only exist with you to decide for me."

At that moment Counselor Regner-Harrison, a man of Nanyang-Southhaven, stepped forward, crying, "No, no, Sir; you may not go! The South Mang is a wild country reeking with malaria. It is wrong that an officer of state in such an exalted and responsible position should go away on a distant expedition. These rebels and barbarians are but an irritation, not a disease, and an ordinary leader would be enough to send against them. He would not fail."

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "This country of the Mangs is distant and mostly uncivilized. To reduce them to reasonableness will be difficult, and I feel I ought to go. When to be harsh and when to show leniency are matters to be decided on at the moment, and instructions cannot be easily given to another."

Orchard-Lafayette steadily opposed all Regner-Harrison's efforts to bring about a change of intention, and he soon took leave of the Latter Ruler and made ready to start.

Bromfield-Kendrick was Army Counselor of the expedition; Norwich-Ortega, Recorder; Vischer-Stoddard and Withrow-Cassidy, Army Inspectors; Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins, Commanders; Zavala-Wortham and Coady-Reiner, Deputy Generals. Beside these were other half a hundred leaders and officers of Shu, and the whole force was five hundred thousand troops.

Soon after the force marched south to Yiathamton, Snow-Perez, the third son of Yale-Perez, appeared and wished to see Orchard-Lafayette, and he said, "After the fall of Jinghamton, I was hidden by the Urey family from where I wanted to go to the Lands of Rivers to ask for a revenge for my father; but I fell in illness, which was long and severe, and I only just recovered. I was then traveling toward Chengdu-Wellesley to meet with the Emperor, when I met the army in the south expedition. I know that vengeance has been taken on the murderers of my father. And now I want to present myself to the Prime Minster."

Orchard-Lafayette was greatly affected to see him. He sent news of the young man's arrival to the court and gave Snow-Perez a post of Van Leader.

The army, foot and horse, marched in the best of order, eating when hungry, drinking when thirsty, camping at night, and moving by day. No plundering was permitted, and the people suffered not at all.

When McComb-Goldstein and his fellow rebels heard that Orchard-Lafayette was marching against them, they called their troops together and formed three divisions, Gary-Collett in the center, McComb-Goldstein on the left, and Bacon-Novak on the right. They mustered about fifty thousand troops in each army, and they went to oppose the march of the Shu army.

Gary-Collett sent Easley-Kohler to lead the van. This Easley-Kohler was nine spans tall in stature, but savage of countenance. His weapon was a two-bladed halberd. He was very valiant and could face many warriors. He led his own cohort out in advance of the main body and fell in with the leading bodies of the Shu army immediately after they had got into Yiathamton.

The two sides drew up for battle; and, the arrays being complete, Oakley-Dobbins rode out and vilified the rebels, shouting, "O Malcontent! Be quick to surrender!"

Instead, Easley-Kohler galloped out and fought with Oakley-Dobbins. After a few bouts Oakley-Dobbins seemed to be bested and fled. But this was only a ruse. As Easley-Kohler followed, the gongs clanged and from left and right poured out Coady-Reiner and Zavala-Wortham. Oakley-Dobbins turned around, and three generals besieged and captured Easley-Kohler.

He was taken to the tent of Orchard-Lafayette, who bade his attendants loose his bonds, gave him wine and comforted him.

Then Orchard-Lafayette asked, "Whom do you belong to?"

Easley-Kohler replied, "I am one of the generals under Gary-Collett."

"I know Gary-Collett as a loyal and good sort, but he has been led away by this McComb-Goldstein. Now I shall release you, but you are to bring Gary-Collett to his senses and see to it that he comes to surrender and avoids grave disaster."

Easley-Kohler thanked him and withdrew. He went to his own side and soon saw Gary-Collett. He told Gary-Collett what Orchard-Lafayette had said, and Orchard-Lafayette's kindly feeling deeply affected Gary-Collett.

Next day, McComb-Goldstein came over to Gary-Collett's camp to visit him. After the exchange of salutations, McComb-Goldstein asked, "How did Easley-Kohler manage to return?"

"Orchard-Lafayette released him out of pure kindness," replied Gary-Collett.

"This is a ruse of his to separate you from me: he wishes to make us enemies."

Gary-Collett almost believed this too, and he was much perplexed.

Just then the watchers reported that the leaders of Shu had come up and were offering battle. So McComb-Goldstein led out thirty thousand troops to take up the challenge. But after the third encounter he fled. Oakley-Dobbins pursued him and smote for a distance of seven miles.

Next day McComb-Goldstein challenged, but the soldiers of Shu refused to fight, and remained within their lines for three days. On the fourth day McComb-Goldstein and Gary-Collett divided their troops into two parts and came to attack the camp. Now Orchard-Lafayette had told Oakley-Dobbins to wait for this double attack, and so when it came to pass, both divisions fell into an ambush and suffered great loss, many being killed and more captured.

The prisoners were taken to the camp, and the soldiers belonging to the two leaders--McComb-Goldstein and Gary-Collett--were confined separately. Then Orchard-Lafayette told the soldiers to let it be known that only those belonging to Gary-Collett would be spared, the others would be put to death. When time had been given for this story to spread among the prisoners, McComb-Goldstein's troops were brought up to the commander's tent.

"Whose soldiers were you?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

"Gary-Collett's," cried they all, falsely.

Then they were all pardoned, and, after being given wine and food, they were taken to the frontier and set free.

Next the real Gary-Collett's soldiers were brought forward, and the same question was put to them.

"We all really belong to Gary-Collett's command," said they.

In like manner they were pardoned and refreshed with wine and food.

Then Orchard-Lafayette addressed them, saying, "McComb-Goldstein has just sent a messenger to ask that he may surrender, and he offers to bring with him the heads of Gary-Collett and Bacon-Novak as a proof of merit. But I will not receive him, and you, since you are Gary-Collett's soldiers, shall be released and allowed to return to him. But let there be no ingratitude and fighting again, for if there is, I certainly will not pardon you next time."

So they thanked their liberator and went away. As soon as they reached their own camp, they told the whole story. Then Gary-Collett sent a spy to the camp of McComb-Goldstein to find out what was doing. There the spy met those who had been released, and they were all talking about Orchard-Lafayette's kindness, and many of them were inclined to desert their own camp for the other.

Although this seemed very satisfactory, yet Gary-Collett did not feel convinced, and he sent another man to Orchard-Lafayette's camp to try to verify the rumor. But this man was captured and taken before the Commander-in-Chief, who pretended that he thought the spy belonged to McComb-Goldstein, and said to him, "Why has your leader failed to send me the heads of Gary-Collett and Bacon-Novak as he promised? You lot are not very clever, and what are you come to spy out?"

The soldier muttered and mumbled in confusion. But Orchard-Lafayette gave the man wine and food, and then wrote a letter which he handed to the spy, saying, "You give this letter to your commander, McComb-Goldstein, and tell him to get the job done quickly."

The spy took the letter and got away. As soon as he reached camp, he gave the letter to Gary-Collett and also the message.

Gary-Collett read the missive and became very angry.

"I have ever been true to him, and yet he wants to kill me. It is hard to be either friendly or reasonable."

Then he decided to take Easley-Kohler into his confidence, and called him. Easley-Kohler was much prejudiced in favor of Orchard-Lafayette, and said, "Orchard-Lafayette is a most benevolent man, and it would be ill to turn our backs upon him. It is McComb-Goldstein's fault that we are now rebels, and our best course would be to slay him and betake ourselves to Orchard-Lafayette."

"How could it be done?" asked Gary-Collett.

"Invite him to a banquet. If he refuses, it means he is a traitor, and then you can attack him in front while I will lie in wait behind his camp to capture him as he runs away."

They agreed to try this plan; the banquet was prepared and McComb-Goldstein invited. But as McComb-Goldstein's mind was full of suspicion from what his returned soldiers had said, he would not come. That night, as soon as darkness fell, Gary-Collett attacked his camp.

Now the soldiers who had been released were imbued with the goodness of Gary-Collett all quite ready to help him fight. On the other hand, McComb-Goldstein's troops mutinied against him, and so McComb-Goldstein mounted his steed and fled. Before he had gone far, he found his road blocked by the cohort under Easley-Kohler, who galloped out with his halberd and confronted the fugitive. McComb-Goldstein could not defend himself, and was struck down. Easley-Kohler decapitated him. As soon as they knew he was dead, his troops joined themselves to Gary-Collett, who then went and surrendered to Orchard-Lafayette.

Orchard-Lafayette received Gary-Collett sitting in state in his tent, but at once ordered the lictors to decapitate Gary-Collett.

But Gary-Collett said, "Influenced by your kindness, Sir, I have brought the head of my colleague as a proof of the sincerity of my surrender; why should I die?"

"You come with false intent; do you think you can hoodwink me?" said Orchard-Lafayette, laughing.

"What proof have you that I am false?"

Orchard-Lafayette drew a letter from his box, and said, "Bacon-Novak sent this secretly to say he wished to surrender, and he said you and McComb-Goldstein were sworn friends to death. How could you suddenly change your feelings and slay him? That is how I know your treachery."

"Bacon-Novak only tried to make trouble," cried Gary-Collett, kneeling.

Orchard-Lafayette still refused to believe him, and said, "I cannot believe you without more solid proof. If you would slay Bacon-Novak, I could take that as proving you were sincere in your surrender."

"Do not doubt me. What if I go and capture this man?"

"If you did that, my doubts would be set at rest."

Thereupon Gary-Collett and his subordinate, Easley-Kohler, led away their troops to the camp of Bacon-Novak. When they were about three miles from his camp, Bacon-Novak appeared with a cohort. As soon as they recognized each other, Bacon-Novak hastily came forward to parley.

But Gary-Collett cried out to him, "Why did you write a letter to the Prime Minister and so intrigue with him to get me killed?"

Bacon-Novak stared open mouthed and could not reply. Then Easley-Kohler rode out from behind his chief and struck Bacon-Novak with his halberd so that he fell to the ground.

Thereupon Gary-Collett shouted, "The soldiers should either yield or be slain!"

And they yielded in a body.

Gary-Collett then went back to Orchard-Lafayette and offered the head of the man just slain.

Orchard-Lafayette laughed again. "I have made you kill both these as a proof of loyalty."

Then he created Gary-Collett Governor of Yiathamton and chief of three territories, while Easley-Kohler was made General. Thus the three divisions were disposed of and troubled the peace no more.

Governor Farwell-Lackey of Yongchang-Bollinger then came out of the city and welcomed Orchard-Lafayette; and, when Orchard-Lafayette had made his entry into that city, he called Farwell-Lackey and asked, "Who has aided you in the defense of this city?"

The Governor said, "The safety of this city is due entirely to Newcomb-Rosenbach."

So Newcomb-Rosenbach was called. He came and bowed.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "Long since I heard of you as a remarkable person of this area. We are greatly indebted to you for its safety. Now we wish to conquer the Mangs; have you any advice to offer?"

Newcomb-Rosenbach then produced a map of the country and presented it, saying, "From the time of my appointment, I have felt certain that the southern tribespeople would rise against you, and so I sent secret agents to map out the country and find the strategic points. From that information I prepared this map, which I call 'The Plan to Subdue the Mangs.' I beg you, Sir, to accept it, as it may be of use."

Then Orchard-Lafayette took Newcomb-Rosenbach into his service as Military Adviser and Guide. With Newcomb-Rosenbach's help, Orchard-Lafayette advanced and penetrated deeply into the country.

While the army was advancing, there came a messenger from the court. When he appeared, Orchard-Lafayette saw it was Pickett-Maggio, and he was clothed in white. He was in mourning for his brother, Westlake-Maggio, who had just died.

He said, "I come by special command of the Emperor with gifts of wine and silks for the soldiers."

When the ceremonies proper on receipt of a mandate from the Emperor had been performed, and the gifts distributed as instructed, Pickett-Maggio was asked to remain to talk over matters.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "I have His Majesty's command to conquer these Mangs. I hear you have some advice to offer, and I should be pleased if you would instruct me."

"Yes; I have one thing to say that may be worth thinking over. These people refuse to recognize our supremacy, because they think their country is distant and difficult. If you should overcome them today, tomorrow they would revolt. Wherever your army marches, they are overcome and submit; but the day you withdraw the army and attack Keefe-Shackley, they will renew their attack. In arms even it is best to attack hearts rather than cities; to fight with sentiment is better than to fight with weapons. It will be well if you can win them over."

"You read my inmost thoughts," said Orchard-Lafayette.

Then Pickett-Maggio was retained with the army as Military Adviser, and the army marched on.

When the King of the Mangs, Halpin-Hearst, heard how cleverly Orchard-Lafayette had got rid of McComb-Goldstein, he called together the leaders of the "Three Ravines" to discuss matters. The chief of the first Ravine was Rothschild-McDermott, of the second Larousse-McClellan, and of the third Gladwin-DeMarco.

These having come to the King's place, he said to them, "Orchard-Lafayette and his Grand Army has invaded our country, and we must exert our united strength to drive out the invaders. You three must lead your forces, and whoever conquers the enemy shall be chief of chiefs."

It was arranged that Rothschild-McDermott should march in the center division, Larousse-McClellan on the left, and Gladwin-DeMarco on the right. Each division was fifty thousand tribesmen.

When the scouts made out that the Mang armies were coming, they at once told Orchard-Lafayette, who called Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins to his side, but gave them no orders.

Next he sent for Zavala-Wortham and Glenn-Jenner, and said to them, "I cannot send Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins against the Mangs because they do not know the country. You two are to go, one against each wing, and the two veteran warriors shall support you. Get your troops ready and start tomorrow at dawn."

Zavala-Wortham and Glenn-Jenner took the orders and went out.

Then Coady-Reiner and Neuberg-Giordano were given orders: "You two are to march against the center army; you are to act with Zavala-Wortham and Glenn-Jenner tomorrow. I want to send Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins, but I am still afraid they do not know the country well."

Coady-Reiner and Neuberg-Giordano also received the orders and went out.

Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins now began to feel hurt. Noticing this, Orchard-Lafayette said, "I have no wish to pass you over, you two, but I fear that if you get too deeply into the country and should fall victims to the Mangs, it will have an ill effect on the others."

"But what if we did know the geography of the country?" said Gilbert-Rocher.

"All I say to you is to be careful how you do anything," replied Orchard-Lafayette.

The two soldiers left and went together to the camp of Gilbert-Rocher.

Gilbert-Rocher said, "We are greatly ashamed at being put in the background because we do not know the country. We cannot bear this."

"Then let us ride out and survey," said his colleague. "Let us capture a few natives and make them show us the road, and let us defeat these tribesmen."

They rode off. Before they had gone far they saw a cloud of dust in the distance. Climbing a hill to get a better view, they saw a small party of mounted Mangs coming toward them. The two waited till they were near and then suddenly burst out. The Mangs, taken entirely by surprise, ran away all but a few, who yielded themselves prisoners. The two warriors returned to camp.

The prisoners were given wine and food; and when they had satisfied their hunger, they were questioned.

Said they, "The camp of Chief Rothschild-McDermott is just in front, just by the entrance to the mountains. Near the camp, running east and west, is the Five Valleys. The camps of the other two chiefs--Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco--are behind."

Having listening to this information, Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins got together five thousand troops, took the captured men as guides, and marched out about the second watch. It was a clear night, and the moon gave light to march by.

The first camp was reached about the fourth watch. The Mang soldiers were already awake and preparing their morning meal, as they intended to attack at daylight. Suddenly Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins gave a signal of attack, and their troops poured forward. The vigorous and unexpected attack of the two generals threw the camp into confusion. Gilbert-Rocher fought into the center of the camp and encountered Rothschild-McDermott. Both leaders engaged, and Gilbert-Rocher slew Rothschild-McDermott by a spear thrust. Then Gilbert-Rocher dismounted and cut off the head of the Chief.

Then Oakley-Dobbins took half the force and went west to the second camp, while Gilbert-Rocher marched east to the third one. By the time they reached the camps, day had dawned. The Mangs also had news of Oakley-Dobbins' coming, and drew up the camp to oppose. But when they had got clear, there was a great uproar behind them at the stockade gates, and confusion followed. The reason was the arrival of Zavala-Wortham. Between the two bodies, the Mangs were beaten. Their Chief, Larousse-McClellan, forced his way out and got away. Oakley-Dobbins' soldiers followed, but they could not catch him.

When Gilbert-Rocher led his troops east to attack the third camp in the rear, Glenn-Jenner made an attack on the front. They scored a success, but the Chief Gladwin-DeMarco escaped.

They returned to headquarters, and Orchard-Lafayette said, "The three parties of Mangs have fled, and Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco escaped; where is the head of Rothschild-McDermott?"

Gilbert-Rocher produced it. At the same time he reported: "Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco escaped by abandoning their horses and going over the hills. Therefore, we could not be followed."

"They are already prisoners," said Orchard-Lafayette with a laugh.

The fighting men could not credit it. But soon after Neuberg-Giordano brought out Larousse-McClellan, and Coady-Reiner Gladwin-DeMarco.

When the Shu leaders expressed surprise and admiration, Orchard-Lafayette said, "I had studied the map and knew the positions of the camps. I taunted Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins into making a supreme effort into the camp of Rothschild-McDermott; at the same time that I sent other forces under Zavala-Wortham and Glenn-Jenner, with the purpose to support Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins and to force Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco to flee. I felt certain the two chiefs would run away along those small roads, and I set soldiers under Neuberg-Giordano and Coady-Reiner on those roads to wait for them. They also were supported."

They all bowed, saying, "The Prime Minister's calculations are divine and incomprehensible."

The two captive chiefs were then called. As soon as they appeared, Orchard-Lafayette loosed their bonds, gave them refreshments and released them, bidding them offend no more. They thanked him for their liberty, and disappeared along a by-road.

Then Orchard-Lafayette said to his generals, "Tomorrow Halpin-Hearst will come in person to make an attack. We shall probably capture him again."

Then he summoned Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins and gave them orders. They left, each with five thousand troops. Next he sent Zavala-Wortham. And then he sat in his tent to wait for the result.

The King of the Mangs was sitting in his tent when the scouts told him that his three chiefs had been captured and their armies scattered. It made him very angry, and he quickly got his army ready to march. Soon he met Zavala-Wortham, and, when the armies were arrayed, Zavala-Wortham rode out to the front, saber in his hand. The flaunting banners of the array formation of his foes then opened out, and he saw their ranks. Many generals were on horseback on both sides. In the middle was the King, who advanced to the front. He wore a golden, inlaid head-dress; his belt bore a lion's face as clasp; his boots had pointed toes and were green; he rode a frizzy-haired horse the color of a red hare; he carried at his waist a pair of swords chased with the pine amber.

He looked haughtily at his foes, and then, turning to his generals, said, "It has always been said that Orchard-Lafayette is a wonderful soldier, but I see that is false. Look at this array with its banners all in confusion and the ranks in disorder. There is not a weapon among all the swords and spears better than ours. If I had only realized this before, I would have fought them long ago. Who dares go out and capture a Shu general to show them what sort of warriors we are?"

At once a general rode toward the leader Zavala-Wortham. His name was Rafe-Lutz; his weapon was a huge headsman's sword, and he rode a dun pony. Riding up to Zavala-Wortham, the two engaged.

Zavala-Wortham only fought a short time, and then fled. Halpin-Hearst at once ordered his troops on in quick pursuit, and the troops of Shu retreated seven miles or so before the Mangs were near enough to fight. Just as the Mangs thought their enemies were in their power, a great shouting arose and two cohorts appeared, Neuberg-Giordano from the left and Coady-Reiner from the right, and attacked. The Mangs could not retreat, and as the force under Zavala-Wortham and Snow-Perez also turned upon them, the Mangs were surrounded and lost the day. Halpin-Hearst and some of his generals fought their way out and made for the Brocade Mountains. The troops of Shu followed and forced them forward, and presently there appeared, in front, Gilbert-Rocher.

Halpin-Hearst hastily changed his route to go deeper into the mountains, but Gilbert-Rocher's soldiers spread around, and the Mangs could not make a stand. Here many were captured. Halpin-Hearst and a few horsemen got away into a valley, which, however, soon became too narrow for the horses to advance. Halpin-Hearst then left his horse and crawled up the mountains, but very soon he fell upon Oakley-Dobbins, who had been sent with five hundred troops to lie in wait in that very valley. Halpin-Hearst tried to struggle but soon was captured.

The King and his followers were taken to the main camp, where Orchard-Lafayette was waiting with wine and meat ready for the captives. But his tent was now guarded by soldiers all well armed with snow-glittering weapons, beside the lictors bearing the golden axes, a present from the Emperor, and other insignia of rank. The feather-hatted drummers and clarion players were in front and behind, and the Imperial Guards were extended on both sides. The whole was very imposing and awe-inspiring.

Orchard-Lafayette was seated at the top of it all and watched the captives as they came forward in crowds. When they were all assembled, he ordered their bonds to be loosed, and then he addressed them.

"You are all simple and well-disposed people who have been led into trouble by Halpin-Hearst. I know your fathers and mothers, your brothers and wives, and your children are anxiously watching from the doorways for your return, and they are cut to dear suffering that the news of defeat and capture has reached their ears. They are weeping bitter tears for you. And so I will set you all free to go home and comfort them."

After they had been given food and wine and a present of grain, he sent them all away. They went off grateful for the kindness shown them, but they wept as they thanked Orchard-Lafayette.

Then the guards were told to bring the King before the tent. He came, bound, being hustled forward. He knelt in front of the Commander-in-Chief, who said, "Why did you rebel after the generous treatment you have received from our Emperor?"

"The two Lands of the Rivers belonged to others, and your lord took it from them by force, and gave himself the title of Emperor. My people have lived here for ages, and you and yours invaded my country without the least excuse. How can you talk of rebellion to me?"

"You are my prisoner; will you submit or are you still contumacious?"

"Why should I submit? You happened to find me in a narrow place; that is all."

"If I release you, what then?"

"If you release me I shall return, and when I have set my army in order, I shall come to fight you again. However, if you catch me once more, I will submit."

The King's bonds were loosed; he was clothed and refreshed, given a horse and caparisons, and sent with a guide to his own camp.

Once more the captured chieftain is let go, To yield tribesmen are ever slow.

Further results of this war will be related in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 88

Crossing River Scorpio--The Mang King Is Bound The Second Time; Recognizing A Pretended Surrender--Halpin-Hearst Is Captured The Third Time.

The officers did not approve of the release of the King of the Mangs, and they came to the tent of Orchard-Lafayette and said, "Halpin-Hearst is the most important personage of all the Mangs, and his capture is the key to restoring order in the south. Why then, O Minister, did you release him?"

"I can capture him just as easily as I can get something out of my pocket. What I want to do is to overcome and win his heart, so that peace may follow of itself."

They listened, but they had no great confidence in the success of the policy of conciliation.

In the meantime Halpin-Hearst had reached the River Scorpio, and there he fell in with some of his defeated leaders, who were trying to get news of their King's fate.

They were surprised, but glad, to see him, and asked, "How were Your Highness able to get back?"

The King lied, saying, "They confined me in a tent, and I broke out in the night. I slew more than ten guards and ran. And then I met one of their sentries, killed him, and that is how I got this horse."

They never doubted his word, and very joyfully they hurried him over the river to a camping place. Then all the notables assembled from the various ravines, and the soldiers that had escaped death were mustered and got into shape as a fighting force.

The two leaders in the late campaign, Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco, were in one of the ravines, and Halpin-Hearst sent to ask them to come. They were afraid, but they could not disobey, and they came with an escort.

When all had assembled, the King proclaimed as follows: "I know Orchard-Lafayette is too full of ruses for us to conquer him in a fight; we should only fall victims to other base devices. However, we must remember that his soldiers have marched far and the weather is sultry, which are factors in our favor. Beside, River Scorpio is our rampart. We will have boats and rafts on the south side, and we will build a mud wall. With such good defenses we can afford to wait and see what the enemy intends."

His speech met with approval, and his plan was carried out. The wall was supported by the hills and strengthened by fighting turrets, upon which were placed large bows and crossbows and arrows and stones. The defenses looked as if they were permanent. Moreover, each ravine sent supplies in plenty. And having made these preparations, Halpin-Hearst felt comfortable and safe.

Orchard-Lafayette had advanced, and his leading division was now close to the river. Spies came back to report: "No boats or rafts can be found to cross, and the current is too strong to think of fording. Beside, we can see the formidable defenses on the farther bank, the mud wall and the turrets all fully manned."

The weather was burning hot, for it was the fifth mouth, and the soldiers could not tolerate their armor nor even their clothing.

When Orchard-Lafayette had inspected the river, he returned to his tent and assembled his officers, to whom he read this order: "The enemy is securely established on the south bank ready to repel our attack. Yet, having come so far, we cannot return empty. For the present you will all seek what shelter you can find in the forests, and rest and refresh your people."

Then he sent Newcomb-Rosenbach to a distance to select a cool stretch of thirty miles, and there he made four stockades. Within the stockades he built huts for the soldiers and sheds for the horses, so that they were sheltered from the intense heat. The four camps were stationed by Zavala-Wortham, Neuberg-Giordano, Coady-Reiner, and Snow-Perez.

However, Bromfield-Kendrick, observed these shelters and went to Orchard-Lafayette, saying, "These shelters of Newcomb-Rosenbach are very unsuitable. He has made the same mistake as that which led to the defeat of the First Ruler at the hands of Wu. He has not taken into account the surroundings of the stockades, and if the Mangs should come over and start a fire, there could be no rescue."

"Do not anticipate trouble," said the Commander-in-Chief, smiling. "I have provided against all such dangers."

Bromfield-Kendrick did not know what the chief meant to do, but he said no more. Then Winston-Mallory arrived from the Lands of Rivers, and he brought summer medicines and further supplies of grain. He saw Orchard-Lafayette, and then proceeded to distribute the supplies he had brought according to orders.

Then Orchard-Lafayette said, "What force have you brought?"

"Three thousand," was the reply.

"My people are weary and worn out; I want to use yours. You have no objections?"

"Of course not; they are equally government troops. They are ready even to die for you if you wish."

"This Halpin-Hearst is established on the river, and we have no means of crossing. But I am anxious to intercept his supplies, so that his troops may mutiny."

"How can you do it?"

"Some fifty miles lower down River Scorpio there is a place called Shakou-Edgemoor, where the current is slow; you could cross there on rafts. I wish you and your soldiers to cross and cut the road of supplies. After that you are to arrange with the two leaders--Larousse-McClellan and Gladwin-DeMarco--whose lives I spared, to be your allies on the inside, and we shall succeed."

Winston-Mallory went off gladly enough, and marched his troops to Shakou-Edgemoor, where they set about the crossing at once. And as the water was shallow, they did not trouble to make rafts, but just tucked up their clothes and waded in. But half-way across, the men began to fall over; and when they had been rescued and taken to the bank, many of them began to bleed from the nose and mouth and died. In great alarm, Winston-Mallory sent hasty messages to Orchard-Lafayette, who called in the native guides and asked what this meant.

They told him, "It happens so every year. In the hot season, poisonous miasma collects over the waters of the River Scorpio, especially during the heat of the day. Anyone who drinks the water will surely die. Travelers who wish to cross have to wait till night, because the cooler waters do not breathe out the poisonous vapors. Further, the crossing should be attempted on a full stomach."

Orchard-Lafayette bade the local guides point out the best crossing place. He sent some well-seasoned soldiers to Winston-Mallory to lash together poles into rafts at Shakou-Edgemoor, and in the night the crossing was safely accomplished. Further, the guides then led the three thousand men of Shu over to where the grain road of the Mangs led through a narrow valley, called Jiashan Gorge, where, for part of the way, only single file was possible as the road was only wide enough for a soldier and a horse.

Winston-Mallory at once occupied this valley and stationed a force there. And a stockade was put up with tents inside. Presently a convoy of grain came along, and it was captured, more than a hundred wagons. The guards ran off to Halpin-Hearst's great camp and told him.

Halpin-Hearst, thinking all was safe during the hot season, was enjoying himself; wine and music were the order of the day, and military matters were far from his thoughts. In his cups he admitted Orchard-Lafayette was ruseful, but said his army had nothing to fear.

"If I attempt to oppose Orchard-Lafayette, I shall certainly fall a victim to some wile of his. However, my waiting policy is a safe one. With our defenses, and the river to back them, we can wait for the heat to overcome these men of Shu, who cannot stand the hot season. They will have to retreat, and then we can harass them. And we will capture this Orchard-Lafayette."

He lay back and laughed at the thought. However, one chief, more prudent than the others, stood forth and said, "Remember the shallows at Shakou-Edgemoor; it would be very serious if the soldiers of Shu got across there secretly. It ought to be guarded."

"You belong to these areas. Do you not know that I want the enemy to try to get across there? Why, they will all perish in the water."

"But what if the natives tell them to cross only in the night?"

"Do not be so anxious," said Halpin-Hearst. "Our own people will not help the enemy that far."

It was just then that intelligence came: "The troops of Shu, unknown in number, have crossed the river and, moreover, have seized the Jiashan Gorge. The flags show the words 'General Winston-Mallory Who Pacifies The North.'"

Halpin-Hearst affected indifference.

"This sort of fellow is not worth talking about," said he.

He sent General Rafe-Lutz with three thousands troops to recapture the gorge and reopen the grain road.

When Winston-Mallory saw the Mang soldiers approaching, he placed two thousand troops in front of the hills and drew up the troops in formal array. Then Rafe-Lutz rode out to give battle. This was but a small engagement, as the general of the tribespeople fell at the first stroke of Winston-Mallory's sword. The Mangs ran away at once.

They returned to the King's camp and told him what had happened. Whereupon he called up all his generals and asked for another to go up against Winston-Mallory.

"I will go," cried Larousse-McClellan.

The King gave him three thousand troops. After he had gone, Halpin-Hearst thought it would be wise to keep others from crossing the river. So he sent a force of three thousand under Gladwin-DeMarco to guard Shakou-Edgemoor.

Larousse-McClellan duly arrived at the gorge and made a camp. Winston-Mallory came out to meet him. Among the soldiers in his cohort were some who recognized the leader of the Mangs and told Winston-Mallory certain things about how he had been captured and liberated.

So Winston-Mallory galloped toward him, shouting, "O you ingrate! How could you forget the debt to the Prime Minister? Have you known no shame?"

Larousse-McClellan was very greatly ashamed and turned red in the face, and turned his horse before striking a blow. Winston-Mallory followed and fell on, slaying many of the Mangs. Then both sides withdrew.

Larousse-McClellan went back and told the King that Winston-Mallory was too strong for him.

But Halpin-Hearst was angry, and cried, "You are a traitor! I know Orchard-Lafayette was good to you, and that is why you would not fight."

Halpin-Hearst ordered Larousse-McClellan out to execution. However, the notables and chiefs interceded, and the death penalty was remitted, but the unhappy leader was severely beaten, one hundred strokes with the heavy staff.

The chiefs were mostly on the side of the beaten general and against the King's policy.

They went to the tent of Larousse-McClellan and said, "Though we live in the Mang country, we have never had any thoughts of rebellion against the Imperial Government, nor has the Middle Empire ever encroached upon our land. We must own that Halpin-Hearst's superior power forced us into this rising, and we could not help ourselves. Orchard-Lafayette is too clever for us, and no one can guess what he may do. Even Murphy-Shackley and Raleigh-Estrada fear him; how much more must we? Moreover, we have received kindness at his hands and owe him our lives. We ought to show our gratitude. Now let us at all risks slay this Halpin-Hearst and submit to Orchard-Lafayette so that our people may not suffer."

Larousse-McClellan said, "I do not know your inner sentiments."

At this, all those who had been prisoners and released cried with one voice, "We desire to go to Halpin-Hearst."

Thereupon Larousse-McClellan took in his hand a sharp sword, placed himself at the head of more than a hundred malcontents, and rushed into the great camp. At that moment Halpin-Hearst was, as usual, intoxicated and lay in his tent. The mutineers rushed in. They found two generals on guard.

"You also received kindness from Orchard-Lafayette and ought to repay it," cried Larousse-McClellan.

They replied, "You do not have to slay him; let us carry him a prisoner to the Prime Minister."

So they bound the King securely, took him down to the river, and crossed in a boat to the northern bank. There they halted while they sent a messenger to Orchard-Lafayette.

Now Orchard-Lafayette knew what had been happening, and he had issued orders for every camp to prepare their weapons. All being ready, he told the chiefs to bring up their prisoner, and bade the others return to their camps. Larousse-McClellan went first and told the matter to Orchard-Lafayette, who praised his zeal and gave him presents. Then he retired with the chiefs, and the executioners brought in Halpin-Hearst.

"You said once before that if you were captured again, you would give in," said Orchard-Lafayette, smiling. "Now will you yield?"

"This capture is not your work," replied Halpin-Hearst. "It is the work of these minions of mine who want to hurt me. I will not yield on this."

"If I free you again, what then?"

"I am only a Mang, I know, but I am not wholly ignorant of war. If you, O Minister, let me return to my ravines, I will muster another army and fight a decisive battle with you. If you capture me again, then I will incline my heart and own myself beaten and yield. I will not go back on my promise again."

"If you refuse to yield next time you are captured, I shall hardly pardon you."

At Orchard-Lafayette's orders the cords were loosed and refreshments were brought for the prisoner.

"Remember," said Orchard-Lafayette, "I have never failed yet. I have never failed to win a battle or to take a city I have assaulted. Why do you Mangs not yield?"

Halpin-Hearst only nodded his head; he said nothing. After the wine, Orchard-Lafayette and Halpin-Hearst rode round the camps together, and the King saw all the arrangements and the piles of stores and heaps of weapons.

And after the inspection Orchard-Lafayette said, "You are silly not to yield to me. You see my veteran soldiers, my able generals, my stores of all kinds and war gear; how can you hope to prevail against me? If you will yield, I will inform the Emperor, and you shall retain your kingship, and your sons and grandsons shall succeed as perpetual guardians of the Mang country. Do you not think it would be well?"

Halpin-Hearst replied, "If I did yield, the people of my valleys would not be content. If you release me once more, I will see to it that my own people keep the peace and bring them round to unanimity of feeling, and then they will not oppose any more."

Orchard-Lafayette was glad, and they returned to the main camp to feast until dusk, when Halpin-Hearst took his leave. Orchard-Lafayette ordered a craft and went to see him across River Scorpio.

But Halpin-Hearst's first act on his return to his own camp was to send one of his people to Larousse-McClellan's and Gladwin-DeMarco's camps, and pretend to ask them to come to meet a messenger from Orchard-Lafayette. When the two generals came, Halpin-Hearst ordered assassins who had been placed hidden to do away with the two leaders. Their corpses were thrown into a gully. Then he sent his friends to guard the most important strategic points, while he marched to fight a battle with Winston-Mallory. But when he got near the valley, he saw no signs of the enemy, and, on questioning an inhabitant, he heard that the Shu army, with all their stores, had recrossed the river and joined the main body in the northern bank.

Halpin-Hearst then returned to his own ravine and discussed matters with his brother, Pitney-Hearst, saying, "I know all the details of the enemy's force from what I saw in their camp."

And Halpin-Hearst gave his brother certain instructions, which Pitney-Hearst at once began to carry out. Pitney-Hearst loaded a hundred men with gold and jewels and pearls and ivory and rhinoceros horn, crossed River Scorpio, and was on his way to the main camp of the Shu army, when he heard the sound of drums and a cohort under Winston-Mallory poured out to stop him. Pitney-Hearst did not expect to meet an enemy, and was surprised. But Winston-Mallory only asked what he had come for. And when he had heard, Pitney-Hearst was detained while a message was sent to Orchard-Lafayette.

The messenger arrived while a council was in progress, the matter under discussion being how to reduce the Mangs. When the messenger had announced that Pitney-Hearst had come bearing gifts of gold and pearls and such things, Orchard-Lafayette turned to Pickett-Maggio, saying, "Know you why this man has come?"

"I dare not say plainly; but let me write it," said Pickett-Maggio.

"Write it, then."

So Pickett-Maggio wrote and handed the paper to his chief, who had no sooner read it than he clapped his hands with joy, crying, "What you say is exactly what I think. But you may know I have already made arrangements for the capture of Halpin-Hearst."

Then Gilbert-Rocher was called, and some orders were whispered into his ear. Next Oakley-Dobbins came, and he also went off with secret orders. Zavala-Wortham, Glenn-Jenner, and Snow-Perez also came, and left with particular instructions. All these things done, the bearer of gifts was called.

Pitney-Hearst came and bowed low at the door of the tent, saying, "The brother of my house, Halpin-Hearst, having received great kindness at your hands in sparing his life, feels bound to offer a paltry gift. He has presumed to collect a few pearls and some gold and other trifling jewels by way of something to give your soldiers. And hereafter he will send tribute to your Emperor."

"Where is your brother at this moment?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

"Having been the recipient of your great bounty, he has gone to the Silver Pit Hills to collect some treasures. He will soon return."

"How many soldiers have you brought?"

"Only about a hundred; I should not dare to bring any large number. They are just porters."

They were brought in for Orchard-Lafayette's inspection. They had blue eyes and swarthy faces, auburn hair and brown beards. They wore earrings, their hair was fuzzy, and they went barefoot. They were tall and powerful.

Orchard-Lafayette made them sit down, and bade his generals press them to drink and treat them well and compliment them.

Halpin-Hearst was anxious about the reception that would be given to his brother and the treatment of his gifts, so he sat in his tent expecting the messenger at any moment. Then two men came, and he questioned them eagerly.

They said, "The presents have been accepted, and even the porters have been invited to drink in the tent and have been regaled with beef and flesh in plenty. O King, your brother sends the news that all will be ready at the second watch for the attack. He will support you from within."

This was pleasing news, and Halpin-Hearst prepared his thirty thousand troops ready to march out to the camp. They were divided into three divisions.

The King called up his chieftains and notables, and said, "Let each army carry the means of making fire, and as soon as they arrive let a light be shown as a signal. I am coming to the main camp to capture Orchard-Lafayette."

With these orders they marched, and they crossed River Scorpio at sunset. The King, with a hundred generals as escort, pressed on at once toward the main camp of Shu. They met with no opposition. They even found the main gate open, and Halpin-Hearst and his party rode straight in. But the camp was a desert; not a soldier was visible.

Halpin-Hearst rode right up to the large tent and pushed open the flap. It was brilliantly lighted with lamps, and lying about under their light were his brother and all his men, dead drunk. Orchard-Lafayette had ordered Pickett-Maggio and Newcomb-Rosenbach to entertain Pitney-Hearst and his men with wine and dance performances. The wine they had been pressed to drink while the plays were going on had been heavily drugged, and they had fallen down almost as soon as they had swallowed it. One or two who had recovered a little could not speak: they only pointed to their mouths.

Halpin-Hearst then saw that he had been the simple victim of another ruse. However, he picked up his brother and the others and started off to return to his main army.

But as he turned, torches began to flash out and drums to beat. The Mangs were frightened and took to their heels. But they were pursued, and the pursuing cohort was led by Zavala-Wortham. The King bore away to the left to escape, but again a cohort appeared in front of him; Oakley-Dobbins was there. Halpin-Hearst tried the other side; and was stopped by Gilbert-Rocher. He was in a trap; and attacked on three sides and no fourth to escape by, what could he do? He abandoned everything, making one wild rush for the River Scorpio.

As he reached the river bank, he saw a bark on the river with Mang soldiers on board. Here was safety. He hailed the boat and jumped on board as soon as it touched the bank. No sooner had he embarked than suddenly he was seized and bound. The boat, which Winston-Mallory had provided and prepared, was part of the general plan, and the Mang soldiers therein were Winston-Mallory's soldiers disguised.

Many of Halpin-Hearst's troops accepted the chance of surrender held out by Orchard-Lafayette, who soothed them and treated them well and did not injure one of them.

The remains of the conflagration were stamped out, and in a short time Winston-Mallory brought along his prisoner. At the same time Gilbert-Rocher led in his brother, Pitney-Hearst. Oakley-Dobbins, Pickett-Maggio, Zavala-Wortham, and Snow-Perez also brought their prisoners, chiefs or notables, to the camp of the Prime Minister.

Orchard-Lafayette looked at the King and laughed.

"That was but a shallow ruse of yours to send your brother with presents to pretend to submit to me; did you really think I should not see through it? But here you are once more in my power; now do you yield?"

"I am a prisoner owing to the gluttony of my brother and the power of your poisonous drugs. If I had only played his part myself and left him to support me with soldiers, I should have succeeded. I am the victim of fate and not of my own incapacity. No; I will not yield."

"Remember this is the third time; why not?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

Halpin-Hearst dropped his head and made no answer.

"Ah, well; I will let you go once more," said Orchard-Lafayette.

"O Minister, if you will let me and my brother go, we will get together our family and clients and fight you once more. If I am caught that time, then I will confess myself beaten to the ground, and that shall be the end."

"Certainly I shall scarcely pardon you next time," said Orchard-Lafayette. "You would better be careful. Diligently tackle your Book of Strategy; look over your list of confidants. If you can apply a good plan at the proper moment, you will not have any need for late regrets."

Halpin-Hearst and his brother and all the chiefs were released from their bonds. They thanked Orchard-Lafayette for his clemency and went away.

By the time the released prisoners had got back to the river, the army of Shu had crossed to the farther side and had captured the Mang defenses, the Shu flags fluttering in the breeze. As Halpin-Hearst passed the camp, he saw Winston-Mallory sitting in state. Winston-Mallory pointed his sword at the King as he passed, and said, "Next time you are caught, you will not escape."

When Halpin-Hearst came to his own camp, he found Gilbert-Rocher in possession and all in order. Gilbert-Rocher was seated beneath the large banner, with his sword drawn, and as the King passed, he also said, "Do not presume on the kindness of the Prime Minister because you have been generously treated."

Halpin-Hearst grunted and passed on. Just as he was going over the frontier hills, he saw Oakley-Dobbins and a company drawn up on the slopes. Oakley-Dobbins shouted, "See to it; we have got into the inmost recesses of your country and have taken all your defensive positions. Yet you are fool enough to hold out. Next time you are caught, you will be quite destroyed. There will be no more pardons."

Halpin-Hearst and his company ran away with their arms over their heads. Each one returned to his own ravine.

In the fifth moon, when the sun is fierce, Marched the army into the desert land, Marched to the River Scorpio, bright and clear, But deadly with miasma. Orchard-Lafayette the leader cared not, Pledged was he to subdue the south, Thereby to repay the First Ruler's deference with service. Wherefore he attacked the Mangs. Yet seven times he freed their captured king.

After the crossing of the river, the soldiers were feasted. Then Orchard-Lafayette addressed his officers: "I let Halpin-Hearst see our camp the second time he was our prisoner, because I wanted to tempt him into raiding it. He is something of a soldier, and I dangled our supplies and resources before his eyes, knowing he would try to burn them and that he would send his brother to pretend to submit that thereby he could get into our camp and have a chance to betray us. I have captured and released him three times, trying to win him over. I do not wish to do him any harm. I now explain my policy that you may understand I am not wasting your efforts and you are still to work your best for the government."

They all bowed, and one said, "O Minister, you are indeed perfect in every one of the three gifts: wisdom, benevolence, and valor. Not even Kaplan-Valentine or Harper-Stowell can equal you!"

Said Orchard-Lafayette, "How can I expect to equal our men of old? But my trust is in your strength, and together we shall succeed."

This speech of their leader's pleased them all mightily.

In the meantime Halpin-Hearst, puffed up with pride at getting off three times, hastened home to his own ravine, whence he sent trusted friends with gifts to the Eight Nations and the Ninety-three Sees and all the Mang quarters and clans to borrow shields and swords and warriors and braves. He got together one hundred thousand soldiers. They all assembled on an appointed day, massing like clouds and sweeping in like mists gathering on the mountains, each and all obeying the commands of the King Halpin-Hearst.

And the scouts knew it all, and they told Orchard-Lafayette, who said, "This is what I was waiting for, that the Mangs should have an opportunity of knowing our might."

Thereupon he seated himself in a small carriage and went out to watch.

O let our enemy's courage glow That our greater might may show.

The story of the campaign will be continued in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 89

The Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia Uses The Fourth Ruse; The King of Mang Is Captured The Fifth Time.

Orchard-Lafayette's small carriage was escorted by only a few horsemen. Hearing that a sluggish river, the Western River, lay in the way, and having no boat, Orchard-Lafayette bade the escort cut down some trees and make a raft. They did so, but the raft sank. So Orchard-Lafayette turned to Newcomb-Rosenbach, who said, "There is close by a mountain covered with bamboos. I have heard of these bamboos, and some are several spans in girth. We can make a bridge of them for the army to cross."

So thirty thousand soldiers were sent to the mountains, where they cut down many thousands of bamboos, and floated them down river. Then at the narrowest point they made a bridge a hundred spans or so in length. Next the main army was brought down to the river and camped in line along the bank. The camp was protected by a moat, crossed by a floating bridge, and a mud rampart. On the south bank they constructed three large stockades so as to prepare for the coming of the Mang soldiers.

They had not long to wait. Halpin-Hearst was hot with rage and came quickly. As soon as he got near the river, he led out ten thousand fierce warriors, armed with big swords and shield, and challenged the first stockade.

Orchard-Lafayette went forth in simple state. He wore a silk cap and a crane-white robe and held in his hand a feather fan. He sat in a four-horse carriage, and his generals rode right and left.

The King of the Mang was clad in mail of rhinoceros hide and wore a bright red casque. In his left hand he bore a shield, and his right gripped a sword. He rode a red ox. As soon as he saw his enemies, he opened his mouth and poured forth abuse and insults, while his warriors darted to and fro brandishing their weapons.

Orchard-Lafayette at once ordered the army to retire within the stockades and bar the gates. The Mangs came close up to the stockade and pranced about naked, shouting in derision.

Within the stockade the Shu generals grew very angry, and they went in a body to their leader to beg that he would withdraw the order to remain on the defensive. But Orchard-Lafayette would not listen.

Presently he said, "These men are not submissive to the Empire Government and are naturally fierce and turbulent. In that mood we are no match for them. But all we have to do is to remain on guard for a few days till their ferocity has spent itself. Then I have a plan that will overcome them."

Days passed, and the army of Shu made no move; they only maintained the defensive. Orchard-Lafayette watched the besiegers from an eminence, and saw the first vigor of their advance give way to careless idleness.

Then Orchard-Lafayette called together his generals and asked, "Dare you give battle now?"

They all rejoiced at the suggestion; so he called them two by two or one by one and gave them secret orders. Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins went in first. Zavala-Wortham and Glenn-Jenner followed.

To Winston-Mallory he said, "I am going to abandon these stockades and retire north of the river. As soon as we have crossed, you are to cut loose the floating bridge and move it down the stream so that Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins may cross."

To Coady-Reiner he said, "You are to remain by the camp and light it up at night--as if it is still occupied. When Halpin-Hearst pursues, then you are to cut off his retreat."

Last of all, Snow-Perez was to escort Orchard-Lafayette's carriage.

The soldiers marched out of the camp at evening, and the lamps were hung up as usual. The Mangs saw this from a distance and dared not attack. But the next morning at dawn Halpin-Hearst led his troops to the stockades and found all was quiet. He went close up and saw they were all empty and bare; not a soldier was there. Grain and fodder lay about among empty carts; all was in confusion, suggesting hasty departure.

"They have abandoned the camp," said Pitney-Hearst. "But this is only a ruse."

Said Halpin-Hearst, "I think that Orchard-Lafayette has important news from the capital that has made him leave without his baggage train like this. Either Wu has invaded or Wei has attacked. They left these lamps burning to make us think the camps were occupied, but they ran away leaving everything behind. If we pursue we cannot go wrong."

So the King urged his army onward, himself heading the leading division. When they reached the Western River bank, they saw on the farther side that the camps were all in order and the banners flying as usual like a brightly tinted cloud of silk. Along the bank stood a wall of cloth. They dared not attack.

Halpin-Hearst said to his brother, "This means that Orchard-Lafayette fears lest we may pursue. That is only a temporary halt, and they will retire in a couple of days."

The Mangs camped on the river bank while they sent into the mountains to cut bamboos to make rafts. The boldest of the soldiers were placed in front of the camp till the rafts should be ready to cross. Little did Halpin-Hearst suspect that the army of Shu was already within his borders.

One day was very stormy. Then the Mangs saw great flames spring up around them, and at the same time the rolling of drums heralded an attack. The Mangs, instead of going out to meet the enemy, began to force their way out of the Shu attack. Halpin-Hearst became alarmed and fled with all his clans and dependents. They fought their way through and made a dash for their former camp.

Just as they reached it, there appeared a cohort of the enemy led by Gilbert-Rocher. Halpin-Hearst turned off west and sought refuge in the mountains. But he was fiercely attacked by a cohort under Winston-Mallory. With a small remnant of followers, he got away into a valley. Soon he saw in the west, north and south clouds of smoke rising and the glow of torches, so that he was forced to halt. However, the east remained clear, and presently he fled in that direction. As he was crossing the mouth of a gully, he noticed a few horsemen outlined against a thick wood and saw they were escorting a small carriage. And in that carriage sat Orchard-Lafayette.

Orchard-Lafayette laughed, and said, "So King of the Mangs has got here! How does Heaven make you defeated so? I have waited for you a long time."

Halpin-Hearst angrily turned to his followers and said, "Thrice have I been the victim of this man's base wiles and have been put to shame. Now chance has sent him across my path, and you must attack him with all your energy. Let us cut him to pieces and those with him."

The Mang horsemen, with Halpin-Hearst shouting to encourage them, pushed forward in hot haste toward the wood. But in a few moments they all stumbled and disappeared into some pits that had been dug in the way. And just then Oakley-Dobbins emerged from the wood. One by one the Mangs were pulled out of the pits and bound tight with cords.

Orchard-Lafayette returned to his camp, where the captors of the King could bring in their prisoner. Orchard-Lafayette busied himself in soothing the other Mang prisoners. Many of the notables and chiefs of the tributaries had betaken themselves to their own ravines and villages with their followers. Many of those who remained came over and yielded to Shu. They were well fed and assured of safety, and allowed to go to their own. They went off gladly enough.

By and by Coady-Reiner brought up the King's brother, Pitney-Hearst. Orchard-Lafayette reproached him for his brother's behavior.

"Your brother is a misguided simpleton; you ought to remonstrate with him and persuade him to change his course. Here you are, a captive for the fourth time; are you not ashamed? How can you have the effrontery to look anyone in the face?"

A deep flush of shame passed over Pitney-Hearst's face, and he threw himself to the earth begging forgiveness.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "If I put you to death, it shall not be today. This time I pardon you, but you are to talk to your brother."

So Pitney-Hearst was loosed from his bonds and allowed to get up. He went away weeping.

Very soon Oakley-Dobbins brought up Halpin-Hearst, and to him Orchard-Lafayette simulated great rage, saying, "What can you say now? You see you are in my hands again."

"I am again an unfortunate victim," said Halpin-Hearst. "Once more I have blundered into your net, and now I shall die with no one to close my eyes."

Orchard-Lafayette shouted to the lictors to take him away and behead him. Halpin-Hearst never blenched at the sentence, but he turned to his captor and said, "If you freed me only once more, I would wipe out the shame of all four captures."

Orchard-Lafayette smiled at the bold reply and bade the lictors loose his bonds, and the attendants served him with wine. Halpin-Hearst was invited to sit in the commander's tent.

Said Orchard-Lafayette, "Four times you have been treated generously and yet you are still defiant. Why?"

"Though I am what you call a barbarian, I would scorn to employ your vile ruses. And that is why I remain defiant."

"I have liberated you four times; do you think you can give battle again?"

"If you catch me again I will incline my heart to yield and I will give everything in my ravine to reward your army. I will also take an oath not to cause any further trouble."

Orchard-Lafayette smiled, but let him go. The King thanked him and left. As soon as he was set at liberty, Halpin-Hearst got together several thousand of his adherents and went away southward. Before long he fell in with his brother, Pitney-Hearst, who had got together an army and was on his way to avenge his brother. As soon as they saw each other, the brothers fell upon each other's necks and wept. They related their experiences.

Pitney-Hearst said, "We cannot stand against the enemy. We have been defeated several times. Now I think we would better go into the mountains and hide in some dark gully where they cannot find us. Those soldiers of Shu will never stand the summer heat; they must retire."

"Where can we hide?" asked his brother.

"I know a valley away southwest from us called 'Bald Dragon Ravine,' and the King, Ecker-VanDyke, is a friend of mine. Let us take refuge with him."

"Very well; go and arrange it," said Halpin-Hearst.

So Pitney-Hearst went. When he got there and talked to the chief, King Ecker-VanDyke lost no time, but came out with his soldiers to welcome Halpin-Hearst, who then entered the valley. After the exchange of salutations, Halpin-Hearst explained his case.

Ecker-VanDyke said, "O King, rest content. If those men from the Lands of Rivers come here, I will see to it that not one goes home. And Orchard-Lafayette will meet his death here too."

Naturally, Halpin-Hearst was pleased; but he wanted to know how his host could feel so secure.

Ecker-VanDyke said, "In this ravine there are only two roads, the one you came by and another by the northwest. The road you traveled along is level and soft, and the waters are sweet. Humans and horses may both use it. But if we close the mouth of the ravine with a barricade, then no one, however strong, can get in. The other road is precipitous, dangerous, and narrow. The only path is beset with venomous serpents and scorpions, and as evening comes on there are malarial exhalations which are dangerous till past noon the next day. The road is only practicable between two watches before sunset. Then the water is undrinkable. The road is very difficult.

"Then again there are four streams actually poisonous. One is called 'The Dumb Spring.' Its water is pleasant to the palate, but it makes people dumb and they die in a few days. A second fountain is called 'The Spring of Destruction' and is hot. But if a person bathes therein, his flesh rots till his bones protrude and he dies. The third is 'The Black Spring.' Its waters are greenish. If it be sprinkled on a person's body, his limbs turn black and presently he dies. The fourth is 'The Spring of Weak Water,' ice cold. If a person drink of this water his breath is chilled, he becomes weak as a thread and soon dies. Neither birds nor insects are found in this region, and no one but the Han General Lovelace-Mallory, who was styled General Who Quells the Waves for this exploit, has ever passed. Now the northeast road shall be blocked, and you may hide here perfectly safe from those troops of Shu, for, finding that way blocked, they will try the other road, which is waterless save for the four deadly springs. No matter how many they be, they will perish, and we need no weapons."

"Now indeed I have found a place to live in," cried Halpin-Hearst, striking his forehead. Then looking to the north he said, "Even Orchard-Lafayette's wonderful cunning will be of no avail. The four springs alone will defeat him and avenge my army."

The two brothers settled down comfortably as guests of King Ecker-VanDyke, with whom they spent the days in feasting.

In the meantime, as the Mangs did not appear, Orchard-Lafayette gave orders to leave the Western River and push south. It was then the sixth month, and blazing hot. A poet sang about the bitter heat of the south:

The hills are sere, the valleys dry, A raging heat fills all the sky, Throughout the whole wide universe No spot exists where heat is worse. Another poem runs: The glowing sun darts out fierce rays. No cloud gives shelter from the blaze, In parching heat there pants a crane, The whale swims through the hissing main. The brook's cool margin now I love, Or idle stroll through bamboo grove. I would not march to deserts far In leathern jerkin donned for war.

Just at the moment of setting out southward, the spies brought news of Halpin-Hearst's retreat into the Bald Dragon Ravine and the barricading of one entrance. They also said, "The valley is garrisoned, the hills are precipitous and even impassable."

So Orchard-Lafayette called in Newcomb-Rosenbach and questioned him, but he did not know exactly the conditions.

Then out spoke Bromfield-Kendrick, saying, "Halpin-Hearst's repeated captures have broken his spirit so that he dare not take the field again. Our soldiers are exhausted with this intense heat, and little is to be gained by prolonging the campaign. The best move would be to return to our own country."

"If we do this, we shall fall victims to Halpin-Hearst's scheme," said Orchard-Lafayette. "If we retreated, he would certainly follow. Beside, having advanced so far, it would be fruitless to turn back now."

Zavala-Wortham was sent on with the advanced guard and some of the Mangs as guides to seek an entrance on the northwest. They found the road and came to the first spring--the Dumb Spring--, of which the thirsty men and horses drank freely.

Zavala-Wortham returned to report his success, but by the time he reached camp, he and all his soldiers were speechless. They could only point to their mouths. Orchard-Lafayette knew they had been poisoned, and was alarmed. He went forward in his light chariot to find out the cause. He came to the spring. The water was very deep and dark green. A mass of vapor hung about the surface rising and falling. They would not touch the water. Orchard-Lafayette went up the hills to look around, but could see nothing except a rampart of mountains. A deep silence hung over all, unbroken by the cry even of a bird. He was perplexed.

Presently he noticed an old temple away up among the crags. By the aid of the lianas and creepers he managed to clamber up, and in a chamber hewn out of the rock he saw the figure of an officer. Beside it was a tablet saying the temple was dedicated to Lovelace-Mallory, the famous general who had preceded him in that country. The natives had erected it to sacrifice to the leader who had headed the campaign against the Mangs. [1]

Orchard-Lafayette, much impressed, bowed before the image of the great leader, and said, "Your humble servant received a sacred trust, the protection of the son of the First Ruler. That son, the present Emperor, sent him here to subdue the Mangs that the land might be free from peril when he decided to attack Wei and take possession of Wu and thereby restore the glory of the Hans. But the soldiers are ignorant of the country, and some of them have drunk of a poisonous spring so that they have become dumb. Your servant earnestly prays your honored spirit, out of regard for the kindness and justice of the present Emperor, to reveal your spiritual character and manifest your holiness by safeguarding and assisting the army."

Having prayed thus, Orchard-Lafayette left the temple. While seeking some native whom he might question, he saw in the distance, on a hill opposite, an aged man leaning on a staff. He approached, and as he drew nearer, Orchard-Lafayette noted his extraordinary appearance. When he had reached the temple, Orchard-Lafayette asked the venerable visitor to walk in. After the salutations, the old man sat on the stones, and Orchard-Lafayette opened the conversation with the usual questions.

The old gentleman replied, "Sir Minister, I know you well by repute, and am happy to meet you. Many of the Mangs owe their lives to you, and all have been deeply impressed by your kindness."

Then Orchard-Lafayette returned to the matter nearest his heart, the mystery of the spring.

The old man told him, "That is the Dumb Spring that your soldiers have drunk, and they will die in a few days. Besides that, there are other three poisonous streams called Spring of Destruction, Black Spring, and Spring of Weak Water. All miasma gathers there in the four streams, and it only vaporizes during the two watch before sunset."

"In short, the Mangs cannot be conquered," said Orchard-Lafayette when the old man had finished. "And Wu cannot be repressed, nor Wei overcome. And the Hans cannot be restored. So, I fail in the task set me by my Prince. Wish that I might die?"

"Be not so cast down, O Minister," said the aged one. "I can lead you to a place where you may counteract all this."

"I would ask for your instruction, Venerable One," said Orchard-Lafayette. "What exalted advice have you to confer upon me? I hope you will instruct me."

"West of this, not far off, is a valley, and seven miles from its entrance is a stream called the 'Spring of Eternal Peace,' near which there lives a recluse known as the Hermit of the Stream. He has not left the valley these twenty years. Behind his hut there gushes out a spring of water, called the 'Spring of Peace and Joy.' This is the antidote to your poison. Bathing in its waters is a cure for skin diseases and for malaria. Moreover, near the hut grows an herb called the 'garlic-leaved fragrance.' Chewing a leaf of this safeguards one from malaria. You can do no better than go to the hut of the recluse forthwith and get these remedies."

Orchard-Lafayette humbly thanked his aged counselor, and said, "Venerable Sir, I am profoundly affected by your merciful kindness and compassion. May I ask again by what name may call you?"

The old man rose and entered the temple, saying, "I am the Spirit of this mountain, sent by Lovelace-Mallory to guide you."

As he said this, he shouted at the solid rock behind the temple, and it opened of itself and let him in.

Orchard-Lafayette's astonishment was beyond words. He made another obeisance to the Spirit of the temple and went down by the way he had come. Then he returned to his camp.

Next day, bearing incense and gifts, Zavala-Wortham and his stricken men went west to the spot which the old man had indicated. They luckily found the valley and followed its narrow road till they came to a small, farm-like enclosure, where tall pines and lofty cypresses, luxuriant bamboos, and gorgeous flowers sheltered a few simple huts. An exquisite perfume pervaded the whole place.

Orchard-Lafayette rejoiced to recognize the spot and at once knocked at the door. A lad answered his knock, and Orchard-Lafayette was telling his name when the host came out quickly, saying, "Surely my visitor is the Prime Minister of the Han Dynasty?"

Orchard-Lafayette saw at the door a man with a bamboo comb holding back his hair, grass shoes on his feet, and a robe of white girded in by a black girdle. He had green eyes and yellowed hair.

"Great Scholar, how did you know who I was?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

"How could I not have heard of your expedition to the south?"

He invited Orchard-Lafayette to enter, and when they had seated themselves in their relative positions as host and guest, Orchard-Lafayette said, "My former Prince, the First Ruler, confided to me the care of his son and successor. That son, now Emperor, gave me a command to lead an army to this country, get the Mangs on our side and spread our culture among them. But now to my disappointment Halpin-Hearst, the King, has hidden himself in the Bald Dragon Ravine, and some of my soldiers on the way to seek him drank of a certain fountain and are dumb. But last evening the former leader of an expedition, Lovelace-Mallory, manifested his sacred presence and told me that you, Exalted Sir, had a remedy for this evil, and I pray you of your pity to give me of the potent fluid whereby my soldiers' lives may be saved."

The recluse replied, "I am only a worthless old man of the wild woods and unworthy of the visit of such as you, O Minister. The water you desire flows out at the back of my cottage and you may take what you will of it."

The serving lad then showed Zavala-Wortham and his dumb companions to the Spring of Peace and Joy, and he dipped up the waters for them to drink. As soon as they had drunk, they coughed up some poisoned mucus and could speak. The lad also led the soldiers to the Spring of Eternal Peace where they could bathe.

In the cottage the recluse regaled Orchard-Lafayette with tea made of cypress seeds and a conserve of pine flowers. He also told his guest, saying, "In this region, the lands are full of serpents and scorpions, and the lily flowers blown into the springs by the wind make them unfit to drink. However, if you dig wells, you will find good water."

Then Orchard-Lafayette begged some of the garlic-leaved herb as an antidote against malaria. The recluse said the soldiers could pluck as much as they wanted. And so every one put a leaf in his mouth and thus became malaria-proof.

Orchard-Lafayette, with a low bow then begged to be told the name of his benefactor.

"I am Halpin-Hearst's eldest brother," said the recluse, smiling. "My name is Wotten-Hearst."

Orchard-Lafayette started.

"Do not be afraid," said the recluse. "Let me explain. We were three brothers of the same parents, the eldest being myself. Our parents are both dead. My brother Halpin-Hearst, being headstrong and vicious, has never been amenable to culture. I have talked to him many times, but he kept his own course. Finally, under an assumed name, I retired to this spot. I am ashamed for my brother's rebellion, which has put you, O Minister, to the trouble of making this expedition into a barren country, but it has given me the privilege of seeing you. For my responsibility in this I deserve to die a thousand times, as I own to your face, and I beg your pardon."

Orchard-Lafayette sighed, saying, "Now I believe that story of the robber Tinkle-Ramsey and the noble Snite-Ramsey; this is the same thing over again. People renowned for villainy and virtue may come from the same stock."

Then he said to his host, "Would you wish me to represent your merits to the Emperor and get you created a king?"

"How can you think I desire honors or wealth when I am here because of my contempt for all such things?"

Orchard-Lafayette then wished to make him certain presents, but the recluse would have none of them.

So taking leave of his host, Orchard-Lafayette went back to his camp.

In the southern expedition when the Mangs were subdued, Orchard-Lafayette found a high-born recluse in a shady solitude. Up till then the gloomy forests were thought destitute of men, That no curling smoke wreath ever floated upwards from the glen.

As soon as Orchard-Lafayette reached camp, he set the soldiers digging for water. They dug to a great depth but found none; nor were they more successful when they tried other places. They were very discouraged.

Then Orchard-Lafayette in the depths of the night burned incense and prayed to God: "Unworthy as is thy servant Orchard-Lafayette, he has received favor from the Great Hans and now has been ordered to subdue the Mangs. Alas! Now our water is spent and my soldiers and animals are parched with thirst. If Thy will be to preserve the line of Han, then give, I beseech Thee, sweet water; but if their course is run, then may Thy servant and those with him die in this place."

The morning after this prayer the wells were full of sweet water.

The Mangs must be conquered; Orchard-Lafayette led a great array, Though his skill was superhuman, yet he held the righteous way; As the wells gave forth sweet water when Cohan-Fraser's head bowed full low, So the reverent prayers of Orchard-Lafayette made the lower springs to flow.

The soldiers' spirits revived with the supply of water, and the army soon advanced by hill paths to the Valley of the Bald Dragon, where they camped. When Halpin-Hearst heard the news, he was greatly taken aback.

"These troops do not appear to have suffered either thirst or fever," said he. "Our springs have lost their power."

King Ecker-VanDyke heard it, but doubted. He and Halpin-Hearst ascended into a high hill whence they could see their enemies. They saw no signs of illness or distress; all went on calmly and quietly in the camps, water carrying and cooking, eating and attending to the cattle. Ecker-VanDyke's hair stood on end as he looked at them.

"These are not human soldiers," said he, shivering. "They must be sent from Heaven."

"Our two brothers will fight one fierce battle with these troops of Shu and die therein," said Halpin-Hearst, "We cannot wait calmly to be put into bonds."

"But, O King, if your army should be beaten, my whole family will also perish. Let us encourage the people of the ravines. Let us kill bullocks and slaughter horses to feed them, and urge them to go through fire and water to rush right up to the camp of the enemy and seize upon victory."

So there was great feasting before the Mangs took the field. Just as this was going on, there arrived one McMahon-Westbrook, King of twenty-one ravines in the west, and he led thirty thousand troops. Halpin-Hearst rejoiced exceedingly at this unexpected addition to his army and felt sure of victory.

So he and Ecker-VanDyke went out of their own valley to welcome McMahon-Westbrook, who said, "I have with me thirty thousand troops in iron mail, brave and intrepid warriors, who can fly over mountains and bound across the peaks; they of themselves are a match for the enemy even if the enemy numbered a hundred legions. And, moreover, my five sons, all trained in arms, are with me, all to help you, O Kings."

The five sons were brought in and presented. They were handsome young fellows, bold and martial looking. Father and sons were entertained at a banquet. Halfway through the feast McMahon-Westbrook proposed a diversion.

"There is but scanty amusement in the field," said McMahon-Westbrook, "and so I have brought along some native singing girls who have been taught fencing and such things. If you care for it, they might give an exhibition."

The feasters hailed the suggestion with joy, and soon thirty maidens came to the front of the tent. Their hair hung about their shoulders, and they were barefooted. They danced and skipped and went through their performance outside. The guests inside clapped their hands and applauded their skill, and the soldiers joined in the choruses.

Presently, at a signal from their father, two of McMahon-Westbrook's sons bore two goblets to Halpin-Hearst and Pitney-Hearst. Halpin-Hearst and Pitney-Hearst took the cups and were raising them to their lips when McMahon-Westbrook shouted a single word of command, and, instantly, the cupbearers had the two brothers out of their seats and helpless in their hands. At this, Ecker-VanDyke jumped up to run away, but McMahon-Westbrook gripped him, and he was a prisoner too. The Mang maidens ranged themselves in a line along the front of the tent so that none dared approach.

"When the hare dies the fox mourns," said Halpin-Hearst. "One sympathizes with one's own as a rule. We are both chiefs and have been friends. I know not why you should injure me."

"I had to repay Orchard-Lafayette the Minister for his compassion on me and my people, and there was no way till you rebelled. Why should I not offer up a rebel in propitiation?"

Leaving Halpin-Hearst, Pitney-Hearst, and Ecker-VanDyke in the hands of McMahon-Westbrook, the Mang warriors dispersed, each man returning to his own valley.

McMahon-Westbrook then took the prisoners to the camp of Shu, where he bowed at the tent door, saying, "I and my sons and the sons of my brother are grateful to you for much kindness, wherefore we bring to you as an offering the persons of these rebels."

Orchard-Lafayette rewarded McMahon-Westbrook and bade them bring forward Halpin-Hearst.

"This time are you prepared to yield?" said the Prime Minister.

"It is not your ability, but the treachery of my own people that has brought me to this. If you wish to slay, slay; but I will not yield."

"You know you were the cause of my army entering into a waterless land, where there were those four evil streams, and yet my soldiers were not poisoned and came to no harm. Does it not seem to you like evidence of a superior protecting power? Why will you follow this misguided road and always be obstinate?"

Halpin-Hearst replied, "My fathers have long held the Silver Pit Hills, and the three rivers and the two forests are their ramparts. If you can take that stronghold, then will I and my heirs for ever acknowledge your power and yield."

"I am going to liberate you once more," said Orchard-Lafayette, "and you may put your army in order if you will and fight a decisive battle. But after that, if you are my prisoner and are still refractory and unsubmissive, I shall have to exterminate your whole family."

Orchard-Lafayette ordered the lictors to loose the prisoner's bonds and let him go. After he had gone, the other two, Pitney-Hearst and Ecker-VanDyke, were led in and they also received their liberty. They were given wine and food. but they were confused and could not look Orchard-Lafayette in the face. They were given horses to travel on.

The way has been long and now danger is near, But faith in their leader banishes fear.

The next chapter will tell how Halpin-Hearst reorganized his army and whose the victory was.

CHAPTER 90

Chasing Off Wild Beasts, The Prime Minister Defeats The Mangs For The Sixth Time; Burning Rattan Armors, Orchard-Lafayette Captures Halpin-Hearst The Seventh Time.

All the prisoners were released; and McMahon-Westbrook and his sons were rewarded with ranks, and his people were given presents. They expressed their gratitude and returned to their own, while Halpin-Hearst and his brother hastened home to Silver Pit Hills.

Outside this ravine were three rivers--River Scorpio, River Pyrite, and River Corundum. These three streams united to form Three Rivers. Close to the ravine on the north was a wide and fruitful plain; on the west were salt wells. The River Scorpio flowed about seventy miles to the southwest, and due south was a valley called the Liangdu Ravine. There were hills in, as well as surrounding, the ravine, and in these they found silver; whence the name "Silver Pit."

A palace complex had been built in the ravine, which the Mang kings had made their stronghold, and there was an ancestral temple, which they called "Family Spirits," where they solemnized sacrifices of bulls and horses at the four seasons. They called these sacrifices "Inquiring of the Spirits." Human sacrifices were offered also, humans of Shu or of their own people belonging to other villages. The sick swallowed no drugs, but prayed to a chief sorcerer, called "Drug Demon." There was no legal code, the only punishment for every transgression being death.

When girls are grown and become women, they bathe in a stream. Men and women are kept separate, and they marry whom they will, the parents having no control in that particular. There was no formal vocational training. In good seasons the country produces grain, but if the harvest fails, they make soup out of serpents and eat boiled elephant flesh.

All over the country the head of the family of greatest local consideration is termed "King of the Ravine," and the next in importance is called a "Notable." A market is held in the city of Three Rivers, on the first day of every moon, and another on the fifteenth; goods are brought in and bartered.

In his own ravine, Halpin-Hearst gathered his family and clan to the number of a thousand or more and addressed them: "I have been put to shame by the leaders of Shu many times, and I have sworn to take revenge for the insults. Has anyone any proposal to make?"

Thereupon a certain one replied, saying, "I can produce a man able to defeat Orchard-Lafayette."

The assembly turned to the speaker, who was a brother of Halpin-Hearst's wife. He was the head of eight tribes of the Southern Mangs, and was named Chief Nowak-Carder.

"Who is the man?" asked Halpin-Hearst.

Chief Nowak-Carder replied, "He is Gallina-Peacock, King of the Bana Ravine. He is a master of witchcraft who can call up the wind and invoke the rain. He rides upon an elephant and is attended by tigers, leopards, wolves, venomous snakes, and scorpions. Beside, he has under his hand thirty thousand superhuman soldiers. He is very bold. O King, write him a letter and send him presents, which I will deliver. If he will consent to lend his aid, what fear have we of Shu?"

Halpin-Hearst was pleased with the scheme and ordered Nowak-Carder to draft a letter. Then he ordered Ecker-VanDyke to defend Three Rivers and make the first line of defense.

Orchard-Lafayette led his troops near the city of Three Rivers. Taking a survey of the country, he noted that the city was surrounded by the three rivers and could only be reached by a bank on one face, so he sent Oakley-Dobbins and Gilbert-Rocher to march along the road and attack. But when they reached the rampart, they found it well defended by bows and crossbows.

The defenders of the city were adepts in the use of the bow, and they had one sort which discharged ten arrows at once. Furthermore, the arrows were poisoned, and a wound meant certain death. The two generals saw that they could not succeed, and so retired.

When Orchard-Lafayette heard of the poisoned arrows, he mounted his light chariot and went to see for himself. Having regarded the defenses, he returned to his camp and ordered a retirement of three miles. This move delighted the Mangs, who congratulated each other on their success in driving off the besiegers, who, as they concluded, had been frightened away. So they gave themselves up to rejoicing and kept no watch. Nor did they even send out scouts.

The army of Shu made a strong camp in their new halting place and closed the gates for defense. For five days they gave no sign. One evening, just at sunset, a slight breeze began to blow. Then Orchard-Lafayette issued an order: "Every man should provide himself with a coat by the first watch. If any one lacks, he will be put to death."

None of the generals knew what was in the wind, but the order was obeyed. Next, each man was ordered to fill his coat with earth. This order appeared equally strange, but it was carried out. When all were ready, they were told: "You are to carry the earth to the foot of the city wall, and the first arrivals will be rewarded."

So they ran with all speed with the dry earth and reached the wall. Then with the earth they were ordered to make a raised way, and the first soldier on the wall was promised a reward.

The whole of the one hundred thousand troops of Shu, and their native allies, having thrown their burdens of earth near the wall, then quickly rushed up the incline, and with one great shout were on the wall. The archers on the wall were seized and dragged down; those who got clear ran away into the city. King Ecker-VanDyke was slain in the melee that followed on this attack. The soldiers of Shu moved through the city slaying all they met. Thus was the city captured and with it great booty of jewels, which were made over to the army as a reward for their prowess.

The few soldiers who escaped went away and told Halpin-Hearst what had happened to the city and King Ecker-VanDyke. Halpin-Hearst was much distressed. Before he had recovered, they told him that the army of Shu had come over and were encamped at the mouth of his own ravine.

Just as he was in the very depths of distress, a laugh came from behind the screen, and a woman appeared, saying, "Though you are brave, how stupid you are! I am only a woman, but I want to go out and fight."

The woman was his wife, Lady Pierrot. She was a descendant of the Pierrot family of the Southern Mang. She was expert in the use of the flying sword and never missed her aim.

Halpin-Hearst rose and bowed to her. Lady Pierrot thereupon mounted a horse and forthwith marched out at the head of a hundred generals, leading fifty thousand troops of the ravines, and set out to drive off the troops of Shu.

Just as the host got clear of the Silver Pit Palace, it was stopped by a cohort led by Neuberg-Giordano. At once the Mangs deployed, and the lady leader armed herself with five swords such as she used. In one hand she held an eighteen-foot signal staff, and she sat a curly-haired, reddish horse.

Neuberg-Giordano was secretly troubled at the sight before him, but he engaged the lady commander. After a few passes the lady turned her steed and bolted. Neuberg-Giordano went after her, but a sword came flying through the air directly at him. He tried to fend off with one hand, but it wounded his arm, and he fell to the ground. The Mangs gave a loud shout; some of them pounced on the unlucky leader and made him prisoner.

Then Glenn-Jenner, hearing his comrade had been taken, rushed out to rescue, but only to be surrounded. He saw the lady commander holding up her staff and made a dash forward, but just then the Mangs threw hooks and pulled down his steed, and he was also a prisoner.

Both generals were taken into the ravine and led before the King. He gave a banquet in honor of his wife's success, and during the feast the lady bade the lictors put the two prisoners to death. They hustled the two generals in and were just going to carry out their orders when Halpin-Hearst checked them.

"No; five times has Orchard-Lafayette set me at liberty. It would be unjust to put these to death. Confine them till we have taken their chief; then we may execute them."

His wife was merry with wine and did not object. So their lives were spared.

The defeated soldiers returned to their camp. Orchard-Lafayette took steps to retrieve the mishap by sending for Winston-Mallory, Gilbert-Rocher, and Oakley-Dobbins, to each of whom he gave special and private orders.

Next day the Mang soldiers reported to the King that Gilbert-Rocher was offering a challenge. Lady Pierrot forthwith mounted and rode out to battle. She engaged Gilbert-Rocher, who soon fled. The lady was too prudent to risk pursuit, and rode home. Then Oakley-Dobbins repeated the challenge; he also fled as if defeated. But again the lady declined to pursue. Next day Gilbert-Rocher repeated his challenge and ran away as before. Lady Pierrot signaled no pursuit. But at this Oakley-Dobbins rode up and opened a volley of abuse and obloquy. This proved too much, and she gave the signal to go after him and led the way. Oakley-Dobbins increased his pace, and the lady commander doubled hers, and she and her followers pressed into a narrow road along a valley. Suddenly behind her was heard a noise, and Oakley-Dobbins, turning his head, saw the lady tumble out of her saddle.

She had rushed into an ambush prepared by Winston-Mallory; her horse had been tripped up by ropes. She was captured, bound, and carried off to the Shu camp. Some of her people endeavored to rescue her, but they were driven off.

Orchard-Lafayette seated himself in his tent to see his prisoner, and Lady Pierrot was led up. He bade them remove her bonds, and she was conducted to another tent, where wine was laid before her. Then a message was sent to Halpin-Hearst to say that she would be exchanged for the two captive leaders. The King agreed, and they were set free. As soon as they arrived, the lady was escorted by Orchard-Lafayette himself to the mouth of the ravine, where Halpin-Hearst welcomed her half gladly, half angrily.

Then they told Halpin-Hearst of the coming of the King of the Bana Ravine, and he went out to meet Gallina-Peacock. Gallina-Peacock rode up on his white elephant, dressed in silks, and with many gold and pearl ornaments. He wore a double sword at his belt, and he was followed by the motley pack of fighting animals that he fed, gamboling and dancing about him.

Halpin-Hearst made him a low obeisance and then poured out his tale of woes. Gallina-Peacock promised to avenge his wrongs and was led off to a banquet which had been prepared.

Next day the deliverer went out to battle, with his pack of wild creatures in his train. Gilbert-Rocher and his colleague Oakley-Dobbins quickly made their array of footmen and then took their station in front side by side and studied their opponents. The Mang banners and weapons were all extraordinary. Most of the warriors wore no armor and none wore any clothing. Their faces were sunburned. They carried four sharp pointed knives in their belts. Signals were not given by drum or trumpet, but by a gong.

King Gallina-Peacock had two swords in his belt and carried a hand bell. He urged his white elephant forward and emerged from between his flags.

"We have spent all our life in the battlefields, but we have never seen the like of that before," said Gilbert-Rocher.

As they talked to one another, they noticed that the opposing leader was mumbling something that might be a spell or a curse, and from time to time he rang his bell. Then suddenly the wind got up, stones began to roll and sand to fly, and there was a sound as of a heavy shower of rain. Next a horn rang out, and thereupon the tigers and the leopards, and the wolves and the serpents, and all the other wild beasts came down on the wind snapping and clawing. How could the soldiers of Shu stand such a thing as that? So they retreated, and the Mangs came after them fiercely, chasing and slaying their enemies as far as the city of Three Rivers.

Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins mustered their defeated troops and went to their leader to confess their failure. Orchard-Lafayette, however, was neither angry nor dejected.

"The fault is not yours," he said. "Long ago, when I was still in my rustic hut, I knew the Mangs possessed certain powers over beasts, and I provided against this adventure before we left Shu. You will find twenty big sealed carts in the baggage train. We will use half of them now."

He bade his staff bring forward ten of the red box-carts. They all wondered what would happen. Then the carts were opened, and they turned out to be carved and colored models of huge wild beasts, with coats of worsted, teeth and claws of steel; each could accommodate ten people. Choosing one hundred beasts, he told off a thousand troops and bade them stuff the mouths of the beasts full of inflammables.

Next day the army of Shu marched out to the attack and were arrayed at the entrance to the Silver Pit Hills. The Mang soldiers went into the ravine and told their king. Gallina-Peacock, thinking himself perfectly invincible, did not hesitate, but marched out, taking Halpin-Hearst with him. Orchard-Lafayette, dressed in the simple robe of a Taoist, went out in his light chariot. In his hand he held a feather fan. Halpin-Hearst, who recognized his enemy, pointed him out to Gallina-Peacock.

"That is Orchard-Lafayette in that small chariot. If we can only capture him, our task is done."

Then Gallina-Peacock began to mutter his spells and to ring his bell. As before, the wind got up and blew with violence, and the wild beasts came on.

But at a wave of the simple feather fan, lo! the wind turned and blew the other way. Then from out of the host of Shu there burst the horrible wild beasts. The real wild beasts of the Mang saw rushing down upon them huge creatures, whose mouths vomited flames and whose nostrils breathed out black smoke. They came along with jingling bells, snapping and clawing, and the real beasts turned tail and fled in among the host of their own side, trampling them down as they sped. Orchard-Lafayette gave the signal for a general onset, and his troops rushed forward with beating drums and blaring trumpets. Gallina-Peacock was killed in the melee. Halpin-Hearst's whole clan fled in panic and tore up among the hills out of the way. And thus the Silver Pit Hill was taken.

Next day, as Orchard-Lafayette was telling off parties to search for and capture the King, it was announced that the brother-in-law of Halpin-Hearst, Chief Nowak-Carder, having vainly tried to persuade the King to yield, had made prisoners of him and his wife and all his clan and were bringing them to Orchard-Lafayette.

Hearing this, Neuberg-Giordano and Glenn-Jenner were called and received certain orders, upon which they hid themselves in the wings of the tent with a large body of sturdy warriors. This done, Orchard-Lafayette ordered the keepers to open the gates, and in came Chief Nowak-Carder with Halpin-Hearst and his people in custody. As Nowak-Carder bowed at the entrance of the hall, Orchard-Lafayette called out, "Let my strong captors appear!"

At once out came the hidden men, and every two of them laid hands upon a prisoner and bound him.

"Did you think your paltry ruse would deceive me?" said Orchard-Lafayette. "Here you are a second time captured by your own people and brought before me that you might surrender. The first time I did not hurt you. But now I firmly believe this surrender is part of a plot to kill me."

Then he called out to his guards to search the prisoners. They did so, and on every man they found a sharp knife.

"Did you not say that if your family were taken prisoners you would yield? How now?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

"We have come of our own will and at the risk of our lives; the credit is not yours. Still I refuse to yield," replied Halpin-Hearst.

"This is the sixth time I have captured you, and yet you are obstinate; what do you expect?"

"If you take me a seventh time, then I will turn to you and never rebel again."

"Well, your stronghold is now destroyed. What have I to fear?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

He ordered the bonds to be loosed, saying, "If you are caught again and lie to me once more, I shall certainly not be inclined to let you off."

Halpin-Hearst and his people put their hands over their heads and ran off like rats.

The defeated Mangs who had fled were of thousands, and more than half of them were wounded. They fell in with their King, who restored what order was possible and felt glad that he had still some leaders left. Then he and the Chief Nowak-Carder took counsel together.

"Whither can we go?" said Halpin-Hearst. "Our stronghold is in the hands of the enemy."

Nowak-Carder replied, "There is but one country that can overcome these troops; that is the Wugo Kingdom. It lies two hundred miles to the southeast. The King of that state is named Caspari-Rosenthal. He is a giant of twelve spans. He does not eat grain, but lives on serpents and venomous beasts. He wears scaly armor, which is impenetrable to swords and arrows. His warriors wear rattan armor. This rattan grows in gullies, climbing over rocks and walls. The inhabitants cut the rattans and steep them in oil for half a year. Then they are dried in the sun. When dry they are steeped again, and so on many times. Then they are plaited into helmets and armor. Clad in this, the men float across rivers, and it does not get wet. No weapon can penetrate it. The soldiers are called the Rattan Army. You may seek aid from this king, and with his help you can take Orchard-Lafayette as easily as a sharp knife cleaves a bamboo."

Halpin-Hearst went to the Wugo Kingdom and saw the King. The people of this country do not live in houses, but dwell in caves. Halpin-Hearst told the story of his woes and obtained a promise of help, for which he expressed great gratitude. Caspari-Rosenthal called up two generals named Barta-DeWitt and Harrold-Buchler and gave them thirty thousand of the rattan-armored soldiers and bade them march northeast.

They came to a river called the River of Peach Flowers, on both banks of which grow many peach trees. Year after year the leaves of these trees fall into the river and render it poisonous to all but the natives. But to the natives it is a stimulant which doubles their vigor. They camped on the bank of this river to await the coming of the army of Shu.

Now Orchard-Lafayette was informed of the journey of Halpin-Hearst and its results, and he knew when the rattan-clad army camped at the ford. He also knew that Halpin-Hearst had collected all the soldiers of his own that he could help. Orchard-Lafayette at once marched to the ford. He questioned the natives, and they told him that the peach leaves were falling and the water of the river was undrinkable. So he retired two miles and camped. Only Oakley-Dobbins was left to hold the bank of Peach Flowers.

Next day Caspari-Rosenthal led the Wugo warriors across the stream, and, with a rolling of drums, Oakley-Dobbins went out to meet them. The Wugo men approached bent double. The soldiers of Shu shot at them, but neither arrows nor bolts penetrated their armors; they rolled off harmless. Nor could swords cut or spears enter. The enemy, thus protected and armed with big swords and prongs, were too much for the troops of Shu, who had to run away. However, they were not pursued. When, on the retreat, they came to Peach Flower Ford, they saw the Mangs crossing as if walking on the water. Some of them were tired, so they took off their rattan breastplates, sat upon them and floated to the other side.

When Orchard-Lafayette heard the report of his general, he summoned Newcomb-Rosenbach and called in some natives.

Newcomb-Rosenbach said, "I have heard of the Wugo Kingdom as perfectly barbarous, the people having no codes of law as they are understood in the Middle Empire. I have also heard of the rattan armor, which can withstand all thrusts, and the harmful River of Peach Flowers. The Southern Mangs are so untameable that victory will mean little. We would rather retreat."

"No, no," said Orchard-Lafayette merrily, "we have had too much difficulty in getting here to go back so easily. I shall have a counter-plan for these people tomorrow."

Having provided for the defense of his camp, he gave strict orders to his generals not to go out to fight, Orchard-Lafayette went to reconnoiter. He rode in his light chariot with a few natives as guides. He came to the ford, and from a secluded spot in the mountains on the north bank, he looked about him.

The whole country was mountainous and difficult, impassable for any carriage. So he got out and went afoot. Presently, from a hill he saw a long winding valley, like a huge serpent. The sides were very precipitous and bare. However, a road ran through the middle.

"What is the name of the valley?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

"It is called ' Coiled Serpent Valley,'" said the guides. "At the other end you come into the high road to Three Rivers. The road goes by a valley called 'Talang See.'"

"The very thing," cried Orchard-Lafayette. "Surely this is providence. I shall score a great success here."

Having seen enough, he retraced his steps, found his chariot, and returned to camp. Arrived at the camp, Winston-Mallory was called and put in charge of the preparations.

Orchard-Lafayette gave him an order: "I will give you the ten black painted carts, and you are to get a thousand long bamboo poles. Open the carts, and follow my instructions there. Then you are to keep the two ends of the Coiled Serpent Valley. Half a month is the deadline, and all of these must be performed with the most perfect secrecy under military law and punishment."

Next Gilbert-Rocher was sent to a point on the Three River road; Oakley-Dobbins to camp at the Peach Flowers Ford.

Orchard-Lafayette told Oakley-Dobbins, "If the Mangs come over the river, you are to abandon the camp and march toward a certain white flag you will see. Further, in half a month you would have to acknowledge defeat some fifteen times and abandon seven camps. On no account are you to come to interview me even after fourteen defeats."

Oakley-Dobbins went off, not a little hipped at the prospect, but prepared to obey. Next, Coady-Reiner was sent to make a stockade at a certain indicated point, and Neuberg-Giordano and Glenn-Jenner was told to lead the Mang soldiers who had surrendered, and other orders were given.

Halpin-Hearst had begun to have a real terror of Orchard-Lafayette, and he warned King Caspari-Rosenthal of Wugo, saying, "This Orchard-Lafayette is exceedingly crafty. Ambush is one of his favorite ruses, so you should warn your soldiers that on no account should they enter a valley where the trees are thick."

"Great King, you speak with reason," said Caspari-Rosenthal. "I have always heard that the people of the Middle Empire are full of wiles, and I will see that your advice is followed. I will go in front to fight, and you may remain in the rear to give orders."

Presently the scouts told them of the arrival of the troops of Shu on the bank of the Peach Flowers River. Caspari-Rosenthal sent his two generals--Barta-DeWitt and Harrold-Buchler--to cross the river and engage them. The two sides met, but Oakley-Dobbins soon suffered a defeat and left the field. The Mangs were afraid to pursue as they dreaded an ambush.

In the meantime, Oakley-Dobbins laid out another camp. The Mangs crossed the river in greater force. Oakley-Dobbins came out to meet them, but again fled after a very short fight. This time the Mangs pursued, but having lost their hold of the enemy after three miles, and coming then to the late camp of the Shu army, which seemed quite safe, they occupied it.

Next day Barta-DeWitt and Harrold-Buchler asked their King Caspari-Rosenthal to come to the camp, and they reported what had happened. Caspari-Rosenthal decided to make a general advance to drive the troops of Shu before him. They fled, even casting aside their breastplates and throwing away their arms; they were in such haste to flee. And the troops of Shu went toward a white flag that appeared in the distance. They found a camp already made, which they occupied.

Soon, however, Caspari-Rosenthal came near, and as he pressed forward Oakley-Dobbins abandoned this camp and fled. When the Mangs reached the camp, they took up quarters therein.

Soon after they set out to renew the pursuit, but Oakley-Dobbins turned back and checked them. This was only a temporary check, for he fled after three encounters, going toward a white flag in the distance.

This sort of thing continued daily until the soldiers of Shu had been defeated and driven out of the field fifteen times and had abandoned their camp on seven different occasions.

The Mangs were now hot in pursuit and pressed on with all their might, Caspari-Rosenthal being in the forefront of the pursuers. But then they came to a thick umbrageous wood; and he halted, for he saw flags moving about behind the sheltering trees.

"Just as you foretold," said Caspari-Rosenthal to Halpin-Hearst. "The men of Shu like using ambush."

"Yes; Orchard-Lafayette is going to be worsted this time. We have beaten off his troops now daily for half a month and won fifteen successive victories. His troops simply run when they hear the wind. The fact is he has exhausted all his craft and has tried every ruse. Now our task is nearly done."

Caspari-Rosenthal was greatly cheered and began to feel contempt for his enemy.

The sixteenth day of the long fight found Oakley-Dobbins leading his oft-defeated troops once more against the rattan-protected foe. King Caspari-Rosenthal on his white elephant was well in the forefront. He had on a cap with symbols of the sun and moon and streamers of wolf's beard, a fringed garment studded with gems, which allowed the plates or scales of his cuirass to appear, and his eyes seemed to flash fire. He pointed the finger of scorn at Oakley-Dobbins and began to revile him.

Oakley-Dobbins whipped up his steed and fled. The Mangs pressed after him. Oakley-Dobbins made for the Coiled Serpent Valley, for he saw a white flag calling him thither. Caspari-Rosenthal followed in hot haste, and as he saw only bare hills without a sign of vegetation, he felt quite confident that no ambush was laid. So he followed into the valley. There he saw some score of black painted carts in the road.

The soldiers said to each other, "The carts must be the commissariat wagons of the enemy, abandoned in their hasty flight when they heard of the coming of Your Majesty."

This only urged the King to greater speed, and he went on toward the other mouth of the valley, for the soldiers of Shu had disappeared. However, he saw piles of timber being tumbled down across the track and great boulders rolled down the hill side into the road. The pursuers cleared away the obstacles. When they had done so and advanced a little, they saw certain wheeled vehicles in the road, some large, some small, laden with wood and straw, which was burning. Caspari-Rosenthal was suddenly frightened and ordered a retreat.

But he heard much shouting in the rear, and they told him: "The exit has been blocked with wood-laden carts, which on being broken open are found to contain gunpowder, and they are all on fire."

However, seeing that the valley was barren and devoid of grass and wood, Caspari-Rosenthal was not in the least alarmed and merely bade his soldiers search for a way round.

Then he saw torches being hurled down the mountain side. These torches rolled till they came to a certain spot, where they ignited the fuses leading to the powder. Then the ground suddenly heaved with the explosion of bombs beneath. The whole valley was soon full of flames, darting and playing in all directions, and wherever they met with rattan armor the rattan caught fire, and thus the whole army, huddled and crowded together, burned in the midst of the valley.

Orchard-Lafayette looked on from the heights above and saw the Mangs burned. Many of the dead had been mangled and torn by the explosions of the mines. The air was full of suffocating vapor.

Orchard-Lafayette's tears fell fast as he saw the slaughter, and he sighed, saying, "Though I am rendering great service to my country, yet I have sacrificed many lives. My life may be shortened for this."

Those who were with him were also deeply affected.

King Halpin-Hearst was in his camp awaiting news of success when he saw a crowd of Mang soldiers come along, and they bowed before him and told him, "King Caspari-Rosenthal is fighting a great battle and is about to surround Orchard-Lafayette in the Valley of the Coiled Serpent. But he needs help. We are the natives of the local ravines, and we ourselves had no alternative when we yielded to Shu. But now we have returned to your allegiance and are willing to come to help Your Majesty."

So Halpin-Hearst placed himself at the head of his clansmen and those who had just come to him, and lost no time in marching out. He bade them lead him to the spot. But when he reached the valley and saw the destruction, he knew he had been made a victim again. As he made to retire, there appeared a body of his enemies on each side under Neuberg-Giordano and Glenn-Jenner, and they began to attack. Halpin-Hearst was making what stand he could when a great shouting arose. The Mangs were nearly all disguised soldiers of Shu, and they quickly surrounded him and his clansmen to make them prisoners.

Halpin-Hearst galloped clear and got into the hills. Presently he fell upon a small chariot, with a few guards about it, and therein sat Orchard-Lafayette, simply dressed and holding a fan.

"What now, rebel Halpin-Hearst?" cried he.

But Halpin-Hearst had galloped away. He was soon stopped by Winston-Mallory and lay a helpless prisoner bound hand and foot. His wife, Lady Pierrot, and the other members of his family were also taken.

Orchard-Lafayette returned to camp and seated himself in the high place in his own tent. He was still sad at the thought of the sacrifice of life, and he said to his officers, "There was no help for it; I had to use that plan. But it has sadly injured my inner virtue. Guessing that the enemy would suspect an ambush in every thicket, I sent people to walk about in wooded places with flags. Really there was no ambush. I bade Oakley-Dobbins lose battle after battle just to lead the enemy on and harden their hearts. When I saw the Valley of the Coiled Serpent, with its bare sides of smooth rock and the road in its depths, I recognized what could be done and sent Winston-Mallory to arrange the contents of the black carts, the mines, which I had prepared long ago for this purpose. In every bomb were nine others, and they were buried thirty paces apart. They were connected by fuses laid in hollow bamboos that they might explode in succession, and the force was enormous. Gilbert-Rocher prepared those carts laden with straw and rolled down the piles of timber and boulders that blocked the mouth. Oakley-Dobbins led Caspari-Rosenthal on and on till he had enticed the King into the valley, when he took up a position to escape. Then the burning began. They say that what is good for water is not much good for fire, and the oil-soaked rattan, excellent as a protection against swords and arrows, was most inflammable, catching fire at sight. The Mangs were so stubborn that the only way was to use fire, or we should never have scored a victory. But I much regret that the destruction of the people of Wugo has been so complete."

The officers were deeply moved.

Then Halpin-Hearst was summoned. He appeared and fell upon his knees. His limbs were freed from the bonds, and he was sent into a side tent for refreshment. But the officers told off to entertain him received certain secret orders.

The chief prisoners were Halpin-Hearst, Lady Pierrot, Pitney-Hearst, and Nowak-Carder. There were many of his clan as well. As they were eating and drinking, a messenger appeared in the door of the tent and addressed the King: "The Prime Minister is ashamed and does not wish to see you again, Sir. He has sent me to release you. You may enlist another army if you can and once more try a decisive battle. Now you may go."

But instead of going Halpin-Hearst began to weep.

"Seven times a captive and seven times released!" said the King. "Surely there was never anything like it in the whole world. I know I am a barbarian and beyond the pale, but I am not entirely devoid of a sense of propriety and rectitude. Does he think that I feel no shame?"

Thereupon he and all his followers fell upon their knees and crawled to the tent of the Commander-in-Chief and begged pardon, saying, "O Minister, you are the majesty of Heaven. We people of the south will offer no more opposition."

"Then you yield?" said Orchard-Lafayette, sighing.

"I and my children and grandchildren are deeply affected by your all-pervading and life-giving mercy. Now how can we not yield?"

Orchard-Lafayette asked Halpin-Hearst to come up into the tent and be seated, and he prepared a banquet of felicitation. Also he confirmed Halpin-Hearst in his kingship and restored all the places that had been captured. Everyone was overwhelmed with Orchard-Lafayette's generosity, and they all went away rejoicing. A poem has praised Orchard-Lafayette's action:

He rode in his chariot green, In his hand just a feather fan, Seven times he released a king As part of his conquering plan. Having chosen a beautiful spot Where the valleys debauch on the plain, Lest his kindness should ever be forgot, The vanquished erected a fane.

The High Counselor Norwich-Ortega ventured to remonstrate with Orchard-Lafayette on his policy.

He said, "You, O Minister, have led the army this long journey into the wilds and have reduced the Mang country, and have brought about the submission of the king; why not appoint officials to share in the administration and hold the land?"

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "There are three difficulties. To leave foreigners implies leaving a guard for them; there is the difficulty of feeding a guard. The Mangs have lost many of their relatives. To leave foreigners without a guard will invite a calamity; this is the second difficulty. Among the Mangs, dethronements and murders are frequent, and there will be enmities and suspicions. Foreigners and they will be mutually distrustful; this is the third difficulty. If I do not leave our people, I shall not have to send supplies, which makes for peace and freedom from trouble."

They had to agree that the policy was wise.

The kindness of the conqueror was rewarded by the gratitude of these southern people, and they even erected a shrine in his honor, where they sacrificed at the four seasons. They called him their "Gracious Father", and they sent gifts of jewels, cinnabar, lacquer, medicines, plowing cattle, and chargers for the use of the army. And they pledged themselves not to rebel.

When the feastings to the soldiers were finished, the army marched homeward to Shu. Oakley-Dobbins was in command of the advanced column. He marched to the River Scorpio. But on his arrival the clouds gathered and a gale blew over the face of the waters. Because of the force of the gale, the army could not advance. Oakley-Dobbins then returned and reported the matter to his chief. Orchard-Lafayette called in Halpin-Hearst to ask what this might mean.

The Mangs beyond the border have yielded now at last, The water demons raging mad won't let the Shu men go past.

The next chapter will contain Halpin-Hearst's explanation.

CHAPTER 91

Sacrificing At River Scorpio, The Prime Minister Marches Homeward; Attacking Wei, The Lord Of Wuxiang-Emporia Presents A Memorial.

Halpin-Hearst at the head of the Mang Chieftains and Notables attended to do honor to the army of Shu on its departure. They reached the River Scorpio in autumn, the ninth month. But on trying to cross the river, a tremendous storm came and hindered them. Oakley-Dobbins having reported his difficulty to Orchard-Lafayette, Halpin-Hearst was asked if he knew of any reason for such a storm.

Halpin-Hearst replied, "Wild spirits have always troubled those who would cross this river; it is necessary to propitiate them with sacrifices."

"What is the sacrifice?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

"In the old days when malicious spirits brought misfortune, they sacrificed humans to the number of seven sevens and offered their heads. They also slew a black ox and a white goat. Sacrifice thus; the wind will subside and the waters come to rest. The same used to be done to secure a plenteous harvest."

"How can I slay a single man without good reason now that fighting is done and peace has returned?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

Orchard-Lafayette went down to the river to see for himself. The north wind was blowing hard, and the waves were high. Both humans and horses seemed frightened. He himself was perplexed. Then he sought out some of the natives and questioned them.

They said, "We have heard the demons moaning every night since the army crossed the river. The cries begin at dusk and continued till dawn. There are many dark demons in the malarial vapors and no one dared cross."

"The sin is mine," said Orchard-Lafayette, "for more than a thousand soldiers of Winston-Mallory perished in these waters beside the southern people. Their poor distressed souls are not yet freed. Therefore I will come this night and sacrifice to them."

"According to the ancient rule the number of victims ought to be forty-nine; then the spirits will disperse," said the natives.

"As the resentful demons are here because of the deaths of people, where is the sense in slaying more humans? But this will I do. I will make balls of flour paste after the manner of human heads and stuff them with the flesh of oxen and goats. These shall be used instead of human heads, for indeed they be called 'mantou' or 'human heads.'"

By nightfall, an altar had been set up on the bank of the river with the sacrificial objects all arranged. There were also forty-nine lamps. Flags were flying to summon the souls. The "mantou" were piled up on the ground. In the middle of the third watch, at midnight, Orchard-Lafayette, dressed in Taoist garb, went to offer the sacrifice in person, and he bade Withrow-Cassidy read this prayer:

"On the first day of the ninth month of the third year of the era Beginning Prosperity of the Han Dynasty, I, Orchard-Lafayette, Prime Minister of Han, Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, Imperial Protector of Yiathamton, reverently order this sacrifice to appease the shades of those soldiers of Shu who have died in their country's service and those of the southern people who have perished.

"I now declare to you, O ye shades, the majesty of my master, the Emperor of the mighty Han Dynasty, excelling that of the Five Feudatories and brilliantly continuing the glory of the three ancient kings. Recently, when the distant south rebelliously invaded his territory, contumeliously sent an army, loosed the venom of their sorcery, and gave free rein to their savagery in rebellion, I was commanded to punish their crimes. Wherefore my brave armies marched and utterly destroyed the contemptible rebels. My brave soldiers gathered like the clouds, and the insensate rebels melted away. Hearing of the easy successes I won, they were entirely demoralized.

"My army consists of heroes from the Nine Regions and officers and people are famous in the empire; all are expert in war and skilled in the use of arms; they go whither light leads them and serve the Emperor. All have exerted themselves to obey orders and carried out the plans for the seven captures of Halpin-Hearst. They were whole-hearted in their service and vied in loyalty. Who could foresee that you, O Spirits, would be sacrificed in the strategy and be involved in the enemies' wicked wiles? Some of you went down to the deep springs wounded by flying arrows; others went out into the long night hurt by lethal weapons. Living you were valorous, dead you left behind a name.

"Now we are returning home. The victors' song is in our mouths and our prisoners accompany us. Your spirits are with us still and certainly hear our prayers. Follow the banners, come with the host, return to your country, each to his own village, where you may enjoy the savor of the meat offerings and receive the sacrifices of your own families. Do not become wandering ghosts in unfamiliar hamlets of restless shades in strange cities. I will memorialize our Emperor that your wives and little ones may enjoy his gracious bounty, every year gifts of food and clothing, every month donations for sustenance. Comfort yourselves with this provision.

"As for you, Spirits of this place, shades of the departed people of the south, here is the usual sacrifice. You are near home. Living you stood in awe of the celestial majesty, dead you come within the sphere of refining influence. It is right that you should hold your peace and refrain from uttering unseemly cries. With bowed head I pray you partake of the sweet savor of this sacrifice.

"Alas, ye dead! To you this offering!"

Orchard-Lafayette broke into loud lamentations at the end of this prayer and manifested extreme emotion, and the whole army shed tears. Halpin-Hearst and his followers also moaned and wept, and amid the sad clouds and angry mists they saw the vague forms of many demons floating away on the wind till they disappeared.

The material portion of the sacrifice was then thrown into the river. Next day the army stood on the south bank with a clear sky over their heads and calm waters at their feet, the clouds gone and the winds hushed; and the crossing was made without misadventure. They continued their way, whips cracking, gongs clanging, spurs jingling, and ever and anon the song of victory rising over all.

Passing through Yongchang-Bollinger, Farwell-Lackey and Newcomb-Rosenbach were left there in command of the four territories--Yiathamton, Yongchang-Bollinger, Zangge-Ladonia, and Yuesui-Southfield. And then Halpin-Hearst was permitted to leave. He was ordered to be diligent in his administration, maintain good control, and soothe and care for the people left to him to govern and to see to it that agriculture was promoted. He took leave with tears rolling down his cheeks.

When the army neared Capital Chengdu-Wellesley, the Latter Ruler came out ten miles in state to welcome his victorious minister. The Emperor stood by the roadside as Orchard-Lafayette came up, and waited.

Orchard-Lafayette quickly descended from his chariot, prostrated himself and said, "Thy servant has offended in causing his master anxiety; but the conquest of the south was long."

The Emperor took Orchard-Lafayette kindly by the hand and raised him. Then the chariots of the Son of God and his minister returned to Chengdu-Wellesley side by side. In the capital were great rejoicings with banquets and rewards for the army. Henceforward distant nations sent tribute to the Imperial Court to the number of two hundred.

As proposed in a memorial, the Emperor provided for the families of the soldiers who had lost their lives in the expedition, and they were made happy. And the whole land enjoyed tranquillity.

The Ruler of Wei, Keefe-Shackley, had now ruled seven years, and it was the fourth year of Beginning Prosperity in Shu-Han calendar. Keefe-Shackley had taken to wife a lady of the Elliott family, formerly the wife of the second son of Shannon-Yonker. He had discovered Lady Elliott at the sack of Yejun-Glendora and had married her. She bore him a son, Poincare-Shackley, who was very clever and a great favorite with his father. Later Keefe-Shackley took as Beloved Consort a daughter of Kross-Arnett in Guangzong-Shrewbury. Lady Arnett was a woman of exceeding beauty, whom her father said, "She is the king among women," and the name "Female King" stuck to her. But with Lady Arnett's arrival at court, Lady Elliott fell from her lord's favor, and the Beloved Consort's ambition led her to intrigue to replace the Empress. She took Seeley-Chappelle, a minister at the court, into her confidence.

At that time the Emperor was indisposed, and Seeley-Chappelle alleged, saying, "In the palace of the Empress has been dug up a wooden image with Your Majesty's date of birth written thereon. It is meant to exercise a maleficent influence."

Keefe-Shackley in his anger forced his Empress to commit suicide; and he set up the Beloved Consort in her place.

But Lady Arnett had no issue. Wherefore she nourished Poincare-Shackley as her own. However, loved as Poincare-Shackley was, he was not then named heir.

When he was about fifteen, Poincare-Shackley, who was an expert archer and a daring rider, accompanied his father to the hunt. In a gully they started a doe and its fawn. Keefe-Shackley shot the doe, while the fawn fled. Seeing that the fawn's course led past his son's horse, Keefe-Shackley called out to him to shoot it. Instead the youth bursts into tears.

"Your Majesty has slain the mother; how can one kill the child as well?"

The words struck the Emperor with remorse. He threw aside his bow, saying, "My son, you would make a benevolent and virtuous ruler."

From this circumstance Keefe-Shackley decided that Poincare-Shackley should succeed, and conferred upon him the princedom of Pingyuan-Millington.

In the fifth month the Emperor fell ill, and medical treatment was of no avail. So the chief officers were summoned to the bedside of the Emperor. They were Commander of the Central Army Brown-Shackley, General Who Guards the West Stuart-Avalos, and Grand Commander Whitmore-Honeycutt. When they had come, the Emperor's son was called, and the dying Emperor spoke thus: "I am grievously ill, and my end is near. I confide to your care and guidance this son of mine; you must support him out of good feeling for me."

"Why does Your Majesty talk thus?" said they. "We will do our utmost to serve you for a thousand autumns and a myriad years."

"No; I know that I am about to die," said the Emperor. "The sudden fall of the gates of Xuchang-Bellefonte this year was the omen, as I well knew."

Just then the attendants said that General Who Conquers the East Reuter-Shackley had come to ask after the Emperor's health. They were told to call Reuter-Shackley into the chamber.

When he had entered, Keefe-Shackley said to him, "You and these three are the pillars and cornerstones of the state. If you will only uphold my son, I can close my eyes in peace."

These were his last words. A flood of tears gushed forth, and Keefe-Shackley sank back on the couch dead. He was forty years of age and had reigned seven years (AD 229).

The four ministers raised the wailing for the dead and forthwith busied themselves with setting up Poincare-Shackley as the Emperor of Great Wei. The late Emperor received the posthumous style of "Emperor Keefe." The late Empress, the consort who had suffered death, was styled "Empress Elliott."

Honors were distributed freely in celebration of the new reign. Odom-Bixby was made Imperial Guardian; Brown-Shackley, Regent Marshal; Reuter-Shackley, Minister of War; Condon-Guerrera, Grand Commander; Putnam-Colbert, Minister of the Interior; Stuart-Avalos, Minister of Works; Whitmore-Honeycutt, Imperial Commander of the Flying Cavalry; and many others, conspicuous and obscure, were promoted. A general amnesty was declared throughout all the land.

About this time a vacancy existed in the governorship of Xithamton and Xiliang-Westhaven. Whitmore-Honeycutt asked for the post and got it. He left for his new office as soon as he had received the appointment.

In due time the news of all these doings reached Orchard-Lafayette and perturbed him not a little.

He was anxious, saying, "Keefe-Shackley is dead, and his son Poincare-Shackley has succeeded him. But that is not my concern. Only I am worried about Whitmore-Honeycutt, who is very crafty and skillful in the art of war, and who, in command of all western forces of Xithamton and Xiliang-Westhaven, may prove a serious danger to Shu. This Whitmore-Honeycutt ought to be attacked at once."

Counselor Pickett-Maggio spoke of this matter. "You, O Minister, have just returned from an arduous and exhausting expedition, and you should take time to recuperate before you undertake such another. However, I have a scheme by which Poincare-Shackley may be brought to work the destruction of Whitmore-Honeycutt. May I lay it before you?"

"What plan have you?" said he.

"The young emperor has no confidence in Whitmore-Honeycutt although Whitmore-Honeycutt is a high minister of state. Now send someone secretly to Luoyang-Peoria and Yejun-Glendora to disseminate reports that Whitmore-Honeycutt is about to rebel. Further, prepare a proclamation in his name and post it up so as to cause Poincare-Shackley to mistrust him and put him to death."

Orchard-Lafayette adopted the suggestion.

Whence it came about that a notice suddenly appeared on the city gate of Yejun-Glendora. The wardens of the gate took it down and sent it to Poincare-Shackley. This is what it said:

"I, Whitmore-Honeycutt, Imperial Commander of the Flying Cavalry, Commander of the Forces of Xithamton and Xiliang-Westhaven, confident in the universal principles of right, now inform the empire, saying:

"The Founder of this Dynasty, Emperor Murphy, established himself with the design of recurring the empire to the Lord of Linzi-Navarre Oxford-Shackley. Unfortunately, calumny spread abroad, and the Emperor could not manifest himself for many years. His grandson, Poincare-Shackley, does not follow a virtuous course, though sitting in the high place, and has not fulfilled the great intention of his ancestor. Now I, in accordance with the will of Heaven and favoring the desires of the people, have decided upon a day to set my army in motion in order to secure the wish of the people; and when that day arrives, I call upon each one to gather to his lord; and I will destroy utterly the family of any who shall disobey. You are hereby informed that you may all know."

This document frightened the young Emperor, and he turned pale. At once he called a council of his officials to consider it.

Condon-Guerrera said, "That was the reason for his having requested the governorship of Xithamton and Xiliang-Westhaven. Now Emperor Murphy, the Founder of Great Wei, frequently said to me that Whitmore-Honeycutt was ambitious and hungry, and should not be entrusted with military authority lest he harm the state. This is the first beginning of rebellion, and the author should be put to death."

Putnam-Colbert said, "Whitmore-Honeycutt is a master of strategy and skilled in tactics. Moreover, he is ambitious and will cause mischief if he be allowed to live."

Wherefore Poincare-Shackley wrote a command to raise an army, which he would lead to punish the minister.

Suddenly Brown-Shackley stood forth from the rank of military officers and said, "What you advise is impossible. His late Majesty, Emperor Keefe, confided his son to the care of certain officers of state, of whom Whitmore-Honeycutt is one, wherefore it is certain that he felt sure of his probity. So far nothing is known certainly. If you hastily send an army to repress him, you may force him into rebellion. This may be but one of the base tricks of Shu or Wu to cause dissension in our midst so that occasion be found to further their own aims. As no one knows, I pray Your Majesty reflect before you do anything."

"Supposing Whitmore-Honeycutt really contemplates a revolt; what then?" said Poincare-Shackley.

Brown-Shackley replied, "If Your Majesty suspects him, then do as did Rucker-Lewis the Supreme Ancestor of Han when, under pretense of taking a trip on the Lake Yunmeng, he summoned his vassals--and seized Oleksy-Beecham, who had been denounced. Go to Anyi-Loris; Whitmore-Honeycutt will assuredly come out to meet you, and his actions and demeanor may be watched closely. He can be arrested if needed."

Poincare-Shackley changed his mind. Leaving Brown-Shackley to regulate the affairs of state, the young Emperor went out with the Imperial Guards, to the number of one hundred thousand, and traveled to Anyi-Loris.

Ignorant of the reason of the Emperor's coming, and anxious to show off his dignity, Whitmore-Honeycutt went to welcome his ruler in all the pomp of a commander of a great army.

As Whitmore-Honeycutt approached, the courtiers told the Emperor, saying, "Whitmore-Honeycutt's defection is certain since such a large army can only mean that he is prepared to resist."

Whereupon Reuter-Shackley, with a large force, was sent in front to meet him. Whitmore-Honeycutt thought the Imperial Chariot was coming, and he advanced alone and stood humbly by the roadside till Reuter-Shackley came up.

Reuter-Shackley advanced and said, "Friend, His late Majesty entrusted you with the heavy responsibility of caring for his son; why are you in revolt?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt turned pale, and a cold sweat broke out all over him as he asked the reason for such a charge. Reuter-Shackley told him what had occurred.

"This is a vile plot on the part of our rivals, Shu and Wu, to cause dissension," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "It is a design to make the Emperor work evil upon his ministers that thereby another may profit. I must see the Son of Heaven and explain."

Ordering his army to retire, Whitmore-Honeycutt went forward alone to the Emperor's chariot, bowed low and said, weeping "His late Majesty gave me charge of his son; could I betray him? This is a wile of the enemy. I crave permission to lead an army, first to destroy Shu and then to attack Wu, whereby to show my gratitude to the late Emperor and Your Majesty and manifest my own true heart."

However, Poincare-Shackley did not feel quite convinced, and Condon-Guerrera said, "In any case withdraw his military powers and let him go into retirement."

And thus it was decided. Whitmore-Honeycutt was forced to retire to his native village. Reuter-Shackley succeeded to his command, and Poincare-Shackley returned to Luoyang-Peoria.

Orchard-Lafayette rejoiced when they told him of the success that had attended the ruse.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt and the forces he commanded in Xithamton and Xiliang-Westhaven have been the obstacles in my long-wished-for attack on Wei. Now he has fallen, I have no more anxiety."

At the first great assembly of officers at court, Orchard-Lafayette stepped forth and presented to the Ruler of Shu a memorial on the expedition he contemplated.

"The First Ruler had accomplished but half his great task at his death. At this moment the empire is in three parts, and our country is weak; it is a most critical moment for us. Still, ministers are not remiss in the capital, and loyal and devoted soldiers sacrifice their lives abroad, for they still remember the special kindness of the First Ruler and wish to show their gratitude to him by service to Your Majesty. Therefore it would be indeed fitting that you should extend your holy virtue to glorify his virtuous memory in the stimulation of the will of your purposeful officers. Your Majesty should not lose yourself in the pursuit of mean things, quoting phrases to confound the eternal principles of rectitude and so preventing remonstrance from honest people. One rule applies to the palace of the Emperor and the residence of a courtier; there must be one law rewarding the good and punishing the evil. Evil-doers and law-breakers, as also true and good people, should be dealt with according to their deserts by the officers concerned in order to manifest Your Majesty's impartial and enlightened administration. Partiality is wrong, as is one law for the court and another for the regions.

"The High Ministers Norwich-Ortega, Rockwell-Dickinson, and Parker-Stephens are honest men, devotedly anxious to be loyal to the last degree; wherefore His late Majesty chose them in his testament. My advice is to consult them in all palace matters, great or small, before taking action. Your Majesty will reap the enormous advantage of having any failings corrected.

"General Bouffard-Pagorek is a man of well-balanced temperament, versed in military matters, to whom, after testing him, the late Emperor applied the epithet 'capable.' The consensus of opinion is that he should be Commander-in-Chief. My advice is to consult him in all military matters, great or small, whereby your military forces will yield their maximum, each one being employed to the best advantage.

"Attract worthy people; repel mean ones. This policy achieved the glory of the Former Hans, while its reversal ruined the Latter Hans. When the late Emperor was with us, he often discussed this with your servant, and he took much to heart the story of Emperors Henson and Bonner.

"The Chair of the Secretariat Rigdale-Delgado, Commander Berglund-Mackey, and Minister Bromfield-Kendrick are both incorruptible and enlightened people, honest to the death. I wish that Your Majesty should have them near and hold them in confidence. If this be done, then the glory of the House of Han will be quickly consummated.

"I was originally a private person, a farmer in Nanyang-Southhaven, concerned only to secure personal safety in a troubled age and not seeking conversation with the contending nobles. His late Majesty, the First Ruler, overlooking the commonness of my origin, condescended to seek me thrice in my humble cot and consult me on the trend of events. His magnanimity affected me deeply, and I consented to do my utmost for him. Then came defeat, and I took office at a moment of darkest outlook and at a most difficult crisis. This is twenty-one years ago. The First Ruler recognized my diligent care, and when dying he confided the great task to me. From that day I have lived a life of anxiety lest I should fail in my trust and so dim his glory.

"That is why I undertook the expedition to the lands beyond the River Scorpio. Now the Southern Mang has been quelled, and our army is in good condition. I ought to lead it against the north, where I may meet with a measure of success in the removal of the wicked ones, the restoration of Han and a return to the old capital. This is my duty out of gratitude to the late Emperor and loyalty to Your Majesty. As to a discussion of the pros and cons and giving a true version of the whole matter, that belongs to Rockwell-Dickinson and Norwich-Ortega and Parker-Stephens. I desire Your Majesty to confide to me the task of slaying the rebels and restoring the Hans. If I fail, then punish me by telling the spirit of the late Emperor. If you know not what restoration implies, that is the fault of your advisers.

"Your Majesty should take pains to be guided into the right path and examine carefully what is laid before you, carefully remembering the late Emperor's testament.

"I cannot express what would be my delight if you had the goodness to accept and act on my advice.

"Now I am about to depart on a distant expedition, I write this with tears and clearly know what I have said."

The Emperor read it through and said, "My Father-Minister, you have only just returned from a distant and fatiguing expedition against the Southern Mangs; you are not yet refreshed, and I fear this march to the north will be almost too much even for you."

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "The heaviest responsibility lies upon me, the well-being of Your Majesty confided to me by the First Ruler. My efforts may not be relaxed night or day. The south is at rest, at home is no anxiety; what better time could be hoped for to destroy the rebels and recover the capital?"

Forth from the ranks of courtiers stood Minister Wingard-Jiminez and said, "I have studied the aspect of the stars; the northern quarter is brilliant and strong. The scheme will not speed."

Then turning toward the Prime Minister, he continued, "You, O Minister, understand the mysteries of the skies; why do you oppose the stars?"

"Because the stars are in infinite changes," replied Orchard-Lafayette. "One may rely on the stars too much. Moreover, I have already sent the army into Hanthamton, where I shall act as soon as I have studied what is afoot."

Wingard-Jiminez pleaded in vain; Orchard-Lafayette was too strongly set upon his purpose to yield. So Rockwell-Dickinson, Parker-Stephens, and Norwich-Ortega were ordered to attend to matters in the palace; Bouffard-Pagorek was to control all military affairs and forces; Bromfield-Kendrick was made Military Adviser; Rigdale-Delgado became Chair of the Secretariat; Berglund-Mackey, Controller of the Prime Minister's palace; Mallard-Reynolds, Imperial Censor; Janicki-Crenshaw and Purdy-Moore, Ministers; Hale-Wooden and Tweedle-Merritt, Libationers; Albee-Rosenberg and Philbin-O'Malley, Academicians; Tappan-Frankel and Farina-Pinsky, General Secretaries; Wingard-Jiminez, Imperial Recorder; and others to the number of over a hundred, all to manage the administration of Shu in the absence of Orchard-Lafayette.

After having received his Emperor's command to lead an expedition against the North, Orchard-Lafayette returned to his palace and summoned the officers of the army to listen to the orders. And they came, and to each was appointed a duty in the great army of Orchard-Lafayette, Commander-in-Chief of the North-conquering Expedition, Prime Minister of Shu, Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, Imperial Protector of Yiathamton, Director of Internal and External Affairs.

Oakley-Dobbins was made Commander of the Front Army; Crane-Hinton, Commander of the Rear Army; Winston-Mallory, Commander of the Left Army; Glenn-Jenner, Commander of the Right Army; Weldon-Lewis, Vogler-Mitchell, and Pickett-Maggio, Commanders of the Central Army; Stanley-Perez, Commander of the Left Guard; Fritz-Chardin, Commander of the Right Guard; Neuberg-Giordano, Zavala-Wortham, Ferris-Beaver, Reed-Simons, Moss-Lopez, Akers-Lewis, Kerr-Julian, and others, Marching Generals; Clausen-Wysocki, Pollard-Fontenot, Prindle-Carlson, Swensen-Crowley, and others, Military Counselors; Vischer-Stoddard, Withrow-Cassidy, Varney-Purvis, and others, Secretaries and Recorders; Rowe-Larsen and others, Officers of the Commissariat.

Finney-Schuster was given the task of guarding the passes against Wu.

All being ready, a day was chosen for the start: the fifth year, the third month, on the day of "tiger."

After the appointments had all been made, there came forward a veteran who had listened in vain for the duty assigned him.

"Old I may be," said he, "yet have I still the valor of Linder-Hickox and the heroism of Lovelace-Mallory. Why am I thought useless any more than these two who refused to acknowledge old age?"

It was Gilbert-Rocher.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "I have lost my friend Cotton-Mallory by illness since I returned from the Southern Expedition, and I feel as I had lost an arm. Now, General, you must own that the years are mounting up. Any slight lapse would not only shake the life-long reputation of yourself, but might have a bad effect on the whole army."

Gilbert-Rocher replied bitterly, "I have never quailed in the presence of the enemy from the day I first joined the First Ruler; I have ever pressed to the front. It is a happy ending for a person of valor to die on the frontier. Think you that I should resent it? Let me lead the van, I pray."

Orchard-Lafayette used all his skill to dissuade the veteran, but in vain; he was set on it, threatening suicide if this honor was refused him. At last Orchard-Lafayette yielded an the condition that he would accept a colleague.

"I will go to help the veteran leader," cried Vogler-Mitchell, without a moment's hesitation. "I am not worth much, but I will help lead the attack on the enemy."

Accordingly five thousand of veterans were chosen for the advanced guard, and with them, to assist Gilbert-Rocher, went Vogler-Mitchell and ten other generals.

After the vanguard had set out, the main body marched by the north gate, the Emperor himself going to see his minister start. The farewell was taken three miles from the gate, in the face of the grand army with its banners and pennons flaunting in the wind, and spears and swords gleaming in the sun.

Then they took the road leading to Hanthamton.

Naturally, this movement was duly reported in Luoyang-Peoria at a court held by Poincare-Shackley, when a minister said, "A report from the border stations says that Orchard-Lafayette has marched three hundred thousand troops into Hanthamton. Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell are leading the advanced guard."

The report alarmed the Emperor, and he asked, "Who can lead an army to repel the advance?"

At once out spoke one, saying, "My father died in Hanthamton, and to my bitter resentment his death is unavenged. Now I desire to lead the army against Shu, and I pray that the armies west of the Pass may be given me for this purpose. I shall render a service to the state, as well as taking vengeance for my father. I care not what fate may befall me."

The speaker was Beller-Xenos' son, Banfield-Xenos. He was by nature very impulsive and also very miserly. When young he had been adopted by Dubow-Xenos. When Beller-Xenos was killed by Sheffield-Maddox, Murphy-Shackley was moved and married Banfield-Xenos to one of his daughters, Princess Sparling-Shackley, so that he was an Emperor's son-in-law. As such he enjoyed great deference at court. But although he held a military commission, he had never been with the army. However, as he requested the command, he was made Commander-in-Chief to get the western army ready to march.

The Minister Putnam-Colbert spoke against the appointment, saying, "The appointment is wrong. Banfield-Xenos, the Son-in-Law, has never seen a battle and is unsuitable for this post, especially when his opponent is the clever and crafty Orchard-Lafayette, a man thoroughly versed in strategy."

"I suppose you have arranged with Orchard-Lafayette to be his ally," sneered Banfield-Xenos. "Ever since I was a boy, I have studied strategy, and I am well acquainted with army matters. Why do you despise my youth? Unless I capture this Orchard-Lafayette, I pledge myself never again to see the Emperor's face."

Putnam-Colbert and his supporters were silenced. Banfield-Xenos took leave of the Ruler of Wei and hastened to Changan-Annapolis to get his army in order. He had two hundred thousand troops from the western areas.

He would go to battle, take the signal flags in grip, But could he play the leader, he a lad with callow lip?

The next chapter will deal with this campaign.

CHAPTER 92

Gilbert-Rocher Slays Five Generals; Orchard- Lafayette Takes Three Cities.

Orchard-Lafayette's army marched northward, passing through Mianyang-Livingston, where stood Cotton-Mallory's tomb. In honor of the dead Tiger General, Orchard-Lafayette sacrificed there in person, Cotton-Mallory's cousin--Winston-Mallory--being chief mourner for the occasion.

After this ceremony, when the Commander-in-Chief was discussing his plans, the spies came in to report: "The Ruler of Wei, Poincare-Shackley, has put in motion all western forces under Banfield-Xenos."

Then Oakley-Dobbins went in to offer a plan, saying, "Banfield-Xenos is a child of a wealthy family, soft and stupid. Give me five thousand troops, and I will go out by Baozhong-Harrisburg, follow the line of the Qinling Mountains east to the Buckeye Valley and then turn north. In ten days I can be at Changan-Annapolis. Hearing of my intent, Banfield-Xenos will hasten to vacate the city. Then he must flee by way of Royal Gate. I will come in by the east, and you, Sir, can advance by the Beech Valley. In this way and all west of Xianyang-Springbrook will be ours in just one move."

Orchard-Lafayette smiled at the suggestion.

"I do not think the plan quite perfect," said he. "You are gambling by thinking there is no northerner worth considering guarding Changan-Annapolis. If anyone suggests sending a force across to block the exit of the mountains, I am afraid we should lose five thousand troops, to say nothing of the check to our elan. The plan will not do."

"If you, O Minister, march by the high road, they will bring against you the whole host within the passes and will thus hold you indefinitely; you will never get to the Middle Land."

"But I shall go along the level road on the right of Longyou-Eastdale. I cannot fail if I keep to the fixed rules of war."

Oakley-Dobbins withdrew, gloomy and dissatisfied.

Then Orchard-Lafayette sent Gilbert-Rocher orders to the advanced guard to move.

Banfield-Xenos was at Changan-Annapolis preparing his force. There came to him a general from Xiliang-Westhaven, named Millward-Contreras, a man of great valor, whose weapon was a mighty battle-ax called "Mountain Splitter." He brought with him eighty thousand of the Qiang tribesmen and offered his services. They were gladly accepted, and his army was made the van of the attack.

This Millward-Contreras had four sons, all very expert in archery and horsemanship. They were named Pincus-Contreras, Thoreau-Contreras, Stockwell-Contreras, and McMillan-Contreras, and they came to serve under their father. Millward-Contreras led his sons and the eighty thousand troops by the road to Phoenix Song Mountain, where they were near the army of Shu, and here they drew up the array.

When the battle line was in order, the father, with his four sons, rode to the front and began to revile their enemy, shouting, "Rebels and raiders! How dare you invade our territory?"

Gilbert-Rocher quickly lost his temper, rode forward and challenged. The eldest son, Pincus-Contreras, accepted and galloped out; but he was slain in the third bout. Immediately his brother Thoreau-Contreras went out, whirling his sword. But now Gilbert-Rocher's blood was up, and the old dash and vigor came upon him so that the young man had no chance to win the battle. Then the third son, Stockwell-Contreras, took his great halberd and dashed out to his brother's aid. Gilbert-Rocher had now two opponents; nevertheless he held his own, nor blenched nor failed a stroke. Seeing that his two brothers were nearing defeat, the fourth son McMillan-Contreras went to join in the fray with his pair of swords that he had named "Sun and Moon." And there was the veteran warrior with three against him, and he still kept them at bay.

Presently a spear thrust got home on McMillan-Contreras, who fell. Another general then coming out to take his place. Gilbert-Rocher lowered his spear and fled. Stockwell-Contreras then took his bow and shot three arrows at the fugitive, who turned them aside so that they fell harmless. Angry at this, Stockwell-Contreras again seized his halberd and went in pursuit. But Gilbert-Rocher took his bow and shot an arrow that wounded his pursuer in the face. So Stockwell-Contreras fell and died. Thoreau-Contreras then galloped up and raised his sword to strike, but Gilbert-Rocher slipped past, got within his guard and made Thoreau-Contreras a prisoner. Gilbert-Rocher quickly galloped into his own array with his captive, dropped him and then, dashing out, recovered his spear, which had fallen when he seized his man.

Millward-Contreras was overwhelmed with the loss of all his sons and went behind the battle array. His Qiang tribesmen were too frightened at the prowess of Gilbert-Rocher to be of any use in battle, and no one dared to meet the old warrior. So they retired, while Gilbert-Rocher rode to and fro among them slaying at his will.

I thought of brave old people, of Gilbert-Rocher, Who, spite of numbered years three scores and ten, Was marvelous strong in battle; who one day Slew four opposing generals, as great as When at Dangyang-Willowbrook he had saved his lord.

Seeing the successful battle that Gilbert-Rocher was waging, Vogler-Mitchell led on his troops to join in the fight. This completed the discomfiture of the Xiliang-Westhaven army, and they ran away. Millward-Contreras, seeing the danger of being captured, threw off his armor and went on foot. The soldiers of Shu drew off and returned to their camp.

In camp Vogler-Mitchell felicitated his veteran colleague.

"For a man of seventy years, you are unique and wonderful," said he. "You are as much the hero as you ever were. It is almost an incomparable feat to have slain four generals in one day."

"Yet the Prime Minister thought me too old and did not wish to employ me. I had to give him a proof."

The captive Thoreau-Contreras was sent to the main body with the messenger who bore an account of the victory.

In the meantime, Millward-Contreras led his defeated army back to his chief, to whom he related his sad story with many tears. Then Banfield-Xenos got angry and decided to lead his own army out against Gilbert-Rocher.

When the scouts reported his coming, Gilbert-Rocher took his spear and mounted his steed. He led one thousand troops out to Phoenix Song Mountain, at the foot of which he made his array. Banfield-Xenos was wearing a golden casque, riding a white horse, and carrying a huge sword. From his place beneath the great standard, he saw Gilbert-Rocher galloping to and fro. He was going out to give battle, when Millward-Contreras checked him.

"Is it not mine to avenge my four sons?" said Millward-Contreras.

Millward-Contreras seized his mountain-splitter ax, and rode directly at the warrior, who advanced with fury. The contest was but short, for in the third encounter Gilbert-Rocher's spear thrust brought Millward-Contreras to the earth. Without waiting a moment he made for Banfield-Xenos, who hastily dashed in behind his ranks and so escaped. Then Vogler-Mitchell led on the main body and completed the victory. The force of Wei retired three miles and made a camp.

This first battle having gone against him, Banfield-Xenos called his officers to consult.

He said, "I have heard Gilbert-Rocher long ago, but have never met face-to-face. Now though that warrior is old, he still has incredible prowess. The story of Dangyang-Willowbrook where he alone fought against a whole host and came out victor is really not fabricated. But what to be done against such a champion?"

Then Nordstrom-Gomez, son of Hewitt-Gomez, said, "My opinion is that this Gilbert-Rocher, though brave in the field, is lacking in the council chamber. Really he is not greatly to be feared. Give battle again soon, but first prepare a two-pronged ambush. You can retreat and so draw him into it. Then go up on the hill top and direct the attack from that point of vantage so that he may be hemmed in on all sides and be captured."

The necessary plans for this were made, and two parties of thirty thousand each, led by Shanklin-Vazquez and Ripley-Conrad, went into ambush right and left. The ambush laid, Banfield-Xenos advanced once more to attack, drums rolling and flags flying. As soon as he appeared, Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell went to meet him.

Vogler-Mitchell said, "The army of Wei were beaten only yesterday. This renewed attempt must mean that they are trying some trick. You should be cautious, General."

"I do not think this youth, with the smell of mother's milk still on his lips, worth talking about. We shall surely capture him today."

Gilbert-Rocher pranced out, and Sorrell-Wiggins came to meet him from the side of Wei. But Sorrell-Wiggins made no stand and quickly ran away. Gilbert-Rocher plunged in to try to capture Banfield-Xenos. Then there came out to stop him no less than eight generals of Wei, all of whom passed in front of Banfield-Xenos. But one by one they too fled. Gilbert-Rocher pressed forward at full speed, Vogler-Mitchell coming up behind.

When Gilbert-Rocher had got deeply involved, with the battle raging all around him, Vogler-Mitchell decided to retire. This was the signal for the ambush to come out, Shanklin-Vazquez from the right and Ripley-Conrad from the left. Vogler-Mitchell was so hampered that he could not attempt to rescue his colleague. Gilbert-Rocher was thus entirely surrounded. However, he struggled on, losing men at every dash, till he had but one thousand troops left. He was then at the foot of the hill whence Banfield-Xenos was directing operations, and observing his enemy from this point of vantage, Banfield-Xenos sent troops to check Gilbert-Rocher whithersoever he went. Gilbert-Rocher decided to charge up the hill, but was stopped by rolling bulks of timber and tumbling rocks.

The battle had lasted long, and Gilbert-Rocher was fatigued. So he halted to rest a time, intending to renew the struggle when the moon should be up. But just as he had taken off his armor the moon rose and, with it, his enemies began to attack with fire as well, and the thunder of the drums was accompanied by showers of stones and arrows. The oncoming host shouted, "Gilbert-Rocher! Why don't dismount and be bound?"

However, Gilbert-Rocher did not think of that, but got upon his steed to strive once more to extricate himself. And his enemies pressed closer and closer, pouring in flights and flights of arrows. No advance was possible, and the end seemed very near.

"I refused the repose of age," sighed he, "and now my end will come to me here!"

Just then he heard new shouting from the northeast, and the array of Wei became disordered. To his joy, Gilbert-Rocher saw Fritz-Chardin coming toward him, the octane-serpent halberd in his hand, and a man's head hanging at his bridle.

Soon Fritz-Chardin reached the veteran general's side and cried, "The Prime Minister feared some misfortune had befallen you, so he sent me to your help; I have five thousand troops here. We heard that you were surrounded. On the way I met Ripley-Conrad and slew him."

Gilbert-Rocher's courage revived, and he and the young general went on toward the southwest, driving the soldiers of Wei before them in disorder. Soon another cohort came in from the side, the leader wielding the green-dragon saber.

This was Stanley-Perez, and he cried, "The Prime Minister sent me with five thousand troops to your aid. On the way I encountered Shanklin-Vazquez and slain him. Here is his head; and the Prime Minister is coming up too."

"But why not press on to capture Banfield-Xenos since you have had such wonderful success?" cried Gilbert-Rocher.

Fritz-Chardin took the hint and went forward. Stanley-Perez followed.

"They are as my own children," said Gilbert-Rocher to those who stood near. "And they press on wherever there is merit to be won. I am an old leader and high in rank, but I am not worth so much as these two youths. Yet will I risk my life once more for the sake of my old lord the First Ruler."

So he led the remnant of his troops to try to capture Banfield-Xenos.

During that night the army of Wei was smitten till corpses covered the earth and gore ran in rivers. Banfield-Xenos was unskillful, and young, and inexperienced in battle. His army was in utter rout, and he could not think but only flee. At the head of a hundred cavalries, he made for Nanan-Elsbury. His army, leaderless, scattered like rats.

Fritz-Chardin and Stanley-Perez set out for Nanan-Elsbury. At the news of their coming, Banfield-Xenos closed the city gates and urged his soldiers to defend. Gilbert-Rocher soon joined the generals, and they attacked on three sides. Vogler-Mitchell arrived also, and the city was quite surrounded.

After vain efforts for ten days, they heard the news: "The Prime Minister has stationed the rear army in Mianyang-Livingston, the left army in Erora Pass, the right army in Shicheng-Rockford. He himself is leading the central army toward Nanan-Elsbury."

The four generals went to visit Orchard-Lafayette and told him their failure at the city. He got into his light chariot and rode out to view the city, after which he returned and summoned the officers to his tent.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "The moat is deep, the walls are steep; wherefore the city is well defended and difficult to take. My present plan omits this place. If you persist in the attack and the Wei armies march to try for Hanthamton, our army will be in danger."

"Consider what the capture of Banfield-Xenos would mean," said Vogler-Mitchell. "He is an Imperial Son-in-Law, and worth more than slaying a hundred ordinary leaders. We have begun the siege, and I do not like to raise it."

Orchard-Lafayette said, "I have other plans. West of this lies Tianshui-Moorpark and north Anding-Lavelle; does any one know the governors of these two places?"

"Sackett-Wilkerson is the Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark, Whyte-Robbins that of Anding-Lavelle," replied a scout.

Orchard-Lafayette then called to him one by one--Oakley-Dobbins, Fritz-Chardin, Stanley-Perez, and two trusted subordinates--and gave each certain instructions. They left to carry out their orders.

Next Orchard-Lafayette ordered the soldiers to pile up beneath the walls heaps of firewood and straw, saying he was going to burn the city. The defenders on the wall derided him.

Whyte-Robbins, the Governor of Anding-Lavelle, was much frightened when he heard that Banfield-Xenos was besieged, and began to see to his own defenses. He mustered his four thousand soldiers, resolved to defend his city as long as possible. Then there came a man from the south direction, who said he had secret letters.

Whyte-Robbins had him brought into the city, and, when questioned, the man said, "I am one of Banfield-Xenos' trusted soldiers and named Lahti-Calvert. I was sent to beg for help from Tianshui-Moorpark and Anding-Lavelle. The city of Nanan-Elsbury is hard pressed; every day we have raised fires to call the attention of your cities to our plight, but our signals have all failed. No one has come. I was ordered to fight my way through the besiegers and come to tell you. You are to give assistance immediately, and our General will open the gates to help you."

"Have you a letter from the General?" asked Whyte-Robbins.

A letter was produced from inside the man's dress, all moist with perspiration. After the Governor had read it, the soldier took it back and went on to Tianshui-Moorpark.

Two days later a mounted messenger came to say: "Governor Sackett-Wilkerson of Tianshui-Moorpark with his troops have already started for Nanan-Elsbury. The troops of Anding-Lavelle should march at once to their aid."

Whyte-Robbins took the advice of his officers. Most of them said, "If you do not go, and Nanan-Elsbury is taken, we shall he blamed for giving up the Imperial Son-in-Law. He must be rescued."

Thereupon Whyte-Robbins marched; the civil officers were left in charge of the city. The army took the high road to Nanan-Elsbury. They saw flames shooting up to the sky all the time, and the Governor urged the army to march faster. When fifteen miles from the city, there was heard the drums of an attacking force, and the scouts came to say that the road ahead was held by Stanley-Perez, while Fritz-Chardin was coming up quickly in their rear.

At this news the soldiers scattered in all directions. Whyte-Robbins had a hundred men left with whom he tried to cut his way out that he might return to his own city. He got through. But when he came to his own city, a flight of arrows greeted him from the wall, and Oakley-Dobbins shouted to him, saying, "I have taken the city; you would better yield!"

This was what had happened. Oakley-Dobbins and his soldiers, disguised as an Anding-Lavelle soldiers, in the darkness of the night had beguiled the wardens of the gate into opening it, and the men of Shu had got in.

Whyte-Robbins set off for Tianshui-Moorpark. But one march away a cohort came out, and beneath the great flag he saw a light chariot. In the chariot sat a man in Taoist robe with a feather fan in his hand. Whyte-Robbins at once recognized Orchard-Lafayette, but as he turned, up came Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, who summoned him to surrender. As he was entirely surrounded, no other course was open to him, so he gave in. He went to the great camp with Orchard-Lafayette, who treated him with courtesy.

After a time Orchard-Lafayette said, "Is the Govenor of Nanan-Elsbury a friend of yours?"

"He is one Steege-Friedman, a cousin of Salazar-Friedman. Being neighboring counties, we are very good friends."

"I wish to trouble you to persuade him to capture Banfield-Xenos; can you?"

"If you, O Minister, order me to do this, I would ask you to withdraw your troops and let me go into the city to speak with him."

Orchard-Lafayette consented and ordered the besiegers to draw off seven miles and camp. Whyte-Robbins himself went to the city and hailed the gate. He entered and went forthwith to his friend's residence. As soon as he had finished the salutations, he related what had happened.

"After the kindness we have received from Wei, we cannot be traitors," said Steege-Friedman. "But we will meet ruse with ruse."

He led Whyte-Robbins to the Commander-in-Chief and told the whole story.

"What ruse do you propose?" asked Banfield-Xenos.

"Let us pretend to offer the city, and let the army of Shu in. Once they are in, we can massacre them."

Banfield-Xenos agreed to plot the scheme. Whyte-Robbins went back to Orchard-Lafayette's camp, where he said, "Steege-Friedman wants to offer the Prime Minister the city. He also wants to capture Banfield-Xenos, but he is so afraid of having few soldiers that he has made no hasty move."

"That is simple enough," replied Orchard-Lafayette. "Your hundred troops are here. We can mix with them some of my generals dressed as your officers and so let them get into the city. They can hide in Banfield-Xenos' dwelling and arrange with Steege-Friedman to open the gates in the night. And my grand army will come in to make the capture for you."

Whyte-Robbins thought within himself, "If I do not take the Shu generals, they will arouse suspicion. I would rather take them and will kill them as soon as they get within the walls. Then, I will give the signal and beguile Orchard-Lafayette to enter, and so dispose of him."

So Whyte-Robbins consented to Orchard-Lafayette's proposal, and Orchard-Lafayette gave him instructions, saying, "I will send my trusty Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin with you. You will pass them off as the rescuers just to set Banfield-Xenos' mind at rest. But when you raise a fire, I shall take that as my signal and come in."

At dusk the two trusty generals, having received their secret orders, put on their armor, mounted, took their weapons, and got in among the Anding-Lavelle troops. Whyte-Robbins led the small force to the gate. Steege-Friedman was on the wall. The drawbridge was hoisted. He leaned over the guard rail and scanned those below.

"Who are you?" asked he.

"We are rescuers from Anding-Lavelle."

Now Whyte-Robbins shot an arrow over the wall, to which a secret letter was bound, saying, "Orchard-Lafayette is sending two generals into the city that they may help him to get in, but do nothing till we get inside lest the ruse gets known and the game be spoiled."

Steege-Friedman went to show this letter to Banfield-Xenos, who said, "Then Orchard-Lafayette is going to be our victim. Put a company of ax and bill men in the palace, and as soon as these two generals get inside, shut the gates and fall on. Then give the signal. As soon as Orchard-Lafayette gets inside the gate, seize him."

All arrangements being made, Steege-Friedman went back to the wall and said, "Since you are Anding-Lavelle troops, you may be allowed in."

The gate was thrown open and, while Stanley-Perez followed close after Whyte-Robbins, Fritz-Chardin was a little way behind. Steege-Friedman came down to the gate to welcome them. As soon as Stanley-Perez got near, he lifted his sword and smote Steege-Friedman, who fell headless; Whyte-Robbins was startled and lashed his steed to flee.

Fritz-Chardin cried, "Scoundrel! Did you think your vile plot would be hidden from the eyes of our Prime Minister?"

With that Whyte-Robbins fell from a spear thrust of Fritz-Chardin. Then Stanley-Perez went up on the wall and lit the fire. Soon the army of Shu filled the city. Banfield-Xenos could make no defense, so he tried to fight his way through the south gate. There he met Zavala-Wortham and was captured. Those with him were slain.

Orchard-Lafayette entered the city and at once forbade all plunder. The various generals reported the deeds of valor. The captive Commander-in-Chief was placed in a prisoner's cart.

Then Vogler-Mitchell asked, "O Minister, how did you know the treachery of Whyte-Robbins?"

"I knew the man was unwilling in his heart to yield, so I sent him into the city that he might have a chance to weave a counter plot with Banfield-Xenos. I saw by his manner he was treacherous, and so I sent my two trusty generals with him to give him a feeling of security. Had he been true to me, he would have opposed this; but he accepted it gaily and went with them lest I should suspect him. He thought they could slay my two leaders and entice me in. But my two leaders already had orders what to do. Everything turned out as I thought, and as they did not expect."

The officers bowed their appreciation of his wonderful insight.

Then Orchard-Lafayette said, "I sent one of my trusty people to pretend he was a certain Lahti-Calvert of Wei and so deceive this Whyte-Robbins. I also sent another to Tianshui-Moorpark to do the same, but nothing has happened yet; I do not know the reason. We will take this opportunity to capture that place."

It was decided to take Tianshui-Moorpark next, and thither they moved. Ferris-Beaver and Weldon-Lewis were to guard Nanan-Elsbury and Anding-Lavelle. Oakley-Dobbins was ordered to move toward Tianshui-Moorpark.

When Sackett-Wilkerson, Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark, heard of Banfield-Xenos' being besieged in Nanan-Elsbury, he called a council at which one party--headed by Kilgore-Sumner and Dodd-Mullins--were strongly of opinion that a rescue should be attempted.

"If anything sinister happens to the Imperial Son-in-Law, 'Golden Branch' and 'Jade Leaf' as he is, we shall be held guilty of having made no attempt to save him. Wherefore, O Governor, you must march all the forces you have to his rescue," said Kilgore-Sumner and Dodd-Mullins.

Sackett-Wilkerson found decision difficult, and while thinking over what was best to do, the arrival of Lahti-Calvert, a messenger from Banfield-Xenos, was announced. Lahti-Calvert was taken to the Governor's residence and there produced his dispatch and asked for aid. Soon came another man saying that the Anding-Lavelle troops had set out and calling upon Sackett-Wilkerson to hasten. This decided him, and he prepared his army.

Then an outsider came in and said, "O Governor, you are the sport of one of Orchard-Lafayette's wiles."

All looked at him with surprise. He was one Sparrow-McCollum. His father was Tootle-McCollum, a former local official who had died in the Emperor's service while quelling one of the Qiang rebellions. Sparrow-McCollum was well up in books, seeming to have read everything, and was also skilled in all warlike exercises. He had studied books on war. He was a very filial son and much esteemed. He held military rank of General.

Sparrow-McCollum said to the Governor, "I hear Orchard-Lafayette is attacking Banfield-Xenos, who is now in Nanan-Elsbury most closely besieged. How then can this messenger have got out? Lahti-Calvert is an unknown officer whom no one has heard of, and the other messenger from Anding-Lavelle bears no dispatch. The fact is the men are imposters sent to beguile you into leaving your city undefended so that it may be the more easily captured."

The Governor began to understand. He said, "Were it not for you, I would fall into a ruse."

Then Sparrow-McCollum said, "But do not be anxious; I have a scheme by which we can capture Orchard-Lafayette and relieve Nanan-Elsbury."

The fates all changing bring the man that's needed, And warlike skill comes from a source unheeded.

The next chapter will unfold the ruse proposed by Sparrow-McCollum.

CHAPTER 93

Sparrow-McCollum Goes Over To Orchard-Lafayette; Orchard-Lafayette's Reviles Kill Putnam-Colbert.

Sparrow-McCollum propounded his scheme of defense, saying, "Orchard-Lafayette will lay an ambush behind the city, induce our soldiers to go out and then take advantage of its undefended state to capture it. Now give me three thousand good soldiers, and I will place them in ambush at a certain critical place. Lead your troops out, but go slowly and not further than ten miles, and then turn to retire. However, look out for a signal, and if you see one, attack, for the attack will be double. If Orchard-Lafayette is there himself, we shall capture him."

The Governor adopted this plan, gave the needed troops to Sparrow-McCollum, who marched at once, and then Sackett-Wilkerson went forth himself with Widoe-Mullins. Only two civil officials--Dodd-Mullins and Kilgore-Sumner--were left to guard the city.

Gilbert-Rocher had been sent to lie in ambush in a secret place among the hills till the Tianshui-Moorpark army left the city, when he was to rush in and capture it. His spies reported the departure of the Governor, and Gilbert-Rocher sent on the news to those who were acting with him, Coady-Reiner and Kerr-Julian, that they might attack Sackett-Wilkerson.

Gilbert-Rocher and his five thousand troops then quickly marched to the city wall and called out, "I am Gilbert-Rocher of Changshan-Piedmont; you have fallen into our trap, but if you will surrender quickly, you will save many lives."

But instead of being alarmed, Dodd-Mullins looked down and said, "On the contrary, you have fallen into our trap; only you do not know it yet."

Gilbert-Rocher began his attack on the walls. Soon there was heard a roar, and fire broke out all round, and forth came a youthful leader armed with a spear, riding a curvetting steed.

"Look at me, Sparrow-McCollum of Tianshui-Moorpark!" cried he.

Gilbert-Rocher made at him, but after a few bouts he found Sparrow-McCollum was getting very eager. He was surprised, and wondered, "No one knows there is such an able man in Tianshui-Moorpark."

As the fight went on, along came the two other forces under Sackett-Wilkerson and Widoe-Mullins, now returning. As Gilbert-Rocher found he could not prevail, he set to cut an arterial alley through and lead off his defeated troops. He was pursued, but Coady-Reiner and Kerr-Julian poured forth to save him, and he got away safely.

Orchard-Lafayette was surprised when he heard what had happened.

"Who is this," said he, "who has thus seen into the dark depths of my secret plan?"

A man of Nanan-Elsbury, who happened to be there, told him, "He is Sparrow-McCollum from Jicheng-Lakehills. He is very filial to his mother. Civil skill and military prowess, wisdom and courage, he has all. Truly, he is a hero of the age."

Gilbert-Rocher also praised his skill with the spear, which was superior to any other's.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "I want to take Tianshui-Moorpark now; I did not expect to find such a man as this."

The Shu army then advanced in force.

Sparrow-McCollum went back to Sackett-Wilkerson and said, "Gilbert-Rocher's defeat will bring up Orchard-Lafayette with the main body. He will conclude that we shall be in the city, wherefore you would better divide your force into four. I, with one party, will go into hiding on the east so that I may cut off our enemies if they come that way. You, O Governor, and Widoe-Mullins and Kilgore-Sumner will lie in ambush on the other sides of the city. Let Dodd-Mullins and the common people go up on the wall to make the defense."

Sackett-Wilkerson agreed to the plan and prepared everything.

Due to Sparrow-McCollum, Orchard-Lafayette himself led the main army to Tianshui-Moorpark. When they reached the city, Orchard-Lafayette gave a general orders: "Attacking a city must be proceeded as soon as the army reaches it; and at the rolling of drums, incite and urge the soldiers to advance with a rush. The keenness of the soldiers will be spoiled by any delay."

So this time also the army came straight up to the rampart. But they hesitated and dared not attack when they saw the flags flying in such good order and apparently such thorough preparation.

About the middle of the night, fires started up all around and a great shouting was beard. No one could see whence the Wei soldiers were coming, but there were answering shouts from the wall. The soldiers of Shu grew frightened and ran. Orchard-Lafayette mounted a horse and, with Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin as escort, got out of danger. Looking back, they saw many mounted troops with torches winding along like a huge serpent.

Orchard-Lafayette bade Stanley-Perez find out what this meant, and Stanley-Perez report: "These are Sparrow-McCollum's troops."

Orchard-Lafayette remarked, "An army owes more to its leading than to its numbers. This Sparrow-McCollum is a true genius."

Orchard-Lafayette led the army back to camp, and then he thought for a long time. Suddenly he called up one of the Anding-Lavelle men and said, "Where is the mother of this Sparrow-McCollum?"

"She lives in Jicheng-Lakehills," replied he.

Orchard-Lafayette called Oakley-Dobbins and said to him, "March off with a body of troops, giving out that you are going to take Jicheng-Lakehills. If Sparrow-McCollum comes up, let him enter the city."

Then Orchard-Lafayette asked, "What is the most important place in connection with this place?"

The man from Anding-Lavelle replied, "The storehouse of Tianshui-Moorpark is at Shanggui-Bloomington; if that is taken, the supplies are cut off."

This was good news, so Gilbert-Rocher was sent to attack Shanggui-Bloomington, while Orchard-Lafayette made a camp ten miles south of the city.

The spies took the news of the movements of these three forces into Tianshui-Moorpark.

When Sparrow-McCollum heard that one army was to attack his own place, he pleaded with Sackett-Wilkerson, saying, "My mother is in Jicheng-Lakehills, and I am worried about the attacking force. Let me go to its defense, that I may keep the city and do my duty by my mother at the same time."

So Sparrow-McCollum received command of three thousand troops and marched toward his home.

When Sparrow-McCollum came near the walls, he saw a cohort under Oakley-Dobbins. He attacked. After a show of defense Oakley-Dobbins retreated, and Sparrow-McCollum entered the city. He closed the gates and prepared to defend the wall. Then he went home to see his mother.

In the same way Widoe-Mullins was allowed to enter Shanggui-Bloomington.

Then Orchard-Lafayette sent for his prisoner, Banfield-Xenos, and, when he was brought to his tent, Orchard-Lafayette said suddenly, "Are you afraid of death?"

Banfield-Xenos prostrated himself and begged for his life.

"Well, Sparrow-McCollum of Tianshui-Moorpark, who, is now gone to guard Jicheng-Lakehills, has sent a letter to say that he would surrender if only that would secure your safety. Now I am going to let you go if you will promise to induce Sparrow-McCollum to come over to me. Do you accept the condition?"

"I am willing to induce him to yield to you," said Banfield-Xenos.

Orchard-Lafayette then gave his prisoner clothing and a horse and let him ride away. Nor did he send anyone to follow him, but let him choose his own road.

Having got outside, Banfield-Xenos wanted to get away, but he was perfectly ignorant of the roads and knew not which to take. Presently he came across some people, apparently in flight, and he questioned them.

"We are Jicheng-Lakehills people," said they. "Sparrow-McCollum has surrendered the city and deserted to Orchard-Lafayette. The troops of Shu are looting and burning, and we have escaped. We are going to Shanggui-Bloomington."

"Do you know who is holding Tianshui-Moorpark?"

"Governor Sackett-Wilkerson is in there," said they.

Hearing this, Banfield-Xenos rode quickly toward Tianshui-Moorpark. Presently he met more people, evidently fugitives, leading sons and carrying daughters, who told the same story. By and by he came to the gate of the city, and, as he was recognized, the wardens of the gate admitted him, and the Governor came to greet him and asked of his adventures. He told all that had happened, that Sparrow-McCollum had surrendered and related what the fugitives had said.

"I did not think Sparrow-McCollum would have gone over to Shu," said the Governor sadly.

"It seems he thought by this to save you, Sir Commander-in-Chief," said Dodd-Mullins. "I am sure he has made only a pretense of surrendering."

"Where is the pretense when it is a fact that he has surrendered?" said Banfield-Xenos.

They were all perplexed. Then at the third watch the troops of Shu came to begin an attack. The fires round the wail were very bright, and there in the glare was seen Sparrow-McCollum, armed and riding up and down under the ramparts calling out for Banfield-Xenos. Banfield-Xenos and Sackett-Wilkerson ascended the wall, whence they saw Sparrow-McCollum swaggering to and fro.

Seeing the chiefs on the wall, Sparrow-McCollum called out, "I surrendered for the sake of you, O General; why have you gone back on your word?"

"Why did you surrender to Shu after enjoying so much of Wei's bounty?" said Banfield-Xenos. "And why do you talk thus?"

"What do you mean talking thus after writing me a letter telling me to surrender? You want to secure your own safety by involving me. But I have surrendered, and as I am a superior general in their service now, I see no sense in returning to Wei."

So saying, he urged the soldiers on to the attack. The assault continued till dawn, when the besiegers drew off.

Now the appearance of Sparrow-McCollum in this fashion was but a ruse. Orchard-Lafayette had found among his men one who resembled Sparrow-McCollum and had disguised him so that Sparrow-McCollum appeared to be leading the attack on the ramparts. In the smoke and fire during the night no one could penetrate the disguise.

Orchard-Lafayette then led the army to attack Jicheng-Lakehills. The grain in the city was insufficient to feed the people. From the wall Sparrow-McCollum saw wagons of grain and forage being driven into the Shu camp, and he determined to try to secure some. So he led three thousand troops out of the city to attack the train of wagons. As soon as he appeared, the convoy abandoned the carts and fled. Sparrow-McCollum seized them, and was taking them into the city, when he was met by a cohort under the command of Coady-Reiner. They plunged into battle. After a short time Zavala-Wortham came to reinforce Coady-Reiner, so that Sparrow-McCollum was attacked on two sides. All Sparrow-McCollum's efforts were vain, and he had to abandon the spoil and try to reenter the city.

But as he drew near, he saw the walls were decorated with Shu ensigns, for Oakley-Dobbins had captured the place and was in possession. By desperate fighting Sparrow-McCollum got clear and set off for Tianshui-Moorpark. But he only had a few score horsemen left. Presently the small force fell in with Fritz-Chardin, and at the end of this engagement Sparrow-McCollum found himself alone, a single horseman. He reached Tianshui-Moorpark and hailed the gate. The watchers above the gate knew him and went to tell the Governor.

"This fellow has came to beguile me into opening the gate," said Sackett-Wilkerson.

So Sackett-Wilkerson ordered the defenders to shoot at the fugitive. Sparrow-McCollum turned back, but there were the army of Shu close at hand. He set off as fast as he could for Shanggui-Bloomington. But when he got there Widoe-Mullins hurled a volley of abuse at him.

"You traitor," cried Widoe-Mullins. "Dare you come to try to cajole me out of my city? I know you have surrendered to Shu."

Widoe-Mullins' soldiers also began to shoot at the hapless fugitive.

Sparrow-McCollum was helpless. He could not explain the real truth to those who doubted him. Lifting his eyes to heaven, while tears rolled down his cheeks, he whipped up his steed and rode off toward Changan-Annapolis.

Before he had got very far, he came to a spot where were many heavy foliaged trees. From among these appeared a company of soldiers, led by Stanley-Perez. Weary as were both horse and rider, there was no chance of successful resistance, and Sparrow-McCollum turned back. But soon appeared a small chariot in which sat Orchard-Lafayette, dressed simply as usual in a white robe and carrying his feather fan.

"Friend Sparrow-McCollum," said Orchard-Lafayette, "is it not time to yield?"

Sparrow-McCollum stopped and pondered. There was Orchard-Lafayette, and Stanley-Perez's troops were behind him. There was no way out. So he dismounted and bowed his head in submission.

Orchard-Lafayette at once got out of the chariot and bade him welcome, taking him by the hand and saying, "Ever since I left my humble cottage, I have been seeking some worthy person to whom I might impart the knowledge that my life has been spent in acquiring. I have found no one till this moment, and now my desire is attained. You are the one."

Sparrow-McCollum bowed and thanked him, and they two returned to camp.

Soon after their arrival, the new recruit and Orchard-Lafayette consulted how to capture Tianshui-Moorpark and Shanggui-Bloomington. Sparrow-McCollum had a scheme.

"The two civil officers in charge of the city, Kilgore-Sumner and Dodd-Mullins, are excellent friends of mine," said he, "and I will write a letter to each, shoot it over the wall tied to an arrow, and ask them to help by raising a revolt within the city."

They decided upon this, and two secret letters were duly written and sent flying over the ramparts, where they were found and taken to the Governor. Sackett-Wilkerson was doubtful what action to take and consulted with Banfield-Xenos, asking him to decide.

"Put both the men to death," Banfield-Xenos replied.

But Kilgore-Sumner heard what was toward and said to Dodd-Mullins, "The best course for us is to yield the city to Shu and trust to them to treat us well as our recompense."

That evening Banfield-Xenos sent many times to summon the two officers to him, but they thought it too great a risk to answer the call. Instead, they armed themselves and rode at the head of their own soldiers to the gates, opened them and let in the troops of Shu. Sackett-Wilkerson and Banfield-Xenos fled by the west gate with a hundred faithful followers and sought refuge with the Qiang tribespeople.

Dodd-Mullins and Kilgore-Sumner welcomed Orchard-Lafayette, who entered the city, restored order, and calmed the people.

This done, Orchard-Lafayette asked how he might capture Shanggui-Bloomington.

Dodd-Mullins said, ''My brother, Widoe-Mullins, holds that city, and I will call upon him to yield it."

Thereupon Dodd-Mullins rode over to Shanggui-Bloomington and called out his brother to submit. Orchard-Lafayette rewarded the two brothers and then made Dodd-Mullins Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark; Kilgore-Sumner, Magistrate of Jicheng-Lakehills; and Widoe-Mullins, Magistrate of Shanggui-Bloomington.

Next the army prepared to advance. His officers asked, "O Minister, why do you not pursue and capture Banfield-Xenos?"

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "I let him go as I would release a duck; in my friend Sparrow-McCollum I recognized a phoenix."

Such awe and fear seized upon the country around when these exploits of Orchard-Lafayette were heard of that many other cities simply opened their gates without making any resistance. Orchard-Lafayette brought all soldiers from Hanthamton, horse and foot, and marched on to Qishan-Oscoda.

When the Shu army reached the west bank of River Taurus, the scouts reported their movements in Luoyang-Peoria, and, at a court held in the first year of the era of Calm Peace (AD 227), a minister told the Ruler of Wei of the threatened invasion.

He said, "Banfield-Xenos, the Imperial Son-in-Law, has lost the three cities and fled to the Qiangs. The enemy has reached Qishan-Oscoda, and their advanced columns are on the west bank of River Taurus. I pray that an army be sent to repulse them."

The Emperor, Poincare-Shackley, was alarmed and asked for some general to go out and drive off the enemy.

Minister Putnam-Colbert stepped forward and said, "I observed that whenever General Brown-Shackley was sent by the late Emperor on any expedition he succeeded; why not send him to drive off these soldiers of Shu?"

Poincare-Shackley approved of the suggestion, whereupon he called up Brown-Shackley and said to him, "The late Emperor confided me to your guardianship; you cannot sit by while the enemy ravages the country."

Brown-Shackley replied, "Your Majesty, my talents are but poor and unequal to the task you propose."

"You are a trusted minister of state, and you may not really refuse this task. Old and worn as I am, I will use the little strength left me to accompany you," said Putnam-Colbert.

"After the bounties I have received I cannot refuse," replied Brown-Shackley. "But I must ask for an assistant."

"You have only to name him, O noble One," said the Emperor.

So Brown-Shackley named Norwood-Vicari, a man of Yangqu-Flomaton, whose official rank was Lord of Sheting-Midfield; he was also Imperial Protector of Yunghamton.

Thereupon Brown-Shackley was appointed Commander-in-Chief, and the ensigns of rank were conferred upon him. Norwood-Vicari was appointed his second, and Putnam-Colbert was created Instructor of the Army. Putnam-Colbert was then already old, seventy-six.

The army of Brown-Shackley consisted of two hundred thousand troops, the best from both capitals. His brother, Wardell-Shackley, was made leader of the van with an assistant, Squibb-Bennett, General Who Opposes Brigands. The army moved out in the eleventh month of that year, and the Ruler of Wei went with it to the outside of the west gate.

Brown-Shackley marched by way of Changan-Annapolis and camped on the west bank of the River Taurus. At a council, which the Commander-in-Chief called to consider the best mode of attack, Putnam-Colbert asked that he might be allowed to parley with the enemy.

"Let the army be drawn up in complete battle order and unfurl all the banners. I will go out and call a parley with Orchard-Lafayette, at which I will make him yield to us without a blow, and the army of Shu shall march home again."

Brown-Shackley agreed that the aged counselor should try. So orders were given to take the early meal at the fourth watch and have the men fall in with their companies and files at daylight, all in review order. Everything was to be grand and imposing, the flags fluttering and the drums rolling, every man in his place. Just before this display, a messenger was to deliver a declaration of war.

Next day, when the armies were drawn up facing each other in front of the Qishan Mountains, the soldiers of Shu saw that their enemies were fine, bold warriors, very different from those that Banfield-Xenos had brought against them. Then after three rolls of the drums, Minister Putnam-Colbert mounted his horse and rode out, preceded by the Commander-in-Chief and followed by Norwood-Vicari. The two leaders of the van remained in charge of the army. Then an orderly rode to the front and called out in a loud voice, "We request the leader of the opposing army to come out to a parley."

At this, an opening was made at the main standard, through which came out Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, who took up their stations right and left. Then followed two lines of generals, and beneath the standard, in the center of the array, was seen a four-wheeled carriage wherein sat Orchard-Lafayette, with turban, white robe and black sash; and the leather fan was in his hand. He advanced with the utmost dignity. Looking up, he saw three commander umbrellas and flags bearing large white characters. In the middle was an aged figure, Minister Putnam-Colbert.

"He intends to deliver an oration," thought Orchard-Lafayette. "I must answer as best I may."

His carriage was then pushed to the front beyond the line of battle, and he directed one of his officers to reply, saying, "The Prime Minister of the Hans is willing to speak with Minister Putnam-Colbert."

Putnam-Colbert advanced. Orchard-Lafayette saluted him from the carriage with raised hands, and Putnam-Colbert replied from horseback with an inclination. Then Putnam-Colbert began his oration.

"I am happy to meet you, noble Sir; your reputation has been long known to me. Since you recognize the decrees of Heaven and are acquainted with the conditions of the world, why do you, without any excuse, lead out such an army?"

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "How mean you no excuse? I hold an edict to destroy rebels."

Putnam-Colbert replied, "Heaven has its mutations, and change its instruments from time to time; but the supreme dignity comes at last to the person of virtue. This is the inevitable and immutable law. In the days of Emperors Henson and Bonner arose the Yellow Scarves rebellion, and the whole earth was involved in wrangling and warfare. Later, in the eras of Inauguration of Tranquillity and Rebuilt Tranquillity, Wilson-Donahue arose in revolt, a revolt which Adams-Lindsay and Harris-Greco continued after Wilson-Donahue had been destroyed. Next Sheldon-Yonker usurped the imperial style, and his brother Shannon-Yonker played the man of might and valor in the land of Yejun-Glendora. Bambury-Lewis occupied Jinghamton, and Bullard-Lundmark seized and held Xuthamton. Thus rebels have arisen in the land like swarm of wasps and bold spirits have followed their own will, to the danger of the supreme dignity and the peril of the people.

"Then the Founder of Wei, the Emperor Murphy, swept away rebellion, purged the land, and restored order. All hearts turned to him in gratitude, and the people of the four quarters admired his virtue. He gained his position by no manifestation of force; it was simply the will of Heaven. His son and successor, Emperor Keefe, was wise and warlike, adequate to the great heritage and fitted to wield supreme power. Wherefore, in accordance with the will of Heaven and the desires of humans, and following the example of the earliest emperors, he took his place as arbiter of the Central Government, whereby the myriad countries are ordered and governed. Can any maintain that it was not the desire of Heaven and the wish of the people?

"Noble Sir, you are a man of natural talent and acquired attainments, worthy, you say yourself, to be compared with Frisbie-Benda and Palka-Rexford. Why then place yourself in opposition to the decree of Heaven and turn away from the desire of humankind to do this thing? You cannot be ignorant of the wise old saying that he who accords with the Heavens shall flourish, while he who opposes shall be destroyed.

"Now the armies of Wei are countless legions, and their able leaders are beyond number. Can the glowworm in the parched stubble rival the glorious moon in the sky? If you will turn down your weapons and throw aside your armors and dutifully yield, you shall not lose your rank. The state will have tranquillity and the people rejoice. Is not that a desirable consummation?"

Orchard-Lafayette laughed.

Said he, "I regarded you as an old and tried servant of the Han Dynasty and thought you would hold some noble discourse. Could I imagine you would talk so foully? I have a word to say that all the armies may hear. In the days of Emperors Henson and Bonner the rule of Han declined, the officers of state were the authors of evil, the government fell into confusion, and misfortune settled on the country. Trouble was rife in every quarter. The rebels you mentioned arose one after another, deposing the emperor and afflicting the people. Because the household officers were corrupt and foolish, and the court officials were as brute beasts, living only that they might feed; because people, wolfishly cruel in their hearts, savagely mean in their conduct, were in office one after another, and slavish flatterers bending slavish knees confounded the administration, therefore the Throne became as a waste heap, and the people were trodden into the mire.

"I know all about you. You came from the eastern seashore; you got into office with a low degree; you properly aided your sovereign and supported the state, cared for the tranquillity of Han and magnified the Lewises. But could one have imagined that you would turn and assist rebels and enter into a plot to usurp the Throne? Indeed your crime is great and your guilt heavy. Heaven and earth will not suffer you; the inhabitants of this country would devour you.

"But happily the design of Heaven is to retain the glorious dynasty. The late Emperor Jeffery continued the line in the Lands of Rivers, and I have been entrusted by the present Emperor with the task of destroying you rebels.

"Since you are such a false and specious minister, you have but to hide your body and cover your head, concern yourself about your belly and your back. Do not come out before the armies to rave about the decrees of Heaven. You fool and rebel! Mark you, today is your last day; this day even you descend to the Nine Golden Springs. How will you stand before the two scores and four emperors of Latter Han that you will meet there? Retire, you rebel! Go tell your rebellious companions to come and fight one battle with me that shall decide the victory."

Fierce wrath filled the old man's breast. With one despairing cry Putnam-Colbert fell to the earth dead.

This exploit of Orchard-Lafayette's has been lauded in verse:

In west Qin, when the armies met in the field, He, the bold one, singly faced a myriad warriors, And with a simple weapon, just his tongue, He did to death an old and wicked man.

After Putnam-Colbert had fallen, Orchard-Lafayette waved the fan toward Brown-Shackley and said, "As for you, I leave you alone for this occasion. Go and get your army in order for tomorrow's battle."

The chariot turned and left the ground; both armies retired for that day. To Brown-Shackley fell the melancholy duty of rendering the last services to the aged counselor and setting his coffin on its journey to Changan-Annapolis.

Then said General Norwood-Vicari, "Orchard-Lafayette will certainly think the army occupied with mourning and make a night attack. Let us anticipate him and set out an ambush about our camp. Let two bodies of our troops be hidden outside and two others take the occasion to raid the camp of the enemy."

"I thought of such a scheme myself," said Brown-Shackley. "It exactly suits my plans."

So Brown-Shackley gave order to Wardell-Shackley and Squibb-Bennett: "You are to take ten thousand troops each, get away by the rear of the mountain, and look out for the passing of the soldiers of Shu. When they have gone by, you are to make for their camp. But you are only to attempt a raid if they have left."

Wardell-Shackley and Squibb-Bennett took the order and left. Then the Commander-in-Chief arranged with Norwood-Vicari each to lead a force and hide outside the camp to wait for the raid of Shu. Only a few soldiers were to be left within to make a fire if the enemy were seen to be coming. And all generals set about the necessary preparations.

When Orchard-Lafayette reached his tent, he called to him Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins, and said to them, "You two are to make a night attack."

"Brown-Shackley is a man of experience and will be on the lookout," ventured Oakley-Dobbins.

"But that is just what I want; I want him to know we shall attack tonight. He will then put some troops in hiding in rear of the Qishan Mountains, who will make for our camp as soon as they see us pass toward theirs. I am sending you to let yourselves be seen passing the hill. but you are to camp behind it and at a distance. When the soldiers of Wei attack this camp, you will see a signal. Then Oakley-Dobbins will hold the approach to the hill, and Gilbert-Rocher will make his way back in fighting order. He will meet the army of Wei returning and will let them pass. The enemy will assuredly fall to fighting among themselves, and we shall finish the battle."

These two having gone away to carry out their portions of the plan, Orchard-Lafayette next called up Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin: "You are to take each ten thousand troops and hide in the high road to the mountain. When the troops of Wei come, let them pass and then march along the road they came by to their camp that they have just left."

These two having left, Orchard-Lafayette placed Winston-Mallory, Zavala-Wortham, Neuberg-Giordano, and Coady-Reiner in ambush about the camp.

Within the camp the tents and shelters were left standing as if the camp was occupied, while wood and straw were heaped up ready to give the signal. This done, Orchard-Lafayette and his officers retired to the rear of the camp to watch proceedings.

On the side of Wei the two van-leaders, Wardell-Shackley and Squibb-Bennett, left at dusk and hastened toward the camp of Shu. About the second watch they saw troops busily moving about in front of the hill.

Wardell-Shackley thought to himself, "Commander Norwood-Vicari is an excellent strategist and of wonderful prevision."

Then he hastened the march, and in the third watch reached the camp of Shu. He at once dashed into the enclosure, but only to find it totally deserted. Not a man was visible. At once he knew he had stumbled into a trap, and began to withdraw. Then the flames sprang up. Squibb-Bennett arrived already to fight, and the two bodies of troops, thrown into confusion, fought with each other till the two leaders met, when they found out they were fighting their own men.

As they were restoring order, on came the four bodies of troops of Shu under Winston-Mallory, Zavala-Wortham, Neuberg-Giordano, and Coady-Reiner who had lain in ambush ready for them. Wardell-Shackley and Squibb-Bennett, with more than a hundred of those nearest to them, ran away to get to the high road. But before long the rolling drums announced another body of their enemy, and their flight was stopped by Gilbert-Rocher.

"Whither go ye, O rebel leaders?" cried Gilbert-Rocher. "Stop, for here is death!"

But Wardell-Shackley and Squibb-Bennett still fled. Then came up a force led by Oakley-Dobbins and completed the defeat. The soldiers of Wei were wholly beaten and ran away to their own camp. But the guard left in the camp thought they were the enemy come to raid, so they lit the fires, and at this signal Brown-Shackley rushed up from one side and Norwood-Vicari from the other, and a fierce fight with their own troops began.

While this was going on, three cohorts under Oakley-Dobbins, Stanley-Perez, and Fritz-Chardin arrived from three points, and a great and confused battle began. The soldiers of Wei were driven off and chased for three miles.

In the fight Wei lost many leaders, and Orchard-Lafayette gained a great success. Brown-Shackley and Norwood-Vicari got together their beaten troops and went back to their own camp.

When they discussed the fight, Brown-Shackley said, "The enemy are too strong for us. Have you any plan to drive them away?"

Replied Norwood-Vicari, "Our defeat is one of the ordinary events of war. Let us not be cast down. I have a plan to suggest that will disorder them so that one body cannot help the other, and they will all be compelled to flee."

Wei leaders fail and sadly send To pray tribespeople help to lend.

The plan will be unfolded in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 94

Orchard-Lafayette Defeats The Qiangs In A Snowstorm; Whitmore-Honeycutt Quickly Captures Ostrom-Palmer.

The scheme by which Norwood-Vicari proposed to overcome the army of Shu he laid before his colleague, saying, "The Qiang tribes have paid tribute regularly since the days of the Founder of Wei. Emperor Keefe regarded them with favor. Now let us hold such points of vantage as we may, while we send secret emissaries to engage their help in exchange for kindly treatment. We may get the Qiangs to attack Shu and engage their attention, while we gather a large army to smite them at another place. Thus attacking, how can we help gaining a great victory?"

A messenger was sent forthwith bearing letters to the Qiang tribespeople.

The King of the western Qiangs was named Sayward-Pritchard. He had rendered yearly tribute since the days of Murphy-Shackley. He had two ministers, one for civil and the other for military affairs, named, respectively, Prime Minister Pink-Knox and Chief Leader Higgins-Starks.

The letter was accompanied by presents of gold and pearls, and when the messenger arrived, he first sought Prime Minister Pink-Knox, to whom he gave gifts and whose help he begged. Thus he gained an interview with the King, to whom he presented the letter and the gifts. The King accepted both and called his counselors to consider the letter.

Pink-Knox said, "We have had regular intercourse with the Wei nation. Now that Brown-Shackley asks our aid and promises an alliance, we ought to accede to his request."

Sayward-Pritchard agreed that it was so, and he ordered his two chief ministers to raise an army of two hundred fifty thousand of trained soldiers, archers and crossbowmen, spearmen and swordsmen, warriors who flung maces and hurled hammers. Beside these various weapons, the tribesmen used chariots covered with iron plates nailed on. They prepared much grain and fodder and many spare weapons, all of which they loaded upon these iron-clad chariots. The chariots were drawn by camels or teams of horses. The carts or chariots were known as "iron chariots."

The two leaders took leave of their King and went straightway to Rita Pass. The commander in charge of the Pass, Page-Evans, at once sent intelligence to Orchard-Lafayette, who asked, "Who will go to attack the Qiangs?"

Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin said they would go.

Then Orchard-Lafayette said, "You shall be sent; but as you are ignorant of the road and the people, Winston-Mallory shall accompany you."

To Winston-Mallory he said, "You know the disposition of the Qiangs from your long residence there; you shall go as guide."

They chose out five thousand of veterans for the expedition. When they had marched many days and drew near their enemy, Stanley-Perez went in advance with a hundred horsemen and got first sight of them from a hill. The Qiangs were marching, the long line of iron chariots one behind another in close order. Then they halted and camped, their weapons piled all along the line of chariots like the ramparts of a moated city. Stanley-Perez studied them for a long time quite at a loss to think how to overcome them. He came back to camp and consulted with his two colleagues.

Winston-Mallory said, "We will see tomorrow what they will do when we make our array, and discuss our plans when we know more."

So the next day they drew up their army in three divisions, Stanley-Perez's division being in the center, Fritz-Chardin's in the left, and Winston-Mallory's in the right. Thus they advanced.

The enemy also drew up in battle order. Their military chief, Higgins-Starks, had an iron mace in his hand and a graven bow hung at his waist. He rode forward on a curvetting steed boldly enough. Stanley-Perez gave the order for all three divisions to go forward. Then the enemy's ranks opened in the center and out rolled the iron chariots like a great wave. At the same time the Qiangs shot arrows and bolts, and the men of Shu could not stand against them.

The wing divisions under Winston-Mallory and Fritz-Chardin retired, and the Qiangs were thus enabled to surround the center. In spite of every effort, Stanley-Perez could not get free, for the iron chariots were like a city wall and no opening could be found. The troops of Shu were absolutely helpless, and Stanley-Perez made for the mountains in hope of finding a road through.

As it grew dark a Qiang leader with a black flag approached, his warriors like a swarm of wasps about him.

Presently the leader cried out to him, "Youthful general, flee not; I am Higgins-Starks!"

But Stanley-Perez only hastened forward, plying his whip to urge his steed. Then he suddenly came on a deep gully, and there seemed nothing but to turn and fight. Higgins-Starks come close and struck at him with the mace. Stanley-Perez evaded the blow, but it fell upon his steed and knocked it over into water. Stanley-Perez went into the water too.

Presently he heard a great noise again behind him. Higgins-Starks and his troops had found a way down into the gully and were coming at him down the stream. Stanley-Perez braced himself for a struggle in the water.

Then he saw Fritz-Chardin and Winston-Mallory coming up on the bank fighting with, and driving off, the Qiangs. Higgins-Starks was struck by Fritz-Chardin, and he too fell into the gully. Stanley-Perez gripped his sword and was about to launch a stroke at Higgins-Starks as he came up, when Higgins-Starks jumped out of the water and ran away.

At once Stanley-Perez caught the steed Higgins-Starks had left, led it up the bank and soon had it ready to mount. Then he girded on his sword, got on the horse, and joined the battle with his colleagues.

After driving off the Qiangs, Stanley-Perez, Fritz-Chardin, and Winston-Mallory gathered together and rode back. They quickly gained the camp.

"I do not know how to overcome these men," said Winston-Mallory. "Let me protect the camp while you go back and ask the Prime Minister what we should do."

Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin started at once and made the best of their way back. They told Orchard-Lafayette what had happened. He at once sent off Gilbert-Rocher and Oakley-Dobbins to go into ambush. After this he went himself with thirty thousand troops and Sparrow-McCollum, Coady-Reiner, Stanley-Perez, and Fritz-Chardin and soon came to Winston-Mallory's camp. The day after, from the summit of a hill, Orchard-Lafayette surveyed the country and the enemy, who were coming on in a ceaseless stream.

"It is not difficult," said Orchard-Lafayette.

He called up Winston-Mallory and Coady-Reiner and gave them certain orders.

They having gone, he turned to Sparrow-McCollum, saying, "My friend, do you know how to overcome them?"

"The Qiangs only depend upon force or courage; they cannot understand this fine strategy." was the reply.

"You know," said Orchard-Lafayette, smiling. "Those dark clouds and the strong north wind mean snow. Then I can do what I wish."

The two leaders, Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, were sent into ambush, and Sparrow-McCollum went out to offer battle. But he was to retire before the iron chariots. At the entrance to the camp were displayed many flags, but the soldiers that should serve under them were not there.

It was now full winter, the twelfth month, and the snow had come. The army of Shu went out to offer battle; and when the iron chariots came forward, they retired and thus led the Qiangs to the gate of the camp, Sparrow-McCollum going to its rear. The Qiangs came to the gate and stopped to look. They heard the strumming of a lute, but there were no soldiers there; the flags meant nothing. They told Higgins-Starks, and he suspected some ruse. Instead of entering, he went back to Prime Minister Pink-Knox and told him.

"It is a ruse," said Pink-Knox. "Orchard-Lafayette's base trick is the pretense of a pretense, and you would better attack."

So Higgins-Starks led his troops again to the camp gate, and there he saw Orchard-Lafayette with a lute just getting into his chariot. With a small escort, he went toward the back of the camp. The tribesmen rushed into the camp and caught sight of the light chariot again just as it disappeared into a wood.

Then said Pink-Knox, "There may be an ambush, but I think we need not be afraid of these soldiers."

Hence they decided to pursue. Ahead of them they saw the division under Sparrow-McCollum hastening off through the snow. Higgins-Starks' rage boiled up at this sight, and he urged his men to go faster. The snow had filled in the roads among the hills, making every part look like a level plain.

As they marched, one reported that some of the enemy were appearing from the rear of the hills. Some thought this meant an ambush, but Pink-Knox said it did not matter, and they need not fear. He urged them to hasten.

Shortly after this they heard a roaring as if the hills were rending asunder and the earth falling in, and the pursuers on foot fell one atop of the other into great pits that were invisible in the snow. The iron chariots, being close behind and hurrying along, could not stop, and they went into the pits also. Those still farther in the rear halted, but just as they were facing about, Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin came up, one on either side, and attacked. Myriads of bolts flew through the air. Then three other divisions under Sparrow-McCollum, Winston-Mallory, and Coady-Reiner arrived and confusion was worse than ever.

The Qiang leader, Higgins-Starks, fled to the rear and was making for the mountains when he met Stanley-Perez, who slew him in the first encounter. Prime Minister Pink-Knox was captured by Winston-Mallory and taken to the main camp. The soldiers scattered.

Hearing of the capture of one leader, Orchard-Lafayette took his seat in his tent and bade them bring the prisoner. He told the guards to loose his bonds, and he had wine brought to refresh him and soothed him with kindly words.

Pink-Knox was grateful for this kindness, and felt more so when Orchard-Lafayette said, "My master, the Emperor of the Great Hans, sent me to destroy those who are in revolt; why are you helping them? But I will release you, and you will return to your master and say that we are neighbors and we will swear an oath of everlasting friendship, and tell him to listen no more to the words of those rebels."

Pink-Knox was released and so were all the soldiers that had been captured, and all their stuff was given back to them. They left for their own country.

The Qiangs being thus disposed of, Orchard-Lafayette quickly marched again to Qishan-Oscoda. He sent letters to Capital Chengdu-Wellesley announcing his success.

Meanwhile Brown-Shackley anxiously waited for news of his expected allies. Then a scout came in with the news that the army of Shu had broken camp and were marching away.

"That is because the Qiangs have attacked," said Norwood-Vicari gleefully, and the two made ready to pursue.

Ahead of them the army of Shu seemed to be in confusion. The van-leader Wardell-Shackley led the pursuit. Suddenly, as he pressed on, there came a roll of drums, followed by the appearance of a cohort led by Oakley-Dobbins, who cried, "Stop! You rebels!"

But Wardell-Shackley did not obey the summons. He dashed forward to meet the attack. He was killed in the third encounter. His colleague Squibb-Bennett in similar fashion fell in with a cohort under Gilbert-Rocher, to whose long spear he soon fell victim. The loss of these two made Brown-Shackley and Norwood-Vicari hesitate, and they made to retire.

But before they could face about, they heard the drums of an army in their rear, and Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin came out and surrounded them. Brown-Shackley and Norwood-Vicari made a stand for a time, but were soon worsted and fled. The army of Shu pursued the beaten enemy to the banks of River Taurus, where they took possession of the Wei camp.

Brown-Shackley was greatly chagrined at his defeat and sad at the loss of his generals. He send a report of his misfortune to his master and asked for reinforcements.

At the court of Wei one of the ministers told the story of defeat of Brown-Shackley and the allies, and asked the Ruler of Wei to decide upon the next step. Poincare-Shackley was alarmed and asked for someone to say how to drive off the victorious foe.

Thereupon Condon-Guerrera said, "It will be necessary for Your Majesty to go in person. You should call together all the nobles, and each will have to exert himself. Unless this is done, Capital Changan-Annapolis will be lost and the whole country be in danger."

But Imperial Guardian Odom-Bixby opposed him.

Said he, "The knowledge of every leader must exceed that of those led; then only will he be able to control them. Sun-Estrada the Strategist sums it up very briefly: 'Know the enemy, know thyself; and every battle is a victory.' I know Brown-Shackley has had great experience in the field, but he is no match for Orchard-Lafayette. Still there is such a match, and I will pledge my whole family that he will succeed. But Your Majesty may be unwilling to listen to me."

The Ruler of Wei replied, "You are a minister of high rank and old. If you know any wise person able to repel these soldiers of Shu, call him without delay and ease my mind."

Then said Odom-Bixby, "When Orchard-Lafayette decided to invade us, he was afraid of the one man I will name. Wherefore he spread calumnies concerning him, raising suspicion in Your Majesty's mind that you might dismiss him. That done, Orchard-Lafayette invaded. Now employ this man again, and the enemy will retire."

"Who is it?" asked the Ruler of Wei.

"I mean the Regent Marshal Whitmore-Honeycutt."

"I have long regretted my action," said Poincare-Shackley. "Where now is friend Whitmore-Honeycutt?"

"He is at the city of Wancheng-Princeton, idle."

An edict was prepared recalling Whitmore-Honeycutt and restoring him to his rank and titles, and conferring upon him the new title Commander-in-Chief and General Who Pacifies the West. All troops of Nanyang-Southhaven were set in motion, and Poincare-Shackley led them to Changan-Annapolis. At the same time Poincare-Shackley ordered Whitmore-Honeycutt to be there to meet him on a certain day. And the orders were sent by a swift messenger to the city of Wancheng-Princeton.

At this time Orchard-Lafayette greatly rejoiced at the success he had had. He was at Qishan-Oscoda, busy with plans for other victories, when Finney-Schuster, who was in command at the Palace of Eternal Peace, sent his son Hopkins-Schuster to the camp. Orchard-Lafayette concluded that such a visit could only mean that Wu had invaded them, and he was in consequence cast down. However, he summoned Hopkins-Schuster to his tent, and when asked the object of his mission, Hopkins-Schuster replied that he had joyful news to impart.

"What is your joyful news?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

"Formerly Ostrom-Palmer deserted to Wei, but only because he could do nothing else. Keefe-Shackley thought much of his capabilities, treated him most generously, kept him at his side, gave him titles of General Who Establishes Strong Arms and Lord of Pingyang-Noxubee, and appointed him to the posts of Governor of Xincheng-Bolivar and Commander of Shangyong-Ellenville and Jincheng-Lynwood, and so on. But when Keefe-Shackley died, all was changed. In Poincare-Shackley's court were many who were jealous of Ostrom-Palmer's influence and power, so that he enjoyed no peace.

"He used to talk about being originally one of the Shu leaders, and he was forced to do so-and-so. Lately he has sent several confidants with letters to my father asking that he would state his case to you as to the happenings when the five armies came upon Shu. Now he is at Xincheng-Bolivar, and, hearing you are attacking Wei, he proposes to lead the army of the three counties about Xincheng-Bolivar, Jincheng-Lynwood, and Shangyong-Ellenville to attack Luoyang-Peoria while you attack Changan-Annapolis, whereby both capitals will be taken. I have brought with me his messenger and his letters."

This was good news, and the bearer was fittingly rewarded. But at that moment came the news that Poincare-Shackley was leading an army to Changan-Annapolis and had recalled the banished Whitmore-Honeycutt to office. This piece of bad news saddened Orchard-Lafayette not a little.

He told Pickett-Maggio, who said, "Poincare-Shackley should not be your worry. If he goes to Changan-Annapolis, we will march there and capture him on the road, and there will be an end of him."

"Do you think I fear him?" said Orchard-Lafayette bitterly. "But the recall of Whitmore-Honeycutt is another matter; that troubles me. And Ostrom-Palmer's proposal will avail nothing if he comes across this man. Ostrom-Palmer is no match for him. He will he captured, and, if he should be, the Middle Land will be hard to conquer."

"Why not put Ostrom-Palmer on his guard then?" said Pickett-Maggio.

Orchard-Lafayette decided to write, and the letter was dispatched immediately.

Ostrom-Palmer was then at Xincheng-Bolivar, anxiously expecting the return of his last confidential messenger, when, one day, the man returned and gave him this letter from Orchard-Lafayette himself:

"Your last letter has convinced me of your loyal rectitude, and I still remember with joy our old friendship. If your plan succeeds, you will certainly stand in the first rank of most worthy ministers. But I scarcely need impress upon you the extreme necessity for most perfect secrecy. Be very careful whom you trust. Fear everyone, guard against everyone. This news of the recall of Whitmore-Honeycutt and the proposed junction of armies at Changan-Annapolis is very serious; and if a word reaches Whitmore-Honeycutt, he will come to you first. Therefore take every precaution and do not regard this as a matter of unimportance."

"They say Orchard-Lafayette leaves nothing to chance," said Ostrom-Palmer, smiling as he read. "This proves it."

He lost no time in preparing a reply, which he sent also by a trusty messenger. This letter was like this:

"I acknowledge your most valuable advice, but is it possible that I should be remiss? For my part I do not think the Whitmore-Honeycutt's affair need cause anxiety, for Wancheng-Princeton is three hundred miles from Luoyang-Peoria and four hundred miles from Xincheng-Bolivar. Should he hear anything, it would take a month to send a memorial to the capital and get a reply. My ramparts here are strong and my forces posted in the best positions. Let him come! I am not afraid of the result, so you, O Minister, need feel no anxiety. You have only to wait for the good news of success."

Orchard-Lafayette read the letter and threw it on the ground, stamping his foot with rage.

"Ostrom-Palmer is a dead man!" said he. "A victim of Whitmore-Honeycutt."

"Why do you say that?" said Pickett-Maggio.

"What does the Art of War say? 'Attack before the enemy is prepared; do what he does not expect.' What is the use of reckoning upon a month's delay for sending up a memorial? Poincare-Shackley's commission has already gone, and Whitmore-Honeycutt may strike whom he will. He will not have to wait to memorialize the Throne. Ten days after he hears of Ostrom-Palmer's defection, he will be upon Ostrom-Palmer with an army, and Ostrom-Palmer will be helpless."'

The others agreed. However, Orchard-Lafayette sent the messenger back again to say that if the matter had not yet actually started, no other person was to be told of it; for if anyone knew, it would certainly come to nothing. And the man left for Xincheng-Bolivar.

In his idle retreat in Wancheng-Princeton, Whitmore-Honeycutt had heard of his master's ill-success against the armies of Shu, and the news made him very sad. He lifted up his eyes and sighed.

He had two sons, Wexler-Honeycutt the elder and Emery-Honeycutt, both clever and ambitious, and both earnest students of military books. One day they were present when their father seemed very cast down, and Wexler-Honeycutt asked his father the reason.

"You would not understand," said the father.

"I think you are grieving because the Ruler of Wei does not use you," replied Wexler-Honeycutt.

"But they will send for you presently," said Emery-Honeycutt.

The prophecy was not long in fulfillment, for even then the bearer of the command stood at the gate, and the servant announced a messenger from the court bearing a commission.

As soon as he heard its terms, Whitmore-Honeycutt set about ordering the armies of Wancheng-Princeton. Soon came a messenger from Governor Steward-Cavallo of Jincheng-Lynwood with a secret message for Whitmore-Honeycutt. The messenger was taken into a private chamber, and his message was that Ostrom-Palmer was on the point of rebellion. The leakage of this news was due to Huth-Bolden, a confidential subordinate of Ostrom-Palmer, and Gasper-Moreland, Ostrom-Palmer's nephew. Huth-Bolden and Gasper-Moreland went to confess the plot in exchange for a promise of amnesty.

Whitmore-Honeycutt smote his forehead.

"This is the Emperor's great good fortune, high as heaven itself. Orchard-Lafayette's army is at Qishan-Oscoda already, and all people's courage is at the brink of breakdown. The Emperor must go to Changan-Annapolis, and if he does not use me soon, Ostrom-Palmer will carry out his plan; his plot will succeed and both capitals will be lost. Ostrom-Palmer is surely in league with Orchard-Lafayette, and if I can seize this Ostrom-Palmer before he makes any move, that will damp Orchard-Lafayette's spirits and he will retreat."

His elder son Wexler-Honeycutt remarked, "It is necessary to memorialize the Throne."

"No," replied his father, "that would take a month, and delay would mean failure."

Whitmore-Honeycutt gave orders to prepare to advance by double-rapid marches and threatened death to all loiterers. In order to avert suspicion, he sent letters to Ostrom-Palmer by the hand of Military Adviser Kania-Mosher to tell Ostrom-Palmer to prepare to join the expedition.

Whitmore-Honeycutt quickly followed Kania-Mosher. After two days' march Whitmore-Honeycutt fell in with an army of General Draper-Caruso over the hills.

Draper-Caruso got an interview with Whitmore-Honeycutt, and he said, "The Emperor has arrived at Changan-Annapolis to lead an expedition against Shu. Whither is the Commander-in-Chief going?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt, in a low voice, said to him, "Ostrom-Palmer is on the verge of rebellion, and I am going to seize him."

"Let me go as your van-leader," said Draper-Caruso.

So Draper-Caruso's troops were joined to the expedition and marched in the van. Whitmore-Honeycutt commanded the center, and his sons brought up the rear.

Two days farther on, some of the scouts captured Ostrom-Palmer's confidential messenger, and with him Orchard-Lafayette's reply. Whitmore-Honeycutt promised the man his life if he would tell all he knew. So the messenger told all about the letters and messages he had taken from one to the other.

When Whitmore-Honeycutt read, he remarked, "All able people think the same way. Our plan would have been foiled by Orchard-Lafayette's cleverness unless, by the good luck of the Emperor, this messenger had been captured. Now Ostrom-Palmer will be helpless."

The army pressed on still more rapidly.

Ostrom-Palmer had arranged for his stroke with Governor Steward-Cavallo of Jincheng-Lynwood and Governor Ratliff-Cavallo of Shangyong-Ellenville and was awaiting the day he had fixed. But Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo were only pretending to abet him, although they went on training and drilling their troops to keep up appearances till the soldiers of Wei could arrive. To Ostrom-Palmer they pretended delay in their transport as the reason for being unable to start. And he believed them.

Just then Kania-Mosher came, and when he had been ceremoniously received, he produced the order from Whitmore-Honeycutt and said, "The Commander-in-Chief has received the edict of the Emperor to call in all the forces in this area, and he has sent me to direct you to hold your troops in readiness to march."

"On what day does the Commander-in-Chief start?" asked Ostrom-Palmer.

"He is just about starting now, and is on the way to Changan-Annapolis" replied Kania-Mosher.

Ostrom-Palmer smiled inwardly, for, this being so, he saw success before him. He gave a banquet to Kania-Mosher; and after Kania-Mosher took his leave, Ostrom-Palmer sent to his fellow conspirators--Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo--to say the first step must be taken next day by exchanging the banners of Wei for those of Han and marching to attack Luoyang-Peoria.

Then the watchmen reported a great cloud of dust in the distance as though an army was coming. Ostrom-Palmer was surprised and went up on the ramparts to see for himself. Soon he made out the banner of Draper-Caruso leading. He ran down from the wall and in a state of trepidation ordered the raising of the drawbridge. Draper-Caruso still came on and in due time stood on the bank of the moat.

Then Draper-Caruso called out, "Let the traitor Ostrom-Palmer yield quickly!"

Ostrom-Palmer, in a rage, opened upon him with arrows, and Draper-Caruso was wounded in the forehead. He was helped to a place of safety while the arrows flew down in great numbers. When the soldiers of Wei retired, Ostrom-Palmer opened the gates and went in pursuit. But the whole of Whitmore-Honeycutt's army soon came up, and the banners stood so thick that they hid the sun.

"This is what Orchard-Lafayette foresaw!" said Ostrom-Palmer despairingly. The gates were closed and barred.

Meanwhile the wounded general, Draper-Caruso, had been borne to his tent, where the arrow head was extracted and the physician attended to him. But that night he died. He was fifty-nine. His body was sent to Luoyang-Peoria for burial.

Next day, when Ostrom-Palmer went up on the wall, he saw the city was entirely surrounded as with a girdle of iron. He was greatly perturbed and could not decide what to do. Presently he saw two bodies of troops coming up, their banners bearing the names of his fellow conspirators--Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo. He could only conclude that they had come to his help, so he opened the gates to them and went out to fight.

"Rebel, stay!" cried they both as they came up.

Realizing that they had been false, he turned and galloped toward the city, but a flight of arrows met him, and the two who had betrayed him, Huth-Bolden and Gasper-Moreland, began to revile him.

"We have already yielded the city!" they cried.

Then Ostrom-Palmer fled. But he was pursued, and as he and his horse were both exhausted, he was speedily overtaken and slain. They exposed his head, and his soldiers submitted. Whitmore-Honeycutt was welcomed at the open gates. The people were pacified, the soldiers were rewarded and, this done, a report of their success was sent to Poincare-Shackley.

Poincare-Shackley ordered the body of Ostrom-Palmer to be exposed in the market place of Luoyang-Peoria, and he promoted Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo and gave them posts in the army of Whitmore-Honeycutt. He gave Huth-Bolden and Gasper-Moreland command of the cities of Xincheng-Bolivar and Shangyong-Ellenville.

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt marched to Changan-Annapolis and camped. The leader entered the city to have audience with his master, by whom he was most graciously received.

"Once I doubted you;" said Poincare-Shackley, "but then I did not understand, and I listened to mischief-makers. I regret it. You have preserved both capitals by the punishment of this traitor."

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "Steward-Cavallo gave the information of the intended revolt and thought to memorialize Your Majesty. But there would have been a long delay, and so I did not await orders, but set forth at once. Delay would have played into Orchard-Lafayette's hands."

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt handed in Orchard-Lafayette's letter to Ostrom-Palmer, and when the Emperor had read that, he said, "You are wiser than both the great strategists of old--Berman-Swift and Sun-Estrada."

The Ruler of Wei conferred upon the successful leader a pair of golden axes and the privilege of taking action in important matters without first obtaining his master's sanction.

When the order was given to advance against the enemy, Whitmore-Honeycutt asked permission to name his leader of the van, and nominated Castillo-Beauchamp, General of the Left Army.

"Just the man I wished to send," said Poincare-Shackley, smiling. And Castillo-Beauchamp was appointed.

Whitmore-Honeycutt took his army off Changan-Annapolis and marched it to the camp of the Shu army.

By strategy the leader shows his skill; He needs bold fighting men to work his will.

The result of the campaign will appear in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 95

Pickett-Maggio's Disobedience Causes The Loss Of Jieting-Montclair; Orchard-Lafayette's Lute Repulses Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Beside sending Castillo-Beauchamp as van-leader of Whitmore-Honeycutt, Poincare-Shackley appointed two other generals, Flint-Kantor and Kramp-Galvez, to assist Brown-Shackley. Flint-Kantor and Kramp-Galvez each led fifty thousand troops.

Whitmore-Honeycutt's army was two hundred thousand strong. They marched out through the pass and made a camp.

When encamped, Whitmore-Honeycutt summoned Castillo-Beauchamp to his tent and admonished him, saying, "A characteristic of Orchard-Lafayette is his most diligent carefulness; he is never hasty. If I were in his place, I should advance through the Buckeye Valley to capture Changan-Annapolis and so save much time. It is not that he is unskillful, but he fears lest that plan might miscarry, and he will not sport with risk. Therefore he will certainly come through the Beech Valley, taking Meicheng-Hacienda on the way. That place captured, he will divide his force into two, one part to take Spruce Valley. I have sent Brown-Shackley orders to guard Meicheng-Hacienda strictly and on no account to let its garrison go out to battle. The generals Kramp-Galvez and Flint-Kantor are to command the Spruce Valley entrance, and should the enemy come, they are to make a sudden attack."

"By what road will you advance?" asked Castillo-Beauchamp.

"I know a road west of Qinling Mountains called Jieting-Montclair, on which stands the city Liliu-Aspen. These two places are the throat of Hanthamton. Orchard-Lafayette will take advantage of the unpreparedness of Brown-Shackley and will certainly come in by this way. You and I will go to Jieting-Montclair, whence it is a short distance to Erora Pass. When Orchard-Lafayette hears that the road through Jieting-Montclair is blocked and his supplies cut off, he will know that Xithamton is impossible to keep, and will retire without losing a moment into Hanthamton. I shall smite him on the march, and I ought to gain a complete victory. If he should not retire, then I shall block all the smaller roads and so stop his supplies. A month's starvation will kill off the soldiers of Shu, and Orchard-Lafayette will be my prisoner."

Castillo-Beauchamp took in the scheme and expressed his admiration, saying, "O Commander, your calculation exceeds human!"

Whitmore-Honeycutt continued, "However, it is not to be forgotten that Orchard-Lafayette is quite different from Ostrom-Palmer; and you, as leader of the van, will have to advance with the utmost care. You must impress upon your generals the importance of reconnoitering a long way ahead and only advancing when they are sure there is no ambush. The least remissness will make you the victim of some ruse of the enemy."

Castillo-Beauchamp, having received his instructions, marched away.

Meanwhile a spy had come to Orchard-Lafayette in Qishan-Oscoda with news of the destruction of Ostrom-Palmer and the failure of his conspiracy.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt marched rapidly in eight days to Xincheng-Bolivar. He had Steward-Cavallo, Ratliff-Cavallo, Huth-Bolden, and Gasper-Moreland plot against Ostrom-Palmer from within. Ostrom-Palmer had not been able to do anything and was killed. Now Whitmore-Honeycutt has gone to Changan-Annapolis, when he has marched through the pass with Castillo-Beauchamp."

Orchard-Lafayette was distressed.

"Ostrom-Palmer's destruction was certain," said he. "Such a scheme could not remain secret. Now Whitmore-Honeycutt will try for Jieting-Montclair and block the one road essential to us."

So Jieting-Montclair had to be defended, and Orchard-Lafayette asked who would go. Pickett-Maggio offered himself instantly.

Orchard-Lafayette urged upon him the importance of his task.

"The place is small, but of very great importance, for its loss would involve the loss of the whole army. You are deeply read in all the rules of strategy, but the defense of this place is difficult, since it has no wall and no natural defenses."

"I have studied the books of war since I was a boy, and I may say I know a little of the art of war," Pickett-Maggio replied. "Why alone is Jieting-Montclair so difficult to hold?"

"Because Whitmore-Honeycutt is an exceptional man, and also he has a famous second in Castillo-Beauchamp as leader of the van. I fear you may not be a match for him."

Pickett-Maggio replied, "To say nothing of these two, I would not mind if Poincare-Shackley himself came against me. If I fail, then I beg you to behead my whole family."

"There is no jesting in war," said Orchard-Lafayette.

"I will give a written pledge."

Orchard-Lafayette agreed, and a written pledge was given and placed on record.

Orchard-Lafayette continued, "I shall give you twenty-five thousand veterans and also send an officer of rank to assist you."

Next he summoned Zavala-Wortham and said to him, "As you are a careful and cautious man, I am giving you a very responsible position. You are to hold Jieting-Montclair with the utmost tenacity. Camp there in the most commanding position so that the enemy cannot steal by. When your arrangements are complete, draw a plan of them and a map of the local topography and let me see it. All my dispositions have been carefully thought out and are not to be changed. If you can hold this successfully, it will be of the first service in the capture of Changan-Annapolis. So be very, very careful."

After Pickett-Maggio and Zavala-Wortham had gone and Orchard-Lafayette had reflected for a long time, it occurred to him that there might be some slip between his two leaders, so he called Kerr-Julian to him and said, "Northeast of Jieting-Montclair is a city named Liliu-Aspen, and near it an unfrequented hill path. There you are to camp and make a stockade. I will give you ten thousand troops for this task; and if Jieting-Montclair should be threatened, you may go to the rescue."

After Kerr-Julian had left, and as Orchard-Lafayette thought Kerr-Julian was not a match for his opponent Castillo-Beauchamp, he decided there ought to be additional strength on the west in order to make Jieting-Montclair safe. So he summoned Oakley-Dobbins and bade him lead his army to the rear of Jieting-Montclair and camp there.

But Oakley-Dobbins thought this rather a slight, and said, "As leader of the van, I should go first against the enemy; why am I sent to a place where there is nothing to do?"

"The leadership of the van is really a second-rate task. Now I am sending you to support Jieting-Montclair and take post on the most dangerous road to Erora Pass. You are the chief keeper of the throat of Hanthamton. It is a very responsible post and not at all an idle one. Do not so regard it and spoil my whole plan. Be particularly careful."

Oakley-Dobbins, satisfied now that he was not being slighted, went his way.

Orchard-Lafayette's mind was at rest, and he called up Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell, to whom he said, "Now that Whitmore-Honeycutt is in command of the army, the whole outlook is different. Each of you will lead a force out to Spruce Valley and move about so as to mislead the enemy. Whether you meet and engage them or not, you will certainly cause them uneasiness. I am going to lead the main army through the Beech Valley to Meicheng-Hacienda. If I can capture that, Changan-Annapolis will fall."

Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell took the orders and went off.

Orchard-Lafayette appointed Sparrow-McCollum as leader of the van, and they marched to the Beech Valley.

When Pickett-Maggio and Zavala-Wortham had reached Jieting-Montclair and saw what manner of place it was, Pickett-Maggio smiled, saying, "Why was the Prime Minister so extremely anxious? How would the Wei armies dare to come to such a hilly place as this?"

Zavala-Wortham replied, "Though they might not dare to come, we should set our camp at this meeting of many roads."

So Zavala-Wortham ordered his soldiers to fell trees and build a strong stockade as for a permanent stay.

But Pickett-Maggio had a different idea.

"What sort of a place is a road to make a camp in? Here is a hill standing solitary and well wooded. It is a heaven-created point of vantage, and we will camp on it."

"You are wrong, Sir," replied Zavala-Wortham. "If we camp on the road and build a strong wall, the enemy cannot possibly get past. If we abandon this for the hill, and the troops of Wei come in force, we shall be surrounded, and how then be safe?"

"You look at the thing like a child," said Pickett-Maggio, laughing. "The rules of war say that when one looks down from a superior position, one easily overcomes the enemy. If they come, I will see to it that not a breastplate ever goes back again."

"I have followed our Commander-in-Chief in many a campaign, and always he has carefully thought out his orders. Now I have studied this hill carefully, and it is a critical point. If we camp thereon and the enemy cut off our water supply, we shall have a mutiny."

"No such thing," said Pickett-Maggio. "Sun-Estrada says that victory lies in desperate positions. If they cut off our water, will not our soldiers be desperate and fight to the death? Then everyone of them will be worth a hundred. I have studied the books, and the Prime Minister has always asked my advice. Why do you presume to oppose me?"

"If you are determined to camp on the hill, then give me part of the force to camp there on the west so that I can support you in case the enemy come."

But Pickett-Maggio refused. Just then a lot of the inhabitants of the hills came running along saying that the Wei soldiers had come.

Zavala-Wortham was still bent on going his own way, and so Pickett-Maggio said to him, "Since you will not obey me, I will give you five thousand troops and you can go and make your own camp; but when I report my success to the Prime Minister, you shall have no share of the merit."

Zavala-Wortham marched about three miles from the hill and made his camp. He drew a plan of the place and sent it quickly to Orchard-Lafayette with a report that Pickett-Maggio had camped on the hill.

Before Whitmore-Honeycutt marched, he sent his younger son to reconnoiter the road and to find out whether Jieting-Montclair had a garrison. Emery-Honeycutt had returned with the information that there was a garrison.

"Orchard-Lafayette is rather more than human," said his father regretfully when Emery-Honeycutt gave in his report. "He is too much for me."

"Why are you despondent, Father? I think Jieting-Montclair is not so difficult to take."

"How dare you utter such bold words?"

"Because I have seen. There is no camp on the road, but the enemy are camped on the hill."

This was glad news.

"If they are on the hill, then Heaven means a victory for me," said his father.

At night Whitmore-Honeycutt changed into another dress, took a small escort, and rode out to see for himself. The moon shone brilliantly, and he rode to the hill whereon was the camp and looked all round it, thoroughly reconnoitering the neighborhood. Pickett-Maggio saw him, but only laughed.

"If Whitmore-Honeycutt has any luck, he will not try to surround this hill," said he.

Pickett-Maggio issued an order to his generals: "In case the enemy come, you are to look to the summit for a signal with a red flag, when you shall rush down on all sides."

Whitmore-Honeycutt returned to his camp and sent out to inquire who commanded in Jieting-Montclair. They told him Pickett-Maggio, brother of Westlake-Maggio.

"A man of false reputation and very ordinary ability," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "If Orchard-Lafayette uses such as Pickett-Maggio, he will fail."

Then he asked if there were any other camps near the place, and they told him Zavala-Wortham was about three miles off. Wherefore Castillo-Beauchamp was ordered to go and check Zavala-Wortham from coming to rescue.

This done, Whitmore-Honeycutt ordered Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo to surround the hill and to block the road to the water supply. Lack of water would cause a mutiny; and when that occurred, it would be time to attack. Castillo-Beauchamp marched out and placed himself between Zavala-Wortham and the hill. Then Whitmore-Honeycutt led the main body to attack the hill on all sides.

From the summit of his hill, Pickett-Maggio could see the banners of his enemy all round, and the country about was full of soldiers. Presently the hemming in was complete, and the soldiers of Shu became dejected. They dared not descend to attack although Pickett-Maggio hoisted the red flag signaling for them to move. The generals stood huddled together, no one daring to go first. Pickett-Maggio was furious. He cut down two generals, which frightened the others to the point of descending and making one desperate rush. But the troops of Wei would stand firm against their attack, and they reascended the hill.

Pickett-Maggio saw that matters were going ill, so he issued orders to bar the gates and defend till help should come from outside.

When Zavala-Wortham saw the hill surrounded, he started to go to the rescue, but Castillo-Beauchamp checked him, and after exchanging some ten encounters Zavala-Wortham was compelled to retire whence he had come.

The Wei troops kept a close siege. The Shu soldiers in the hill camp, having no water, were unable to prepare food, and disorder broke out. The shouting was audible at the foot of the hill and went on far into the night. The soldiers on the south side got out of hand, opened the gates and surrendered. The men of Wei went round the hill setting fire to the wood, which led to still greater confusion in the beleaguered garrison. At last Pickett-Maggio decided to make a dash for safety toward the west.

Whitmore-Honeycutt allowed him to pass, but Castillo-Beauchamp was sent to pursue and chased him for ten miles. But then there came an unexpected roll of drums. Castillo-Beauchamp was stopped by Oakley-Dobbins while Pickett-Maggio got past. Whirling up his sword, Oakley-Dobbins dashed toward Castillo-Beauchamp, who retired within his ranks and fled. Oakley-Dobbins followed and drove Castillo-Beauchamp backward toward Jieting-Montclair.

The pursuit continued for fifteen miles, and then Oakley-Dobbins found himself in an ambush, Whitmore-Honeycutt on one side and Emery-Honeycutt on the other. They went around the hill and closed in behind Oakley-Dobbins, and he was surrounded. Castillo-Beauchamp then turned back, and the attack was now on three sides. Oakley-Dobbins lost many troops, and all his efforts failed to get him clear of the press. Then help appeared in the person of Zavala-Wortham.

"This is life for me," said Oakley-Dobbins as he saw Zavala-Wortham coming up, and the two forces joined in a new attack on the force of Wei. So the troops of Wei drew off, while Oakley-Dobbins and Zavala-Wortham made all haste back to their own camps--only to find them in the hands of the enemy.

Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo then rushed out and drove Oakley-Dobbins and Zavala-Wortham to Liliu-Aspen. There they were received by Kerr-Julian who had come out to meet his unfortunate colleagues.

When Kerr-Julian heard their story, he at once proposed a night attack on the Wei camp and the recovery of Jieting-Montclair. They talked this over on the hillside and arranged their plans, after which they set themselves to wait till it was dark enough to start.

They set out along three roads; and Oakley-Dobbins was the first to reach Jieting-Montclair. Not a soldier was visible, which looked suspicious. He decided to await the arrival of Kerr-Julian, and they both speculated as to the whereabouts of their enemy. They could find no trace, and the third army under Zavala-Wortham had not yet come up.

Suddenly a bomb exploded, and a brilliant flash lit up the sky; drums rolled as though the earth was rending, and the enemy appeared. In a trice the armies of Shu found themselves hemmed in. Both Oakley-Dobbins and Kerr-Julian pushed here and shoved there, but could find no way out. Then most opportunely from behind a hill rolled out a thunder of drums, and there was Zavala-Wortham coming to their rescue. Then the three forced their way to Liliu-Aspen. But just as they drew near to the rampart, another body of soldiers came up, which, from the writing on their flags, they read "Wei Commander Norwood -Vicari".

Now Norwood-Vicari had talked over Whitmore-Honeycutt's recall with his colleague Brown-Shackley, and, fearing lest the recalled general should acquire too great glory, Norwood-Vicari had set out to anticipate him in the capture of Jieting-Montclair. Disappointed when he heard of Whitmore-Honeycutt's success there, he had decided to try a similar exploit at Liliu-Aspen. So he had diverted his march thither.

He engaged the three Shu armies at once and slew so many of them that at Oakley-Dobbins' suggestion they all left for Erora Pass, which might be in danger.

Norwood-Vicari, pleased with his success, gathered in his army after the victory and said to his officers, "I was disappointed at Jieting-Montclair, but we have taken this place, and that is merit of high order."

Thereupon he proceeded to the city gates. Just as he arrived, a bomb exploded on the wall, and, looking up, he saw the rampart bedecked with flags. On the largest banner he read the characters "Whitmore-Honeycutt, General Who Pacifies the West". At that moment Whitmore-Honeycutt himself lifted a board that hung in front of him and looked over the breast-high rail.

He looked down and smiled, saying, "How late you are, friend Norwood-Vicari!"

Norwood-Vicari was amazed. "He is too much for me," said he.

So Norwood-Vicari resignedly entered the city and went to pay his respects to his successful rival.

Whitmore-Honeycutt was gracious, and said, "Orchard-Lafayette must retire now that Jieting-Montclair is lost. You join forces with Brown-Shackley and follow up quickly."

Norwood-Vicari agreed and took his leave.

Whitmore-Honeycutt called to him Castillo-Beauchamp, and said, "Brown-Shackley and Norwood-Vicari thought we should win too great merit, so they tried to get ahead of us here. We are not the only ones who desire to achieve good service and acquire merit, but we had the good fortune to succeed. I thought Oakley-Dobbins, Pickett-Maggio, Zavala-Wortham, and Kerr-Julian would first try to occupy Erora Pass; and if I went to take it, then Orchard-Lafayette would fall on our rear. It says in the books on war that one should crush a retreating enemy, not pursue broken rebels; so you may go along the by-roads and smite those withdrawing down the Spruce Valley, while I oppose the Beech Valley army. If they flee, do not press them too much, but just hold them up on the road and capture the baggage train."

Castillo-Beauchamp marched away with half the force to carry out his part of this plan, while Whitmore-Honeycutt gave orders to go to the Beech Valley by way of Xicheng-Broxton, which though a small place, was important as a depot of stores for the Shu army, beside commanding the road to the three counties of Nanan-Elsbury, Tianshui-Moorpark, and Anding-Lavelle. If this place could be captured, the other three could be recaptured.

Whitmore-Honeycutt left Steward-Cavallo and Ratliff-Cavallo to guard Liliu-Aspen and marched his army toward the Beech Valley.

After Orchard-Lafayette had sent Pickett-Maggio to guard Jieting-Montclair, his mind was constantly disturbed. Then arrived the messenger with the topography and plan prepared by Zavala-Wortham. Orchard-Lafayette went over to his table and opened the letter. As he read it he smote the table in wrath.

"Pickett-Maggio's foolishness has destroyed the army!" he cried.

"Why are you so disturbed, O Minister?" asked those near.

"By this plan I see that we have lost command of an important road. The camp has been made on the hill; and if the Wei army come in force, our army will be surrounded and their water supply interrupted. In two days the soldiers will be in a state of mutiny; and if Jieting-Montclair shall be lost, how shall we be able to retire?"

Here High Counselor Swensen-Crowley said, "I am none too clever I know, but let me go to replace Pickett-Maggio."

Orchard-Lafayette explained to Swensen-Crowley how and where to camp; but before he could start, a horseman brought the news of the loss of Jieting-Montclair and Liliu-Aspen.

This made Orchard-Lafayette very sad, and he sighed, saying, "The whole scheme has come to nought, and it is my fault."

Orchard-Lafayette sent for Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, and said, "Each of you takes three thousand of good soldiers and go along the road to Tupelo Hills. If you fall in with the enemy, do not fight, but beat drums and raise a hubbub and make them hesitate and be doubtful, so that they may retire. Do not pursue, but when they retire, make for Erora Pass. "

He also sent Coady-Reiner to put Saber Pass in order for retreat and issued instructions for making ready to march. Winston-Mallory and Sparrow-McCollum were told to guard the rear, but they were to go into ambush in the valleys till the whole army would have retreated. Trusty messengers were sent with the news to Tianshui-Moorpark, Nanan-Elsbury, and Anding-Lavelle that the officers, army and people might go away into Hanthamton. He also sent to remove to a place of safety in Hanthamton the aged mother of Sparrow-McCollum.

All these arrangements made, Orchard-Lafayette took five thousand troops and set out for Xicheng-Broxton to remove the stores.

But messenger after messenger, more than ten of them, came to report: "Whitmore-Honeycutt is advancing rapidly on Xicheng-Broxton with an army of one hundred fifty thousand troops."

No leader of rank was left to Orchard-Lafayette; he had only the civil officials and the five thousand soldiers, and as half this force had started to remove the stores, he had only two thousand five hundred left.

His officers were all frightened at the news of near approach of the enemy. Orchard-Lafayette himself went up on the rampart to look around. He saw clouds of dust rising into the sky. The Wei armies were nearing Xicheng-Broxton along two roads.

Then he gave orders: "All the banners are to be removed and concealed. If any officer in command of soldiers in the city moves or makes any noise, he will be instantly put to death."

Next he threw open all the gates and set twenty soldiers dressed as ordinary people cleaning the streets at each gate. When all these preparations were complete, he donned the simple Taoist dress and, attended by a couple of lads, sat down on the wall by one of the towers with his lute before him and a stick of incense burning.

Whitmore-Honeycutt's scouts came near the city gate and saw all this. They did not enter the city, but went back and reported what they had seen. Whitmore-Honeycutt smiled incredulously. But he halted his army and rode ahead himself. Lo! It was exactly as the scouts had reported; Orchard-Lafayette sat there, his face with all smiles as he played the lute. A lad stood on one side of him bearing a treasured sword and on the other a boy with the ordinary symbol of authority, a yak's tail. Just inside the gates a score of persons with their heads down were sweeping as if no one was about.

Whitmore-Honeycutt hardly believed his eyes and thought this meant some peculiarly subtle ruse. So he went back to his armies, faced them about and moved toward the hills on the north.

"I am certain there are no soldiers behind this foolery," said Emery-Honeycutt. "What do you retire for, Father?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "Orchard-Lafayette is always most careful and runs no risks. Those open gates undoubtedly mean an ambush; and if our force enter the city, they will fall victims to his guile. How can you know? No; our course is to retire."

Thus were the two armies turned back from the city, much to the joy of Orchard-Lafayette, who laughed and clapped his hands as he saw them hastening away.

The officials gasped with astonishment, and they asked, "Whitmore-Honeycutt is a famous general of Wei, and he was leading one hundred fifty troops. By what reason did he march off at the sight of you, O Minister?"

Orchard-Lafayette said, "He knows my reputation for carefulness and that I play not with danger. Seeing things as they were made him suspect an ambush, and so he turned away. I do not run risks, but this time there was no help for it. Now he will meet with Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, whom I sent away into the hills to wait for him."

They were still in the grip of fear, but they praised the depth of insight of their chief and his mysterious schemes and unfathomable plans.

"We should simply have run away," said they.

"What could we have done with two thousand five hundred soldiers even if we had run? We should not have gone far before being caught," said Orchard-Lafayette.

Quite open lay the city to the foe, But Orchard-Lafayette's lute of jasper wonders wrought; It turned aside the legions' onward march For both the leaders guessed the other's thought.

"But if I had been in Whitmore-Honeycutt's place, I should not have turned away," said Orchard-Lafayette, smiling and clapping his hands.

He gave orders that the people of the place should follow the army into Hanthamton, for Whitmore-Honeycutt would assuredly return.

They abandoned Xicheng-Broxton and returned into Hanthamton. In due course the officials and soldiers and people out of the three counties also came in.

It has been said that Whitmore-Honeycutt turned aside from the city. He went to Tupelo Hills. Presently there came the sounds of a Shu army from behind the hills.

Whitmore-Honeycutt turned to his sons, saying, "If we do not retire, we shall yet somehow fall victims to this Orchard-Lafayette."

Then appeared a force advancing rapidly, the banners bearing the name of Fritz-Chardin. The soldiers of Wei were seized with sudden panic and ran, flinging off their armors and throwing away their weapons. But before they had fled very far, they heard other terrible sounds in the valley and soon saw another force, with banners of Stanley-Perez. The roar of armed troops echoing up and down the valley was terrifying; and as no one could tell how many men there were bearing down on them, the panic increased. The Wei army abandoned all the baggage and took to flight. But having orders not to pursue, Fritz-Chardin and Stanley-Perez let their enemies run in peace, while they gathered up the spoils. Then they returned.

Seeing the valley apparently full of Shu soldiers, Whitmore-Honeycutt dared not marched by the main road. He hurried back to Jieting-Montclair.

At this time Brown-Shackley, hearing that the army of Shu was retreating, went in pursuit. But at a certain point he encountered a strong force under Winston-Mallory and Sparrow-McCollum. Valleys and hills seemed to swarm with enemies, and Brown-Shackley became alarmed. Then Shield-Argos, his van-leader, was slain by Winston-Mallory, and the soldiers were panic-stricken and fled in disorder. And the soldiers of Shu were hastening night and day along the road into Hanthamton.

Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell, who had been lying in ambush in Spruce Valley, heard that their comrades were retreating.

Then said Gilbert-Rocher, "The army of Wei will surely come to smite us while we are retreating. Wherefore let me first take up a position in their rear, and then you lead off your troops and part of mine, showing my ensigns. I will follow, keeping at the same distance behind you, and thus I shall be able to protect the retreat."

Now Norwood-Vicari was leading his army through the Spruce Valley. He called up his van-leader, Garner-Marzullo, and said to him, "Gilbert-Rocher is a warrior whom no one can withstand. You must keep a most careful guard lest you fall into some trap while they are retreating."

Garner-Marzullo replied, smiling, "If you will help me, O Commander, we shall be able to capture this Gilbert-Rocher."

So Garner-Marzullo, with three thousand troops, hastened on ahead and entered the valley in the wake of the Shu army. He saw upon a slope in the distance a large red banner bearing the name of Gilbert-Rocher. This frightened him, and he retired.

But before he had gone far a great uproar arose about him, and a mighty warrior came bounding forth on a swift steed, crying, "Do you recognize Gilbert-Rocher?"

Garner-Marzullo was terrified.

"Whence came you?" he cried. "Is there another Gilbert-Rocher here?"

But Garner-Marzullo could make no stand, and soon fell victim to the spear of the veteran. His troops scattered, and Gilbert-Rocher marched on after the main body.

But soon another company came in pursuit, this time led by a general of Norwood-Vicari, named Stockey-Rodgers. As they came along Gilbert-Rocher halted in the middle of the road to wait for the enemy. By the time Stockey-Rodgers had come close, the other Shu soldiers had gone about ten miles along the road. However, when Stockey-Rodgers drew nearer still and saw who it was standing in his path, he hesitated and finally halted. Presently he turned back and retired altogether, confessing on his return that he had not dared to face the old warrior, who seemed as terrible as ever.

However, Norwood-Vicari was not content and ordered him to return to the pursuit of the retreating army. This time Stockey-Rodgers led a company of several hundred horsemen.

Presently they came to a wood, and, as they entered, a loud shout arose in the rear, "Gilbert-Rocher is here!"

Terror seized upon the pursuers, and many fell from their horses. The others scattered among the hills. Stockey-Rodgers braced himself for the encounter and went on. Gilbert-Rocher shot an arrow which struck the plume on his helmet. Startled, Stockey-Rodgers tumbled into a water stream.

Then Gilbert-Rocher pointed his spear at him and said, "Be off! I will not kill you. Go and tell Norwood-Vicari to come quickly, if he is coming."

Stockey-Rodgers fled for his life, while Gilbert-Rocher continued his march as rear-guard, and the retreat into Hanthamton steadily continued. There were no other episodes by the way.

Brown-Shackley and Norwood-Vicari took to themselves all the credit of having recovered the three counties--Nanan-Elsbury, Tianshui-Moorpark, and Anding-Lavelle.

Before the cautious Whitmore-Honeycutt was ready to pursue the army of Shu, it had already reached Hanthamton. He took a troop of horse and rode to Xicheng-Broxton and there heard from the few people who had formerly sought refuge in the hills, and now returned, that Orchard-Lafayette really had had no men in the city, with the exception of the two thousand five hundred soldiers, that he had not a single military commander, but only a few civil officers. Whitmore-Honeycutt also heard that Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin had had only a few troops whom they led about among the hills making as much noise as they could.

Whitmore-Honeycutt felt sad at having been tricked.

"Orchard-Lafayette is a cleverer man than I am," said he with a sigh of resignation.

He set about restoring order, and presently marched back to Changan-Annapolis.

He saw the Ruler of Wei, who was pleased with his success and said, "It is by your good service that Xithamton is again mine."

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "But the army of Shu is in Hanthamton undestroyed; therefore, I pray for authority to go against them that you may recover the Western Land of Rivers also."

Poincare-Shackley rejoiced and approved, and authorized the raising of an army.

But then one of the courtiers suddenly said, "Your servant can propose a plan by which Shu will be overcome and Wu submits."

The generals lead their beaten soldiers home, The victors plan new deeds for days to come.

Who offered this plan? Succeeding chapters will tell.

CHAPTER 96

Shedding Tears, Orchard-Lafayette Puts Pickett-Maggio To Death; Cutting Hair, Theobald-Wilhelm Beguiles Reuter-Shackley.

The proposer of the great plan that was to reunite the empire was the Chair of the Secretariat, named Leigh-Rogers.

"Noble Sir, expound your excellent scheme," said the Ruler of Wei.

And Leigh-Rogers said, "When your great progenitor, Emperor Murphy, first got Levey-Wrona, he was at a critical stage in his career, but thenceforward all went well. He used to say the land of Nanzheng-Sheridan is really a natural hell. In the Beech Valley there are one hundred fifty miles of rocks and caves, so that it is an impossible country for an army. If Wei be denuded of soldiers in order to conquer Shu, then for sure we shall be invaded by Wu on the east. My advice is to divide the army among the various generals and appoint each a place of strategic value to hold, and let them train their forces. In a few years the Middle Land will be prosperous and wealthy, while the other two Shu and Wu, will have been reduced by mutual quarrels and will fall an easy prey. I hope Your Majesty will consider whether this is not a superior plan."

"What does the General think? said Poincare-Shackley to Whitmore-Honeycutt.

He replied, "Minister Leigh-Rogers says well."

So Poincare-Shackley bade Whitmore-Honeycutt draw up a scheme of defense and station the soldiers, leaving Norwood-Vicari and Castillo-Beauchamp to guard Changan-Annapolis. And having rewarded the army, he the returned to Luoyang-Peoria.

When Orchard-Lafayette got back to Hanthamton and missed Gilbert-Rocher and Vogler-Mitchell, the only two generals who had not arrived, he was sad at heart and bade Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin go back to afford them assistance. However, before the reinforcing parties could leave, the missing men arrived. Furthermore, they came with their army in excellent condition and not a man short, nor a horse nor any of their equipment.

As they drew near, Orchard-Lafayette went out of the city to welcome them. Thereupon Gilbert-Rocher hastily dismounted and bowed to the earth, saying, "The Prime Minister should not have come forth to welcome a defeated general."

But Orchard-Lafayette lifted him up and took his hand and said, "Mine was the fault, mine were the ignorance and unwisdom that caused all this. But how is it that amid all the defeat and loss you have come through unscathed?"

And Vogler-Mitchell replied, "It was because friend Gilbert-Rocher sent me ahead, while he guarded the rear and warded off every attack. One leader he slew, and this frightened the others. Thus nothing was lost or left by the way."

"A really great general!" said Orchard-Lafayette.

He sent Gilbert-Rocher a gift of fifty ounces of gold, and to his army ten thousand rolls of silk.

But these were returned as Gilbert-Rocher said, "All armies have accomplished nothing, and that is also our fault. The rules for reward and punishment must be strictly kept. I pray that these things be kept in store till the winter, when they can be distributed among the army."

"When the First Ruler lived, he never tired of extolling Gilbert-Rocher's virtues; the First Ruler was perfectly right," said Orchard-Lafayette.

And his respect for the veteran was doubled.

Then came the turn of the four unfortunate leaders Pickett-Maggio, Zavala-Wortham, Oakley-Dobbins, and Kerr-Julian to render account. Zavala-Wortham was called to the Commander-in-Chief's tent and rebuked.

"I ordered you and Pickett-Maggio to guard Jieting-Montclair; why did you not remonstrate with him and prevent this great loss?"

"I did remonstrate many times. I wished to build a rampart down in the road and construct a solid camp, but the Commander would not agree and showed ill temper. So I led five thousand troops and camped some three miles off; and when the army of Wei came in crowds and surrounded my colleague, I led my army to attack them a score of times. But I could not penetrate, and the catastrophe came quickly. Many of our troops surrendered, and mine were too few to stand. Wherefore I went to friend Oakley-Dobbins for help, but I was intercepted and imprisoned in a valley and only got out by fighting most desperately. I got back to my camp to find the enemy in possession, and so I set out for Liliu-Aspen. On the road I met Kerr-Julian, and we three tried to raid the enemy's camp, hoping to recover Jieting-Montclair; but as there was no one soldier there, I grew suspicious. From a hill I saw my colleagues had been hemmed in by the soldiers of Wei, so I went to rescue them. Thence we hastened to Erora Pass to try to prevent that from falling. It was not that I failed to remonstrate. And you, O Minister, can get confirmation of my words from any of the officers."

Orchard-Lafayette bade him retire, and sent for Pickett-Maggio. He came, bound himself, and threw himself on the earth at the tent door.

Orchard-Lafayette got angry, saying, "You have filled yourself with the study of the books on war ever since you were a boy; you know them thoroughly. I enjoined upon you that Jieting-Montclair was most important, and you pledged yourself and all your family to do your best in the enterprise; yet you would not listen to Zavala-Wortham, and thus you caused this misfortune. The army is defeated, generals have been slain and cities and territory lost, all through you. If I do not make you an example and vindicate the law, how shall I maintain a proper state of discipline? You have offended and you must pay the penalty. After your death the little ones of your family shall be my care, and I will see that they get a monthly allowance. Do not let their fate cause you anxiety."

Orchard-Lafayette told the executioners to take Pickett-Maggio away.

Pickett-Maggio wept bitterly, saying, "Pity me, O Minister, you have looked upon me as a son; I have looked up to you as a father. I know my fault is worthy of death, but I pray you remember how King Gallegos employed Yoder-Carney, after executing his father Patton-Carney. Though I die, I will harbor no resentment down in the depths of the Nine Golden Springs."

Orchard-Lafayette brushed aside his tears and said, "We have been as brothers, and your children shall be as my own. It is useless to say more."

They led the doomed man away. Without the main gate, just as they were going to deal the fatal blow, High Counselor Bromfield-Kendrick, who had just arrived from Capital Chengdu-Wellesley, was passing in. He bade the executioners wait a while, and he went in and interceded for Pickett-Maggio.

"Formerly the King of Chu put Minister Raven-Norton to death, and his rival Duke Gaynor of Jin rejoiced. There is great confusion in the land, and yet you would slay a man of admitted ability. Can you not spare him?"

Orchard-Lafayette's tears fell, but he said, "Sun-Estrada maintains that the one way to obtain success is to make the law supreme. Now confusion and actual war are in every quarter; and if the law be not observed, how may rebels be made away with? He must die."

Soon after they bore in the head of Pickett-Maggio as proof, and Orchard-Lafayette wailed bitterly.

"Why do you weep for him now that he has met the just penalty for his fault?" said Bromfield-Kendrick.

"I was not weeping then because of Pickett-Maggio, but because I remembered the words of the First Ruler. When in great stress at Baidicheng-Whitehaven, he said: 'Pickett-Maggio's words exceed the truth, and he is incapable of great deeds.' It has come true, and I greatly regret my want of insight. That is why I weep."

Every officer wept. Pickett-Maggio was but thirty-nine, and he met his end in the fifth month of the sixth year of Beginning Prosperity (AS 228).

A poet wrote about him thus:

That was pitiful that he who talked so glib Of war, should lose a city, fault most grave, With death as expiation. At the gate He paid stern law's extremest penalty. Deep grieved, his chief recalled the late Prince's words.

The head of Pickett-Maggio was paraded round the camps. Then it was sewn again to the body and buried with it. Orchard-Lafayette conducted the sacrifices for the dead and read the oration. A monthly allowance was made for the family, and they were consoled as much as possible.

Next Orchard-Lafayette made his memorial to the Throne and bade Bromfield-Kendrick bear it to the Latter Ruler. Therein Orchard-Lafayette proposed his own degradation from his high office.

"Naturally a man of mediocre abilities, I have enjoyed your confidence undeservedly. Having led out an expedition, I have proved my inability to perform the high office of leader. Over solicitude was my undoing. Hence happened disobedience at Jieting-Montclair and the failure to guard Spruce Valley. The fault is mine in that I erred in the use of people. In my anxiety I was too secretive. The 'Spring and Autumn' has pronounced the commander such as I am is blameworthy, and whither may I flee from my fault? I pray that I may be degraded three degrees as punishment. I cannot express my mortification. I humbly await your command."

"Why does the Prime Minister speak thus?" said the Latter Ruler. "It is but the ordinary fortune of war."

Minister Norwich-Ortega said, "The ruler must enhance the majesty of the law, for without law how can people support him? It is right that the Prime Minister should be degraded in rank."

Thereupon an edict was issued reducing Orchard-Lafayette to the rank of General of the Right Army, but retaining him in the same position in the direction of state affairs and command of the military forces. Norwich-Ortega was directed to communicate the decision.

Norwich-Ortega bore the edict into Hanthamton and gave it to Orchard-Lafayette, who bowed to the decree. The envoy thought Orchard-Lafayette might be mortified, so he ventured to felicitate him in other matters.

"It was a great joy to the people of Shu when you, O Minister, captured the four northwest counties," said he.

"What sort of language is this?" said Orchard-Lafayette, annoyed. "Success followed by failure is no success. It shames me indeed to hear such a compliment."

"His Majesty will be very pleased to hear of the acquisition of Sparrow-McCollum."

This remark also angered Orchard-Lafayette, who replied, "It is my fault that a defeated army has returned without any gain of territory. What injury to Wei was the loss of Sparrow-McCollum?"

Norwich-Ortega tried again. "But with an army of one hundred thousand bold veterans, you can attack Wei again."

"When we were at Qishan-Oscoda and Spruce Valley, we outnumbered the enemy, but we could not conquer them. On the contrary, they beat us. The defect was not in the number of soldiers, but in the leadership. Now we must reduce the army, discover our faults, reflect on our errors, and mend our ways against the future. Unless this is so, what is the use of a numerous army? Hereafter every one will have to look to the future of his country. But most diligently each of you must fight against my shortcomings and blame my inefficiencies; then we may succeed. Rebellion can be exterminated and merit can be set up."

Norwich-Ortega and the officers acknowledged the aptness of these remarks. Norwich-Ortega went back to the capital, leaving Orchard-Lafayette in Hanthamton resting his soldiers and doing what he could for the people, training and heartening his troops and turning special attention to the construction of apparatus for assaults on cities and crossing rivers. He also collected grain and fodder and built battle rafts, all for future use.

The spies of Wei got to know of these doings in the Lands of Rivers and reported to Luoyang-Peoria. The Ruler of Wei called Whitmore-Honeycutt to council and asked how Shu might be annexed.

"Shu cannot be attacked," was the reply. "In this present hot weather they will not come out, but, if we invade, they will only garrison and defend their strategic points, which we should find it hard to overcome."

"What shall we do if they invade us again?"

"I have prepared for that. Just now Orchard-Lafayette is imitating Oleksy-Beecham when he secretly crossed the river into Chencang-Elberta. I can recommend a man to guard the place by building a rampart there and rendering it absolutely secure. He is a nine-span man, round shouldered and powerful, a good archer and prudent strategist. He would be quite equal to dealing with an invasion."

The Ruler of Wei was very pleased and asked for his name.

"His name is Duckett-Beebe, and he is in command at Hexi-Westport."

The Ruler of Wei accepted the recommendation, and an edict went forth promoting Duckett-Beebe to General Who Guards the West, and sending him to command in the county of Chencang-Elberta.

Soon after this edict was issued, a memorial was received from Reuter-Shackley, Minister of War and Commander of Yenghamton, saying that Theobald-Wilhelm, the Wu Governor of Poyang-Clearlake, wished to tender his submission and transfer his allegiance, and had sent a man to present a memorandum under seven headings showing how the power of the South Land could be broken and to ask that an army be dispatched soon.

Poincare-Shackley spread the document out on the couch that he and Whitmore-Honeycutt might read it.

"It seems very reasonable," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Wu could be quite destroyed. Let me go with an army to help Reuter-Shackley."

But from among the courtiers stepped out Mandel-Gagliano, who said, "What this man of Wu says may be understood in two ways; do not trust it. Theobald-Wilhelm is a wise and crafty man and very unlikely to desert. In this is some ruse to decoy our soldiers into danger."

"Such words also must be listened to," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Yet such a chance must not be missed."

"You and he might both go to the help of Reuter-Shackley," said the Ruler of Wei.

Whitmore-Honeycutt and Mandel-Gagliano went. A large army, led by Reuter-Shackley, moved to Huancheng-Luxora. Mandel-Gagliano, assisted by General Chilton-Mendoza and Governor Tinsley-Herbert of Dongwan-Rochelle, marched to capture Yangcheng-Firebaugh, and facing the East Pass. Whitmore-Honeycutt led the third army to Jiangling-Riverport.

Now the Prince of Wu, Raleigh-Estrada, was at the East Pass in Wuchang-Marietta, and there he assembled his officers and said, "The Governor of Poyang-Clearlake, Theobald-Wilhelm, has sent up a secret memorial saying that Reuter-Shackley intends to invade. Theobald-Wilhelm has therefore set out a trap for Reuter-Shackley and has drawn up a document giving seven plausible circumstances, hoping thereby to cajole the Wei army into his power. The armies of Wei are on the move in three divisions, and I need your advice."

Riley-Reece stood forth, saying, "There is only one man fit to cope with the present need; he is Newell-Sanchez."

So Newell-Sanchez was summoned and made Grand Commander, General Who Pacifies the North, Commander-in-Chief of all the State Armies, including the Royal Corps of Guards, and Associate Assistant in the Royal Duties. He was given the White Banners and the Golden Axes, which denoted imperial rank. All officers, civil and military, were placed under his orders. Moreover, Raleigh-Estrada personally stood beside him and held his whip while he mounted his steed.

Having received all these marks of confidence and favor, Newell-Sanchez wanted two persons to be his assistants. Raleigh-Estrada asked their names, and Newell-Sanchez said, "There are Cooley-Morris, General Who Fortifies Prowess, and Zelenka-Patterson, General Who Calms the South. These two should be in command."

Raleigh-Estrada approved and appointed Cooley-Morris and Zelenka-Patterson as Commander of the Left and Commander of the Right respectively.

Then the grand army, comprising all the forces of the eighty-one counties of the South Land and the levies of Jinghamton, seven hundred thousand troops in total, was assembled and marched out in three divisions, Newell-Sanchez in the center, with Cooley-Morris and Zelenka-Patterson supporting him left and right with the other two columns.

Then said Cooley-Morris, "Reuter-Shackley is neither able nor bold; he holds office because he is of the blood. He has fallen into the trap laid by Theobald-Wilhelm and marched too far to be able to withdraw. If the Commander-in-Chief will smite, Reuter-Shackley must be defeated. Defeated, he must flee along two roads, one Jiashi-Limestone on the left, the other Guichi-Solana on the right, both of which are precipitous and narrow. Let me and my colleague go to prepare an ambush in these roads. We will block them and so cut off their escape. If this Reuter-Shackley could be captured, and a hasty advance made, success would be easy and sure. We should get Shouchun-Brookhaven, whence Xuchang-Bellefonte and Luoyang-Peoria can be seen. This is the one chance in the thousand."

"I do not think the plan good," said Newell-Sanchez. "I have a better one."

Cooley-Morris resented the rejection of his scheme and went away angry. Newell-Sanchez ordered Laurie-Lafayette and certain others to garrison Jiangling-Riverport and oppose Whitmore-Honeycutt and made all other dispositions of forces.

Reuter-Shackley neared Huancheng-Luxora, and Theobald-Wilhelm came out of the city to welcome him and went to the general's tent.

Reuter-Shackley said, "I received your letter and the memorandum, which was most logical, and sent it to His Majesty. He has set in motion accordingly three armies. It will be a great merit for you, Sir, if the South Land can be added to His Majesty's dominions. People say you are insufficient in craft, but I do not believe what they say, for I think you will be true to me and not fail."

Theobald-Wilhelm wept. He seized a sword from one of his escort and was about to kill himself, but Reuter-Shackley stopped him.

Still leaning on the sword, Theobald-Wilhelm said, "As to the seven things I mentioned, my regret is that I cannot show you all. You doubt me because some persons from Wu and Wei have been poisoning your mind against me. If you heed them, the only course for me is to die. Heaven only can make manifest my loyal heart."

Again he made to slay himself. But Reuter-Shackley in trepidation threw his arms about him, saying, "I did not mean it; the words were uttered in jest. Why do you act thus?"

Upon this, Theobald-Wilhelm, with his sword, cut off his hair and threw it on the ground, saying, "I have dealt with you with sincerity, Sir, and you joke about it. Now I have cut off the hair, which I inherited from my parents, in order to prove my sincerity."

Then Reuter-Shackley doubted no more, but trusted him fully and prepared a banquet for him, and when the feast was over Theobald-Wilhelm returned to his own.

General Mandel-Gagliano came to Reuter-Shackley, and when asked whether there was any special reason for the visit, he said, "I have come to warn you, Commander, to be cautious and wait till you and I can attack the enemy together. The whole army of Wu is encamped at Huancheng-Luxora."

"You mean you want to share in my victory," sneered Reuter-Shackley.

"It is said Theobald-Wilhelm cut off his hair as a pledge of sincerity; that is only another bit of deceit. According to the Spring and Autumn Annals, Lance-Bragg cut off his arm as a pledge of loyalty before he assassinated Caldwell-Butters; mutilation is no guarantee. Do not trust Theobald-Wilhelm."

"Why do you come to utter ill-omened words just as I am opening the campaign? You destroy the spirit of the army," said Reuter-Shackley.

In his wrath he told the lictors to put Mandel-Gagliano to death. However, the officers interceded, saying, "Before the march, killing our general is not favorable to the army. O General, spare him until after the expedition."

And Mandel-Gagliano was reprieved; but he was not assigned any part in the campaign, and his troops were left in reserve. Reuter-Shackley himself went away to the East Pass.

When Theobald-Wilhelm heard that Mandel-Gagliano had been broken, he rejoiced in his heart, saying, "If Reuter-Shackley had attended to his words, then Wu would have lost. Heaven is good to me and is giving me the means of achieving great things."

Then he sent a secret messenger to Huancheng-Luxora, and Newell-Sanchez knew that the time had come. He assembled the officers for orders.

Newell-Sanchez said, "Shiding-Rockwood, lying over against us, is a hilly country fit for preparing an ambush. It will be occupied as suitable to array our army and await the coming of Wei. Hersey-Gibbard is to be leader of the van, and the army will move there."

Now Reuter-Shackley told Theobald-Wilhelm to lead the way for his attack. While on march, Reuter-Shackley asked, "What is the place lying ahead?"

Theobald-Wilhelm replied, "Shiding-Rockwood, a suitable place to camp in."

So a great camp was made there. But soon after the scouts reported that a very large number of soldiers of Wu had occupied the hills. Reuter-Shackley began to feel alarmed.

"Theobald-Wilhelm said there were no soldiers; why these preparations?"

Reuter-Shackley hastily sought Theobald-Wilhelm to ask him, and was told he had gone away with a few riders, no one knew whither.

"I have been deceived and am in a trap," said Reuter-Shackley, now very repentant of his easy confidence. "However, there is nothing to fear."

Then he made his arrangements to march against the enemy, and when they were complete and the array drawn up, Jaxson-Clement, the leader of the van, rode out and began to rail at the men of Wu.

"Rebel leader, come and surrender!" cried Jaxson-Clement.

Then rode out Hersey-Gibbard and fought with him. But Jaxson-Clement was no match for Hersey-Gibbard, as was soon evident, wherefore he led his troops to retire.

"Hersey-Gibbard is too strong," said Jaxson-Clement when he saw Reuter-Shackley.

"Then will we defeat him by a surprise," said Reuter-Shackley.

He sent Jaxson-Clement with twenty thousand troops to hide in the south of Shiding-Rockwood, while another equal party under Maier-Burrell was sent north. And Reuter-Shackley arranged, saying, "Tomorrow I will lead a thousand soldiers to provoke the troops of Wu into battle, then I will feign defeat and lead them to the hills in the north, when a bomb will explode and a three-pronged ambush will bring us victory."

On the other side Newell-Sanchez called his two generals, Cooley-Morris and Zelenka-Patterson, and said, "Each of you is to lead thirty thousand troops and take a cross cut from Shiding-Rockwood to the enemy's camp. Give a fire signal on arrival, and then the main army will advance."

As evening fell these two moved out their troops, and by the middle of the second watch both had got close to the camp of Wei. Jaxson-Clement, Reuter-Shackley's general, who was there in ambush, did not recognize that the troops who approached him were enemies, but went as to meet friends and was at once slain by the blade of Cooley-Morris. The soldiers of Wei then fled, and Cooley-Morris lit his signal fires.

Zelenka-Patterson, marching up, came across the northern ambush under Maier-Burrell. Zelenka-Patterson began a battle at once, and the troops of Wei were soon put to flight. Both the armies of Wu pursued, and confusion reigned in Reuter-Shackley's camp, troops fighting with others of their own side and slaying each other.

Reuter-Shackley despaired and fled toward Jiashi-Limestone. Hersey-Gibbard, with a strong force, came along the high road and attacked. And the soldiers of Wei killed were very many. Those who escaped did so by abandoning all their armors.

Reuter-Shackley was in straits, but he struggled along the Jiashi-Limestone Road. Here came a cohort into the road from the side. It was led by Mandel-Gagliano. Reuter-Shackley's alarm gave place to shame on meeting Mandel-Gagliano.

"I took no notice of what you said, and so this evil came upon me," said he.

Mandel-Gagliano replied, "Sir, you should quickly get out of this road; for if the troops of Wu block it, we shall be in grave danger."

So Reuter-Shackley hastened, while Mandel-Gagliano protected his retreat. And Mandel-Gagliano ordered his soldiers to set flags and banners up among trees and in thickets and along by-paths, so as to give an impression of having many men posted all round. Wherefore when Hersey-Gibbard came in pursuit, he thought the country was full of ambushing men and dared not proceed far. So he gave up the pursuit and retired.

By these means Reuter-Shackley was rescued, and finally Whitmore-Honeycutt withdrew his army upon the news of Reuter-Shackley's defeat.

In the meantime, Newell-Sanchez was awaiting news of victory. Soon Hersey-Gibbard, Cooley-Morris, and Zelenka-Patterson came and reported their successes, and they brought great spoil of carts and bullocks, horses and mules and military material and weapons. And they had also ten thousand prisoners. There was great rejoicing, and Newell-Sanchez with Theobald-Wilhelm led the army home into Wu.

On their return Raleigh-Estrada, the Prince of Wu, came out with a numerous cortege of officers to welcome the victors, and an imperial umbrella was borne over the head of Newell-Sanchez as they wended their way homeward.

When the officers presented their felicitations, Raleigh-Estrada noticed that Theobald-Wilhelm had no hair, and Raleigh-Estrada was very gracious to him, saying, "This deed of yours, and the sacrifice you made to attain it, will surely be written in the histories."

He made Theobald-Wilhelm the Lord of the Gate Within. Then there were great feastings and greetings and much revelry.

Newell-Sanchez said, "Reuter-Shackley has been thoroughly beaten, and the soldiers of Wei are cowed. I think now is an occasion to send letters into Shu to advise Orchard-Lafayette to attack Wei."

Raleigh-Estrada agreed, and letters were sent.

The east, successful in one fight, Would unto war the west incite.

The next chapter will say if Orchard-Lafayette once more tried to overcome Wei.

CHAPTER 97

Sending A Second Memorial, Orchard-Lafayette Renews The Attack On Wei; Forging A Letter, Sparrow-McCollum Defeats The Northern Army.

It was in the autumn of the sixth year of Beginning Prosperity (AD 229) that the Wei army was defeated, with very great loss, by Newell-Sanchez of Wu. Reuter-Shackley's mortification brought on an illness from which he died in Luoyang-Peoria. By command of Poincare-Shackley, the Ruler of Wei, Reuter-Shackley received most honorable burial.

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt brought the army home again. The other officers went to welcome him and asked, "The defeat of Commander Reuter-Shackley is also partly yours. Why, O General, did you hurry home?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "I came for reasons of strategy, because of Orchard-Lafayette's probable intentions. If he knows I have suffered a defeat, he may try to attack Changan-Annapolis. The whole west would be helpless if I did not return."

They listened and smiled; for they thought he was afraid.

Letters from Wu came to Shu proposing a joint attack on Wei and detailing their recent victory. In these letters two feelings were gratified--that of telling the story of their own grandeur and prowess, and furthering the design of a treaty of peace. The Latter Ruler was pleased and sent the letters to Orchard-Lafayette in Hanthamton.

At that time the army was in excellent state, the soldiers hardy, the horses strong. There were plentiful supplies of all kinds. Orchard-Lafayette was just going to propose a new war.

On receipt of the letter he made a great banquet to discuss an expedition. A severe gale came on from the northeast and brought down a fir tree in front of the general's shelter. It was an inauspicious omen to all the officers, and they were troubled.

Orchard-Lafayette cast lots to know what portent was intended, and announced, "That gale signals the loss of a great leader."

They hardly believed him. But before the banquet ended, two sons of Gilbert-Rocher, Fawcett-Rocher and Bruno-Rocher, came and wished to see the Prime Minister.

Orchard-Lafayette, deeply affected, threw aside his wine cup and cried, "That is it; Gilbert-Rocher is gone."

When the two young men came in, they prostrated themselves and wept, saying, "Our father died the night before at the third watch."

Orchard-Lafayette staggered and burst into lamentation.

"My friend is gone; the country has lost it great beam and I my right arm."

Those about him joined in, wiping away their tears. Orchard-Lafayette bade the two young men go in person to Chengdu-Wellesley to bear the sad tidings to the Emperor.

And the Latter Ruler wept bitterly.

"Gilbert-Rocher was my savior and friend; he saved my life when I was a child in the time of great confusion," cried the Latter Ruler.

An edict was issued creating Gilbert-Rocher Regent Marshal and Lord of Shunping-Wheatley and permitting burial on the east of Silky Hills. A temple was ordered to his memory and sacrifices were offered in four seasons.

From Changshan-Piedmont came a general, tiger-bold, In wit and valor he was fitting mate For Yale-Perez and Floyd-Chardin, his exploits rivaling Even theirs. River Han and Dangyang-Willowbrook recall His name. Twice in his stalwart arms he bore The prince, his well-loved leader's son and heir. In storied page his name stands out, writ large. Fair record of most brave and loyal deeds.

The Latter Ruler showed his affectionate gratitude to the late leader, not only in according him most honorable burial, but in kindness to his sons. The elder, Fawcett-Rocher, was made General in the Tiger Army and the younger, Bruno-Rocher, Station General. He also set guards over the tomb.

When the two sons had left, the ministers reported to the Latter Ruler: "The dispositions of the army are complete, and the Prime Minister proposes to march against Wei without delay."

Talking this over with one and another, the Latter Ruler found the courtiers much inclined to a cautious policy and somewhat fearful. And the doubts entered into the Latter Ruler's mind so that he could not decide. Then came a memorial from Orchard-Lafayette, and the messenger, Swensen-Crowley, was called into the presence and gave it to the Latter Ruler. The Emperor spread it on the imperial table and read:

"The First Ruler was anxious lest the rebels should set up a rival empire and the legitimate Ruler's domain be restricted. Wherefore he laid upon me, thy minister, to destroy them. Measuring my powers by his perspicacity, he knew that I should attack and oppose my talents, inadequate as they might be, to their strength, for, if I did not, the royal domain would be destroyed. It was a question whether to await destruction without effort, or to attack? Wherefore he assigned me the task confidently. Thenceforward this task occupied all my thoughts.

"Considering that the south should be made secure before the north could be attacked, I braved the heat of summer and plunged deep into the wilds of the Mang nations. Sparing not myself nor regarding privation, urged by the one consideration, that the royal domain should not be confined to the capital of Shu, I faced dangers in obedience to the First Ruler's behest. But there are critics who may say that I failed. Now the rebels have been weakened in the west and have become involved in the east. The rule of war is to take advantage of the enemy's weakness, and so now is the time to attack. I shall discuss the various circumstances in order.

"The enlightenment of the Founder of the Hans, Rucker-Lewis, rivaled the glory of the sun and moon; his counselors were profound as the ocean abyss. Nevertheless, he trod a hazardous path and suffered losses, only attaining repose after passing through great dangers. Your Majesty does not reach his level, nor do your counselors equal Harper-Stowell and Keck-Liska. Yet while we desired victory, we would sit idle, waiting till the empire should become settled. This attitude is beyond my comprehension.

"Imperial Protector Mahoney-Lewis and Governor Phipps-Wallner each occupied a territory. They passed their time in talking of tranquillity and discussing plans, quoting the sayings of the sages till they were filled with doubts and obsessed with difficulties. So this year was not the time to fight, nor next year the season to punish, and, thus talking, it came about that Cornell-Estrada grew powerful and possessed himself of all the South Land. This sort of behavior I cannot understand.

"In craft Murphy-Shackley surpassed all humans. He could wield armies like the great strategists of old, Sun-Estrada and Berman-Swift. Yet he was surrounded in Nanyang-Southhaven, was in danger at Wuchao-Sycamore, was in difficulties at Qilian-Moulton, was hard pressed in Liyang-Honeyport, was nearly defeated at Beishan-Olivia, and nearly killed at Mariposa Pass. Yet, after all these experiences, there was a temporary and artificial state of equilibrium. How much less can I, a man of feeble powers, bring about a decision without running risks? I fail to understand.

"Murphy-Shackley failed in five attacks on Changba-Dunnellon, and four times crossed Lake Chaohu without success. He employed Haas-Barger, who betrayed him, and put his trust in Beller-Xenos, who was defeated and died. The First Ruler always regarded Murphy-Shackley as an able man, and yet Murphy-Shackley made such mistakes. How then can I, in my worn-out condition, necessarily conquer? I do not understand why.

"Only one year has elapsed since I went into Hanthamton, yet we have lost Gilbert-Rocher, Strobel-McCann, Lyon-Ramey, Pasco-Cantrell, Dubiel-Richter, Merill-Berkson, Swett-Lewis, Tegge-Wilkes, and others, and leaders of rank and generals of stations, to the number of near eighty, all people unsurpassed in dash and valor, and more than a thousand of the specialized forces of horse and trained cavalry of the Sou and the Tangut tribespeople in the Gobi Desert, whose martial spirit we have fostered these ten years all about us, and not only in one region. If we delay much longer, two-thirds of this will have dissipated, and how then shall we meet the situation? I do not understand delay.

"The people are poor and the army exhausted indeed, and confusion does not cease. If confusion does not cease, then, whether we go on or stand still the drain is the same. Yet it seems that attack should not be made yet! Is it that the rebels are to be allowed to obtain a permanent hold on some territory? I do not understand the arguments.

"A stable condition of affairs is indeed difficult to obtain. Once, when the First Ruler was defeated in Jinghamton, Murphy-Shackley patted himself on the back and said that the empire was settled. Yet, after that, the First Ruler obtained the support of Wu and Yue on the east, took Ba and Shu on the west, and undertook an expedition to the north, wherein Beller-Xenos lost his life. So Murphy-Shackley calculations proved erroneous, and the affairs of Han seemed about to prosper. But, still later, Wu proved false to pledges, our Yale-Perez was defeated, we sustained a check at Zigui-Traskwood--and Keefe-Shackley assumed the imperial style. Such events prove the difficulty of forecast. I shall strive on to the end, but the final result, whether success or failure, whether gain or loss, is beyond my powers to foresee."

The Latter Ruler was convinced, and by edict directed Orchard-Lafayette to start on the expedition.

Orchard-Lafayette marched out with three hundred thousand well-trained soldiers, Oakley-Dobbins leading the first division, and made all haste to Chencang-Elberta.

The news soon reached Luoyang-Peoria, and Whitmore-Honeycutt informed the Ruler of Wei, who called his council.

Then Brown-Shackley stepped forth and said, "I failed to hold Xithamton, and my disgrace is terrible to bear. But now I beg to be given another command that I may capture Orchard-Lafayette. Lately I have found a stalwart soldier for a leader, a man who wields a ninety-pound sword, rides a swift and savage steed, bends the three-hundred-pound bow, and carries hidden about him when he goes into battle three meteor maces with which his aim is certain. So valorous is he that none dare stand against him. He comes from Didao-Barstow in Xithamton and is named Raush-Carlton. I would recommend him for my leader of the van."

Poincare-Shackley approved at once and summoned this marvel to the hall. There came a tall man with a dusky complexion, hazel eyes, strong as a bear in the hips and with a back supple as a tiger's.

"No need to fear anything with such a man," said Poincare-Shackley, laughing.

He gave the new hero rich presents, a silken robe and golden breastplate, and gave him the title General Who Possesses the Tiger Majesty. And he became leader of the van of the new army. Brown-Shackley was appointed Commander-in-Chief.

Brown-Shackley took leave of his master and left the court. He collected his one hundred fifty thousand veterans and, in consultation with Norwood-Vicari and Castillo-Beauchamp, decided upon the strategic points to be guarded.

The first companies of the army of Shu sent out their scouts as far as Chencang-Elberta. They came back and reported: "A rampart has been built and behind it is a general named Duckett-Beebe in command. The rampart is very strong and is further defended by thorny barriers. Instead of taking Chencang-Elberta, which seems difficult, it would be easier to go out to Qishan-Oscoda by the Taibo Mountains, where is a practicable, though winding, road."

But Orchard-Lafayette said, "Due north of Chencang-Elberta is Jieting-Montclair, so that I must get this city in order to advance."

Oakley-Dobbins was sent to surround Chencang-Elberta and take it. He went, but days passed without success. Therefore he returned and told his chief the place was impregnable. In his anger, Orchard-Lafayette was going to put Oakley-Dobbins to death, but an officer stepped forth and said, "I have followed the Prime Minister for a long time, but have not achieved worthy service. Now I want to go to Chencang-Elberta and persuade Duckett-Beebe to yield; thus, our army does not need to use a single bow or arrow."

Others turned their attention to Counselor Jessen-Bagley.

"How do you think you will persuade him?" said Orchard-Lafayette. "What will you say?"

"Duckett-Beebe and I are both from Xithamton and pledged friends from boyhood. If I can get to see him, I will so lay matters before him that he must surrender."

Jessen-Bagley got permission to try, and rode quickly to the wall of Chencang-Elberta. Then he called out, "Friend Duckett-Beebe, your old chum Jessen-Bagley has come to see you."

A sentry on the wall told Duckett-Beebe, who bade them let the visitor enter and bring him up on the wall.

"Friend, why have you come?" asked Duckett-Beebe.

"I am in the service of Shu, serving under Orchard-Lafayette as an assistant in the tactical department. I am created exceedingly well, and my chief has sent me to say something to you."

Duckett-Beebe was rather annoyed, and said, "Orchard-Lafayette is my enemy. I serve Wei while you serve Shu. Each serves his own lord. We were brothers once, but now we are enemies; so do not say any more."

And the visitor was requested to take his leave. Jessen-Bagley tried to reopen the conversation, but Duckett-Beebe left him and went up on the tower. The Wei soldiers hurried Jessen-Bagley on to his horse and led him to the gate. As he passed out, he looked up and saw his friend leaning on the guard rail.

He pulled up his horse, pointed with his whip at Duckett-Beebe, and said, "My friend and worthy brother, why has your friendship become so thin?"

"Brother, you know the laws of Wei," replied Duckett-Beebe. "I have accepted their bounty, and if that leads to death, so be it. Say no more, but return quickly to your master and tell him to come and attack. I am not afraid."

So Jessen-Bagley had to return and report failure.

"He would not let me begin to explain," said he.

"Try again," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Go and really talk to him."

So the go-between soon found himself once more at the foot of the wall. Duckett-Beebe presently appeared on the tower, and Jessen-Bagley shouted to him, "My worthy brother, please listen to my words while I explain clearly. Here you are holding one single city; how can you think of opposing one hundred thousand troops? If you do not yield, you will be sorry when it is too late. Instead of serving the great Hans, you are serving a depraved country called Wei. Why do you not recognize the decree of Heaven? Why do you not distinguish between the pure and the foul? Think over it."

Then Duckett-Beebe began to get really angry. He fitted an arrow to his bow and he called out, "Go! Or I will shoot. I meant what I said at first, and I will say no more."

Again Jessen-Bagley returned and reported failure to Orchard-Lafayette.

"The fool is very ill-mannered," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Does he think he can beguile me into sparing the city?"

He called up some of the local people and asked about the forces in the city. They told him about three thousand.

"I do not think such a small place can beat me," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Attack quickly before any reinforcements can arrive."

Thereupon the assailants brought up scaling ladders, upon the platforms of which ten or more men could stand. These were surrounded by planks as protection. The other soldiers had short ladders and ropes, and, at the beat of the drum, they attempted to scale the walls.

But when Duckett-Beebe saw the ladders being brought up, he made his soldiers shoot fire-arrows at them. Orchard-Lafayette did not expect this. He knew the city was not well prepared for defense, and he had had the great ladders brought up and bade the soldiers take the wall with a rush. He was greatly chagrined when the fire arrows set his ladders on fire and so many of his soldiers were burned. And as the arrows and stones rained down from the wall, the soldiers of Shu were forced to retire.

Orchard-Lafayette angrily said, "So you burn my ladders; then I will use battering rams."

So the rams were brought and placed against the walls and again the signal given for assault. But the defenders brought up great stones suspended by ropes, which they swung down at the battering rams and so broke them to pieces.

Next the besiegers set to work to bring up earth and fill the moat, and Moss-Lopez led three thousand soldiers to excavate a tunnel under the ramparts. But Duckett-Beebe cut a counter-trench within the city and turned that device.

So the struggle went on for near a month, and still the city was not taken. Orchard-Lafayette was very depressed.

That was not all. The scouts reported the coming of a relief force of Wei, the flags of which bore the name of Raush-Carlton. Some one had to try to turn him back, and Oakley-Dobbins offered himself.

"No," said Orchard-Lafayette, "you are too valuable as Leader of the Van."

General Criss-Nolan offered his services; they were accepted, and Criss-Nolan was given three thousand troops. After he had gone, Orchard-Lafayette decided to send a second force, and for command of this General Flauter-Allison volunteered and was accepted. Flauter-Allison also had three thousand troops.

Then Orchard-Lafayette feared lest there would be a sortie from the city to aid the relief force just arriving, so he led off the army seven miles and made a camp.

The first body sent against Raush-Carlton had no success; Criss-Nolan fell almost immediately under Raush-Carlton's great sword. The men fled and Raush-Carlton pursued, and so came upon Flauter-Allison, who had come to support his colleague. Flauter-Allison met a similar fate, being slain in the third bout.

When the defeated parties returned, Orchard-Lafayette was anxious and called up Moss-Lopez, Zavala-Wortham, and Neuberg-Giordano to go out to check this Raush-Carlton, They went and drew up in formal array, and then Neuberg-Giordano rode to the front. Raush-Carlton rode to meet him, and they two fought several bouts. Then Raush-Carlton ran away and Neuberg-Giordano followed.

His colleague, Zavala-Wortham, suspected this flight was but a ruse, so he called to Neuberg-Giordano, "Do not follow the fleeing general!"

Raush-Carlton then turned and hurled one of his meteor hammers, which hit Neuberg-Giordano in the back, so that he fell forward and lay over the saddle. Raush-Carlton rode on to follow up this advantage, but Moss-Lopez and Zavala-Wortham poured out and checked him. Raush-Carlton's whole force then came on and slew many of the troops of Shu.

Neuberg-Giordano was hurt internally and vomited blood at times. He came back and told Orchard-Lafayette, saying, "Raush-Carlton is very terrible and no one can stand up to him. Beside there is a strong camp at the city with double walls and a deep moat."

Having lost two generals, and a third being wounded, Orchard-Lafayette called up Sparrow-McCollum and said, "We are stopped this way; can you suggest another road?"

"Yes," said Sparrow-McCollum, "Chencang-Elberta is too well protected and, with Duckett-Beebe as defender and Raush-Carlton as supporter, cannot be taken. I would propose to move away to some suitable place and make a strong camp. Then try to hold the roads so that the attack on Jieting-Montclair may be prevented. Then if you will send a strong force against Qishan-Oscoda, I can do something which will capture Brown-Shackley."

Orchard-Lafayette agreed. He sent Zavala-Wortham and Crane-Hinton to hold the narrow road to Jieting-Montclair, and Oakley-Dobbins was sent to guard the way from Chencang-Elberta. And then the army marched out of the Beech Valley by a small road and made for Qishan-Oscoda.

Now Brown-Shackley still remembered bitterly that in the last campaign Whitmore-Honeycutt had filched from him the credit he hoped to obtain. So when he received the commission of defending the capitals against the invading forces, he detached Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez and sent them to hold positions east and west. Then he had heard that Chencang-Elberta was threatened, so had sent Raush-Carlton to its relief, and now to his joy he heard of his henchman's success. He placed Grand Commander Baggett-Kowalski in command of the van and stationed other generals at strategic and commanding points.

Then they caught a spy. He was taken into the presence of the Commander-in-Chief to be questioned.

The man knelt down and said, "I am not really a spy in the bad sense. I was bringing a secret communication for you, Sir, but I was captured by one of the parties in ambush. Pray send away your attendants."

The man's bonds were loosed and the tent cleared. The captive said, "I am a confidant of Sparrow-McCollum, who has entrusted me with a secret letter."

"Where is the letter?"

The man took it from among his garments and presented it to Brown-Shackley, who read:

"I, Sparrow-McCollum, your guilty general, make a hundred prostrations to the great leader Brown-Shackley, now in the field. I have never forgotten that I was in the employment of Wei and disgraced myself; having enjoyed favors, I never repaid them. Lately I have been an unhappy victim of Orchard-Lafayette's wiles and so fell into the depths. But I never forgot my old allegiance; how could I forget?

"Now happily the army of Shu has gone west, and Orchard-Lafayette trusts me. I rely upon your leading an army this way. If resistance be met, then you may simulate defeat and retire, but I shall be behind and will make a blaze as signal. Then I shall set fire to their stores, whereupon you will face about and attack. Orchard-Lafayette ought to fall into your hands. If it be that I cannot render service and repay my debt to the state, then punish me for my former crime.

"If this should be deemed worthy of your attention, then without delay communicate your commands."

The letter pleased Brown-Shackley, and he said, "This is heaven-sent help to aid me in an achievement."

Brown-Shackley rewarded the messenger and bade him return to say that it was accepted. Then he called Baggett-Kowalski to his councils and said, "I have just had a secret letter from Sparrow-McCollum telling me to act in a certain fashion."

But Baggett-Kowalski replied, "Orchard-Lafayette is very crafty, and Sparrow-McCollum is very knowing. If by chance Orchard-Lafayette has planned all this and sent this man, we may fall into a snare."

"But Sparrow-McCollum is really a man of Wei; he was forced into surrender. Why are you suspicious?"

"My advice is not to go, but to remain here on guard. Let me go to meet this man, and any service I can accomplish will redound to your credit. And if there be any craft, I can meet it for you."

Brown-Shackley approved this and bade Baggett-Kowalski take fifty thousand troops by way of the Beech Valley.

Baggett-Kowalski marched away and halted after the second or third stage and send out scouts. This was done, and the scouts reported that the Shu army was coming through the valley. Baggett-Kowalski at once advanced, but before the troops of Shu got into contact with him, they retired. Baggett-Kowalski pursued. Then the troops of Shu came on again. Just as Baggett-Kowalski was forming up for battle, the Shu army retreated again. And these maneuvers were repeated thrice, and a day and a night passed without any repose for the Wei army.

At length rest was imperative, and they were on the point of entrenching themselves to prepare food when a great hubbub arose all around, and with beating of drums and blaring of trumpets, the whole country was filled with the soldiers of Shu. Suddenly there was a stir near by the great standard, and out came a small four-wheeled chariot in which sat Orchard-Lafayette. He bade a herald call the leader of the Wei army to a parley.

Baggett-Kowalski rode out and, seeing Orchard-Lafayette, he secretly rejoiced. Turning to those about him, he said, "If the soldiers of Shu come on, you are to retire and look out for a signal. If you see a blaze, you are to turn and attack, for you will be reinforced by Sparrow-McCollum."

Then Baggett-Kowalski rode to the front and shouted, "You rebel leader in front there; how dare you come here again after the last defeat?"

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "Go and call Brown-Shackley to a parley."

"My chief, Brown-Shackley, is of the royal stock; think you that he will come to parley with rebels?"

Orchard-Lafayette angrily waved his fan, and there came forth Winston-Mallory and Neuberg-Giordano and their troops with a rush. The Wei army retired. But ere they had gone far, they saw a blaze in the rear of the advancing host of Shu and heard a great shouting. Baggett-Kowalski could only conclude that this was the signal of Sparrow-McCollum he was looking for, and so he faced about to attack.

But the enemy also turned about and retired. Baggett-Kowalski led the pursuit, sword in hand, hastening to the point whence the shouting came. Nearing the signal fire, the drums beat louder than ever, and then out came two armies, one under Stanley-Perez and the other under Fritz-Chardin, while arrows and stones rained from the hill-tops. The Wei troops could not stand it and knew not only they were beaten, but beaten by a ruse. Baggett-Kowalski tried to withdraw his force into the shelter of the valley to rest, but the enemy pressed on him, and the army of Wei fell into confusion. Pressing upon each other, many fell into the streams and were drowned.

Baggett-Kowalski could do nothing but flee for his life. Just as he was passing by a steep hill there appeared a cohort, and the leader was Sparrow-McCollum.

Baggett-Kowalski began to upbraid him, crying, "Faithless ingrate! I have haplessly fallen in your treachery and craftiness!"

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "You are the wrong victim; we meant to capture Brown-Shackley not you. You would do well to yield!"

But Baggett-Kowalski only galloped away toward a ravine. Suddenly the ravine filled with flame. Then he lost all hope. The pursuers were close behind, so Baggett-Kowalski with a sword put an end to his own life.

Of the army of Wei many surrendered. The Shu army pressed home their advantage and, hastening forward, reached Qishan-Oscoda and made a camp. There the army was mustered and put in order.

Sparrow-McCollum received a reward, but he was chagrined that Brown-Shackley had not been taken.

"My regret is that I did not slay Brown-Shackley," said he.

"Indeed, yes," replied Orchard-Lafayette. "It is a pity that a great scheme should have had so poor a result."

Brown-Shackley was very sad when he heard of the loss of Baggett-Kowalski. He consulted Norwood-Vicari as to a new plan to drive back the enemy.

Meanwhile, flying messengers had gone to the capital with news of Orchard-Lafayette's arrival at Qishan-Oscoda and the defeat. Poincare-Shackley called Whitmore-Honeycutt to ask for a plan to meet these new conditions.

"I have a scheme all ready, not only to turn back Orchard-Lafayette, but to do so without any exertion on our part. They will retire of their own will."

Brown-Shackley's wits are dull; so he Fights on Whitmore-Honeycutt's strategy.

The strategy will appear in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 98

Pursuing The Shu Army, Raush-Carlton Meets His Death; Raiding Chencang-Elberta, Orchard-Lafayette Scores A Victory.

Now Whitmore-Honeycutt spoke to the Ruler of Wei, saying, "I have said repeatedly that Orchard-Lafayette would come against us by way of Chencang-Elberta; wherefore I set Duckett-Beebe to guard it. If an enemy did invade, he could easily obtain his supplies by that road; but with Duckett-Beebe and Raush-Carlton on guard there, he will not dare to come that way. It is very difficult to get supplies any other way. Therefore I can give the invaders a month to exhaust their food. Hence their advantage lies in forcing a battle; ours is postponing it as long as possible. Wherefore I pray Your Majesty order Brown-Shackley to hold passes and positions tenaciously and on no account to seek battle. In a month the enemy will have to retreat, and that will be our opportunity."

Poincare-Shackley was pleased to hear so succinct a statement, but he said, "Since, Noble Sir, you foresaw all this so plainly, why did you not lead an army to prevent it?"

"It is not because I grudged the effort, but I had to keep the army here to guard against Newell-Sanchez of Wu. Raleigh-Estrada will declare himself 'Emperor' before long. If he does, he will be afraid of Your Majesty's attack, and so he will try to invade us first. I shall be ready to defend our frontier. The army is prepared."

Just then one of the courtiers announced dispatches from Brown-Shackley on military affairs, and Whitmore-Honeycutt closed his speech, saying, "Your Majesty should send someone especially to caution the general to be careful not to be tricked by Orchard-Lafayette, not to pursue rashly, and never to penetrate deeply into the enemy country."

The Ruler of Wei gave the order, and he sent the command by the hand of Minister Wade-Pollock and gave him authority to warn Brown-Shackley against giving battle.

Whitmore-Honeycutt escorted the royal messenger out of the city and, at parting, said, "I am giving this magnificent opportunity to obtain glory to Brown-Shackley, but do not tell him the suggestion was mine; only quote the royal command. Tell him that defense is the best, pursuit is to be most cautious, and he is not to send any impetuous leader to follow up the enemy."

Wade-Pollock agreed and took leave.

Brown-Shackley was deep in affairs connected with his army when they brought news of a royal messenger, but he went forth to bid Wade-Pollock welcome; and when the ceremonial receipt of the edict had come to an end, he retired to discuss matters with Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez.

"That is Whitmore-Honeycutt's idea," said Norwood-Vicari with a laugh.

"But what of the idea?" asked Brown-Shackley.

"It means that the man who perfectly understands Orchard-Lafayette's plans and who will eventually have to be called in to defeat them is our friend Whitmore-Honeycutt."

"But if the Shu army holds its ground?"

"We will send Raush-Carlton to reconnoiter and keep on the move along the by-roads so that they dare not attempt to bring up supplies. They must retreat when they have no more to eat, and we shall be able to beat them."

Then said Kramp-Galvez, "Let me go out to Qishan-Oscoda as if to escort a convoy from Xithamton, only the carts shall be laden with combustibles instead of grain. We will sprinkle sulfur and saltpeter over wood and reeds. The troops of Shu, who lack supplies, will surely seize the convoy and take it to their own camp, when we will set fire to the carts. When they are blazing, our hidden men can attack."

"It seems an excellent plan," said Brown-Shackley.

And he issued the requisite orders: Kramp-Galvez to pretend to escort a convoy; Raush-Carlton to prowl about the by-roads; Norwood-Vicari and various generals to command in the Spruce Valley, Jieting-Montclair, and other strategic points. Also Harrell-Gonzalez, son of Lamkin-Gonzalez, was made leader of the van, and Meredith-Lockhart, son of Wein-Lockhart, was his second. These two were to remain on guard in the outermost camp.

Now at Qishan-Oscoda, Orchard-Lafayette sought to bring on a battle, and daily sent champions to provoke a combat. But the men of Wei would not come out.

Then Orchard-Lafayette called Sparrow-McCollum and certain others to him and said, "I do not know what to do. The enemy refuse battle, because they know we are short of food. We can get none by way of Chencang-Elberta, and all other roads are very difficult. I reckon the grain we brought with us will not last a month."

While thus perplexed, they heard that many carts of provisions for Wei were passing by from Xithamton, and the convoy was commanded by Kramp-Galvez.

"What is known of this Kramp-Galvez?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

A certain man of Wei replied, "He is a bold man. Once he was out hunting with the Ruler of Wei on Great Rock Hill, and a tiger suddenly appeared in front of his master's chariot. He jumped off his horse and dispatched the beast with his sword. He was rewarded with a leadership. He is an intimate friend of Brown-Shackley."

"This is a ruse," said Orchard-Lafayette. "They know we are short of food, and those carts are only a temptation. They are laden with combustibles. How can they imagine that I shall be deceived by this sort of thing, when I have fought them with fire so many times? If we go to seize the convoy, they will come and raid our camp. But I will meet ruse with ruse."

Then Orchard-Lafayette sent Winston-Mallory with order: "You and three thousand troops are to make your way to the enemy's store camp and, when the wind serves, to start a fire. When the stores are burning, the soldiers of Wei will come to surround our camp. That is how we will provoke a battle."

He also sent Glenn-Jenner and Neuberg-Giordano with five thousand troops each to halt near the camp so that they might attack from without.

These having gone, he called Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, and said, "The outermost camp of Wei is on the main road. This night, when the enemy see a blaze, our camp will be attacked, so you two are to lie in wait on the two sides of the Wei camp and seize it when they have left."

Calling Reed-Simons and Ferris-Beaver, he said, "You are to lie in wait outside the camp to cut off the retreat of the force of Wei."

All these arrangements made, Orchard-Lafayette betook himself to the summit of the Qishan Mountains to watch the results.

The soldiers of Wei heard that their enemies were coming to seize the grain convoy and ran to tell Kramp-Galvez, who sent on a message to Brown-Shackley. Brown-Shackley sent to the chief camp to Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart and told them to look out for a signal blaze; that would mean the coming of the army of Shu, and then they were to raid the Shu camp immediately. Watchers were sent on the tower to look out for the promised blaze.

Meanwhile Kramp-Galvez marched over and hid in the west hills to await the coming of the men of Shu. That night, at the second watch, Winston-Mallory came with his three thousand troops all silent, the soldiers with gags, the horses with a lashing round their muzzles. They saw tier after tier of carts on the hills, making an enclosure like a walled camp, and on the carts were planted many flags.

They waited. Presently the southwest wind came up, and then they launched the fire. Soon all the carts were in a blaze that lit up the sky. Kramp-Galvez saw the blaze and could only conclude that the troops of Shu had arrived and his own side were giving the signal, so he dashed out to attack. But soon two parties of soldiers were heard behind him closing in. These were Glenn-Jenner and Neuberg-Giordano, who soon had Kramp-Galvez as in a net. Then he heard a third ominous roll of drums, which heralded the approach of Winston-Mallory from the direction of the blaze.

Under these several attacks, the troops of Wei quailed and gave way. The fire grew more and more fierce. Soldiers ran and horses stampeded, and the dead were too many to count. Kramp-Galvez made a dash through the smoke and fire of the battle and got away.

When Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart saw the fire, they threw open the gates of their camp and sallied forth to help defeat the army of Shu by seizing their camp. But when they reached the Shu camp, they found it empty. So they hurried to set out to return. That was the moment for Reed-Simons and Ferris-Beaver to appear and cut off their retreat. However, they fought bravely and got through. But when at length they reached their own camp, they were met by arrows flying thick as locusts. For Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin had taken possession in their absence.

They could only set out for headquarters to report their mishap. As they neared Brown-Shackley's camp, they met another remnant marching up. They were Kramp-Galvez's soldiers, and the two parties went into camp together and told the tale of their victimization. Brown-Shackley thereafter looked to his defenses and attacked no more.

Thus victorious, the soldiers of Shu went to Orchard-Lafayette, who at once dispatched secret directions to Oakley-Dobbins. Then Orchard-Lafayette gave orders to break camp and retreat.

This move was not understood, and Swensen-Crowley asked the leader, "O Minister, you have just scored a victory, and the enemy have lost their bravery; why retreat?"

"Because we are short of food," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Our success lay in swift victory, but the enemy will not fight, and thus they weaken us day by day. Though we have worsted them now, they will soon be reinforced, and their light horse can cut off our provisions. Then we could not retreat at all. For a time they will not dare look at us, and we must take the occasion to do what they do not expect, and retreat. But I am solicitous about Oakley-Dobbins, who is on the Chencang-Elberta road to keep off Raush-Carlton. I fear he cannot get away. I have sent him certain orders to slay Raush-Carlton, and then the force of Wei will not dare to pursue."

So the retreat began, but to deceive the enemy the watchmen were left in the empty camp to beat the watches through the night.

Brown-Shackley was depressed at his recent misfortune. Then they told him Castillo-Beauchamp had come. Castillo-Beauchamp came up to the gate, dismounted, and entered.

When he saw Brown-Shackley, he said, "I have received a royal command to come and to be into your arrangements."

"Did you take leave of friend Whitmore-Honeycutt?" asked Brown-Shackley.

Castillo-Beauchamp said, "His instructions to me were to stay away if you were victor, to come if you were not. It seems that our side has missed success. Have you since found out what the troops of Shu are doing?"

"Not yet."

So Brown-Shackley sent out some scouts, and they found empty camps. There were flags flying, but the army had been gone two days. Brown-Shackley was disgusted.

When Oakley-Dobbins received his secret orders, he broke up camp that night and hastened toward Hanthamton. Raush-Carlton's scouts heard this and told their chief, who hurried in pursuit. After about seven miles, he came in sight of Oakley-Dobbins' ensigns. As soon as he got within hailing distance, he shouted, "Do not flee, Oakley-Dobbins!"

But no one looked back, so he again pressed forward.

Then he heard one of his guards behind him shouting, "There is a blaze in the camp outside the wall; I think it is some wile of the enemy."

Raush-Carlton pulled up and, turning, saw the fire. He therefore tried to draw off his troops. Just as he passed a hill, a horseman suddenly came out of a wood.

"Here is Oakley-Dobbins!" shouted the horseman.

Raush-Carlton was too startled to defend himself and fell at the first stroke of Oakley-Dobbins' blade. Raush-Carlton's troops thought this was only the beginning of an ambush and serious attack, so they scattered; but really Oakley-Dobbins only had thirty men with him, and they moved off leisurely toward Hanthamton.

No man could better Orchard-Lafayette's foresight keen; Brilliant as a comet where it flashed: Back and forth at will his soldiers dashed, And Raush-Carlton's dead body marked where they had been.

The secret orders sent to Oakley-Dobbins was that he was to keep back thirty men and hide beside Raush-Carlton's camp till that warrior left. Then the camp was to be set on fire. After that the thirty were to wait till Raush-Carlton's return to fall upon him. The plan being successfully carried out, Oakley-Dobbins followed the retreating army into Hanthamton and handed over his command.

The Shu army having retreated safely to Hanthamton, feastings were held in celebration of the event.

Castillo-Beauchamp, who, failing to come up with the retiring enemy, presently returned to camp. Duckett-Beebe sent a letter to say that Raush-Carlton had met his end. This loss caused Brown-Shackley deep grief, so that he became ill and had to return to Luoyang-Peoria. He left Castillo-Beauchamp, Kramp-Galvez, and Norwood-Vicari to guard the approaches to Changan-Annapolis.

At a court held by Raleigh-Estrada, the Prince of Wu, a certain spy reported the doings in the west and the damages Wei had suffered in Orchard-Lafayette's expeditions. Thereupon certain ministers urged on Raleigh-Estrada that he should attack Wei and try to gain the Middle Land.

However, Raleigh-Estrada could not make up his mind, and Tipton-Ulrich endeavored to prove to him that his hour was come by this memorial:

"I have heard that a phoenix has lately appeared in the hills east of Wuchang-Marietta and bowed; that a yellow dragon has been seen in the Great River. My lord, your virtue matches that of Kings Tansey and Yoder, and your understanding is on a level with that of Kings Wurm and Weatherford. Wherefore you should now proceed to the imperial style and then raise an army to maintain your authority."

And many other officers supported Tipton-Ulrich's proposal. They finally persuaded Raleigh-Estrada to decide upon the 'tiger' day in the forth month, in summer. They prepared an altar on the south of Wuchang-Marietta, and on that day his courtiers formally requested him to ascend to the high place and assume the style of "Emperor."

"Yellow Dragon" was chosen as the style of the reign. Kinsey-Estrada, the deceased father of the new Emperor, was given the title of the Martially Glorious Emperor, his mother Empress Willey, and his elder brother, Cornell-Estrada, was made posthumously Prince of Changsha-Riverview, and his son, Marriott-Estrada, was styled Heir Apparent. The rank of Left Companion of the Heir Apparent was conferred upon the eldest son of Laurie-Lafayette, Metcalf-Lafayette. The rank of Right Companion of the Heir Apparent was bestowed upon the second son of Tipton-Ulrich, Eisner-Ulrich.

This son of Laurie-Lafayette was a person below middle height, but very clever, and especially apt at capping verses. Raleigh-Estrada liked him much. When Metcalf-Lafayette was six, he went with his father to a banquet. Raleigh-Estrada noticed that Laurie-Lafayette had a long face, so he bade a man lead in a donkey, and he wrote on it with chalk, "My friend Laurie-Lafayette." Every one roared with laughter. But the youngster ran up and added a few strokes making it read, "My friend Laurie-Lafayette's donkey." The guests were astonished at his ready wit, and praised him. Raleigh-Estrada was also pleased and made him a present of the donkey.

Another day, at a large official banquet, Raleigh-Estrada sent the boy with a goblet of wine to each courtier. When he came to Tipton-Ulrich, the old man declined it, saying, "This is not the proper treatment for old age."

"Can you not make him drink?" said Raleigh-Estrada.

Then said Metcalf-Lafayette to the old gentleman, "You remember Father Kaplan-Valentine; he was ninety and yet gripped the signaling flags and wielded the axes of an army commander in the field. He never spoke of age. Nowadays in battle we put seniors behind, but at the banquet board we give them a front place. How can you say we do not treat old age properly?"

Tipton-Ulrich had no reply ready, and so had to drink. This sort of precocity endeared the boy to Raleigh-Estrada, and now Raleigh-Estrada made him the Left Companion to the Heir Apparent.

Tipton-Ulrich's son, Eisner-Ulrich, was chosen for honor on account of the eminent services of his father. Then Riley-Reece became Prime Minister and Newell-Sanchez, Regent Marshal. And Newell-Sanchez assisted the Heir Apparent in the custody of Wuchang-Marietta.

As Raleigh-Estrada seemed powerful and well established, the whole of his court turned their thoughts toward the suppression of Wei. Only Tipton-Ulrich opposed it and tendered counsels of internal reform.

"It is not well to begin Your Majesty's new reign with fighting; rather improve learning and hide the sword; establish schools and so give the people the blessings of peace. Make a treaty with Shu to share the empire, and lay your plans slowly and carefully."

Raleigh-Estrada saw the wisdom of the advice. He sent an envoy into the Lands of Rivers to lay the scheme of an alliance before the Latter Ruler. The Latter Ruler called his courtiers to discuss it. Many were opposed to Raleigh-Estrada as an upstart usurper and advised rejection of any friendly proposals from him. Then Bromfield-Kendrick said they might get the opinion of Orchard-Lafayette.

So they sent and put the matter before the Prime Minister.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "Send an envoy with presents and felicitations and ask Raleigh-Estrada to send Newell-Sanchez against Wei. Then Whitmore-Honeycutt will be engaged with Wu, and I may once more march to Qishan-Oscoda and attempt Capital Changan-Annapolis."

Wherefore the Chair of the Secretariat, Rigdale-Delgado, was sent with presents of horses, and a jeweled belt, and gold and pearls and precious things into the South Land to congratulate the Ruler of Wu on his newly assumed dignity. And the presents were accepted, and the bearer thereof honored and allowed to return.

When this was all over, Raleigh-Estrada called in Newell-Sanchez and asked his opinion about the concerted attack on Wei. Newell-Sanchez saw through the scheme at once.

"We owe this to Orchard-Lafayette's fear of Whitmore-Honeycutt," said he. "However, we must consent since Shu asks it. We will make a show of raising an army and in a measure support them. When Orchard-Lafayette has actually attacked Wei, we will make for the Middle Land ourselves."

Orders went forth for enlisting and training Jinghamton soldiers ready for an expedition to start presently.

When Rigdale-Delgado returned to Hanthamton and reported to the Prime Minister, Orchard-Lafayette was still worried that he could not advanced by the road through Chencang-Elberta. Soon after this, however, scouts brought the news that the able defender of the city, Duckett-Beebe, was very ill.

"That means success for me," cried he, cheering.

He called in Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum, and said, "Take five thousand troops and hasten to Chencang-Elberta. If you see a blaze, then attack."

They could hardly believe the order was meant, and came again to see their chief and asked the exact date of departure.

"In three days you should be ready to march. Do not come to take leave of me, but set out as soon as possible."

After they had left his tent, he summoned Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin and gave them secret instructions.

Now when Norwood-Vicari heard that the commander of Chencang-Elberta was ill, he and Castillo-Beauchamp talked over the matter.

Norwood-Vicari said, "Duckett-Beebe is very ill; you would better go and relieve him. I will report to the capital what we have done that they may arrange."

So Castillo-Beauchamp started with his three thousand troops to relieve the sick man. Duckett-Beebe was indeed at the point of death, and suddenly they told him that the army of Shu had reached the walls. Duckett-Beebe roused himself and bade them go on the ramparts. But then fire broke out at each gate, a panic spread in the city and the noise of the confusion startled the dying man so that he passed away just as the troops of Shu were bursting in.

When Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum reached the walls, they were perplexed to find no sign of life. No flags were flying and no watchmen struck the hours. They delayed their attack for a time. Then they heard a bomb, and suddenly the wall was thick with flags, and there appeared the well-known figure of the minister.

"You have come too late," cried Orchard-Lafayette.

Both dropped out of the saddle and prostrated themselves.

"Really, you are supernatural, O Minister!" they cried.

They entered the city, and then he explained to them, saying, "I heard the news that Duckett-Beebe was seriously sick, so I sent you with the deadline of three days as a blind to calm the people of this city. Then I hid myself in the ranks of another force under Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin, which came to Chencang-Elberta by double marches. Also, I had sent spies into the city to start the fires and throw the defenders into confusion. An army without a leader could never fight, and I could take the city easily. This is an instance of the rule of war: 'Do the unexpected; attack the unprepared.'"

They bowed. In commiseration Orchard-Lafayette sent all the family of Duckett-Beebe, and his coffin, over to Wei, thus showing his sense of the dead man's loyalty.

Turning once more to Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum, he said, "But do not divest yourself of your armor. Go and attack Crysalus Pass and drive away the guards while they are in a state of surprise. If you delay, Wei will have sent reinforcements."

They went. Surely enough the capture of Crysalus Pass was easy as the Wei soldiers scattered. But when they went up to look around, they saw a great cloud of dust moving toward them; the reinforcements were already near.

They remarked to each other, "The Prime Minister's foresight was superhuman."

When they had looked a little longer, they saw the leader of the Wei army then approaching was Castillo-Beauchamp.

They then divided their soldiers to hold the approaches. When Castillo-Beauchamp saw that all was prepared, he retired. Oakley-Dobbins followed and fought a battle, defeating Castillo-Beauchamp heavily.

Oakley-Dobbins sent to report his success, but Orchard-Lafayette had already left Chencang-Elberta and had gone into the Beech Valley to capture the county of Jianwei-Brentwood. Other armies from Shu followed. Moreover, the Latter Ruler sent Citron-Quiroz to assist in the campaign. Orchard-Lafayette then marched his main force to Qishan-Oscoda and there made a camp. Then he called an assembly of officers.

"Twice have I gone out by Qishan-Oscoda without success, but at last I am here. I think Wei will resume the former battle ground and oppose us. If so, they will assume that I shall attack Yongcheng-Rutherford and Meicheng-Hacienda and send armies to defend them. But I see Yinping-Bradbury and Wudu-Hardee are connected with Hanthamton; and if I can win these, I can drive a wedge into the Wei force. Who will go to take these places?"

Sparrow-McCollum and Zavala-Wortham offered themselves. The former was sent with ten thousand troops to capture Wudu-Hardee; the latter, with an equal force, went to Yinping-Bradbury.

Castillo-Beauchamp went back to Changan-Annapolis and saw Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez, to whom he said, "Chencang-Elberta is lost, Duckett-Beebe is dead, Crysalus Pass is taken, and Orchard-Lafayette is again at Qishan-Oscoda; and thence has sent out two armies."

Norwood-Vicari was frightened, saying, "In that case, Yongcheng-Rutherford and Meicheng-Hacienda are in danger."

Leaving Castillo-Beauchamp to guard Changan-Annapolis, he sent Kramp-Galvez to Yongcheng-Rutherford, and he himself set out at once for Meicheng-Hacienda. He sent an urgent report to Luoyang-Peoria.

At Wei's next court the Emperor was informed of all the misfortunes in the west and the threats in the east.

Chilton-Mendoza said, "Raleigh-Estrada has declared himself 'Emperor,' and Newell-Sanchez is drilling his army in Wuchang-Marietta. An invasion from the east can be expected soon."

Poincare-Shackley was embarrassed and frightened. Brown-Shackley, being ill, could not be consulted, and Whitmore-Honeycutt was called. He was ready with a proposal.

"In my humble opinion, Wu will not attack us," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"What makes you think so?" asked the Ruler of Wei.

"Because Orchard-Lafayette still resents, and wishes to avenge, the event at Xiaoting-Marquette. He never ceases to desire to absorb Wu. His only fear is that we may swoop down upon Shu. That is why there is an alliance with Wu. Newell-Sanchez knows it also quite well, and he is only making a show of raising an army as they arranged. The truth is he is sitting on the fence. Hence Your Majesty may disregard the menace on the east, and only protect yourself against Shu."

"Your insight is very profound," said the Ruler of Wei.

Whitmore-Honeycutt was created Commander-in-Chief of all the forces in the west, and the Ruler of Wei directed a courtier to go to Brown-Shackley for the seal.

"I would rather go myself," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. So he left the audience and went to the palace of Brown-Shackley, where presently he saw the invalid. First he asked after his health and then gradually opened his errand.

"Shu and Wu have made an alliance to invade us, and Orchard-Lafayette is at Qishan-Oscoda. Have you heard, Illustrious Sir?"

"My people have kept back all news as I am ill," said he, startled. "But if this is true, the country is in danger. Why have they not made you Commander-in-Chief to stop this invasion?"

"I am unequal to the post," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"Bring the seal and give it to him," said Brown-Shackley to his attendants.

"You are anxious on my account; really I am only come to lend you an arm. I dare not accept the seal."

Brown-Shackley started up, saying, "If you do not take it, I shall have to go to see the Emperor, ill as I am. The Middle Land is in danger."

"Really the Emperor has already shown his kindness, but I dare not accept his offer."

"If you have been appointed, then Shu will be driven off."

Thrice Whitmore-Honeycutt declined the seal, but eventually he received it into his hands as he knew Brown-Shackley was sincere. Then he took leave of the Ruler of Wei and marched to Changan-Annapolis.

The seal of office changes hands, Two armies now one force become.

Whitmore-Honeycutt's success or failure will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 99

Orchard-Lafayette Defeats The Wei Army; Whitmore-Honeycutt Invades The Western Land Of Rivers.

The fourth month of Beginning Prosperity, seventh year (AD 229), found Orchard-Lafayette camped at Qishan-Oscoda in three camps, waiting for the army of Wei.

When Whitmore-Honeycutt reached Changan-Annapolis, the officer in command, Castillo-Beauchamp, told him all that had happened. He gave Castillo-Beauchamp the post of Leader of the Van, with Mundt-Keenan as his Assistant General and a hundred thousand troops, and then marched out toward the enemy, camping on River Taurus's south bank.

When the local commanders Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez went to see the new Commander-in-Chief, he asked if they had fought any battle.

"Not yet," said they.

Whitmore-Honeycutt said, "The enemy had a long march; their chance lay in attacking quickly. As they have not attacked, they have some deep laid scheme to work out. What news have you from Xithamton?"

Norwood-Vicari replied, "The scouts say that the greatest care is being taken in every county. But there is no news from Wudu-Hardee and Yinping-Bradbury."

"I must send someone to fight a decisive battle with them there. You get away as quickly and privily as you can to the rescue of those two cities, and then attack the rear of the Shu army so as to throw them into disorder."

They set out to obey these orders, and on the way they fell to discussing Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"How does Whitmore-Honeycutt compare with Orchard-Lafayette?" said Norwood-Vicari.

"Orchard-Lafayette is by far the better," replied Kramp-Galvez.

"Though Orchard-Lafayette may be the cleverer, yet this scheme of our leader's shows him to be superior to most people. The enemy may have got those two cities; yet when we unexpectedly fall upon their rear, they will certainly be disordered."

Soon after this a scout came in to report: "Zavala-Wortham has captured Yinping-Bradbury, and Wudu-Hardee is in possession of Sparrow-McCollum. Furthermore, the Shu army is not far in front."

Said Kramp-Galvez, "There is some crafty scheme afoot. Why are they prepared for battle in the open when they hold two cities? We would better retire."

Norwood-Vicari agreed, and they issued orders to face about and retreat. Just then a bomb exploded, and, at the same time, there suddenly appeared from the cover of some hills a small body of troops. On the flag that came forward they read the name Orchard-Lafayette, and in the midst of the company they saw him, seated in a small chariot. On his left was Stanley-Perez, and on his right Fritz-Chardin.

They were quite taken aback.

Orchard-Lafayette laughed and said, "Do not run away; did you think that your leader's ruse would take me in? Whitmore-Honeycutt sent a challenge to fight every day, indeed, while you were to slip round behind my army and attack! I have the two cities--Wudu-Hardee and Yinping-Bradbury; and if you have not come to surrender, then hurry up and fight a battle with me."

By now Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez were really frightened. Then behind them there rose a shout as of battle, and Zavala-Wortham and Sparrow-McCollum began to smite them in the rear, while Stanley-Perez and Fritz-Chardin bore down upon them in front. They were soon utterly broken, and the two leaders escaped by scrambling up the hillside.

Fritz-Chardin saw them, and was urging his steed forward to catch them, when unhappily he and his horse went over together into a gully. When they picked him up, they found that he had been kicked in the head and was badly hurt.

Orchard-Lafayette sent him back to Chengdu-Wellesley.

It has been said that Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez escaped. They got back to Whitmore-Honeycutt's camp and said, "Wudu-Hardee and Yinping-Bradbury were both in the enemy's possession, and Orchard-Lafayette had prepared an ambush, so that we were attacked front and rear. We lost the day and only escaped on foot."

"It is no fault of yours," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "The fact is he is sharper than I. Now go to defend Yongcheng-Rutherford and Meicheng-Hacienda and remain on the defensive; do not go out to give battle. I have a plan to defeat them."

These two having left, Whitmore-Honeycutt called in Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan and said, "Orchard-Lafayette has captured Wudu-Hardee and Yinping-Bradbury. He must restore order and confidence among the people of these places and so will be absent from his camp. You two will take ten thousand troops each, start tonight and make your way quietly to the rear of the Shu army. Then you will attack vigorously. When you have done that, I shall lead out the army in front of them and array ready for battle. While they are in disorder, I shall make my attack. Their camp ought to be captured. If I can win the advantage of these hills, their defeat will be easy."

These two left, Mundt-Keenan marching on the left and Castillo-Beauchamp on the right. They took by-roads and got well to the rear of the Shu army. In the third watch they struck the high road and joined forces. Then they marched toward the enemy. After about ten miles there was a halt in front. The two leaders galloped up to see what had caused it, and found many straw-carts drawn across the road.

"The enemy has been prepared," said Castillo-Beauchamp. "We should return."

Just as they ordered the troops to turn about, torches broke into flame all over the hills, the drums rolled, trumpets blared, and soldiers sprang out on every side. At the same time Orchard-Lafayette shouted from the hill-top, "Mundt-Keenan and Castillo-Beauchamp, listen to my words! Your master reckoned that I should be busy restoring order in the two cities and so should not be in my camp. Wherefore he sent you to take the camp, and you have just fallen into my snare. As you are leaders of no great importance, I shall not harm you. Dismount and yield."

Castillo-Beauchamp's wrath blazed forth at this, and he pointed at Orchard-Lafayette, crying, "You peasant out of the woods, invader of our great country! How dare you use such words to me? Wait till I catch you; I will tear you to shreds."

He galloped forward to ascend the hill, his spear ready for the thrust. But the arrows and stones pelted too quickly. Then he turned and dashed in among the Shu soldiers, scattering them right and left. He got clear, but he saw Mundt-Keenan was not with him. At once he turned back, fought his way to his comrade and brought Mundt-Keenan out safely.

Orchard-Lafayette on the hill-top watched this warrior and saw he was a right doughty fighting man.

"I have heard that soldiers stood aghast when Floyd-Chardin fought his great fight with Castillo-Beauchamp. Now I can judge Castillo-Beauchamp's valor for myself. He will do harm to Shu one day if I spare him. He will have to be removed."

Then Orchard-Lafayette returned to his camp.

By this time Whitmore-Honeycutt had completed his battle line and was waiting the moment of disorder in the Shu army to attack. Then he saw Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan come limping back dejected and crestfallen.

They said, "Orchard-Lafayette forestalled us; he was well prepared, and so we were quite defeated."

"He is more than human!" exclaimed Whitmore-Honeycutt. "We must retreat."

So the whole army retired into the fortified camps and would not come out.

Thus a great victory fell to Shu, and their booty was immense; weapons and horses innumerable. Orchard-Lafayette led his army back to camp. Thereafter he sent parties to offer a challenge at the gate of the Wei camp every day, but the soldiers remained obstinately behind their shelters and would not appear. When this had continued half a month Orchard-Lafayette grew sad.

Then came Norwich-Ortega from Capital Chengdu-Wellesley with an edict of the Emperor. Norwich-Ortega was received with all respect, and incense was burnt as propriety demanded. This done, the command was unsealed, and Orchard-Lafayette read:

"The failure at Jieting-Montclair was really due to the fault of Pickett-Maggio. However, you held yourself responsible and blamed yourself very severely. It would have been a serious matter for me to have withstood your intentions, and so I did what you insisted on.

"However, that was a glorious exploit last year when Raush-Carlton was slain. This year, Norwood-Vicari has been driven back and the Qiangs have been reduced; the two counties of Wudu-Hardee and Yinping-Bradbury have been captured; you have driven fear into the hearts of all evil doers and thus rendered magnificent services.

"But the world is in confusion, and the original evil has not been destroyed. You fill a great office, for you direct the affairs of the state. It is not well for you to remain under a cloud for any length of time and cloak your grand virtue, wherefore I restore you to the rank of Prime Minister and pray you not to decline the honor."

Orchard-Lafayette heard the edict to the end and then said, "My task is not yet accomplished; how can I return to my duties as Prime Minister? I must really decline to accept this."

Norwich-Ortega said, "If you decline this, you flout the desires of the Emperor and also show contempt for the feelings of the army. At any rate accept for the moment."

Then Orchard-Lafayette humbly bowed acquiescence.

Norwich-Ortega took leave and returned.

Seeing that Whitmore-Honeycutt remained obstinately on the defensive, Orchard-Lafayette thought of a plan by which to draw him. He gave orders to break camp and retire.

When the scouts told Whitmore-Honeycutt, he said, "We may not move; certainly there is some deep craftiness in this move."

Castillo-Beauchamp said, "It must mean that their food is exhausted. Why not pursue?"

"I reckon that Orchard-Lafayette laid up ample supplies last year. Now the wheat is ripe, and he has plenty of every sort. Transport might be difficult, but yet he could hold out half a year. Why should he run away? He sees that we resolutely refuse battle, and he is trying some ruse to inveigle us into fighting. Send out spies to a distance to see what is going on."

They reconnoitered a long way round, and the scouts returned to say that a camp had been formed ten miles away.

"Ah; then he is not running away," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Remain on the defensive still more strictly and do not advance."

Ten days passed without further news; nor did the soldiers of Shu offer the usual challenge. Again spies were sent far afield, and they reported a further retreat of ten miles and a new encampment.

"Orchard-Lafayette is certainly working some scheme," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Do not pursue."

Another ten days passed and spies went out. The enemy had gone ten miles farther and encamped.

Castillo-Beauchamp said, "What makes you so over-suspicious? I can see that Orchard-Lafayette is retreating into Hanthamton, only he is doing it gradually and arousing our suspicion. Why not pursue before it is too late. Let me go and fight one battle."

"No," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "A defeat would destroy the morale of our soldiers, and I will not risk it. Orchard-Lafayette's vile tricks are innumerable."

"If I go and get beaten, I will stand the full rigor of military punishment," said Castillo-Beauchamp.

"Well, if you are set on going, we will divide the army. You take your wing and go, but you will have to fight your best. I will follow to help in case of need. Tomorrow you should march only halfway and rest your troops for the battle."

So Castillo-Beauchamp got independent command of thirty thousand troops and took Mundt-Keenan as his second in command, and he had a few score of generals as assistants. Halfway they camped. Then Whitmore-Honeycutt, leaving a substantial guard for his camp, set out along the same road with fifty thousand troops.

Orchard-Lafayette knew the movements of the army of Wei and when Castillo-Beauchamp's army camped to rest. In the night he summoned his generals and told them.

"The enemy are coming in pursuit and will fight desperately. You will have to fight every one of you like ten, but I will set an ambush to attack their rear. Only a wise and bold leader is fit for this task."

Zavala-Wortham stepped forth and said he was willing to go on this expedition.

"But if you fail, what then?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

"Then there is the military rule."

Orchard-Lafayette sighed. "Zavala-Wortham is most loyal. He is willing to risk wounds and death in his country's service. However, the enemy are in two divisions, one coming in front, the other trying to get round to the rear. Zavala-Wortham is crafty and bold, but he cannot be in two places at once, so I must have yet another general. Is it that among you there is no other willing to devote himself to death?"

He did not wait long for a reply; Coady-Reiner stepped to the front.

"Castillo-Beauchamp is a most famous leader in Wei and valorous beyond all compare. You are not a match for him," said Orchard-Lafayette.

"If I fail, may my head fall at the tent door," said Coady-Reiner.

"Since you wish to go, I accept you. Each of you shall have ten thousand veterans. You will hide in the valleys till the enemy come up, and you will let them pass. Then you will fall upon their rear. If Whitmore-Honeycutt comes, you must divide the army, Coady-Reiner to hold the rear and Zavala-Wortham to check the advance. But they will fight desperately, and I must find a way to aid you."

When they had gone, Sparrow-McCollum and Moss-Lopez were called, and Orchard-Lafayette said, "I am going to give you a silken bag. You are to proceed secretly into those mountains in front. When you see that Coady-Reiner and Zavala-Wortham are in great straits with the enemy, then open the bag and you will find a plan of escape."

After this he gave secret instructions to four other generals--Reed-Simons, Ferris-Beaver, Glenn-Jenner, and Neuberg-Giordano--to observe the enemy and, if the enemy seemed confident of victory, to retire, fighting at intervals, till they saw Stanley-Perez come up, when they could turn and fight their best.

Then calling Stanley-Perez, he said to them, "Hide in the valleys with five thousand troops till you see a red flag flutter out, and then fall on the enemy."

Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan hurried along like a rain squall till they were suddenly confronted by Glenn-Jenner, Neuberg-Giordano, Ferris-Beaver, and Reed-Simons. Castillo-Beauchamp dashed toward his enemy, and then they retired, stopping at intervals to fight. The Wei army pursued for about seven miles.

It was the sixth moon and very hot, so that soldiers and horses sweated profusely. When they had gone ten miles farther, the soldiers and horses were panting and nearly spent. Then Orchard-Lafayette, who had watched the fighting from a hill, gave the signal for Stanley-Perez to emerge and join battle. Glenn-Jenner, Neuberg-Giordano, Reed-Simons, and Ferris-Beaver all led on their troops. Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan fought well, but they could not extricate themselves and retire.

Presently, with a roll of drums, Zavala-Wortham and Coady-Reiner came out and made for the rear to cut the retreat.

"Why do you not fight to death?" shouted Castillo-Beauchamp to his generals when he saw the new dangers.

The soldiers of Wei dashed this way and that, but were stayed at every attempt. Then there was heard another roll of drums, and Whitmore-Honeycutt came up in the rear. He at once signaled to his generals to surround Zavala-Wortham and Coady-Reiner.

"Our minister is truly wonderful. The battle goes just as he foretold," cried Coady-Reiner. "He will surely send help now, and we will fight to the death."

Thereupon the Shu force were divided into two parties. Zavala-Wortham led one army to hold up Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan; Coady-Reiner led the other division to oppose Whitmore-Honeycutt. On both sides the fighting was keen and continued all the day.

From their station on a hill, Sparrow-McCollum and Moss-Lopez watched the battle. They saw that the Wei force was very strong and their side was in danger and slowly giving way.

"Now surely is the moment to open the bag," said Sparrow-McCollum.

So the bag was opened, and they read the letter. It said: "If Whitmore-Honeycutt comes and Zavala-Wortham and Coady-Reiner seem hard pressed, you are to divide forces and go off to attack Whitmore-Honeycutt's camp, which will cause him to retire, and then you can attack him as his army is in disorder. The actual capture of the camp is not of great moment."

So Sparrow-McCollum and Moss-Lopez divided the force and started for the enemy's camp.

Now Whitmore-Honeycutt had really feared that he would fall victim to some ruse of Orchard-Lafayette, so he had arranged for messengers and news to meet him at intervals along the road. He was pressing his troops to fight when a messenger galloped up to report: "The soldiers of Shu are making for the main camp by two directions."

Whitmore-Honeycutt was frightened and changed color. He turned on his generals, saying, "I knew Orchard-Lafayette would plan some trick, but you did not believe me. You forced me to pursue, and now the whole scheme has gone astray."

Thereupon he gathered in his army and turned to retire. The troops went hurriedly and got into disorder. Coady-Reiner came up behind, causing huge damage to the Wei army. Castillo-Beauchamp and Mundt-Keenan, having but few troops left, sought refuge among the hills. The victory was to Shu, and Stanley-Perez came up helping in the rout wherever there appeared a chance to strike.

Whitmore-Honeycutt, defeated, hurried to the camp. But when he reached it, the army of Shu had already left. He gathered in his broken army and abused his generals as the cause of his failure.

"You are all ignorant of the proper way to wage war, and think it simply a matter of valor and rude strength. This is the result of your unbridled desire to go out and give battle. For the future no one of you will move without definite orders, and I will apply strict military law to any who disobey."

They were all greatly ashamed and retired to their quarters. In this fight the losses of Wei were very heavy, not only in soldiers, but in horses and weapons.

Orchard-Lafayette led his victorious army to their camp. He intended to advance again, when a messenger arrived from Capital Chengdu-Wellesley with the sad news that Fritz-Chardin had died. When they told Orchard-Lafayette he uttered a great cry, blood gushed from his mouth and he fell in a swoon. He was raised and taken to his tent, but he was too ill to march and had to keep his bed. His generals were much grieved.

A later poet sang:

Fierce and valiant was Fritz-Chardin, Striving hard to make a name; Sad the gods should interfere And withhold a hero's fame! Orchard-Lafayette wept his end In the western winds blowing. For he knew the warrior gone, This grieving is beyond knowing.

Orchard-Lafayette's illness continued. Ten days later he summoned to his tent Withrow-Cassidy and Vischer-Stoddard, and said, "I feel void and am too ill to carry on, and the best thing for me is to return into Hanthamton and get well. You are to keep my absence perfectly secret, for Whitmore-Honeycutt will certainly attack if he hears."

Orchard-Lafayette issued orders to break up the camp that night, and the army retired into Hanthamton forthwith. Whitmore-Honeycutt only heard of it five days later, and he knew that again he had been outwitted.

"The man appears like a god and disappears like a demon; he is too much for me," sighed Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Whitmore-Honeycutt set certain generals over the camp and placed others to guard the commanding positions, and he also marched homeward.

As soon as the Shu army was settled in Hanthamton, Orchard-Lafayette went to Chengdu-Wellesley for treatment. The officials of all ranks came to greet him and escort him to his palace. The Latter Ruler also came to inquire after his condition and sent his own physicians to treat him. So gradually he recovered.

In Beginning Prosperity, eighth year and seventh month (AD 230), Brown-Shackley, the Commander-in-Chief in Wei, had recovered, and he sent a memorial to his master, saying,

"Shu has invaded more than once and threatened Changan-Annapolis. If this state be not destroyed, it will ultimately be our ruin. The autumn coolness is now here. The army is in good form, and it is the time most favorable for an attack on Shu. I desire to take Whitmore-Honeycutt as colleague and march into Hanthamton to exterminate this wretched horde and free the borders from trouble."

Personally, the Ruler of Wei approved, but he consulted McCray-Lewis, who replied, "The Commander-in-Chief speaks well. If that state be not destroyed, it will be to our hurt. Your Majesty should give effect to his desire."

When McCray-Lewis came out, a crowd of officers flocked to inquire, saying, "We heard the Emperor has consulted you about an expedition against Shu: what think you?"

"No such thing," said McCray-Lewis. "Shu is too difficult a country to invade; it would be a mere waste of humans and weapons."

They left him. Then Briscoe-Doherty went into the Emperor and said, "It is said that yesterday McCray-Lewis advised Your Majesty to fall upon Shu; today when we talked with him, he said Shu could not be attacked. This is treating Your Majesty with indignity, and you should issue a command to punish him."

Wherefore Poincare-Shackley called in McCray-Lewis and asked him to explain.

McCray-Lewis replied, "I have studied the details; Shu cannot be attacked."

Poincare-Shackley laughed.

In a short time Briscoe-Doherty left, and then McCray-Lewis said, "Yesterday I advised Your Majesty to attack Shu; that being a matter of state policy should be divulged to no person. The essential of a military move is secrecy."

Then Poincare-Shackley understood, and thereafter McCray-Lewis was held in greater consideration. Ten days later Whitmore-Honeycutt came to court, and Brown-Shackley's memorial was shown him.

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "The moment is opportune; I do not think there is any danger from Wu."

Brown-Shackley was created Minister of War, General Who Conquers the West, and Commander-in-Chief of the Western Expedition; Whitmore-Honeycutt was made Grand Commander, General Who Conquers the West, and was second in command; and McCray-Lewis was made Instructor of the Army. These three then left the court, and the army of four hundred thousand troops marched to Changan-Annapolis, intending to dash to Saber Pass and attack Hanthamton. The army was joined by Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez.

The defenders of Hanthamton brought the news to Orchard-Lafayette, then quite recovered and engaged in training his army and elaborating the "Eight Arrays." All was in an efficient state and ready for an attack on Changan-Annapolis.

When he heard of the intended attack, he called up Neuberg-Giordano and Zavala-Wortham and gave orders: "You are to lead one thousand troops to Chencang-Elberta and garrison that road so as to check the Wei army."

The two replied, "It is said the Wei army numbers four hundred thousand, though they pretend to have eight hundred thousand. But they are very numerous, and a thousand troops is a very small force to meet them."

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "I would give you more, but I fear to make it hard for the soldiers. If there be a failure, I shall not hold you responsible. I send you thus; you may be sure there is a meaning in it. I observed the stars yesterday, and I see there will be a tremendous rain this month. The army of Wei may consist of any number of legions, but they will be unable to penetrate into a mountainous country. So there is no need to send a large force. You will come to no harm, and I shall lead the main body into Hanthamton and rest for a month while the enemy retreats. Then I shall smite them. My strong army needs only one hundred thousand to defeat their worn four hundred thousand. Do not say any more, but get off quickly."

This satisfied Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano, and they left, while Orchard-Lafayette led the main body out toward Hanthamton. Moreover, every station was ordered to lay in a stock of wood and straw and grain enough for a whole month's use, ready against the autumn rains. A month's holiday was given, and food and clothing were issued in advance. The expedition was postponed for the present.

When Brown-Shackley and Whitmore-Honeycutt approached Chencang-Elberta and entered the city, they could not find a single house. They questioned some of the people near, who said that Orchard-Lafayette had burned everything before he left. Then Brown-Shackley proposed to advance along the road, but Whitmore-Honeycutt opposed, saying that the stars foretold much rain.

"I have watched the Heaven, and the stars' movement signals long rains. If we get deep in a difficult country and are always victorious, it is all very well. But if we lose, we shall not get out again. Better remain in this city and build what shelter we can against the rains."

Brown-Shackley followed his advice. In the middle of the month the rain began, and came down in a deluge so that the surrounding country was three feet under water. The equipment of the soldiers was soaked, and the soldiers themselves could get no place to sleep. For a whole month the rain continued. The horses could not be fed, and the soldiers grumbled incessantly. They sent to Luoyang-Peoria, and the Ruler of Wei himself ceremonially prayed for fine weather, but with no effect.

Minister Carroll-Wolski sent up a memorial:

"The histories say that when supplies have to be conveyed a long distance, the soldiers are starved; if they have to gather brushwood before they can cook, then the army is not full fed. This applies to ordinary expeditions in an ordinary country. If, in addition, the army has to march through a difficult country and roads have to be cut, the labor is doubled. Now this expedition is hindered by rain and steep and slippery hills; movement is cramped and supplies can only be maintained with difficulty. All is most unpropitious to the army.

"Brown-Shackley has been gone over a month and has only got half through the valley. Road making is monopolizing all energies, and the fighting soldiers have to work on them. The state of affairs is the opposite to ideal, and the fighting soldiers dislike it.

"I may quote certain parallels. King Wurm of Zhou attacked the last Shang King; he went through the pass, but returned. In recent times Emperors Murphy and Keefe, attacking Raleigh-Estrada, reached the river, and went no farther. Did they not recognize limitations and act accordingly? I pray Your Majesty remember the grave difficulties caused by the rain and put an end to this expedition. By and by another occasion will arise for using force, and in the joy of overcoming difficulties the people will forget death."

The Ruler of Wei could not make up his mind, but two other memorials by Salazar-Friedman and Condon-Guerrera followed, and then he issued the command to return, which was sent to Brown-Shackley and Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Brown-Shackley and Whitmore-Honeycutt had already discussed the abandonment of the expedition. Brown-Shackley had said, "We have had rain for a whole month, and the soldiers are downhearted and think only of getting home again. How can we stop them?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "Return is best."

"If Orchard-Lafayette pursue, how shall we repulse him?"

"We can leave an ambush."

While they were discussing this matter, the Emperor's command arrived. Whereupon they faced about and marched homeward.

Now Orchard-Lafayette had reckoned upon this month of rain and so had had his troops camped in a safe place. Then he ordered the main army to assemble at Red Slope and camp there.

He summoned his officers to his tent and said, "In my opinion the enemy must retire, for the Ruler of Wei will issue such an order. To retreat needs preparation, and if we pursue, we will fall in their trap. So we will let them retire without molestation. Some other plan must be evolved."

So when Zavala-Wortham sent news of the retreat of the enemy, the messenger carried back the order not to pursue.

It is only lost labor to cover retreat When your enemy does not pursue.

By what means Orchard-Lafayette intended to defeat Wei will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 100

Raiding A Camp, The Shu Soldiers Defeat Brown-Shackley; Contesting Array Battles, Orchard-Lafayette Shames Whitmore-Honeycutt.

When the Shu officers got to know that the Wei army had gone but they were not to pursue, they were inclined to discontent and went in a body to the Prime Minister's tent and said, "The rain has driven the enemy away; surely it is the moment to pursue."

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "Whitmore-Honeycutt is an able leader who would not retreat without leaving an ambush to cover it. If we pursue we shall fall victims. Let him go in peace, and I shall then get through the Beech Valley and take Qishan-Oscoda, making use of the enemy's lack of defense."

"But there are other ways of taking Changan-Annapolis;" said they, "why only take Qishan-Oscoda?"

"Because Qishan-Oscoda is the first step to Changan-Annapolis, and I want to gain the advantage of position. And every transportation from Xithamton must come this way. It rests on River Taurus in front and is backed by the Beech Valley. It gives the greatest freedom of movement and is a natural maneuvering ground. That is why I want it."

They bowed to his wisdom. Then he dispatched Oakley-Dobbins, Neuberg-Giordano, Mallard-Reynolds, and Citron-Quiroz for Spruce Valley; and he sent Winston-Mallory, Zavala-Wortham, Coady-Reiner, and Glenn-Jenner for the Beech Valley; all were to meet at the Qishan Mountains. He led the main army himself, with Stanley-Perez and Moss-Lopez in the van.

When the Wei army retreated, Brown-Shackley and Whitmore-Honeycutt remained in the rear superintending the movement. They sent a reconnoitering party along the old road to Chencang-Elberta, and they returned saying no enemy was to be seen. Ten days later the leaders, who had commanded in the ambush, joined the main body saying that they had seen no sign of the enemy.

Brown-Shackley said, "This continuous autumn rain has rendered all the ways impassable; how could the soldiers of Shu know of our retreat?"

"They will appear later," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"How can you know?"

"These late five dry days they have not pursued, because they think we shall have left a rearguard in ambush. Therefore they have let us get well away. But after we have gone, they will try to occupy Qishan-Oscoda."

Brown-Shackley was not convinced.

"Why do you doubt?" asked Whitmore-Honeycutt. "I think Orchard-Lafayette will certainly advance by way of the two valleys, and you and I should guard the entrances. I give them ten days, and if they do not appear, I will come to your camp painted in the face to own my mistake."

"If the army of Shu do appear, I will give you the girdle and the steed that the Emperor gave me," replied Brown-Shackley.

And they split their force, Brown-Shackley taking up his station on the west of Qishan-Oscoda in the Beech Valley, and Whitmore-Honeycutt going to the east in the Spruce Valley.

As soon as the camp was settled, Whitmore-Honeycutt led a cohort into hiding in the valley. The remainder of the force was placed in detachments on the chief roads.

Whitmore-Honeycutt disguised himself as a soldier and went among the soldiers to get a private survey of all the camps. In one of them he happened upon a junior officer who was complaining, saying, "The rain has drenched us for days, and they would not retire. Now they have camped here for a wager. They have no pity for us soldiers."

Whitmore-Honeycutt returned to his tent and assembled his officers. Hauling out the grumbler, Whitmore-Honeycutt said to him, angrily, "The state feeds and trains soldiers a thousand days for one hour's service. How dare you give vent to your spleen to the detriment of discipline?"

The man would not confess, so his comrades were called to bear witness. Still he would not own up.

"I am not here for a wager, but to overcome Shu," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Now you all have done well and are going home, but only this fellow complains and is guilty of mutinous conduct."

Whitmore-Honeycutt ordered the lictors to put him to death, and in a short time they produced his head.

The others were terrified, but Whitmore-Honeycutt said, "All you must do your utmost to guard against the enemy. When you hear a bomb explode, rush out on all sides and attack."

With this order they retired.

Now Oakley-Dobbins, Neuberg-Giordano, Citron-Quiroz, and Mallard-Reynolds, with twenty thousand troops, entered the Spruce Valley. As they were marching, Adviser Vogler-Mitchell came.

"I bear an order from the Prime Minister. As you go out of the valley, beware of the enemy," said Vogler-Mitchell.

Citron-Quiroz said, "Why is the Prime Minister so full of doubts? We know the soldiers of Wei have suffered severely from the rain and must hasten home. They will not lay any ambush. We are doing double marches and shall gain a great victory. Why are we to delay?"

Vogler-Mitchell replied, "You know the Prime Minister's plans always succeed. How dare you disobey his orders?"

Citron-Quiroz smiled, saying, "If he was really so resourceful, we should not have lost Jieting-Montclair."

Oakley-Dobbins, recalling that Orchard-Lafayette had rejected his plan, also laughed, and said, "If he had listened to me and gone out through Buckeye Valley, not only Changan-Annapolis but Luoyang-Peoria too would be ours. Now he is bent on taking Qishan-Oscoda; what is the good of it? He gave us the order to advance and now he stops us. Truly the orders are confusing."

Then said Citron-Quiroz, "I will tell you what I will do. I shall take only five thousand troops, get through the Spruce Valley, and camp at Qishan-Oscoda. Then you will see how ashamed the Prime Minister will look."

Vogler-Mitchell argued and persuaded, but to no avail; the willful leader hurried on to get out of the valley. Vogler-Mitchell could only return as quickly as possible and report.

Citron-Quiroz proceeded. He had gone a few miles when he heard a bomb, and he was in an ambush. He tried to withdraw, but the valley was full of the enemy and he was surrounded as in an iron cask. All his efforts to get out failed. Then there was a shout, and Oakley-Dobbins came to the rescue. Oakley-Dobbins saved his comrade, but Citron-Quiroz' five thousand troops was reduced to about five hundred, and these wounded. The Wei soldiers pursued, but two other divisions of Neuberg-Giordano and Mallard-Reynolds prevented the pursuit, and finally the army of Wei retired.

Citron-Quiroz and Oakley-Dobbins who had criticized Orchard-Lafayette's powers of prevision no longer doubted that he saw very clearly. They regretted their own shortsightedness.

When Vogler-Mitchell told his chief of the bad behavior of Citron-Quiroz and Oakley-Dobbins, Orchard-Lafayette only laughed.

Said he, "That fellow Oakley-Dobbins has never been quite true; he has always been disposed to disobey and is unsteady. However, he is valiant, and so I have saved him for our use, but he will do real harm some day."

Then came a messenger with news of Citron-Quiroz' defeat and loss of troops. Orchard-Lafayette sent Vogler-Mitchell back again to Spruce Valley to console with Citron-Quiroz and so keep him from actual mutiny.

Then Orchard-Lafayette called to his tent Winston-Mallory and Zavala-Wortham, and said, "If there are any troops of Wei in the Beech Valley, you are to go across the mountains, marching by night and concealing yourselves by day, and make for the east of Qishan-Oscoda. When you arrive, make a fire as a signal."

Glenn-Jenner and Neuberg-Giordano were told to go in similar fashion to the west of Qishan-Oscoda and join up with the other two. Then they were to make a joint attack on Brown-Shackley's camp. Orchard-Lafayette would also attack in the center. Stanley-Perez and Moss-Lopez also received secret orders.

The armies marched rapidly. Not long after starting, two other detachments led by Reed-Simons and Ferris-Beaver received secret orders and left the main body.

The doubts about the coming of the Shu army made Brown-Shackley careless, and he allowed his soldiers to become slack and rest. He only thought of getting through the allotted ten days, when he would have the laugh against his colleague.

Seven of the days had passed, when a scout reported a few odd men of Shu in the valley. Brown-Shackley sent Shirley-Hickman with five thousand troops to reconnoiter and keep them at a distance. Shirley-Hickman he led his troops to the entrance of the valley. As soon as he arrived, the enemy retired. Shirley-Hickman went after them, but they had disappeared. He was perplexed and puzzled, and while trying to decide, he told the troops to dismount and rest.

But almost immediately he heard a shout, and ambushing troops appeared in front of him. He jumped on his horse to look about him, and saw a great cloud of dust rising among the hills. He disposed his troops for defense, but the shouting quickly came nearer, and then Reed-Simons and Ferris-Beaver appeared advancing towards him. Retreat was impossible for Stanley-Perez and Moss-Lopez had blocked the road. The hills were on both sides, and from the hill-tops came shouts of "Dismount and yield!"

More than half did surrender. Shirley-Hickman rode out to fight, but he was slain by Moss-Lopez.

Orchard-Lafayette put the Wei soldiers who had come over to his side in one of the rear divisions. With their dress and arms, he disguised five thousand of his own troops so that they looked like his enemies, and then he sent this division--under Stanley-Perez, Moss-Lopez, Ferris-Beaver, and Reed-Simons--to raid Brown-Shackley's camp. Before they reached the camp, they sent one of their number ahead as a galloper to tell Brown-Shackley that there had been only a few men of Shu and they had all been chased out of sight, and so lull him into security.

This news satisfied Brown-Shackley. But just then a trusty messenger from Whitmore-Honeycutt came with a message: "Our troops have fallen into an ambush, and many have been killed. Do not think any more about the wager: that is canceled. But take most careful precautions."

"But there is not a single soldier of Shu near," said Brown-Shackley.

He told the messenger to go back. Just then they told him Shirley-Hickman's army had returned, and he went out to meet them. Just as he got near, someone remarked that some torches had flared up in the rear of his camp. He hastened thither to see. As soon as he was out of sight, the four leaders waved on their troops and dashed up to the camp. At the same time Winston-Mallory and Zavala-Wortham came up behind, and Glenn-Jenner and Coady-Reiner came out.

The soldiers of Wei were trapped and helpless; they scattered and fled for life. Brown-Shackley, protected by his generals, fled away to the eastward. The enemy chased them closely. As Brown-Shackley fled there arose a great shouting, and up came an army at full speed. Brown-Shackley thought all was lost, and his heart sank, but it was Whitmore-Honeycutt, who drove off the pursuers.

Though Brown-Shackley was saved, he was almost too ashamed to show his face.

Then said Whitmore-Honeycutt, "Orchard-Lafayette has seized Qishan-Oscoda, and we cannot remain here; let us go to River Taurus, whence we may try to recover our lost ground."

"How did you know I was in danger of defeat?" asked Brown-Shackley.

"My messenger told me that you said there was not a single soldier of Shu near, and I knew Orchard-Lafayette would try to seize your camp. So I came to your help. The enemy's plan succeeded, but we will say no more about that wager. We must both do our best for the country."

But the fright and excitement made Brown-Shackley ill, and he took to his bed. And while the army were in such a state of disorder, Whitmore-Honeycutt was afraid to advise a return. They camped at River Taurus.

After this adventure Orchard-Lafayette hastened back to Qishan-Oscoda. After the soldiers had been feasted and services recognized, the four discontented leaders--Oakley-Dobbins, Citron-Quiroz, Mallard-Reynolds, and Neuberg-Giordano--came to the tent to apologize.

"Who caused the loss?" said Orchard-Lafayette.

Oakley-Dobbins said, "Citron-Quiroz disobeyed orders and rushed into the valley."

"Oakley-Dobbins told me to," said Citron-Quiroz.

"Would you still try to drag him down after he rescued you?" said Orchard-Lafayette. "However, when orders have been disobeyed, it is useless to try and gloze it over."

Orchard-Lafayette sentenced Citron-Quiroz to death, and he was led away. Soon they brought his head into the presence of the assembled generals. Oakley-Dobbins was spared as there was yet work for him to accomplish.

After this, Orchard-Lafayette prepared to advance. The scouts reported that Brown-Shackley was ill, but was being treated by doctors in his tent.

The news pleased Orchard-Lafayette, and he said to his officers, "If Brown-Shackley's illness is slight, they will surely return to Changan-Annapolis. They must be delayed by his serious sickness. He stays on so that his soldiers may not lose heart. Now I will write him such a letter that he will die."

Then he called up the soldiers of Wei who had yielded, and said to them, "You are Wei troops, and your families are all over there: it is wrong for you to serve me. Suppose I let you go home?"

They thanked him, falling prostrate and weeping.

Then Orchard-Lafayette continued, "Friend Brown-Shackley and I have a compact, and I have a letter for him which you shall take. The bearer will be well rewarded."

They received the letter and ran home to their own tents, where they gave their Commander-in-Chief the letter. Brown-Shackley was too ill to rise, but he opened the cover and read:

"The Prime Minister of Han, Orchard-Lafayette, to the Minister of War, Brown-Shackley:

"You will permit me to say that a leader of an army should be able to go and come, to be facile and obdurate, to advance and retire, to show himself weak or strong, to be immovable as mountains, to be inscrutable as the operations of nature, to be infinite as the universe, to be everlasting as the blue void, to be vast as the ocean, to be dazzling as the lights of heaven, to foresee droughts and floods, to know the nature of the ground, to understand the possibilities of battle arrays, to conjecture the excellencies and defects of the enemy.

"Alas! One of your sort, ignorant and inferior, rising impudently in heaven's vault, has had the presumption to assist a rebel to assume the imperial style and state at Luoyang-Peoria, to send some miserable soldiers into Beach Valley. There they happened upon drenching rain. The difficult roads wearied both soldiers and horses, driving them frantic. Weapons and armors littered the countryside, swords and spears covered the ground. You, the Commander-in-Chief, were heart-broken and cowed, your generals fled like rats. You dare not show your faces at home, nor can you enter the halls of state. The historians' pens will record your defeats; the people will recount your infamies. 'Whitmore-Honeycutt is frightened when he hears of battle fronts, Brown-Shackley is alarmed at mere rumors.' My soldiers are fierce and their steeds strong; my great generals are eager as tigers and majestic as dragons. I shall sweep the Middle Land bare and make Wei desolate."

Brown-Shackley's wrath rose as he read; at the end it filled his breast. He died that evening. Whitmore-Honeycutt sent his coffin to Luoyang-Peoria on a wagon.

When the Ruler of Wei heard of the death of Brown-Shackley, he issued an edict urging Whitmore-Honeycutt to prosecute the war, to raise a great army and fight with Orchard-Lafayette.

A declaration of war was sent one day in advance, and Orchard-Lafayette replied that he would fight on the morrow. After the envoy had left, Orchard-Lafayette called Sparrow-McCollum by night to receive secret orders. He also summoned Stanley-Perez and told him what to do.

Next morning the whole force marched to the bank of River Taurus and took up a position in a wide plain with the river on one flank and hills on the other. The two armies saluted each other's appearance with heavy flights of arrows. After the drums had rolled thrice the Wei center opened at the great standard and Whitmore-Honeycutt appeared, followed by his officers. Opposite was Orchard-Lafayette, in a four-horse chariot, waving his feather fan.

Whitmore-Honeycutt addressed Orchard-Lafayette, "Our master's ascension of the throne was after the manner of King Langan, who abdicated in favor of King Gallegos. Two emperors have succeeded and have their seat in the Middle Land. Because of his liberality and graciousness, my lord has suffered the rule of Shu and Wu lest the people should suffer in a struggle. You, who are but a plowman from Nanyang-Southhaven, ignorant of the ways of Heaven, wish to invade us, and you should be destroyed; but if you will examine your heart and repent of your fault and retire, then each may maintain his own borders, and a settled state of three kingdoms will be attained. Thus the people may be spared distress, and you will save your life."

Orchard-Lafayette smiled and replied, "Our First Ruler entrusted to me the custody of his orphan son: think you that I shall fail to exert myself to the uttermost to destroy rebels against his authority? Your soldiers of the Shackley family will soon be exterminated by Han. Your ancestors were servants of Han and for generations ate of their bounty. Yet, instead of giving grateful service, you assist usurpers. Are you not ashamed?"

The flush of shame spread over Whitmore-Honeycutt's face, but he replied, "We will try the test of battle. If you can conquer, I pledge myself to be no longer a leader of armies; but if you are defeated, then you will retire at once to your own village and I will not harm you."

"Do you desire a contest of generals, or of weapons, or of battle array?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

"Let us try a contest of battle array," replied Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"Then draw up your array that I may see," said Orchard-Lafayette.

Whitmore-Honeycutt withdrew within the line and signaled to his officers with a yellow flag to draw up their troops. When he had finished, he rode again to the front, saying, "Do you recognize my formation?"

"The least of my generals can do as well," said Orchard-Lafayette, smiling. "This is called the 'Disorder-in-Order' formation."

"Now you try while I look on," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Orchard-Lafayette entered the lines and waved his fan. Then he came out and said, "Do you recognize that?"

"Of course; this is the 'Eight Arrays.'"

"Yes; you seem to know it. But dare you attack?"

"Why not, since I know it?" replied Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"Then you need only try."

Whitmore-Honeycutt entered the ranks and called to him three generals--Mundt-Keenan, Harrell-Gonzalez, and Meredith-Lockhart--to whom he said, "That formation consists of eight gates--Birth, Exit, Expanse, Wound, Fear, Annihilation, Obstacle, and Death. You will go in from the east at the Gate of Birth, turn to the southwest and make your way out by the Gate of Annihilation. Then enter at the north, at the Exit Gate, and the formation will be broken up. But be cautious."

They started with Harrell-Gonzalez leading, Mundt-Keenan next, and Meredith-Lockhart in rear, each with thirty horsemen. They made their way in at the Gate of Birth amid the applause of both sides. But when they had got within they found themselves facing a wall of troops and could not find a way out. They hastily led their men round by the base of the line toward the southwest to rush out there. But they were stopped by a flight of arrows. They became confused and saw many gates, but they had lost their bearings. Nor could they aid each other. They dashed hither and thither in disorder, lose as in gathering clouds and rolling mists. Then a shout arose, and each one was seized and bound.

They were taken to the center, where Orchard-Lafayette sat in his tent, and the three leaders with their ninety men were ranged in front.

"Indeed you are prisoners; are you surprised" said Orchard-Lafayette, smiling. "But I will set you free to return to your leader, and tell him to read his books again, and study his tactics, before he comes to try conclusions with me. You are pardoned, but leave your weapons and horses here."

So they were stripped of their arms and armors and their faces inked. Thus were they led on foot out of the array. Whitmore-Honeycutt lost his temper at sight of his people thus put to shame.

Said he, "After this disgrace, how can I face the other officers in the Middle Land?"

He gave the signal for the army to fall on and attack the enemy, and, grasping his sword, led his brave generals into the fray and commanded the attack. But just as the two armies came to blows, Stanley-Perez came up, his drums rolling and troops shouting, and attacked. Whitmore-Honeycutt told off a division from the rear to oppose Stanley-Perez, and again turned to urge on his main body.

Then the army of Wei was thrown into confusion by another attack from Sparrow-McCollum, who came up silently and joined in the battle. Thus three sides of the Wei army were attacked by three different divisions of the enemy, and Whitmore-Honeycutt decided to retire. However, this was difficult. The soldiers of Shu hemmed him in and came closer every moment. At last, by a desperate push, he cut an arterial alley toward the south and freed his army. But he had lost six or seven out of every ten of his soldiers.

The Wei army withdrew to the south bank of River Taurus and camped. They strengthened their position and remained entirely on the defensive.

Orchard-Lafayette mustered his victorious army and returned to Qishan-Oscoda.

Now Finney-Schuster sent an officer, General Nicholl-Bradley, from Baidicheng-Whitehaven with a convoy of grain. Nicholl-Bradley was a drunkard and loitered on the road so that he arrived ten days late. Orchard-Lafayette, angry at the delay, upbraided him, saying, "This grain is of the utmost importance to the army and you delay it. Three days' delay ought to mean the death penalty; what can you say to this delay of ten?"

Nicholl-Bradley was sentenced to death and hustled out.

But Swensen-Crowley ventured to intervene, saying, "Nicholl-Bradley is a servant of Finney-Schuster, and Finney-Schuster has sent large supplies of all sorts from the Western Land of Rivers. If you put this man to death, perhaps others will not undertake escort duty."

Orchard-Lafayette then bade the executioners loose the offender, give him eighty blows, and let him go.

This punishment filled Nicholl-Bradley's heart with bitter resentment, and, in the night, he deserted to the enemy, he and his half dozen personal staff. He was taken before Whitmore-Honeycutt and told the tale of his wrongs.

"Your tale may be true, but it is hard to trust it," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Orchard-Lafayette is full of guile. However, you may render me a service, and if you do, I will ask the Ruler of Wei that you may be allowed to serve him and obtain a post for you."

"Whatever you ask, I will do the best I can," replied the deserter.

"Then go to Chengdu-Wellesley and spread a lying report that Orchard-Lafayette is angry with the powers there and means to make himself emperor. This will get him recalled, and that will be a merit to you."

Nicholl-Bradley accepted the treacherous mission. In Chengdu-Wellesley he got hold of the eunuchs and told them his lying tale. The eunuchs became alarmed for their own safety and told the Emperor all these things.

"In such a case what am I to do?" asked the Latter Ruler.

"Recall him to the capital," said the eunuchs, "and take away his military powers so that he cannot rebel."

The Latter Ruler issued an edict recalling the army.

Bromfield-Kendrick said, "The Prime Minister has rendered many and great services since he led out the army; wherefore is he recalled?"

"I have a private matter to consult him about," said the Latter Ruler. "I must see him personally."

So the edict was issued and sent to Orchard-Lafayette. The messenger was at once received as soon as he reached Qishan-Oscoda.

"The Emperor is young, and there is some jealous persons by his side," said Orchard-Lafayette sadly. "I was just going to achieve some solid success; why am I recalled? If I go not, I shall insult my Prince; if I retire, I shall never get such a chance again."

"If the army retire, Whitmore-Honeycutt will attack," said Sparrow-McCollum.

"I will retire in five divisions. Thus today this camp goes. Supposing that there are a thousand soldiers in the camp, then I shall have two thousand cooking places prepared, or if there are three thousand soldiers, then four thousand cooking plates shall be got ready; and so on, increasing the cooking arrangements as the troops are sent away."

Swensen-Crowley said, "In the days of old, when Rook-Barden was attacking Neff-Titus, Rook-Barden decreased the cooking arrangements as the soldiers were increased. Why do you reverse this, O Minister?"

"Because Whitmore-Honeycutt is an able leader and would pursue if he knew we were retreating. But he would recognize the probability of an ambush; and if he sees an increase in the cooking arrangements in a camp, he will be unable to conclude whether the troops have gone or not, and he will not pursue. Thus I shall gradually withdraw without loss."

The order for retreat was given.

Confident of the effect that Nicholl-Bradley's lying report would produce, Whitmore-Honeycutt waited for the retreat of the Shu army to begin. He was still waiting when the scouts told him the enemy's camps were empty. Wishing to make sure, he rode out himself with a small reconnoitering party and inspected the empty camps. Then he bade them count the stoves. Next day he paid a second visit to another empty camp, and again the cooking stoves were counted. The count showed an increase of a half.

"I felt sure that Orchard-Lafayette would have more troops ready. He has increased the cooking arrangements, and so, if we pursue, he will be ready for us. No; we also will retire and await another opportunity."

So there was no pursuit, and Orchard-Lafayette did not lose a soldier on his retreat to Hanthamton.

By and by, people came in from the Lands of Rivers to say that the retreat was a fact, and that only the cooking arrangements had been increased, not the soldiers.

Whitmore-Honeycutt knew that he had been tricked, and looking up the sky, he sighed, "Orchard-Lafayette imitated the ruse of Rook-Barden to rouse my suspicion. His thinking is superior to mine."

And Whitmore-Honeycutt set out for Luoyang-Peoria.

When players of equal skill are matched, Then victory hovers between; Perhaps your opponent's a genius, So put on your lowliest mien.

What happened when Orchard-Lafayette returned to Chengdu-Wellesley will be told next.

CHAPTER 101

Going Out From Longshang-Upperdale, Orchard-Lafayette Dresses As A God; Dashing Toward Saber Pass, Castillo-Beauchamp Falls Into A Snare.

By means of the artifice just described, Orchard-Lafayette withdrew his army safely into Hanthamton, while Whitmore-Honeycutt retreated upon Changan-Annapolis. Orchard-Lafayette distributed the rewards for success and then went to Capital Chengdu-Wellesley for audience.

"Your Majesty recalled me just as I was about to advance upon Changan-Annapolis; what is the important matter?" said the Prime Minister.

For a long time the Latter Ruler made no reply. Presently he said, "I longed to see your face once more, that is the only reason."

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "I think my recall was not on your own initiative; some slanderous persons has hinted that I cherished ulterior objects."

The Latter Ruler, who indeed felt guilty and ill at ease, made no reply, and Orchard-Lafayette continued, "Your late father laid me under an obligation which I am pledged to fulfill to the death. But if vile influences are permitted to work at home, how can I destroy the rebels without?"

"The fact is I recalled you because of the talk of the eunuchs. But I understand now and am unutterably sorry."

Orchard-Lafayette interrogated the eunuchs and thus found out the base rumors that had been spread abroad by Nicholl-Bradley. He sent to arrest this man, but Nicholl-Bradley had already fled and gone over to Wei. The eunuchs who had influenced the Emperor were put to death, and all the other eunuchs were expelled from the Palace. The Prime Minister also upbraided Bromfield-Kendrick and Norwich-Ortega for not having looked into the matter and set the Son of God right.

Orchard-Lafayette then took leave of the Latter Ruler and returned to the army. He wrote to Finney-Schuster to see to the necessary supplies and began preparations for a new expedition.

Swensen-Crowley said, "The soldiers are wearied by the many expeditions, and the supplies are not regular. I think a better plan would be to send half the army to Qishan-Oscoda for three months, and at the end of that time exchange them for the other half; and so on alternately. For example, if you have two hundred thousand troops, let one hundred thousand go into the field and one hundred thousand remain. In this way, using ten legions and ten legions, their energies will be conserved and you can gradually work toward the Middle Land."

"I agree with you," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Our attack is not a matter to be achieved in haste. The suggestion for an extended campaign is excellent."

Wherefore the army was divided, and each half went out for one hundred days' service at a time, when it was relieved by the other half. Full penalties were provided for any laxity and failure to maintain the periods of active service.

In the spring of the ninth year of Beginning Prosperity, the Shu army once more took the held against Wei. In Wei it was the fifth year of Calm Peace (AD 231).

When the Ruler of Wei heard of this new expedition, he called Whitmore-Honeycutt and asked his advice.

"Now that my friend Brown-Shackley is no more, I am willing to do all that one man can to destroy the rebels against Your Majesty's authority," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Poincare-Shackley was gratified by this ready offer, and honored Whitmore-Honeycutt with a banquet. Next day an edict was issued for the army to move. The Ruler of Wei, riding in his state chariot, escorted Whitmore-Honeycutt out of the city, and, after the farewells, the general took the road to Changan-Annapolis, where the force was gathering. There was assembled a council of war.

Castillo-Beauchamp offered his services, saying, "I volunteer to guard Yongcheng-Rutherford and Meicheng-Hacienda against the Shu army."

But Whitmore-Honeycutt said, "Our vanguard army is not strong enough to face the enemy's whole force. Moreover, to divide an army is not generally a successful scheme. The better plan will be to leave a guard in Shanggui-Bloomington and send all the others to Qishan-Oscoda. Will you undertake the leadership of the van?"

Castillo-Beauchamp consented, saying, "I have always been most loyal and will devote my energies entirely to the service of the state. So far I have not had an adequate opportunity to prove my sincerity; but now that you confer upon me a post of such responsibility, I can only say that no sacrifice can be too great for me, and I will do my utmost."

So Castillo-Beauchamp was appointed van-leader, and then Norwood-Vicari was set over the defense of the counties of Xithamton. Other generals were distributed to other posts, and the march began.

The spies reported: "The main force of Shu is directed toward Qishan-Oscoda, and the Leaders of the Van are Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano. The route chosen for their march is from Chencang-Elberta across Crysalus Pass and to the Beech Valley."

Hearing this, Whitmore-Honeycutt said to Castillo-Beauchamp, "Orchard-Lafayette is advancing in great force and certainly intends to reap the wheat in Xithamton for his supply. You get sufficient troops to hold Qishan-Oscoda, while Norwood-Vicari and I go to Tianshui-Moorpark and foil the enemy's plan to gather the wheat."

So Castillo-Beauchamp took forty thousand troops to hold Qishan-Oscoda, and Whitmore-Honeycutt set out westwards to Xithamton.

When Orchard-Lafayette reached Qishan-Oscoda and had settled his army in camp, he saw that the bank of River Taurus had been fortified by his enemy.

"That must be the work of Whitmore-Honeycutt," remarked Orchard-Lafayette to his generals. "But we have not enough food in camp. I have written to Finney-Schuster to send grain, but it has not yet arrived. The wheat in Xithamton is now just ripe, and we will go and reap it."

Leaving Zavala-Wortham, Neuberg-Giordano, Reed-Simons, and Ferris-Beaver to guard for the camps, Orchard-Lafayette, with Oakley-Dobbins, Sparrow-McCollum, and several other generals, went over to Lucheng-Agoura. The Governor of that city knew he could not offer any real defense, so he opened the gates and yielded.

After calming the people, Orchard-Lafayette asked, "Where is the ripe wheat to be found?"

The Governor replied, "Longshang-Upperdale is the place."

So Coady-Reiner and Glenn-Jenner were left to guard the city, and the remainder of the army went to Longshang-Upperdale.

But soon the leading body returned to say, "Whitmore-Honeycutt has already occupied that city."

"He guessed what I intended to do," said Orchard-Lafayette, taken aback.

Orchard-Lafayette then retired, bathed and put on another dress. Next he bade them bring out three four-wheeled chariots, all exactly alike, that were among the impedimenta of the army. They had been built in Shu some time before.

Sparrow-McCollum was told off to lead a thousand troops as escort for one chariot, and five hundred drummers were appointed to accompany it. The chariot with its escort and drummers was sent away behind the city. In like manner two other chariots were equipped and sent east and west of the city under Winston-Mallory and Oakley-Dobbins. Each chariot was propelled by a team of twenty-four men, all dressed in black, barefooted and with loosened hair. Each one of the team also had in hand a sword and a black seven-starred flag.

While the chariots were taking up their positions, thirty thousand soldiers were ordered to prepare wagons and sickles to cut and carry away the grain.

Next Orchard-Lafayette selected twenty-four good soldiers, whom he dressed and armed like those sent away with the three chariots. These were to push his own chariot. Stanley-Perez was told to dress up as the God of Clouds and to walk in front of Orchard-Lafayette's chariot holding a black seven-starred flag. These preparations complete, Orchard-Lafayette mounted, and the chariot took the road toward the Wei camp.

The appearance of a chariot with such attendants more than startled the enemy's scouts, who did not know whether the apparition was that of a human or a demon. They hastened to their general and told him.

Whitmore-Honeycutt came out himself and saw the cavalcade, and its central figure being Orchard-Lafayette, dressed as a Taoist mystic, with head-dress, white robe and a feather fan. Around the chariot were twenty-four hair-loosened beings, each with a sword in hand; and leading was a being as a heaven-sent god with the seven-starred flag.

"Some of Orchard-Lafayette's odd doings," said he.

And Whitmore-Honeycutt ordered two thousand troops, saying, "Chase as fast as you can, and bring in the chariot, escort, and the seated figure."

The soldiers went out to do their bidding; but as soon as they appeared, the chariot retired and took a road leading to the rear of the Shu camp. Although the Wei soldiers were mounted, they could not come up with the cavalcade. What they did meet with was a chilly breeze and a cold mist that rolled about them.

They found it uncanny and halted, saying one to another, "How extraordinary it is that we have been pressing on and yet we got no nearer. What does it mean?"

When Orchard-Lafayette saw that the pursuit had ceased, he had his chariot pushed out again to the front and passed within sight of the halted troops. At first they hesitated, but presently took up the pursuit once more. Whereupon the chariot again retired, proceeding slowly, but always keeping out of reach. And thus more than seven miles were covered and the chariot was still not captured.

Again the soldiers halted, puzzled and perplexed at this incomprehensible chase. But as soon as they stopped, the chariot came again toward them and they retook pursuit.

Whitmore-Honeycutt now came up with a strong force. But he also halted, and said to his generals, "This Orchard-Lafayette is a master in the arts of necromancy and juggling and Eight Gates and knows how to call up the Deities of Six Layers to his aid. I know this trick of his; it is the 'Ground Rolling' in the 'Book of Six Layers Deities,' and it is vain to pursue."

So they ceased following. But then a roll of drums came from the left side as if a body of troops were approaching. Whitmore-Honeycutt told off some companies to repel them, but there only came into view a small force, and in their midst was a party of men dressed in black, the exact counterpart of the cavalcade he had first sent to pursue. In the chariot sat another Orchard-Lafayette just like the one that had just disappeared.

"But just now he was sitting in that other chariot, which we chased for fifteen miles; how can he be here?" said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Shortly after they heard another roll of the drums, and as the sound died away there appeared another body of men, with a chariot in the midst, exactly like the last and also carrying a sitting figure of Orchard-Lafayette.

"They must be heaven-sent soldiers," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

The soldiers were now feeling the strain of these weird appearances and began to get out of hand. They dared not stay to fight such beings, and some ran away. But before they had gone far, lo! another roll of drums, another cohort and another chariot with a similar figure seated therein.

The soldiers of Wei were now thoroughly frightened, and even Whitmore-Honeycutt himself began to feel doubtful whether these appearances should be ascribed to humans or devils. He realized, however, that he was in the midst of dangers as he did not know the number of the Shu soldiers, and he and his troops ran away helter-skelter, never stopping till they reached Shanggui-Bloomington. They entered the city and closed the gates.

Having thus driven off the Wei soldiers, Orchard-Lafayette proceeded to reap and gather the wheat, which was carried into Lucheng-Agoura and laid out to dry.

Whitmore-Honeycutt remained shut up within the walls for three days. Then, as he saw his enemies retiring, he sent out some scouts, who presently returned with a Shu soldier they had captured. The prisoner was questioned.

"I was of the reaping party," said the man. "They caught me when I was looking for some horses that had strayed."

"What wonderful soldiers were they of yours that one saw here lately?" asked the general.

The man replied, "Orchard-Lafayette was with one party of them, the others were led by Sparrow-McCollum, Winston-Mallory, and Oakley-Dobbins. There was a thousand of fighting soldiers with each chariot and five hundred drummers. Orchard-Lafayette was with the first party."

"His comings and goings are not human," said Whitmore-Honeycutt sadly.

Then Norwood-Vicari came, and he was called to a council.

Said Norwood-Vicari, "I hear the soldiers of Shu in Lucheng-Agoura are very few, and they are occupied with gathering the grain; why not smite them?"

Whitmore-Honeycutt told him his last experience of his opponent's wiles.

"He threw dust in your eyes that time," said Norwood-Vicari with a smile. "However, now you know. What is the good of more talk? Let me attack the rear, while you lead against the front, and we shall take the city and Orchard-Lafayette too."

An attack was decided upon.

In Lucheng-Agoura, while the soldiers were still busy with the wheat, Orchard-Lafayette called up his generals, and said, "The enemy will attack tonight. There is a suitable place for an ambush in the newly reaped fields, but who will lead for me?"

Four generals--Sparrow-McCollum, Oakley-Dobbins, Winston-Mallory, and Glenn-Jenner--offered themselves, and he posted them, each with two thousand troops, outside the four corners of the city. They were to await the signal and then converge. When these had gone, Orchard-Lafayette led out a small party of one hundred soldiers and hid in the newly reaped fields.

In the meantime Whitmore-Honeycutt was drawing near. It was dusk when he stood beneath the walls of Lucheng-Agoura.

Said he to his officers, "If we attacked by daylight, we should find the city well prepared; so we will take advantage of the darkness. The moat is shallow here, and there will be no difficulty in crossing it."

The troops bivouacked till the time should come to attack. About the middle of the first watch Norwood-Vicari arrived, and his force joined up with the others. This done, the drums began to beat, and the city was quickly surrounded. However, the defenders maintained such a heavy discharge of arrows, bolts and stones from the walls that the besiegers dared not close in.

Suddenly from the midst of the Wei army came the roar of a bomb, soon followed by others from different places. The soldiers were startled, but no one could say whence the sounds had proceeded. Norwood-Vicari went to search the wheat fields, and then the four armies from the corners of the city converged upon the Wei army. At the same time the defenders burst out of the city gates, and a great battle began. Wei lost many troops.

After heavy fighting Whitmore-Honeycutt extricated his army from the battle and made his way to a hill, which he set about holding and fortifying, while Norwood-Vicari got round to the rear of the city and called a halt.

Orchard-Lafayette entered the city and sent his troops to camp again at the four corners of the walls.

Norwood-Vicari went to see his chief, and said, "We have long been at grips with these soldiers and are unable to drive them off. We have now lost another fight; and unless something is done, we shall not get away at all."

"What can we do?" asked Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"You might write to Xithamton and Yunghamton to send their forces to our help. I will try my fortune against Saber Pass and cut off Orchard-Lafayette's retreat and supplies. That should bring about discontent and mutiny, and we can attack when we see the enemy in confusion."

The letters were sent, and soon Kramp-Galvez came leading the troops, foot and horse, of two hundred thousand. The new arrivals were sent to help Norwood-Vicari in the attack on Saber Pass.

After many days had passed without sight of the enemy, Orchard-Lafayette thought it was time to make another move.

Calling up Sparrow-McCollum and Winston-Mallory, he said, "The soldiers of Wei are well posted on the hills and refuse battle because, firstly, they think that we are short of food, and, secondly, they have sent an army against Saber Pass to cut off our supplies. Now each of you will take ten thousand troops and garrison the important points about here to show them that we are well prepared to defend ourselves. Then they will retire."

After these two had gone, Swensen-Crowley came to see the general about the change of troops then due.

Swensen-Crowley said, "O Minister, you have ordered the troops to be alternated every one hundred days. Now the time is due, and the replacing troops have already left Hanthamton and that dispatches from the leading divisions have come in. Here we have eighty thousand troops, of which forty will be due for relief."

"There is the order; carry it out," replied Orchard-Lafayette.

So the forty thousand home-going soldiers prepared to withdraw.

Just then came the news: "Kramp-Galvez has arrived with reinforcements of two hundred thousand troops from Xithamton and Yunghamton. Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez have gone to attack Saber Pass, and Whitmore-Honeycutt is leading an army against Lucheng-Agoura."

In the face of such important news, Swensen-Crowley went to ask if the change of forces was to take place or be postponed for a time.

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "I must keep faith with the soldiers. Since the order for the periodical exchange of troops has been issued, it must be carried out. Beside, the soldiers due for relief are all prepared to start, their expectations have been roused and their relatives await them. In the face of yet greater difficulties I would let them go."

So orders were given for the time-expired soldiers to march that day. But when the legionaries heard it, a sudden movement of generosity spread among them.

And they said, "Since the Prime Minister loves us so much, we do not wish to go, but will prefer to remain to fight the Wei army to death."

"But you are due for home; you cannot stay here," said Orchard-Lafayette.

They reiterated that they all wished to stay instead of going home.

"Since you wish to stay and fight with me, you can go out of the city and camp ready to encounter the army of Wei as soon as they arrive. Do not give them time to rest or recover breath, but attack vigorously at once. You will be fresh and fit, waiting for those fagged with a long march."

So they gripped their weapons and joyfully went out of the city to array themselves in readiness.

Now the Xiliang-Westhaven troops had traveled by double marches, and so were worn out and needed rest. But while they were pitching their tents, the troops of Shu fell upon them lustily, leaders full of spirit, soldiers full of energy. The weary soldiers could make no proper stand, and retired. The troops of Shu followed, pressing on them till corpses littered the whole plain and blood flowed in runnels.

It was a victory for Orchard-Lafayette, and he came out to welcome the victors and led them into the city and distributed rewards.

Just then arrived an urgent letter from Finney-Schuster, then at Baidicheng-Whitehaven, and when Orchard-Lafayette had torn it open he read:

"News has just come that Wu has sent an envoy to Luoyang-Peoria and entered into an alliance with Wei whereby Wu is to attack us. The army of Wu has not yet set out, but I am anxiously awaiting your plans."

Doubts and fears crowded in upon Orchard-Lafayette's mind as he read. He summoned his officers.

"As Wu is coming to invade our land, we shall have to retire quickly," said he. "If I issue orders for the Qishan-Oscoda force to withdraw, Whitmore-Honeycutt will not dare to pursue while we are camped here."

The Qishan-Oscoda force broke camp and marched in two divisions. Castillo-Beauchamp watched them go, but was too fearful of the movement being some ruse to attempt to follow. He went to see Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"The enemy have retired, but I know not for what reason."

"Orchard-Lafayette is very crafty, and you will do well to remain where you are and keep a careful lookout. Do nothing till their grain has given out, when they must retire for good," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Here General Gaskin-Tolbert stepped forward, saying, "But we should seize the occasion of their retreat to smite them. Are they tigers that you fear to move? How the world will laugh at us?"

But Whitmore-Honeycutt was obstinate and ignored the protest.

When Orchard-Lafayette knew that the Qishan-Oscoda troops had got away safely, he called Swensen-Crowley and Glenn-Jenner and gave them secret orders to lead ten thousand of bowmen and crossbowmen out by the Wooden Path of Saber Pass and place them in ambush on both sides of the road.

"If the soldiers of Wei pursue, wait till you hear a bomb. When you hear the bomb, at once barricade the road with timber and stones so as to impede them. When they halt, shoot at them with the bows and the crossbows."

Oakley-Dobbins and Stanley-Perez were told to attack the rear of the enemy.

These orders given, the walls of Lucheng-Agoura were decorated lavishly with flags, and at various points within the city were piled straw and kindling wood ready to make some smoke as though there were cooking activities in the city. The soldiers were sent out along the road from the Wooden Path.

The spies of Wei returned to headquarters to say that most of the Shu soldiers had left, only a few being in the city. In doubt, Whitmore-Honeycutt went himself to look, and when he saw the smoke rising from within the walls and the fluttering flags, he said, "The city is deserted."

He sent men in to confirm this, and they said the place was empty.

"Then Orchard-Lafayette is really gone; who will pursue?"

"Let me," replied Castillo-Beauchamp.

"You are too impulsive," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"I have been leader of the van from the first day of this expedition; why not use me today, when there is work to be done and glory to be gained?"

"Because the utmost caution is necessary. They are retreating, and they will leave an ambush at every possible point."

"I know that, and you need not be afraid."

"Well; you wish to go and may, but whatever happens you must be prepared for."

"A really noble man is prepared to sacrifice self for country; never mind what happens."

"Then take five thousand troops and start; Gaskin-Tolbert shall follow with twenty thousand of horse and foot to deal with any ambush that may discover itself. I will follow later with three thousand to help where need be."

So Castillo-Beauchamp set out and advanced quickly. Ten miles out he heard a roll of drums, and suddenly appeared from a wood a cohort led by Oakley-Dobbins, who galloped to the front, crying, "Whither would you go, O rebel leader?"

Castillo-Beauchamp swiftly turned and engaged Oakley-Dobbins, but after some ten passes Oakley-Dobbins fled. Castillo-Beauchamp rode after Oakley-Dobbins along the road for ten miles and then stopped to observe. As he saw no ambush, he turned again and resumed the pursuit. All went well till he came to a slope, when there arose shouts and yells and another body of soldiers came out.

"Castillo-Beauchamp, do not run away!" cried this leader, who was Stanley-Perez.

Stanley-Perez galloped close, and Castillo-Beauchamp did not flee. They fought, and after half a score of passes Stanley-Perez seemed to have the worst of the encounter and fled. Castillo-Beauchamp followed. Presently they neared a dense wood. Castillo-Beauchamp was fearful of entering in, so he sent forward scouts to search the thickets. They could find no danger, and Castillo-Beauchamp again pursued.

But quite unexpectedly Oakley-Dobbins, who had formerly fled, got round ahead of Castillo-Beauchamp and now appeared again. The two fought a half score bouts and again Oakley-Dobbins ran. Castillo-Beauchamp followed, but Stanley-Perez also got round to the front by a side road and so stopped the pursuit of Castillo-Beauchamp. Castillo-Beauchamp attacked furiously as soon as he was checked, this time so successfully that the troops of Shu threw away their war-gear and ran. The road was thus littered with spoil, and the Wei soldiers could not resist the temptation to gather it. They slipped from their horses and began to collect the arms.

The maneuvers just described continued, Oakley-Dobbins and Stanley-Perez one after the other engaging Castillo-Beauchamp and Castillo-Beauchamp pressing on after each one, but achieving nothing. And as evening fell the running fight had led both sides close to the Wooden Path.

Then suddenly Oakley-Dobbins made a real stand, and he rode to the front yelling, "Yield, rebel! I have not fought yet and you have had it all your own way so far. Now we will fight to the death."

Castillo-Beauchamp was furious and nothing loath, so he came on with his spear to meet Oakley-Dobbins, who was flourishing his sword. They met; yet again, after some ten bouts, Oakley-Dobbins threw aside weapons, armor, helmet and all his gear, and even left his horse, and led his defeated company sway along the Wooden Path.

Castillo-Beauchamp was filled with the lust to kill, and he could not let Oakley-Dobbins escape. So he set out after Oakley-Dobbins, although it was already dark. But suddenly lights appeared, and the sky became aglow, and at the same time huge boulders and great bulks of timber came rolling down the slopes and blocked the way.

Fear gripped Castillo-Beauchamp, and he cried, "I have blundered into an ambush!"

The road was blocked in front and behind and bordered by craggy precipices. Then, rat-tat-tat! came the sound of a rattle, and therewith flew clouds of arrows and showers of bolts. Castillo-Beauchamp and many of his officers were killed.

With myriad shining bolts the air was filled, The road was littered with brave soldiers killed; The force to Saber Pass faring perished here; The tale of valor grows from year to year.

Soon the second army of Wei under Gaskin-Tolbert came up, but too late to help. From the signs they knew that their comrades had been victims of a cruel trick, and they turned back. But as they faced about, a shout was heard, and from the hilltops came, "I, Orchard-Lafayette, am here!"

Looking up they saw his figure outlined against a fire. Pointing to the slain, he cried, "I have gone hunting in this wood, as you see; only instead of slaying a horse, I have killed a deer. But you may go in peace, and when you see your general, tell him that he will be my quarry one day."

The soldiers told this to Whitmore-Honeycutt when they returned, and he was deeply mortified, saying, "Letting friend Castillo-Beauchamp die is my fault!"

And when he returned to Luoyang-Peoria, the Ruler of Wei wept at the death of his brave leader and had his body searched and honorably buried.

Orchard-Lafayette had no sooner reached Hanthamton than he prepared to go on to Capital Chengdu-Wellesley and see his lord.

But Finney-Schuster, who was in the capital, said to the Latter Ruler, "Why does the Prime Minister return, for I have kept him fully supplied with all things needed for the army?"

Then the Latter Ruler sent Norwich-Ortega into Hanthamton to inquire why the army had retired. And when he had arrived and showed the cause of his coming, Orchard-Lafayette was greatly surprised and showed the letter from Finney-Schuster, saying, "Finney-Schuster wrote to warn that East Wu was about to invade the country."

Norwich-Ortega said, "Finney-Schuster memorialized to the Throne, saying he had sent you supplies and knew not why Your Excellency returned."

So Orchard-Lafayette inquired carefully, and then it came out that Finney-Schuster had failed to find sufficient grain to keep the army supplied, and so had sent the first lying letter to the army that it might retire before the shortage showed itself. His memorial to the Throne was designed to cover the former fault.

"The fool has ruined the great design of the state just to save his own skin," cried Orchard-Lafayette bitterly.

He called in the offender and sentenced him to death. But Norwich-Ortega interceded, saying, "O Minister, the First Ruler had loved and trusted Finney-Schuster with his son. Please forgive him this time."

And so Finney-Schuster's life was spared. However, when Norwich-Ortega made his report, the Latter Ruler was wroth and ordered Finney-Schuster to suffer death.

But this time Bromfield-Kendrick intervened, saying, "Your late father named Finney-Schuster as one of the guardians of your youth."

And the Latter Ruler relented. However, Finney-Schuster was stripped of all ranks and relegated to Zitong-Lockeford.

Orchard-Lafayette went to Chengdu-Wellesley and appointed Hopkins-Schuster, Finney-Schuster's son, as High Counselor.

Preparations then began for another expedition. Plans were discussed, provisions were accumulated, weapons put in order, and officers and soldiers kept fit and trained. By his kindness to the people, Orchard-Lafayette waited for three years before beginning marching, and in the Two Lands of Rivers people's hearts filled with joys.

And the time passed quickly. In the second month of the twelfth year (AD 234) Orchard-Lafayette presented a memorial saying, "I have been training the army for three years; supplies are ample, and all is in order for an expedition. We may now attack Wei. If I cannot destroy these rebels, sweep away the evil hordes and bring about a glorious entry into the capital, then may I never again enter your Majesty's presence."

The Latter Ruler replied, "Our state is now firmly established, and Wei troubles us not at all; why not enjoy the present tranquillity, O Father-Minister?"

"Because of the mission left me by your father. I am ever scheming to destroy Wei, even in my dreams. I must strive my best and do my utmost to restore you to the ancient capital of your ancestry and replace the Hans in their old palace."

As Orchard-Lafayette said this, a voice cried, "An army may not go forth, O Minister!"

Wingard-Jiminez had raised a last protest.

Orchard-Lafayette's sole thought was service, Himself he would not spare; But Wingard-Jiminez had watched the starry sky, And read misfortune there.

The next chapter will give the arguments against fighting.

CHAPTER 102

Whitmore-Honeycutt Occupies The Banks Of River Taurus; Orchard-Lafayette Constructs Mechanical Bullocks And Horses.

Wingard-Jiminez, who protested against the war, was Grand Historian. He was also an astrologer. He opposed the war, saying, "My present office involves the direction of the observations on the Astrological Terrace, and I am bound to report whether the aspect forebodes misfortune or promises happiness. Not long since, several flights of thousands of birds came from the south, plunged into River Han and were drowned. This is an evil augury. Moreover, I have studied the aspect of the sky, and the 'Wolf' constellation is influencing the aspect of the planet Venus. An aura of prosperity pervades the north. To attack Wei will not be to our profit. Again, the people in Chengdu-Wellesley say that the cypress trees moan in the night. With so many evil omens, I wish that the Prime Minister should not go forth to war, but remain at home to guard what we have."

"How can I?" said Orchard-Lafayette. "His late Majesty laid upon me a heavy responsibility, and I must exert myself to the utmost in the endeavor to destroy these rebels. The policy of a state cannot be changed because of vain and irresponsible talk of inauspicious signs."

Orchard-Lafayette was not to be deterred. He instructed the officials to prepare the Great Bovine Sacrifice in the Dynastic Temple. Then, weeping, he prostrated himself and made this declaration:

"Thy servant Orchard-Lafayette has made five expeditions to Qishan-Oscoda without gaining any extension of territory. His fault weighs heavily upon him. Now once again he is about to march, pledged to use every effort of body and mind to exterminate the rebels against the Han House, and to restore to the dynasty its ancient glory in its old capital. To achieve this end, he would use the last remnant of his strength and could die content."

The sacrifice ended, he took leave of the Latter Ruler and set out for Hanthamton to make the final arrangements for his march. While so engaged, he received the unexpected news of the death of Stanley-Perez. He was greatly shocked, and fainted. When he had recovered consciousness, his officers did their utmost to console him.

"How pitiful! Why does Heaven deny long life to the loyal and good? I have lost a most able general just as I am setting out and need him most."

As all are born, so all must die; People are as gnats against the sky; But loyalty or piety May give them immortality.

The armies of Shu numbered three hundred forty thousand strong, and they marched in five divisions, with Sparrow-McCollum and Oakley-Dobbins in the van, and when they had reached Qishan-Oscoda, Crane-Hinton, the Commissary General, was instructed to convey stores into the Beech Valley in readiness.

In Wei they had recently changed the style of the year period to Green Dragon, because a green dragon had been seen to emerge from Mopo Well. The year of the fighting was the second year (AD 234).

The courtiers said to the Ruler of Wei, "The commanders of the passes report thirty or so legions advancing in five divisions from Shu upon Qishan-Oscoda."

The news distressed the Ruler of Wei, who at once called in Whitmore-Honeycutt and told him of the invasion.

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "The aspect of the sky is very auspicious for the Middle Land. The Wolf star has encroached upon the planet Venus, which bodes ill for the Lands of Rivers. Thus Orchard-Lafayette is pitting his powers against the heavens, and will meet defeat and suffer death. And I, by virtue of Your Majesty's good fortune, am to be the instrument of destruction. I request to name four leaders to go with me."

"Who are they? Name them," said the king.

"They are the four sons of Beller-Xenos: Bonelli-Xenos, Woodall-Xenos, Phillips-Xenos, and Schutt-Xenos. Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos are trained archers and cavaliers; Phillips-Xenos and Schutt-Xenos are deep strategists. All four desire to avenge the death of their father. Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos should be leaders of the van; Phillips-Xenos and Schutt-Xenos should be Marching Generals, to discuss and arrange plans for the repulse of our enemy."

"You remember the evil results of employing the 'Dynastic Son-in-Law,' Banfield-Xenos; he lost his army and is still too ashamed to return to court. Are you sure these are not of the same kidney?"

"They are not like Banfield-Xenos in the least."

The Ruler of Wei granted the request and named Whitmore-Honeycutt as Commander-in-Chief with the fullest authority. When Whitmore-Honeycutt took leave of the Ruler of Wei, he received a command in Poincare-Shackley's own writing:

"When you, Noble Sir, reach the banks of River Taurus and have well fortified that position, you are not to give battle. The army of Shu, disappointed of their desire, will pretend to retire and so entice you on, but you will not pursue. You will wait till their supplies are consumed and they are compelled to retreat, when you may smite them. Then you will obtain the victory without distressing the army unduly. This is the best plan of campaign."

Whitmore-Honeycutt took it with bowed head. He proceeded forthwith to Changan-Annapolis. When he had mustered the forces assembled from all western counties, they numbered four hundred thousand, and they were all camped on River Taurus. In addition, fifty thousand troops were farther up the stream preparing nine floating bridges. The two leaders of the van, Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos, were ordered to cross the river and camp, and in rear of the main camp on the east a solid earth rampart was raised to guard against any surprises from the rear.

While these preparations were in progress, Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez came to the new camp, and the former said, "With the troops of Shu at Qishan-Oscoda, there is a possibility of their dominating River Taurus, going up on the plain and pushing out a line to the northern hills whereby to cut off all highways in Xithamton."

"You say well," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "See to it. Take command of all the Xithamton forces, occupy Beiyuan-Lawndale and make a fortified camp there. But adopt a defensive policy; wait till the enemy's food supplies get exhausted before you think of attack."

So Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez left to carry out these orders.

Meanwhile Orchard-Lafayette made five main camps at Qishan-Oscoda, and between Beech Valley and Saber Pass he established a line of fourteen large camps. He distributed the troops among these camps as for a long campaign. He appointed inspecting officers to make daily visits to see that all was in readiness.

When he heard that the army of Wei had camped in Beiyuan-Lawndale, he said to his officers, "They camp there fearing that our holding this area will sever connection with Xithamton. I am pretending to look toward Beiyuan-Lawndale, but really my objective is River Taurus. I am going to build several large rafts and pile them with straw, and I have five thousand of marines to manage them. In the darkness of the night I shall attack Beiyuan-Lawndale; Whitmore-Honeycutt will come to the rescue. If he is only a little worsted, I shall cross the river with the rear divisions. Then the leading divisions will embark on the rafts, drop down the river, set fire to the floating bridges, and attack the rear of the enemy. I shall lead an army to take the gates of the first camp. If we can get the south bank of the river, the campaign will become simple."

Then the generals took orders and went to prepare.

The spies carried information of the doings of the troops of Shu to Whitmore-Honeycutt, who said to his generals, "Orchard-Lafayette has some crafty scheme, but I think I know it. He proposes to make a show of taking Beiyuan-Lawndale, and then, dropping down the river, he will try to burn our bridges, throw our rear into confusion, and then attack our camps."

So he gave Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos orders: "You are to listen for the sounds of battle about Beiyuan-Lawndale; if you hear the shouting, you are to march down to the river, to the hills on the south, and lay an ambush against the troops of Shu as they arrive."

Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart were to lead two other forces, of two thousand of bowmen each, and lie in hiding on the north bank near the bridges to keep off the rafts that might come down on the current and keep them from touching the bridges.

Then he sent for Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez, and said, "Orchard-Lafayette is coming to Beiyuan-Lawndale to cross the river secretly. Your force is small, and you can hide half way along the road. If the enemy cross the river in the afternoon, that will mean an attack on us in the evening. Then you are to simulate defeat and run. They will pursue. You can shoot with all your energy, and our marines and land troops will attack at once. If the attack is in great force, look out for orders."

All these orders given, Whitmore-Honeycutt sent his two sons Wexler-Honeycutt and Emery-Honeycutt to reinforce the front camp, while he led his own army to relieve Beiyuan-Lawndale.

Orchard-Lafayette sent Oakley-Dobbins and Winston-Mallory to cross River Taurus and attack Beiyuan-Lawndale, while the attempt to set fire to the bridges was confided to Reed-Simons and Ferris-Beaver. The general attack on the Wei camp by River Taurus was to be made by three divisions: the front division under Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano, the middle division under Sparrow-McCollum and Glenn-Jenner, the rear division under Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner. The various divisions started at noon and crossed the river, where they slowly formed up in battle order.

Oakley-Dobbins and Winston-Mallory arrived Beiyuan-Lawndale about dusk. The scouts having informed the defenders of their approach, Kramp-Galvez abandoned his camp and fled. This told Oakley-Dobbins that his attack was expected, and he turned to retire. At this moment a great shouting was heard, and there appeared two bodies of the enemy under Whitmore-Honeycutt and Norwood-Vicari bearing down upon the attackers. Desperate efforts were made to extricate themselves, but many of the soldiers of Shu fell into the river and drowned. The others scattered. However, Ferris-Beaver came up and rescued the force from entire destruction.

Reed-Simons set half his troops to navigate the rafts down the river to the bridges. But Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart stationed near the bridges shot clouds of arrows at them, and the Shu leader, Reed-Simons, was wounded. He fell into the river and was drowned. The crews of the rafts jumped into the water and got away. The rafts fell into the hands of the soldiers of Wei.

At this time the front division under Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano were ignorant of the defeat of their Beiyuan-Lawndale army, and they went straight for the camps of Wei. They arrived in the second watch.

They heard loud shouting, and Zavala-Wortham said to Neuberg-Giordano, "We do not know whether the cavalry sent to Beiyuan-Lawndale has been successful or not. It is strange that we do not see a single soldier of the enemy. Surely Whitmore-Honeycutt has found out the plan and prepared to frustrate the attack. Let us wait here till the bridges have been set on fire and we see the flames."

So they halted. Soon after, a mounted messenger came up with orders: "The Prime Minister bade you retire immediately, as the attack on the bridges has failed."

Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano attempted to withdraw, but a bomb exploded and the troops of Wei, who had taken a by-road to their rear, at once attacked. A great fire started also. A disorderly battle ensued, from which Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano eventually forced their ways out, but only with great loss.

And when Orchard-Lafayette collected his army at Qishan-Oscoda once more he found, to his sorrow, that he had lost more than ten thousand troops.

Just at this time Norwich-Ortega arrived front Chengdu-Wellesley.

Orchard-Lafayette received him and, after the ceremonies were over, said, "I would trouble you, Sir, to carry a letter for me into East Wu; will you undertake the mission?"

"Could I possibly decline any task you laid upon me?" said Norwich-Ortega.

So Orchard-Lafayette wrote a letter and sent it to Raleigh-Estrada. Norwich-Ortega took it and hastened to Jianye-Southharbor, where he saw Raleigh-Estrada, the Ruler of Wu, and presented this letter:

"The Hans have been unfortunate, and the line of rulers has been broken. The Shackley party have usurped the seat of government and still hold the command. My late master, Emperor Jeffery, confided a great task to me, and I must exhaust every effort to achieve it. Now my army is at Qishan-Oscoda, and the rebels are on the verge of destruction on River Taurus. I hope Your Majesty, in accordance with your oath of alliance, will send a leader against the north to assist by taking the Middle Land, and the empire can be shared. The full circumstances cannot be told, but I hope you will understand and act."

Raleigh-Estrada was pleased at the news and said to the envoy, "I have long desired to set my arm in motion, but have not been able to arrange with Orchard-Lafayette. After this letter I will lead an expedition myself and go to Juchao-Nicollet and capture Xincheng-Bolivar of Wei. Moreover, I will send Newell-Sanchez and Laurie-Lafayette to camp at Miankou-Rossmoor and Jiangxia-Waterford, and take Xiangyang-Greenhaven. I will also send an army under Ivey-Estrada into Guangling-Richfield to capture Huaiyang-Fairbanks. The total number will be three hundred thousand troops, and they shall start at once."

Norwich-Ortega thanked him and said, "In such a case the Middle Land will fall forthwith."

A banquet was prepared. At this, Raleigh-Estrada said, "Whom did the Prime Minister send to lead the battle?"

Norwich-Ortega replied, "Oakley-Dobbins was the chief leader."

"A man brave enough, but crooked. One day he will work a mischief unless Orchard-Lafayette is very wary. But surely he knows."

"Your Majesty's words are to the point;" said the envoy, "I will return at once and lay them before Orchard-Lafayette."

Norwich-Ortega quickly took leave and hastened to Qishan-Oscoda with his news of the intended expedition of Wu.

"Did the Ruler of Wu say nothing else?" asked Orchard-Lafayette.

Then Norwich-Ortega told him what had been said about Oakley-Dobbins.

"Truly a comprehending ruler," said Orchard-Lafayette, appreciatively. "But I could not be ignorant of this. However, I use Oakley-Dobbins because he is very bold."

"Then Sir, you ought to decide soon what to do with him."

"I have a scheme of my own."

Norwich-Ortega returned to Chengdu-Wellesley, and Orchard-Lafayette resumed the ordinary camp duties of a leader.

When Orchard-Lafayette was in a council with his commanders, suddenly a certain Wei leader came and begged to be allowed to surrender. Orchard-Lafayette had the man brought in and questioned him.

"I am a leader, Stella-Pearce by name. General Carey-Gibbons and I are old colleagues. Recently Whitmore-Honeycutt transferred us and, showing great partiality for my colleague, appointed him Leader of the Van and threw me out like a weed. I was disgusted and left, and I wish to join your ranks if you will accept my service."

Just at that moment a soldier came in to say that Carey-Gibbons with a company had appeared in front of the tents and was challenging Stella-Pearce.

Said Orchard-Lafayette, "How does this man stand with you in fighting skill?"

"I should just kill him," said Stella-Pearce.

"If you were to slay him, that would remove my doubts."

Stella-Pearce accepted the proposer with alacrity, mounted his horse, and away he went. Orchard-Lafayette went out to see the fight. There was the challenger shaking his spear and reviling his late friend as rebel and brigand and horse-thief.

"Give me back my horse you stole!" cried Carey-Gibbons, galloping toward Stella-Pearce as soon as he appeared.

Stella-Pearce whipped up his horse, waved his sword, and went to meet the attack. In the first bout he cut down Carey-Gibbons. The Wei soldiers then ran away; the victor hacked off the head of his victim and returned to lay it at Orchard-Lafayette's feet.

Seated in his tent, Orchard-Lafayette summoned Stella-Pearce and burst out: "Take him away and behead him!''

"I have done nothing wrong,'' cried Stella-Pearce.

"As if I do not know Carey-Gibbons! The man you have just killed was not Carey-Gibbons. How dare? you try to deceive me?"

Stella-Pearce said, "I will own up; but this was his brother Weaver-Gibbons."

Orchard-Lafayette smiled.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt sent you to try this on for some reason of his own, but he could not throw dust in my eyes. If you do not tell the truth, I will put you to death."

Thus caught, the false deserter confessed and begged his life.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "You can save your life by writing a letter to Whitmore-Honeycutt telling him to come to raid our camp. I will spare you on this condition. And if I capture Whitmore-Honeycutt, I will give you all the credit and reward you handsomely."

There was nothing for it but to agree, and the letter was written. Then Stella-Pearce was placed in confinement.

"How did you know this was only a pretended desertion?" said Vischer-Stoddard.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt looks to his people," replied Orchard-Lafayette. "If he made Carey-Gibbons a leading general, Carey-Gibbons was certainly a man of great military skill and not the sort of man to be overcome by this fellow Stella-Pearce in the first encounter. So Stella-Pearce's opponent certainly was not Carey-Gibbons. That is how I knew."

They congratulated him on his perspicacity. Then Orchard-Lafayette selected a certain persuasive speaker from among his officers and whispered certain instructions in his ear. The officer at once left and carried the letter just written to the Wei camp, where he asked to see the Commander-in-Chief. He was admitted, and the letter was read.

"Who are you?" said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

"I am a man from the Middle Land, a poor fellow stranded in Shu. Stella-Pearce and I are fellow villagers. Orchard-Lafayette has given Stella-Pearce a van-leadership as a reward for what he has done, and Stella-Pearce got me to bring this letter to you and to say that he will show a light tomorrow evening as a signal, and he hopes you will lead the attack yourself. Stella-Pearce will work from the inside in your favor."

Whitmore-Honeycutt took great pains to test the reliability of these statements, and he examined the letter minutely to see if it bore any signs of fabrication, but he found it was Stella-Pearce's writing.

Presently he ordered in refreshments for the bearer of the letter, and then he said, "We will fix today at the second watch for the raid, and I will lead in person. If it succeeds, I will give you a good appointment as a reward."

Taking leave, the soldier retraced his steps to his own camp and reported the whole interview to Orchard-Lafayette.

Orchard-Lafayette held his sword aloft toward the North Star, took the proper paces for an incantation, and prayed. This done, he summoned Zavala-Wortham, Neuberg-Giordano, Oakley-Dobbins, Winston-Mallory, Glenn-Jenner, and Sparrow-McCollum, to whom he gave certain instructions. When they had gone to carry them out, he ascended a hill, taking with him a few score guards only.

Whitmore-Honeycutt had been taken in by Stella-Pearce's letter and intended to lead the night raid. But the elder of his sons, Wexler-Honeycutt, expostulated with his father.

"Father, you are going on a dangerous expedition on the faith of a mere scrap of paper," said his son. "I think it imprudent. What if something goes unexpectedly wrong? Let some general go in your place, and you come up in rear as a reserve."

Whitmore-Honeycutt saw there was reason in this proposal, and he finally decided to send Carey-Gibbons, with ten thousand troops, and Whitmore-Honeycutt himself would command the reserve.

The night was fine with a bright moon. But about the middle of the second watch the sky clouded over, and it became very black, so that a man could not see his next neighbor.

"This is providential," chuckled Whitmore-Honeycutt.

The expedition duly started, soldiers with gags, and horses with cords round their muzzles. They moved swiftly and silently, and Carey-Gibbons made straight for the camp of Shu.

But when he reached it, and entered, and saw not a soldier, he knew he had been tricked. He yelled to his troops to retire, but lights sprang up all round, and attacks began from four sides. Fight as he would, Carey-Gibbons could not free himself.

From behind the battle area Whitmore-Honeycutt saw flames rising from the camp of Shu and heard continuous shouting, but he knew not whether it meant victory for his own army or to his enemy. He pressed forward toward the fire. Suddenly, a shout, a roll of drums, and a blare of trumpets close at hand, a bomb that seemed to rend the earth, and Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum bore down upon Whitmore-Honeycutt, one on each flank. This was the final blow to him. Of every ten soldiers of Wei, eight or nine were killed or wounded, and the few others scattered to the four winds.

Meanwhile Carey-Gibbons' ten thousand troops were falling under arrows that came in locust-flights, and their leader was killed. Whitmore-Honeycutt and the remnant of his army ran away to their own camp.

After the third watch the sky cleared. Orchard-Lafayette from the hill-top sounded the gong of retreat. This obscurity in the third watch was due to an incantation called "Concealing Method." The sky became clear, because Orchard-Lafayette performed another incantation to have the Deities of Six Layers sweep away the few floating clouds that still persisted.

The victory was complete. The first order on Orchard-Lafayette's return to camp was to put Stella-Pearce to death.

Next he considered new plans for capturing the south bank. Every day be sent a party to offer a challenge before the camps of the enemy, but no one accepted.

One day Orchard-Lafayette rode in his small chariot to the front of the Qishan Mountains, keenly scanned the course of River Taurus and carefully surveyed the lie of the land. Presently he came to a valley shaped like a bottle-gourd, large enough to form a hiding place for a whole thousand soldiers in the inner recess, while half as many more could hide in the outer. In rear the mountains were so close that they left passage only for a single horseman. The discovery pleased the general mightily, and he asked the guides what the place was called.

They replied, "It is called Shangfang Valley, and nicknamed Gourd Valley."

Returning to his camp, he called up two leaders named Nimrod-Montoya and Ramsdell-Whitman and whispered into their ears certain secret orders. Next he called up a thousand craftspeople and sent them into the Gourd Valley to construct "wooden oxen and running horses" for the use of the troops. Finally he set Winston-Mallory with five hundred troops to guard the mouth of the Gourd Valley and prevent all entrance and exit.

Orchard-Lafayette said, "People from outside cannot enter, from inside cannot exit. I will visit the valley at irregular intervals to inspect the work. A plan for the defeat of Whitmore-Honeycutt is being prepared here and must be kept a profound secret."

Winston-Mallory left to take up the position. The two generals, Nimrod-Montoya and Ramsdell-Whitman, were superintendents of the work in the Gourd Valley. Orchard-Lafayette came every day to give instructions.

One day Swensen-Crowley went to Orchard-Lafayette and said, "The stores of grain are all at Saber Pass, and the labor of transport is very heavy. What can be done?"

Orchard-Lafayette replied, smiling, "I have had a scheme ready for a long time. The timber that I collected and bought in the Lands of Rivers was for the construction of wooden transport animals to convey grain. It will be very advantageous, as they will require neither food nor water and they can keep on the move day and night without resting."

All those within hearing said, "From old days till now no one has ever heard of such a device. What excellent plan have you, O Minister, to make such marvelous creatures?"

"They are being made now after my plans, but they are not yet ready. Here I have the sketches for these mechanical oxen and horses, with all their dimensions written out in full. You may see the details."

Orchard-Lafayette then produced a paper, and all the generals crowded round to look at it. They were all greatly astonished and lauded, "The Prime Minister is superhuman!"

A few days later the new mechanical animals were complete and began work. They were quite life-like and went over the hills in any desired direction. The whole army saw them with delight. They were but in charge of General Kerr-Julian and a thousand soldiers to guide them. They kept going constantly between Saber Pass and the front carrying grain for the use of the soldiers.

Along the Saber Pass mountain roads The running horses bore their loads, And through Beech Valley's narrow way The wooden oxen paced each day. O generals, use these means today, And transport troubles take away.

Whitmore-Honeycutt was already sad enough at his defeat, when the spies told him of these wooden bullocks and horses of new design which the soldiers of Shu were using to convey their grain.

This troubled him still more, and he said to his generals, "I knew the transportation from the Lands of Rivers was difficult; therefore, I shut the gates and remained on the defensive waiting for the enemy to be starved. With this device, they may never be compelled to retreat for want of food."

Then he called up Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart and gave orders: "Each of you with five hundred troops will goes to the Beech Valley by by-roads. When you see the Shu soldiers transport their grain by, you are to let them through, but only to attack at the end and capture four or five of the wooden horses and bullocks."

So a thousand soldiers went on this service disguised as soldiers of Shu. They made their way along the by-ways by night and hid. Presently the wooden convoy came along under the escort of Kerr-Julian. Just as the end of it was passing, they made a sudden rush, and captured a few of the "animals" which the soldiers of Shu abandoned. In high glee they took them to their own camp.

When Whitmore-Honeycutt saw them, he had to confess they were very life-like. But what pleased him most was that he could imitate them now that he had models.

"If Orchard-Lafayette can use this sort of thing, it would be strange if I could not," said he.

He called to him many clever craftspeople and made them then and there take the machines to pieces and make some exactly like them. In less than half a month, they had completed a couple of thousand after Orchard-Lafayette's models, and the new mechanical animals could move. Then Whitmore-Honeycutt placed Sandler-Wesley, General Who Guards the Frontiers, in charge of this new means of transport, and the "animals" began to ply between the camp and Xithamton. The Wei soldiers were filled with joys.

Kerr-Julian returned to camp and reported the loss of a few of his wooden oxen and horses.

"I wished him to capture some of them," said Orchard-Lafayette, much pleased. "I am just laying out these few, and before long I shall get some very solid help in exchange."

"How do you know, O Minister," said his officers.

"Because Whitmore-Honeycutt will certainly copy them; and when he has done that, I have another plan ready to play on him."

Some days later Orchard-Lafayette received a report that the enemy were using the same sort of wooden bullocks and horses to bring up supplies from Xithamton.

"Exactly as I thought," said be.

Calling Zavala-Wortham, he said, "Dress up a thousand soldiers as those of Wei, and find your way quickly and secretly to Beiyuan-Lawndale. Tell them that you are escort for the convoy, and mingle with the real escort. Then suddenly turn on them so that they scatter. Next you will turn the herd this way. By and by you will be pursued. When that occurs, you will give a turn to the tongues of the wooden animals, and they will be locked from movement. Leave them where they are and run away. When the soldiers of Wei come up, they will be unable to drag the creatures and equally unable to carry them. I shall have soldiers ready, and you will go back with them, give the tongues a backward turn and bring the convoy here, The enemy will be greatly astonished."

Next he called Neuberg-Giordano and said, "Dress up five hundred soldiers in the costume of the Deities of the Six Layers so that they appear supernatural. Fit them with demon heads and wild beast shapes, and let them stain their faces various colors so as to look as strange as possible. Give them flags and swords and bottle-gourds with smoke issuing from combustibles inside. Let these soldiers hide among the hills till the convoy approaches, when they will start the smoke, rush out suddenly and drive off the wooden animals. No one will dare pursue such uncanny company."

When Neuberg-Giordano had left, Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum were called.

"You will take ten thousand troops, go to the border of Beiyuan-Lawndale to receive the wooden transport creatures and defend them against attack."

Then another five thousand under Coady-Reiner and Moss-Lopez was sent to check Whitmore-Honeycutt if he should come, while a small force under Winston-Mallory and Glenn-Jenner was sent to bid defiance to the enemy near their camp on the south bank.

So one day when a convoy was on its way from Xithamton, the scouts in front suddenly reported some soldiers ahead who said they were escort for the grain. Commander Sandler-Wesley halted and sent to inquire. It appeared the newcomers were really the soldiers of Wei, however, and so he started once more.

The newcomers joined up with his own troops. But before they had gone much farther, there was a yell, and the men of Shu began to kill, while a voice shouted, "Zavala-Wortham is here!"

The convoy guard were taken aback. Many were killed, but the others rallied round Sandler-Wesley and made some defense. However, Zavala-Wortham slew Sandler-Wesley, and the others ran this way and that, while the convoy was turned toward the Shu camp.

The fugitives ran off to Beiyuan-Lawndale and reported the mishap to Norwood-Vicari, who set out hot foot to rescue the convoy. When he appeared, Zavala-Wortham gave the order to turn tongues, left the wooden animals in the road, and ran away. Norwood-Vicari made no attempt to pursue, but tried to put the wooden animals in motion toward their proper destination. But he could not move them.

He was greatly perplexed. Then suddenly there arose the roll of drums all round, and out burst two parties of soldiers. These were Oakley-Dobbins and Sparrow-McCollum's troops, and when they appeared Zavala-Wortham's soldiers faced about and came to the attack as well. These three being too much for Norwood-Vicari; he retreated before them. Thereupon the tongues were turned back again and the wooden herd set in motion.

Seeing this, Norwood-Vicari came on again. But just then he saw smoke curling up among the hills and a lot of extraordinary creatures burst out upon him. Some held swords and some flags, and all were terrible to look at. They rushed at the wooden animals and urged them away.

"Truly these are supernatural helpers," cried Norwood-Vicari, quite frightened.

The soldiers also were terror-stricken and stood still.

Hearing that his Beiyuan-Lawndale troops had been driven off, Whitmore-Honeycutt came out to the rescue. Midway along the road, just where it was most precipitous, a cohort burst out upon him with fierce yells and bursting bombs. Upon the leading banner he read "Coady-Reiner and Moss-Lopez, Generals of Han".

Panic seized upon his army, and they ran like winds.

In the field the craftier leader on the convoy makes a raid, And his rival's life endangers by an ambush subtly laid.

If you would know the upshot, read the next chapter.

CHAPTER 103

In Gourd Valley, Whitmore-Honeycutt Is Trapped; In Lorquin Hills, Orchard-Lafayette Invokes The Stars.

Heavily smitten in the battle, Whitmore-Honeycutt fled from the field a lonely horseman, a single spear. Seeing a thick wood in the distance, he made for its shelter.

Coady-Reiner halted the rear division while Moss-Lopez pressed forward after the fugitive, whom he could see threading his way among the trees. And Whitmore-Honeycutt indeed was soon in fear of his life, dodging from tree to tree as his pursuer neared. Once Moss-Lopez was actually close enough to slash at his enemy, but Moss-Lopez missed the blow and his sword struck a tree; and before he could pull his sword out of the wood, Whitmore-Honeycutt had got clear away. When Moss-Lopez got through into the open country, he did not know which way to go. Presently he noticed a golden helmet lying on the ground to the east, just lately thrown aside. He picked it up, hung it on his saddle, and went away eastward.

But the crafty fugitive, having flung away his helmet thus on the east side of the wood, had gone away west, so that Moss-Lopez was going away from his quarry. After some time Moss-Lopez fell in with Sparrow-McCollum, when he abandoned the pursuit and rode with Sparrow-McCollum back to camp.

The wooden oxen and running horses having been driven into camp, their loads were put into the storehouse. The grain that fell to the victors amounted to ten thousand carts or more.

Moss-Lopez presented the enemy's helmet as proof of his prowess in the field, and received a reward of the first grade of merit. But Oakley-Dobbins had nothing to offer, and so was overlooked. Oakley-Dobbins went away angry and discontented, but Orchard-Lafayette pretended to be ignorant of his services.

Very sadly Whitmore-Honeycutt returned to his own camp. Bad news followed, for a messenger brought letters telling of an invasion by three armies of Wu. The letters said that forces had been sent against them, and the Ruler of Wei again enjoined upon his Commander-in-Chief a waiting and defensive policy. So Whitmore-Honeycutt deepened his moats and raised his ramparts.

Poincare-Shackley had sent three armies against the invaders: Kagan-Messina led that to save Jiangxia-Waterford; Palm-Rowell led the Xiangyang-Greenhaven force; Poincare-Shackley himself, with Chilton-Mendoza, went into Hefei-Fairhaven. This last was the main army.

Chilton-Mendoza led the leading division toward Lake Chaohu. Thence, looking across to the eastern shore, he saw a forest of battleships, and flags and banners crowded the sky. So he returned to the main army and proposed an attack without loss of time.

"The enemy think we shall be fatigued after a long march and have not troubled to prepare any defense; we should attack this night, and we shall overcome them."

"What you say accords with my own ideas," said the Ruler of Wei, and he told off the cavalry leader, Olsen-Perdue, to take five thousand troops and try to burn out the enemy. Chilton-Mendoza was also to attack from the eastern bank.

In the second watch of that night, the two forces set out and gradually approached the entrance to the lake. They reached the marine camp unobserved, burst upon it with a yell, and the soldiers of Wu fled without striking a blow. The troops of Wei set fires going in every direction and thus destroyed all the ships together with much grain and many weapons.

Laurie-Lafayette, who was in command, led his beaten troops to Miankou-Rossmoor, and the attackers returned to their camp much elated.

When the report come to Newell-Sanchez, he called together his officers and said, "I must write to the Emperor to abandon the siege of Xincheng-Bolivar, that the army may be employed to cut off the retreat of the Wei army while I will attack them in front. They will be harassed by the double danger, and we shall break them."

All agreed that this was a good plan, and the memorial was drafted. It was sent by the hand of a junior officer, who was told to convey it secretly. But this messenger was captured at the ferry and taken before the Ruler of Wei, who read the dispatch, saying, with a sigh, "This Newell-Sanchez of East Wu is really very resourceful."

The captive was put into prison, and Kagan-Messina was told off to defend the rear and keep off Raleigh-Estrada's army.

Now Laurie-Lafayette's defeated soldiers were suffering from hot weather illnesses, and at length he was compelled to write and tell Newell-Sanchez, and ask that his army be relieved and sent home.

Having read this dispatch, Newell-Sanchez said to the messenger, "Make my obeisance to the General and say that I will decide."

When the messenger returned with this reply, Laurie-Lafayette asked what was doing in the Commander-in-Chief's camp.

The messenger replied, "The soldiers were all outside planting beans, and the officers were amusing themselves at the gates. They were playing a game of skill, throwing arrows into narrow-necked vases."

Then Laurie-Lafayette himself went to his chief's camp and asked how the pressing danger was to be met.

Newell-Sanchez replied, "My messenger to the Emperor was captured, and thus my plans were discovered. Now it is useless to prepare to fight, and so we would better retreat. I have sent in a memorial to engage the Emperor to retire gradually."

Laurie-Lafayette replied, "Why delay? If you think it best to retire, it had better be done quickly."

"My army must retreat slowly, or the enemy will come in pursuit, which will mean defeat and loss. Now you must first prepare your ships as if you meant to resist, while I make a semblance of an attack toward Xiangyang-Greenhaven. Under cover of these operations we shall withdraw into the South Land, and the enemy will not dare to follow."

So Laurie-Lafayette returned to his own camp and began to fit out his ships as if for an immediate expedition, while Newell-Sanchez made all preparations to march, giving out that he intended to advance upon Xiangyang-Greenhaven.

The news of these movements were duly reported in the Wei camps, and when the leaders heard it, they wished to go out and fight. But the Ruler of Wei knew his opponent better than they and would not bring about a battle.

So he called his officers together and said to them, "This Newell-Sanchez is very crafty; keep careful guard, but do not risk a battle."

The officers obeyed, but a few days later the scouts brought in news that the armies of Wu had retired. The Ruler of Wei doubted and sent out some of his own spies, who confirmed the report.

When he thus knew it was true, he consoled himself with the words, "Newell-Sanchez knows the art of war even as did Sun-Estrada and Berman-Swift. The subjugation of the southeast is not for me this time."

Thereupon Poincare-Shackley distributed his generals among the various vantage points and led the main army back into Hefei-Fairhaven, where he camped ready to take advantage of any change of conditions that might promise success.

Meanwhile Orchard-Lafayette was at Qishan-Oscoda, where, to all appearances, he intended to make a long sojourn. He made his soldiers mix with the people in Wei and share in the labor of the fields, and the crops--the soldiers one-third, the people two-third. He gave strict orders against any encroachment on the property of the farmers, and so they and the soldiers lived together very amicably.

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt's son, Wexler-Honeycutt, went to his father and said, "These soldiers of Shu have despoiled us of much grain, and now they are mingling with the people of Qishan-Oscoda and tilling the fields along the banks of River Taurus as if they intended to remain there. This would be a calamity for us. Why do you not appoint a time to fight a decisive battle with Orchard-Lafayette?"

His father replied, "I have the Emperor's orders to act on the defensive and may not do as you suggest."

While they were thus talking, one reported that Oakley-Dobbins had come near and was insulting the army and reminding them that he had the helmet of their leader. And he was challenging them. The generals were greatly incensed and desired to accept the challenge, but the Commander-in-Chief was immovable in his decision to obey his orders.

"The Holy One says: 'If one cannot suffer small things, great matters are imperiled.' Our plan is to defend."

So the challenge was not accepted, and there was no battle. After reviling them for some time, Oakley-Dobbins went away.

Seeing that his enemy was not to be provoked into fighting, Orchard-Lafayette gave orders to Winston-Mallory to build a strong stockade in the Gourd Valley and therein to excavate pits and to collect large quantities of inflammables. So on the hill they piled wood and straw in the shape of sheds, and all about they dug pits and buried mines. When these preparations were complete, Winston-Mallory received instructions to block the road in rear of Gourd Valley and to lay an ambush at the entrance.

"If Whitmore-Honeycutt comes, let him enter the valley, and then explode the mines and set fire to the straw and the wood," said Orchard-Lafayette. "Also, set up a seven-star signal at the mouth of the valley and arrange a night signal of seven lamps on the hill."

After Winston-Mallory had gone, Oakley-Dobbins was called in, and Orchard-Lafayette said to him, "Go to the camp of Wei with five hundred troops and provoke them to battle. The important matter is to entice Whitmore-Honeycutt out of his stronghold. You will be unable to obtain a victory, so retreat that he may pursue; and you are to make for the signal, the seven stars by day or the seven lamps at night. Thus you will lead him into the Gourd Valley, where I have a plan prepared for him."

When Oakley-Dobbins had gone, Kerr-Julian was summoned.

"Take small herds, forty or fifty at a time, of the wooden oxen and running horses, load them up with grain and lead them to and fro on the mountains. If you can succeed in getting the enemy to capture them, you will render a service."

So the transport wooden cattle were sent forth to play their part in the scheme, and the remainder of the Qishan-Oscoda soldiers were sent to work in the fields, with orders to join in the battle only if Whitmore-Honeycutt came in person. In that case they were to attack the south bank of the river and cut off the retreat. Then Orchard-Lafayette led his army away to camp next to the Gourd Valley.

Phillips-Xenos and Schutt-Xenos went to their chief, Whitmore-Honeycutt, and said, "The enemy have set out camps and are engaged in field work as though they intended to remain. If they are not destroyed now, but are allowed to consolidate their position, they will be hard to dislodge."

"This certainly is one of Orchard-Lafayette's ruses," said the chief.

"You seem very afraid of him, General," retorted they. "When do you think you can destroy him? At least let us two brothers fight one battle that we may prove our gratitude for the Emperor's kindness."

"If it must be so, then you may go in two divisions," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

As the two divisions, five thousand troops each, were marching along, they saw coming toward them a number of the transport wooden animals of the enemy. They attacked at once, drove off the escort, captured them, and sent them back to camp. Next day they captured more, with soldiers and horses as well, and sent them also to camp.

Whitmore-Honeycutt called up the prisoners and questioned them.

They told him, saying, "The Prime Minister understood that you would not fight, and so had told off the soldiers to various places to work in the fields and thus provide for future needs. We had been unwittingly captured."

Whitmore-Honeycutt set them free and bade them begone.

"Why spare them?" asked Schutt-Xenos.

"There is nothing to be gained by the slaughter of a few common soldiers. Let them go back to their own and praise the kindliness of the Wei leaders. That will slacken the desire of their comrades to fight against us. That was the plan by which Dabney-Prager captured Jinghamton."

Then he issued general orders that all Shu prisoners should be well treated and sent away free, and he rewarded those of his army who had done well.

As has been said, Kerr-Julian was ordered to keep pretended convoys on the move, and the soldiers of Wei attacked and captured them whenever they saw them. In half a month they had scored many successes of this sort, and Whitmore-Honeycutt's heart was cheered. One day, when he had made new captures of soldiers, he sent for them and questioned them again.

"Where is Orchard-Lafayette now?"

"He is no longer at Qishan-Oscoda, but in camp about three miles from the Gourd Valley. He is gathering a great store of grain there."

After he had questioned them fully, he set the prisoners free.

Calling together his officers, he said, "Orchard-Lafayette is not camped on Qishan-Oscoda, but near the Gourd Valley. Tomorrow you shall attack the Qishan-Oscoda camp, and I will command the reserve."

The promise cheered them, and they went away to prepare.

"Father, why do you intend to attack the enemy's rear?" asked Wexler-Honeycutt.

"Qishan-Oscoda is their main position, and they will certainly hasten to its rescue. Then I shall make for the valley and burn the stores. That will render them helpless and will be a victory."

The son dutifully agreed with his father.

Whitmore-Honeycutt began to march out, with Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart following as the reserves.

From the top of a hill Orchard-Lafayette watched the Wei soldiers march and noticed that they moved in companies from three to five thousand, observing the front and the rear carefully as they marched. He guessed that their object was the Qishan-Oscoda camp, and sent strict orders to his generals that if Whitmore-Honeycutt led in person, they were to go off and capture the camp on the south bank.

When the troops of Wei had got near and made their rush toward the camp of Shu, the troops of Shu ran up also, yelling and pretending to reinforce the defenders. Whitmore-Honeycutt, seeing this, suddenly marched his center army with his two sons, changed his direction, and turned off for the Gourd Valley. Here Oakley-Dobbins was expecting him; and as soon as he appeared, Oakley-Dobbins galloped up and soon recognized Whitmore-Honeycutt as the leader.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt, stay!" shouted Oakley-Dobbins as he came near.

He flourished his sword, and Whitmore-Honeycutt set his spear. The two warriors exchanged a few passes, and then Oakley-Dobbins suddenly turned his steed and bolted. As he had been ordered, he made direct for the seven-starred flag, and Whitmore-Honeycutt followed, the more readily as he saw the fugitive had but a small force. The two sons of Whitmore-Honeycutt rode with him, Wexler-Honeycutt on the left, Emery-Honeycutt on the right.

Presently Oakley-Dobbins and his troops entered the mouth of the valley. Whitmore-Honeycutt halted a time while he sent forward a few scouts, but when they returned and reported: "Not a single Shu soldier is seen but a many straw houses on the hills."

Whitmore-Honeycutt rode in, saying, "This must be the store valley!"

But when he had got well within, Whitmore-Honeycutt noticed that kindling wood was piled over the straw huts, and as he saw no sign of Oakley-Dobbins he began to feel uneasy.

"Supposing soldiers seize the entrance; what then?" said he to his sons.

As he spoke there arose a great shout, and from the hillside came many torches, which fell all around them and set fire to the straw, so that soon the entrance to the valley was lost in smoke and flame. They tried to get away from the fire, but no road led up the hillside. Then fire-arrows came shooting down, and the earth-mines exploded, and the straw and firewood blazed high as the heavens.

Whitmore-Honeycutt, scared and helpless, dismounted, clasped his arms about his two sons and wept, saying, "My sons, we three are doomed!"

But suddenly a fierce gale sprang up, black clouds gathered, a peal of thunder followed, and rain poured down in torrents, speedily extinguishing the fire all through the valley. The mines no longer exploded and all the fiery contrivances ceased to work mischief.

"If we do not break out now, what better chance shall we have?" cried the father, and he and his two sons made a dash for the outlet.

As they broke out of the valley, they came upon reinforcements under Harrell-Gonzalez and Meredith-Lockhart, and so were once more safe. Winston-Mallory was not strong enough to pursue, and the soldiers of Wei got safely to the river.

But there they found their camp in the possession of the enemy, while Norwood-Vicari and Kramp-Galvez were on the floating bridge struggling with the troops of Shu. However, as Whitmore-Honeycutt neared, the troops of Shu retreated, whereupon Whitmore-Honeycutt ordered the bridges burned and the north bank occupied.

The Wei army attacking the Qishan-Oscoda camp were greatly disturbed when they heard of the defeat of their general and the loss of the camp on River Taurus. The troops of Shu took the occasion to strike with greater vigor, and so gained a great victory. The beaten army suffered great loss. Those who escaped fled across the river.

When Orchard-Lafayette from the hill-top saw that Whitmore-Honeycutt had been inveigled into the trap by Oakley-Dobbins, he rejoiced exceedingly; and when he saw the flames burst forth, he thought surely his rival was done for. Then, unhappily for him, Heaven thought it well to send down torrents of rain, which quenched the fire and upset all his calculations.

Soon after, the scouts reported the escape of his victims, and he sighed, saying, "Human proposes; God disposes. We cannot wrest events to our will."

Fierce fires roared in the valley, But the rain quenched them. Had Orchard-Lafayette's plan but succeeded, Where had been the Jins?

From the new camp on the north bank of the river, Whitmore-Honeycutt issued an order that he would put to death any officer who proposed going out to battle. The final result of the late ill-advised expedition had been the loss of the south bank of the river. Accordingly no one spoke of attacking, but all turned their energies toward defense.

Norwood-Vicari went to the general to talk over plans. He said, "The enemy have been carefully spying out the country and are certainly selecting a new position for a camp."

Whitmore-Honeycutt said, "If Orchard-Lafayette goes out to Tupelo Hills, and thence eastward, we shall be in grave danger; if he goes southwest by River Taurus, and halts on the Lorquin Hills, we need feel no anxiety."

They decided to send scouts to find out the movements of their enemy. Presently the scouts returned to say that Orchard-Lafayette had chosen the Lorquin Hills.

"Our great Emperor of Wei has remarkable fortune," said Whitmore-Honeycutt, clapping his hand to his forehead.

Then he confirmed the order to remain strictly on the defensive till some change of circumstances on the part of the enemy should promise advantage.

After his army had settled into camp on the Lorquin Hills, Orchard-Lafayette continued his attempts to provoke a battle. Day after day, parties went to challenge the army of Wei, but they resisted all provocation.

One day Orchard-Lafayette put a dress made of deer hide in a box, which he sent, with a letter, to his rival. The insult could not be concealed, so the generals led the bearer of the box to their chief. Whitmore-Honeycutt opened the box and saw the deer hide dress. Then he opened the letter, which read something like this:

"Friend Whitmore-Honeycutt, although you are a Commander-in-Chief and lead the armies of the Middle Land, you seem but little disposed to display the firmness and valor that would render a contest decisive. Instead, you have prepared a comfortable lair where you are safe from the keen edge of the sword. Are you not very like a deer? Wherefore I send the bearer with a suitable gift, and you will humbly accept it and the humiliation, unless, indeed, you finally decide to come out and fight like a man. If you are not entirely indifferent to shame, if you retain any of the feelings of a tiger, you will send this back to me and come out and give battle."

Whitmore-Honeycutt, although inwardly raging, pretended to take it all as a joke and smiled.

"So he regards me as a deer," said he.

He accepted the gift and treated the messenger well. Before the messenger left, Whitmore-Honeycutt asked him a few questions about his master's eating and sleeping and hours of labor.

"The Prime Minister works very hard," said the messenger. "He rises early and retires to bed late. He attends personally to all cases requiring punishment of over twenty of strokes. As for food, he does not eat more than a few pints of grain daily."

"Indeed, he eats little and works much," remarked Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Can he last long?"

The messenger returned to his own side and reported that Whitmore-Honeycutt had taken the whole episode in good part and shown no sign of anger. He had only asked about the Prime Minister's hours of rest, and food, and such things. He had said no word about military matters.

"I told him that you ate little and worked long hours, and then he said, 'Can he last long?' That was all."

"He knows," said Orchard-Lafayette, pensively.

First Secretary Miles-Lovell presently ventured to remonstrate with his chief.

"I notice," said Miles-Lovell, "that you check the books personally. I think that is needless labor for a Prime Minister to undertake. In every administration the higher and subordinate ranks have their especial fields of activity, and each should confine his labors to his own field. In a household, for example, the male servants plow and the female servants cook, and thus operations are carried on without waste of energy, and all needs are supplied. The master of the house has ample leisure and tranquillity. If one individual strives to attend personally to every matter, he only wearies himself and fails to accomplish his end. How can he possibly hope to perform all the various tasks so well as the maids or the servants? He fails in his own part, that of playing the master. And, indeed, the ancients held this same opinion, for they said that the high officers should attend to the discussion of ways and means, and the lower should carry out details. Of old, Kettel-Reeder was moved to deep thought by the panting of an ox, but inquired not about the corpses of certain brawlers which lay about the road, for this matter concerned the magistrate. Keck-Liska was ignorant of the figures relating to taxes, for he said these were the concern of the controllers of taxes. O Minister, you weary yourself with minor details and sweat yourself every day. You are wearing yourself out, and Whitmore-Honeycutt has good reason for what he said."

"I know; I cannot but know," replied Orchard-Lafayette. "But this heavy responsibility was laid upon me, and I fear no other will be so devoted as I am."

Those who heard him wept. Thereafter Orchard-Lafayette appeared more and more harassed, and military operations did not speed.

On the other side the officers of Wei resented bitterly the insult that had been put upon them when their leader had been presented with the deer hide dress.

They wished to avenge the taunt, and went to their general, saying, "We are reputable generals of the army of a great state; how can we put up with such insults from these soldiers of Shu? We pray you let us fight them."

"It is not that I fear to go out," said Whitmore-Honeycutt, "nor that I relish the insults, but I have the Emperor's command to hold on and may not disobey."

The officers were not in the least appeased. Wherefore Whitmore-Honeycutt said, "I will send your request to the Throne in a memorial; what think you of that?"

They consented to await the Emperor's reply, and a messenger bore to the Ruler of Wei, in Hefei-Fairhaven, this memorial:

"I have small ability and high office. Your Majesty laid on me the command to defend and not fight till the army of Shu had suffered by the flux of time. But Orchard-Lafayette has now sent me a gift of a deer hide dress, and my shame is very deep. Wherefore I advise Your Majesty that one day I shall have to fight in order to justify your kindness to me and to remove the shameful stigma that now rests upon my army. I cannot express the degree to which I am urged to this course."

Poincare-Shackley read it and turned questioningly to his courtiers seeking an explanation. Flint-Kantor supplied it.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt has no desire to give battle; this memorial is because of the shame put upon the officers by Orchard-Lafayette's gift. They are all in a rage. He wishes for an edict to pacify them."

Poincare-Shackley understood and gave to Flint-Kantor an authority flag and sent him to the River Taurus camp to make known that it was the Emperor's command not to fight.

Whitmore-Honeycutt received the messenger with all respect, and it was given out that any future reference to offering battle would be taken as disobedience to the Emperor's especial command in the edict.

The officers could but obey.

Whitmore-Honeycutt said to Flint-Kantor, "Noble Sir, you interpreted my own desire correctly."

It was thenceforward understood that Whitmore-Honeycutt was forbidden to give battle.

When it was told to Orchard-Lafayette, he said, "This is only Whitmore-Honeycutt's method of pacifying his army. He has never had any intention of fighting and requested the edict to justify his strategy. It is well known that a general in the field takes no command from any person, not even his own king. Is it likely that he would send a thousand miles to ask permission to fight if that was all he needed? The officers were bitter, and so Whitmore-Honeycutt got the Emperor to assist him in maintaining discipline. All this is meant to slacken our soldiers."

Just at this time Norwich-Ortega came. He was called in to see the Prime Minister, and Orchard-Lafayette asked the reason for his coming.

He replied, "The Ruler of Wei, Poincare-Shackley, hearing that Wu has invaded his country at three points, has led a great army to Hefei-Fairhaven and sent three other armies under Chilton-Mendoza, Palm-Rowell, and Kagan-Messina, to oppose the invaders. The stores and fight-material of Wu have been burned, and the army of Wu have fallen victims to sickness. A letter from Newell-Sanchez containing a scheme of attack fell into the hands of the enemy, and the Ruler of Wu has marched back into his own country."

Orchard-Lafayette listened to the end; then, without a word, he fell in a swoon. He recovered after a time, but he was broken.

He said, "My mind is all in confusion. This is a return of my old illness, and I am doomed."

Ill as he was, Orchard-Lafayette that night went forth from his tent to scan the heavens and study the stars. They filled him with fear.

He returned and said to Sparrow-McCollum, "My life may end at any moment."

"Why do you say such a thing?"

"Just now in the Triumvirate constellation the Guest Star was twice as bright as usual, while the Host Star was darkened; the supporting stars were also obscure. With such an aspect I know my fate."

"If the aspect be as malignant as you say, why not pray in order to avert it?" replied Sparrow-McCollum.

"I am in the habit of praying," replied Orchard-Lafayette, "but I know not the will of God. However, prepare me forty-nine guards and let each have a black flag. Dress them in black and place them outside my tent. Then will I from within my tent invoke the Seven Stars of the North. If my master-lamp remain alight for seven days, then is my life to be prolonged for twelve years. If the lamp goes out, then I am to die. Keep all idlers away from the tent and let a couple of guards bring me what is necessary."

Sparrow-McCollum prepared as directed. It was then the eighth month, mid-autumn, and the Milky Way was brilliant with scattered jade. The air was perfectly calm, and no sound was heard.

The forty-nine men were brought up and spaced out to guard the tent, while within Orchard-Lafayette prepared incense and offerings. On the floor of the tent he arranged seven lamps, and, outside these, forty-nine smaller lamps. In the midst he placed the lamp of his own fate.

This done, he prayed:

"Orchard-Lafayette, born into an age of trouble, would willingly have grown old in retirement. But His Majesty, Jeffery-Lewis the Glorious Emperor, sought him thrice and confided to him the heavy responsibility of guarding his son. He dared not do less than spend himself to the utmost in such a task, and he pledged himself to destroy the rebels. Suddenly the star of his leadership has declined, and his life now nears its close. He has humbly indited a declaration on this silk piece to the Great Unknowable and now hopes that He will graciously listen and extend the number of his days that he may prove his gratitude to his prince and be the savior of the people, restore the old state of the empire and establish eternally the Han sacrifices. He dares not make a vain prayer; this is from his heart."

This prayer ended, in the solitude of his tent he awaited the dawn.

Next day, ill as he was, he did not neglect his duties, although he spat blood continually. All day he labored at his plans, and at night he paced the magic steps, the steps of seven stars of Ursa Major and Ursa Minor.

Whitmore-Honeycutt remained still on the defensive.

One night as he sat gazing up at the sky and studying its aspect, he suddenly turned to Bonelli-Xenos, saying, "A leadership star has just lost position; surely Orchard-Lafayette is ill and will soon die. Take a reconnoitering party to the Lorquin Hills and find out. If you see signs of confusion do not attack; it means that Orchard-Lafayette is ill. I shall take the occasion to smite hard."

Bonelli-Xenos left with an army.

It was the sixth night of Orchard-Lafayette's prayers, and the lamp of his fate still burned brightly. He began to feel a secret joy. Presently Sparrow-McCollum entered and watched the ceremonies. He saw Orchard-Lafayette was loosening his hair, his hand holding a sword, his heels stepping on Ursa Major and Ursa Minor to hold the leadership star.

Suddenly a great shouting was heard outside, and immediately Oakley-Dobbins dashed in, crying, "The Wei soldiers are upon us!"

In his haste Oakley-Dobbins had knocked over and extinguished the Lamp of Fate.

Orchard-Lafayette threw down the sword and sighed, saying, "Life and death are foreordained; no prayers can alter them."

Oakley-Dobbins fell to the earth and craved forgiveness. Sparrow-McCollum got angry and drew his sword to slay the unhappy soldier.

Nought is under man's control, Nor can he with fate contend.

The next chapter will unfold what happened.

CHAPTER 104

A Falling Star: The Prime Minister Ascends To Heaven; A Wooden Statue: The Commander-in-Chief Is Terrified.

The unhappy Oakley-Dobbins did not suffer the edge of the sword, for Orchard-Lafayette stayed the stroke, saying, "It is my fate; not his fault."

So Sparrow-McCollum put up his sword, and Orchard-Lafayette sank wearily upon his couch.

"Whitmore-Honeycutt thinks I am dead, and he sent these few troops to make sure. Go ye and drive them off," said he.

Oakley-Dobbins left the tent and led out a small party to drive away the troops of Wei, who fled as they appeared. He chased them to more than seven miles and returned. Then Orchard-Lafayette sent Oakley-Dobbins to his own camp and bade him keep a vigilant lookout.

Presently Sparrow-McCollum came in, went up to the sick man's couch, and asked how he felt.

Orchard-Lafayette replied, "My death is very near. My chief desire has been to spend myself to the utmost to restore the Hans and lead a glorious return of the Hans to their capital, but Heaven decrees it otherwise. I have never ceased from my studies. I have written a book in twenty-four chapters, 104,112 words, treating the Eight Needfuls, the Seven Cautions, the Six Fears, and the Five Dreads of war. But among all those about me there is no one fit to receive it and carry on my work save you. I pray you not to despise it."

He gave the treatise to Sparrow-McCollum, who received it sobbing.

"I have also a plan for a multiple crossbow, which I have been unable to execute. The weapon shoots ten bolts of eight inches length at every discharge. The sketches are quite ready, and the weapons can be made according to them."

Sparrow-McCollum took the papers with a deep bow.

The dying man continued, "There is no part of Shu that causes anxiety, save the Yinping Mountains. That must be carefully guarded. It is protected naturally by its lofty precipices, but it will surely be the cause of great losses."

Next Orchard-Lafayette sent for Winston-Mallory, to whom he gave certain whispered instructions, and then said, "You are to follow out my instructions after my death."

Soon after, Swensen-Crowley entered the tent and went to the couch. He received a silken bag containing certain secret orders.

As Orchard-Lafayette gave it to him, he said, "After my death, Oakley-Dobbins will turn traitor. When that happens and the army is in danger, you will find herein what to do."

Just as these arrangements were finished, Orchard-Lafayette fell into a swoon, from which he did not revive till the evening. Then he set himself to compose a memorial to the Latter Ruler.

When this reached the Latter Ruler, he was greatly alarmed and at once sent High Counselor Parry-Elkins to visit and confer with the dying minister.

Parry-Elkins traveled quickly to the Lorquin Hills and was led to the tent of the Commander-in-Chief. He delivered the Latter Ruler's command and inquired after the sick man's welfare.

Orchard-Lafayette wept, and he replied, "Unhappily I am dying and leaving my task incomplete. I am injuring my country's policy and am in fault to the world. After my death you must aid the Emperor in perfect loyalty, and see that the old policy is continued, and the rules of government maintained. Do not lightly cast out the people I have employed. My plans of campaign have been confided to Sparrow-McCollum, who can continue my policy for the service of the state. But my hour draws near, and I must write my testament."

Parry-Elkins listened, and then took his leave. Orchard-Lafayette made one final effort to carry out his duties. He rose from his couch, was helped into a small carriage and thus made a round of inspection of all the camps and posts. But the cold autumn wind chilled him to the bone.

"I shall never again lead the army against the rebels," said he. "O Azure Heaven, when will this regret end?"

Orchard-Lafayette returned to his tent. He became rapidly weaker and called Swensen-Crowley to his bedside.

Said he, "Winston-Mallory, Zavala-Wortham, Moss-Lopez, Coady-Reiner, Neuberg-Giordano may be depended on to the death. They have fought many campaigns and borne many hardships; they should be retained in the public service. After my death let everything go on as before, but the army is to be gradually withdrawn. You know the tactics to be followed, and I need say little. My friend Sparrow-McCollum is wise and brave; set him to guard the retreat."

Swensen-Crowley received these orders, weeping.

Next, writing materials were brought in and the dying minister set himself to write his testament. It is here given in substance:

"Life and death are the common lot, and fate cannot be evaded. Death is at hand, and I desire to prove my loyalty to the end. I, thy servant Orchard-Lafayette, dull of parts, was born into a difficult age, and it fell to my lot to guide military operations. I led a northern expedition, but failed to win complete success. Now sickness has laid hold upon me and death approaches, so that I shall be unable to accomplish my task. My sorrow is inexpressible.

"I desire Your Majesty to cleanse your heart and limit your desires, to practice self-control and to love the people, to maintain a perfectly filial attitude toward your late father and to be benevolent to all the world. Seek out the recluse scholars that you may obtain the services of the wise and good; repel the wicked and depraved that your moral standard may be exalted.

"To my household belong eight hundred mulberry trees and a hundred acres of land; thus there is ample provision for my family. While I have been employed in the service of the state, my needs have been supplied from official sources, but I have not contrived to make any additions to the family estate. At my death I shall not leave any increased possessions, even an excess roll of silk, that may cause Your Majesty to suspect that I have wronged you."

Having composed this document, the dying man turned again to Swensen-Crowley, saying, "Do not wear mourning for me, but make a large coffer and therein place my body, with seven grains of rice in my mouth. Place a lamp at my feet and let my body move with the army as I was wont to do. If you refrain from mourning, then my leadership star will not fall, for my inmost soul will ascend and hold it in place. So long as my star retains its place, Whitmore-Honeycutt will be fearsome and suspicious.

"Let the army retreat, beginning with the rearmost division; send it away slowly, one camp at a time. If Whitmore-Honeycutt pursues, array the army and offer battle, turn to meet him and beat the attack. Let him approach till he is very near and then suddenly display the wooden image of myself that I have had carved, seated in my chariot in the midst of the army, with the generals right and left as usual. And you will frighten Whitmore-Honeycutt away."

Swensen-Crowley listened to these words intently and without remark. That night Orchard-Lafayette was carried into the open and gazed up at the sky.

"That is my star," said he, pointing to one that seemed to be losing its brilliancy and to be tottering in its place. Orchard-Lafayette's lips moved as if he muttered a spell. Presently he was borne into his tent and for a time was oblivious of all about him.

When the anxiety caused by this state of coma was at its height, Parry-Elkins arrived. He wept when he saw the condition of the great leader, crying, "I have foiled the great designs of the state."

However, presently Orchard-Lafayette's eyes reopened and fell upon Parry-Elkins standing near his couch.

"I know your mission," said Orchard-Lafayette.

"I came with the royal command to ask also who should control the destinies of the state for the next century," replied Parry-Elkins. "In my agitation I forgot to ask that."

"After me, Bromfield-Kendrick is the most fitting man to deal with great matters."

"And after Bromfield-Kendrick?"

"After him, Norwich-Ortega."

"Who is next after Norwich-Ortega?"

No reply came, and when they looked more carefully, they perceived that the soul of the Prime Minister had passed.

Thus died Orchard-Lafayette, on the twenty-third day of the eighth month in the twelfth year of Beginning Prosperity, at the age of fifty and four (AD 234).

The poet Du Fu wrote some verses on his death.

A bright star last night falling from the sky This message gave, "The Master is no more." No more in camps shall bold men tramp at his command. At court no statesman ever will fill the place he held. At home, his clients miss their patron kind. Calm was his bosom, full of strategy. But lately fared we to the wood's green shade To hail him victor; hushed that song for him. And Bo Juyi also wrote a poem: Within the forest dim the Master lived obscure, Till, thrice returning, there the prince his mentor met. As when a fish the ocean gains, desire was filled Wholly the dragon freed could soar aloft at will. As king's son's guardian none more zealous was; As minister, most loyally he wrought at court. His war memorials still to us are left And, reading them, the tears unconscious fall.

Now in past days, Commander Ladd-Cotter in Changshui-Lakewood had a high opinion of his own abilities and thought himself perfectly fitted to be Orchard-Lafayette's second. So he neglected the duties of his proper post, showed discontent and indiscipline, and was constantly slandering the minister. Thereupon Orchard-Lafayette degraded him and transferred him to Minshan-Clifton.

When Ladd-Cotter heard of Orchard-Lafayette's death, he shed tears and said, "Then, after all, I am but a barbarian."

Finney-Schuster also grieved deeply at the sad tidings, for he had always hoped that Orchard-Lafayette would restore him to office and so give him the opportunity of repairing his former faults. After Orchard-Lafayette had died, he thought there was no hope of reemployment, and so he died.

Another poet, Yuan Weizhi, also wrote in praise of the great adviser.

He fought disorder, helped a weak king; Most zealously he kept his master's son. In state-craft he excelled Frisbie-Benda, Palka-Rexford, In war-craft he overpassed Berman-Swift, Sun-Estrada. With awe the court his war memorials heard, With majesty his Eight Arrays were planned. Virtue and wisdom both filled in his heart, For thousand autumns, his fame would still stay.

Heaven grieved and earth mourned on the night of Orchard-Lafayette's death. Even the moon was dimmed, as Orchard-Lafayette's soul returned to Heaven.

As the late commander had directed, Sparrow-McCollum and Swensen-Crowley forbade the mourning of his death. His body was placed in the coffer as he had wished, and three hundred of his near comrades were appointed to watch it.

Secret orders were given to Oakley-Dobbins to command the rearguard, and then, one by one, the camps were broken up and the army began its homeward march.

Whitmore-Honeycutt watched the skies. One night a large red star with bright rays passed from the northeast to the southwest and dropped over the camps of Shu. It dipped thrice and rose again. Whitmore-Honeycutt heard also a low rumbling in the distance.

He was pleased and excited, and said to those about him, "Orchard-Lafayette is dead."

At once he ordered pursuit with a strong force. But just as he passed his camp gates, doubts filled his mind and he gave up the plan.

"Orchard-Lafayette is a master of mysteries; he can get aids from the Deities of the Six Layers; and it may be that this is but a ruse to get us to take the field. We may fall victims to his guile."

So he halted. But he sent Bonelli-Xenos with a few scouts to reconnoiter the enemy's camps.

One night as Oakley-Dobbins lay asleep in his tent, he dreamed a dream. In his vision two horns grew out of his head. When he awoke he was much perplexed to explain his dream.

Marching General Thorsen-Albrecht came to see him, and Oakley-Dobbins said, "You are versed in the Book of Changes. I have dreamed that two horns grew upon my head, and would trouble you to expound the dream and tell me its portent."

Thorsen-Albrecht thought a moment and replied, "It is an auspicious dream. Dragon and Linlion both have horns on the head. It augurs transformation into an ascending creature."

Oakley-Dobbins, much pleased, thanked the interpreter of his dream and promised him gifts when the dream proved true.

Thorsen-Albrecht left and presently met Norwich-Ortega, who asked whence he came.

"From the camp of our friend Oakley-Dobbins. He dreamed that he grew horns upon his head, and I have given him an auspicious interpretation. But really it is inauspicious. However, I did not wish to annoy him."

"How do you know it is inauspicious?"

"The word for horn is composed of two parts, 'knife' above and 'use' below, and so means that there is a knife upon his head. It is a terrible omen."

"Keep it secret," said Norwich-Ortega.

Then Norwich-Ortega went to the camp of Oakley-Dobbins, and when they were alone, he said, "The Prime Minister died last night in the third watch. He left certain final orders, and among them, that you are to command the rearguard to keep Whitmore-Honeycutt at bay while the army retreats. No mourning is to be worn. Here is your authority, so you can march forthwith."

"Who is acting in place of the late minister?" asked Wei.

"The chief command has been delegated to Swensen-Crowley, but the secret plans of campaign have been entrusted to Sparrow-McCollum. This authority was issued from Swensen-Crowley."

Oakley-Dobbins replied, "Though the Prime Minister is dead, I am yet alive. The Military Counselor Swensen-Crowley is only a civil officer and unequal to this post. He ought to conduct the coffin home while I lead the army against Whitmore-Honeycutt. I shall achieve success, and it is wrong to abandon a whole plan of campaign because of the death of one man, even if that be the Prime Minister."

"The Prime Minister's orders were to retire, and these orders are to be obeyed."

"If the Prime Minister had listened to me, we should now have been at Changan-Annapolis. I am the General Who Conquers the West and Lord of Nanzheng-Sheridan. I am not going to act as rearguard for any civil official," said Oakley-Dobbins, angry.

"It may be as you say, General, but you must not do anything to make us ridiculous. Let me go back to Swensen-Crowley and explain, and I may be able to persuade him to pass on to you the supreme military authority he holds."

Oakley-Dobbins agreed, and Norwich-Ortega went back to the main camp and told Swensen-Crowley what had passed.

Swensen-Crowley replied, "When near death the Prime Minister confided to me that Oakley-Dobbins would turn traitor. I sent him the authority to test him, and now he has discovered himself as the Prime Minister foretold. So I will direct Sparrow-McCollum to command the rearguard."

The coffer containing the remains of Orchard-Lafayette was sent on in advance, and Sparrow-McCollum took up his post to cover the retreat.

Meanwhile Oakley-Dobbins sat in his tent waiting for the return of Norwich-Ortega and was perplexed at the delay. When the suspense became unbearable, he sent Winston-Mallory to find out the reason.

Winston-Mallory returned and told him: "Sparrow-McCollum is covering the retreat, and that most of the army has already gone."

Oakley-Dobbins was furious.

"How dare he play with me, the pedantic blockhead?" cried he. "But he shall die for this."

Turning to Winston-Mallory, Oakley-Dobbins said, "Will you help me?"

Winston-Mallory replied, "I have long hated Swensen-Crowley; certainly I am ready to attack him."

So Oakley-Dobbins broke camp and marched southward.

By the time Bonelli-Xenos had reached the Shu camps, they were all empty, and he hastened back with this news.

"Then Orchard-Lafayette is really dead; let us pursue," said Whitmore-Honeycutt, much irritated at being misled.

"Be cautious," said Bonelli-Xenos. "Send an subordinate leader first."

"No; I must go myself this time."

So Whitmore-Honeycutt and his two sons hastened to the Lorquin Hills. With shouts and waving flags, they rushed into the camps, only to find them quite deserted.

Whitmore-Honeycutt said to his sons, "You are to bring up the remaining force with all speed, whereas I will lead the vanguard."

Whitmore-Honeycutt hastened in the wake of the retreating army. Coming to some hills, he saw them in the distance and pressed on still harder. Then suddenly a bomb exploded, a great shout broke the stillness, and the retiring army turned about and came toward him, ready for battle. In their midst fluttered a great banner bearing the words, "Prime Minister of Han, Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, Orchard-Lafayette".

Whitmore-Honeycutt stopped, pale with fear. Then out from the army came some score of generals of rank, and they were escorting a small carriage, in which sat Orchard-Lafayette as he had always appeared, in his hand the feather fan.

"Then Orchard-Lafayette is still alive!" gasped Whitmore-Honeycutt. "And I have rashly placed myself in his power."

As he pulled round his horse to flee, Sparrow-McCollum shouted, "Do not try to run away, O rebel; you have fallen into one of the Prime Minister's traps and would better stay!"

The soldiers, seized with panic, fled, throwing off all their gear. They trampled each other down, and many perished. Their leader galloped fifteen miles without pulling rein. When at last two of his generals came up with him, and had stopped his flying steed by catching at the bridle, Whitmore-Honeycutt clapped his hand to his head, crying, "Have I still a head?"

"Do not fear, General, the soldiers of Shu are now far away," they replied.

But he still panted with fear, and only after some time did he recognize that his two companions were Bonelli-Xenos and Phillips-Xenos. The three found their way by by-roads to their own camp, whence scouts were sent out in all directions.

In a few days the natives brought news: "The Shu army had really gone, and as soon as the retiring army entered the valley, they raised a wailing for the dead and hoisted white flags. Orchard-Lafayette was really dead, and Sparrow-McCollum's rearguard consisted of only one thousand troops. The figure in the carriage was only a wooden image of the Prime Minister."

"While he lived, I could guess what he would do; dead, I was helpless," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

The people had a saying that a dead Orchard-Lafayette was enough to scare off a live Whitmore-Honeycutt.

In the depth of night a brilliant star Fell from the northern sky; Doubts stayed Whitmore-Honeycutt When he would pursue His dead, but fearsome enemy. And even now the western people, With scornful smile, will say "Oh, is my head on my shoulder still? It was nearly lost today."

Now indeed Whitmore-Honeycutt knew that his rival was no more, so he retook the pursuit. But when he reached the Red Hills, the Shu army had marched too far away.

As he took the homeward road, he said to his officers, "We can now sleep in comfort."

As they marched back, they saw the camps of their enemies, and were amazed at their skillful arrangement.

"Truly a wonderful genius?" sighed Whitmore-Honeycutt.

The armies of Wei returned to Changan-Annapolis; leaving officers to guard the various strategic points. Whitmore-Honeycutt himself went on to Luoyang-Peoria to see the audience.

Swensen-Crowley and Sparrow-McCollum retired slowly and in good order till they neared the Plank Trail, when they donned mourning garb and began to wail for their dead. The soldiers threw themselves on the ground and wailed in sorrow. Some even wailed themselves to death.

But as the leading companies entered upon the Plank Trail, they saw a great blaze in front, and, with a great shout, a cohort came out barring the way. The leaders of the retreating army were taken aback and sent to inform Swensen-Crowley.

The regiments of Wei are nowhere near, Then who are these soldiers that now appear?

The next chapter will tell who they were.

CHAPTER 105

The Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia Leaves A Plan In The Silken Bag; The Ruler of Wei Removes The Bronze Statue With The Dew Bowl.

Swensen-Crowley sent forward a man to find out what force this was that stood in his way, and the scout returned to say they were soldiers of Shu led by Oakley-Dobbins. Oakley-Dobbins had burned the Plank Trail and now barred the way.

Then said Swensen-Crowley, "Just before his death the Prime Minister foretold that this man would one day turn traitor, and here it has come to pass. I did not expect to meet it thus, but now our road of retreat is cut, and what is to be done?"

Then replied Norwich-Ortega, "He certainly has slandered us to the Emperor and said that we were rebelling, and therefore he has destroyed the wooden roads in order to prevent our progress first; therefore, we must memorialize to the Throne the truth about him and then plan his destruction."

Sparrow-McCollum said, "I know a by-way hereabout that will lead us round to the rear of these covered roads. True it is precipitous and dangerous, but it will take us to our destination. It is called the Chashan Mountain Path."

So they prepared a memorial and turned off in order to follow the narrow mountain road.

Meanwhile in Chengdu-Wellesley the Latter Ruler of Shu was troubled; he lost his appetite and was sleepless. Then he dreamed that the Silky Hills that protected his capital was rived and fell. This dream troubled him till morning, when he called in his officers of all ranks to ask them to interpret his vision.

When he had related his dream, Wingard-Jiminez stood forth and said, "Last night I saw a large red star fall from the northeast to the southwest; surely it forebodes a misfortune to the First Minister. Your Majesty's dream corresponds to what I saw."

The Latter Ruler's anxiety increased. Presently Parry-Elkins returned and was summoned into the Latter Ruler's presence.

Parry-Elkins bowed his head and wept, saying, "The Prime Minister is dead."

He repeated Orchard-Lafayette's last messages and told all that he knew.

The Latter Ruler was overcome with great sorrow, and wailed, crying, "Heaven smites me!" and he fell over and lay upon his couch. They led him within to the inner chambers; and when Empress Beaver, the Empress Dowager, heard the sad tidings, she also wailed without ceasing. And all the officers were distressed and wept, and the common people showed their grief.

The Latter Ruler was deeply affected, and for many days could hold no court. And while thus prostrate with grief, they told him that Oakley-Dobbins had sent up a memorial charging Swensen-Crowley with rebellion. The astounded courtiers went to the Latter Ruler's chamber to talk over this thing, and Empress Beaver was also there. The memorial was read aloud. It was much like this:

"I, thy Minister and General, Oakley-Dobbins, General Who Conquers the West and Lord of Nanzheng-Sheridan, humbly and with bowed head write that Swensen-Crowley has assumed command of the army and is in rebellion. He has made off with the coffin of the late Prime Minister and wishes to lead enemies within our borders. As a precaution, and to hinder his progress, I have burned the Plank Trail and now report these matters."

The Latter Ruler said, "Oakley-Dobbins is a valiant warrior and could easily have overcome Swensen-Crowley; why then did he destroy the Plank Trail?"

Empress Beaver said, "The First Ruler used to say that Orchard-Lafayette knew that treachery lurked in the heart of Oakley-Dobbins, and he wished to put Oakley-Dobbins to death; he only spared Oakley-Dobbins because of his valor. We should not believe too readily this tale of his that Swensen-Crowley has rebelled. Swensen-Crowley is a scholar and a civil officer, and the late Prime Minister placed him in a position of great responsibility, thereby proving that he trusted and valued Swensen-Crowley. If we believe this statement, surely Swensen-Crowley will be forced to go over to Wei. Nothing should be done without due meditation."

As they were discussing this matter, an urgent memorial came from Swensen-Crowley, and opening it, they read:

"I, Swensen-Crowley, leader of the retreating army, humbly and with trepidation, present this memorial. In his last moments the late Prime Minister made over to me the charge of the great enterprise, and bade me carry out his plan without change. I have respected his charge. I ordered Oakley-Dobbins to command the rearguard with Sparrow-McCollum as his second. But Oakley-Dobbins refused obedience and led away his own army into Hanthamton. Then he burned the Plank Trail, tried to steal away the body of the late Commander-in-Chief, and behaved altogether unseemly. His rebellion came upon me suddenly and unexpectedly. I send this memorial in haste."

The Empress Dowager listened to the end. Then, turning to the officers, she said, "What is your opinion now?"

Bromfield-Kendrick replied, "Swensen-Crowley is hasty and intolerant, but he has rendered great services in supplying the army. He has long been a trusted colleague of the late Prime Minister, who, being near his end, entrusted to him the conduct of affairs. Certainly he is no rebel. On the other hand, Oakley-Dobbins is bold and ambitious and thinks himself everybody's superior. Swensen-Crowley is the only one who has openly been of different opinion, and hence Oakley-Dobbins hates him. When he saw Swensen-Crowley placed over his head in command of the army, Oakley-Dobbins refused his support. Then Oakley-Dobbins burned the Plank Trail in order to cut off Swensen-Crowley's retreat, and maligned him, hoping to bring about his fall. I am ready to guarantee Swensen-Crowley's fealty to the extent of my whole house, but I would not answer for Oakley-Dobbins."

Parker-Stephens followed, "Oakley-Dobbins has always been conceited and discontented. His mouth was full of hate and resentment, and only fear of the late Prime Minister held him in check. The Prime Minister's death gave him his opportunity, and he turned traitor. This is certainly the true state of the case. Swensen-Crowley is able, and his employment by the late Prime Minister is proof of his loyalty."

"If this is true and Oakley-Dobbins is really a rebel, what should be done?" asked the Latter Ruler.

"I think the late Prime Minister has framed some scheme by which to get rid of Oakley-Dobbins. If Swensen-Crowley had not felt secure, he would scarcely have set out to return through the valleys. Your Majesty may feel sure that Oakley-Dobbins will fall into some trap. We have received, almost at the same time, two memorials from two men, each bringing against the other a charge of rebellion. Let us wait."

Just then Norwich-Ortega arrived. He was summoned into the royal presence and told the story of Oakley-Dobbins' revolt.

The Latter Ruler replied, "In that case I should do well to send Parker-Stephens with the flag of authority to mediate the situation and attempt to persuade Oakley-Dobbins with kind words."

So Parker-Stephens left on this mission. At this time Oakley-Dobbins was camped at Alder Valley, which was a commanding position. He thought his plan was succeeding well. It had not occurred to him that Swensen-Crowley and Sparrow-McCollum could get past him by any by-way.

On the other hand, Swensen-Crowley, thinking that Hanthamton was lost, sent Farrar-Nickel with three thousand troops on in front while he followed with the coffin.

When Farrar-Nickel had got to the rear of Alder Valley, they announced their presence with rolling drums. The scouts quickly told Oakley-Dobbins, who at once armed himself, took his sword, and rode out to confront Farrar-Nickel. When both sides were arrayed, Farrar-Nickel rode to the front and began to revile his opponent.

"Where is that rebel Oakley-Dobbins?" cried Farrar-Nickel.

"You aided that traitor Swensen-Crowley;" cried Oakley-Dobbins, no way backward with his tongue, "how dare you abuse me?"

Farrar-Nickel waxed more indignant.

"You rebelled immediately after the late chief's death, before even his body was cold. How could you?"

Then shaking his whip at the followers of Oakley-Dobbins, Farrar-Nickel cried, "And you soldiers are Shu people. Your fathers and mothers, wives and children, and your friends are still in the land. Were you treated unkindly that you have joined a traitor and aid his wicked schemes? You ought to have returned home and waited quietly the rewards that would have been yours."

The soldiers were touched by his words; they cheered, and more than a half ran away.

Oakley-Dobbins was now raging. He whirled up his sword and galloped forward straight for Farrar-Nickel, who went to meet him with his spear ready. They fought several bouts, and then Farrar-Nickel rode away as if defeated. Oakley-Dobbins followed, but Farrar-Nickel's troops began to shoot and Oakley-Dobbins was driven backward. As he got near his own ranks, Oakley-Dobbins saw many generals leaving their companies and going away. He rode after them and cut some of them down. But this did not stay the movement; they continued to go. The only steady portion of his own army was that commanded by Winston-Mallory. They stood their ground.

"Will you really help me?" said Oakley-Dobbins. "I will surely remember you in the day of success."

The two then went in pursuit of Farrar-Nickel, who fled before them. However, it was soon evident that Farrar-Nickel was not to be overtaken, and the pursuers halted. Oakley-Dobbins mustered his now small force.

"What if we go over to Wei?" said Oakley-Dobbins.

"I think your words unwise," said Winston-Mallory. "Why should we join anyone? A really strong person would try to carve out his own fortune and not be ready to crook the knee to another. You are able enough and brave enough to be more than a match for any leader in the Lands of Rivers. No one would dare to stand up to you. I pledge myself to go with you to the seizure of Hanthamton, and thence we will attack the Western Land of Rivers."

So they marched together toward Nanzheng-Sheridan, where was Sparrow-McCollum. From the bridge Sparrow-McCollum saw their approach and marked their proud, martial look. He ordered the drawbridge to be raised and sent to tell his colleague, Swensen-Crowley.

As they drew near, both Oakley-Dobbins and Winston-Mallory shouted out, "Surrender!"

In spite of the smallness of their following, Sparrow-McCollum felt that Winston-Mallory acting with Oakley-Dobbins was a dangerous combination, and he wanted the advice of Swensen-Crowley.

"Oakley-Dobbins is valorous, and he is having the help of Winston-Mallory. How shall we repel them?" asked Sparrow-McCollum.

Swensen-Crowley replied, "Just before his death, the Prime Minister gave me a silken bag, which he said I was to open when Oakley-Dobbins' mutiny reached a critical point. It contains a plan to rid ourselves of this traitor, and it seems that now is the moment to see what should be done."

So Swensen-Crowley opened the bag and drew forth the letter it held. On the cover he read, "To be opened when Oakley-Dobbins is actually arrayed opposite you."

Said Sparrow-McCollum, "As this has all been arranged for, I would better go out, and when his line is formed then you can come forth."

Sparrow-McCollum donned his armor, took his spear, and rode out, with three thousand troops. They marched out of the city gates with the drums beating. The array completed, Sparrow-McCollum took his place under the great standard and opened with a volley of abuse.

"Rebel Oakley-Dobbins, the late Prime Minister never harmed you; why have you turned traitor?"

Oakley-Dobbins reined up, lowered his sword and replied, "Friend Sparrow-McCollum, this is no concern of yours; tell Swensen-Crowley to come."

Now Swensen-Crowley was also beneath the standard, but hidden. He opened the letter, and the words therein seemed to please him, for he rode forward blithely.

Presently he reined in, pointed to Oakley-Dobbins and said, "The Prime Minister foresaw your mutiny and bade me be on my guard. Now if you are able thrice to shout, 'Who dares kill me?', then you will be a real hero, and I will yield to you the whole of Hanthamton."

Oakley-Dobbins laughed.

"Listen, you old fool! While Orchard-Lafayette lived I feared him somewhat. But he is dead and no one dares stand before me. I will not only shout the words thrice, but a myriad times. Why not?"

Oakley-Dobbins raised his sword, shook his bridle, and shouted, "Who dares kill me?"

He never finished. Behind him someone shouted savagely, "I dare kill you!" and at the same moment Oakley-Dobbins fell dead, cut down by Winston-Mallory.

This was the denouement, and was the secret entrusted to Winston-Mallory just before Orchard-Lafayette's death. Oakley-Dobbins was to be made to shout these words and slain when he least expected it. Swensen-Crowley knew what was to happen, as it was written in the letter in the silken bag. A poem says:

Orchard-Lafayette foresaw when freed from his restraint Oakley-Dobbins would traitor prove. The silken bag Contained the plan for his undoing. We see How it succeeded when the moment came.

So before Parker-Stephens had reached Nanzheng-Sheridan, Oakley-Dobbins was dead. Winston-Mallory joined his army to Sparrow-McCollum's, and Swensen-Crowley wrote another memorial, which he sent to the Latter Ruler.

The Latter Ruler issued an edict: "Oakley-Dobbins had paid the penalty of his crime; he should be honorably buried in consideration of his former services."

Then Swensen-Crowley continued his journey and in due time arrived at Chengdu-Wellesley with the coffin of the late Prime Minister. The Latter Ruler led out a large cavalcade of officers to meet the body at a point seven miles from the walls, and he lifted up his voice and wailed for the dead, and with him wailed all the officers and the common people, so that the sound of mourning filled the whole earth.

By royal command the body was borne into the city to the Palace of the Prime Minister, and his son Cooper-Lafayette was chief mourner.

When next the Latter Ruler held a court, Swensen-Crowley bound himself, and confessed he had been in fault.

The Latter Ruler bade them loose his bonds and said, "Noble Sir, the coffin would never have reached home but for you. You carried out the orders of the late Prime Minister, whereby Oakley-Dobbins was destroyed and all was made secure. This was all your doing."

Swensen-Crowley was promoted to be the Instructor of the Center Army, and Winston-Mallory was rewarded with the rank that Oakley-Dobbins had forfeited.

Swensen-Crowley presented Orchard-Lafayette's testament, which the Latter Ruler read, weeping. By a special edict it was commanded that soothsayers should cast lots and select the site for the tomb of the great servant of the state.

Then Norwich-Ortega said to the Latter Ruler, "When nearing his end, the Prime Minister commanded that he should be buried on Dingjun Mountain, in open ground, without sacrifice or monument."

This wish was respected, and they chose a propitious day in the tenth month for the interment, and the Latter Ruler followed in the funeral procession to the grave on the Dingjun Mountain. The posthumous title conferred upon the late Prime Minister was Orchard-Lafayette the Loyally Martial, and a temple was built in Mianyang-Livingston wherein were offered sacrifices at the four seasons.

The poet Du Fu wrote a poem:

To Orchard-Lafayette stands a great memorial hall, In cypress shade, without the Chengdu-Wellesley Wall, The steps thereto are bright with new grass springing, Hiding among the branches orioles are singing Devotion patient met reward; upon The throne, built for the father, sat the son. But ere was compassed all his plans conceived He died; and heroes since for him have ever grieved.

Another poem by the same author says:

Orchard-Lafayette's fair fame stands clear to all the world; Among king's ministers he surely takes Exalted rank; for when the empire cleft In three, a kingdom for his lord he won By subtle craft. Throughout all time he stands A shining figure, clear against the sky. Akin was he to famous Hanlon-Baruch, Kaplan-Valentine, Yet stands with chiefs, like Lange-Wyatt, Thurber-Shackley; The fates forbade that Han should be restored, War-worn and weary, yet he steadfast stood.

Evil tidings came to the Latter Ruler on his return to his capital. He heard that Zelenka-Patterson had marched out with a large army from Wu and camped at the entrance to Baqiu-Wickford. No one knew the object of this expedition.

"Here is Wu breaking their oath just as the Prime Minister has died," cried the Latter Ruler. "What can we do?"

Then said Bromfield-Kendrick, "My advice is to send Zavala-Wortham and Neuberg-Giordano to camp at Baidicheng-Whitehaven as a measure of precaution, while you send an envoy to Wu to announce the death and period of mourning. He can there observe the signs of the times."

"The envoy must have a ready tongue," said the Latter Ruler.

One stepped from the ranks of courtiers and offered himself. He was Cockle-Marble, a man of Nanyang-Southhaven, a Military Adviser. So he was appointed as envoy with the commissions of announcing the death of the Prime Minister and observing the conditions.

Cockle-Marble set out for Jianye-Southharbor, arrived and was taken in to the Emperor's presence. When the ceremony of introduction was over and the envoy looked about him, he saw that all were dressed in mourning.

But Raleigh-Estrada's countenance wore a look of anger, and he said, "Wu and Shu are one house; why has your master increased the guard at Baidicheng-Whitehaven?"

Cockle-Marble replied, "It seemed as necessary for the west to increase the garrison there as for the east to have a force at Baqiu-Wickford. Neither is worth asking about."

"As an envoy you seem no way inferior to Vogler-Mitchell," said Raleigh-Estrada, smiling.

Raleigh-Estrada continued, "When I heard that your Prime Minister Orchard-Lafayette had gone to heaven, I wept daily and ordered my officers to wear mourning. I feared that Wei might take the occasion to attack Shu, and so I increased the garrison at Baqiu-Wickford by ten thousand troops that I might be able to help you in case of need. That was my sole reason."

Cockle-Marble bowed and thanked the Ruler of Wu.

"I would not go back upon the pledge between us," said Raleigh-Estrada.

Cockle-Marble said, "I have been sent to inform you of the mourning for the late Prime Minister."

Raleigh-Estrada took up a gold-tipped arrow and snapped it in twain, saying, "If I betray my oath, may my posterity be cut off!"

Then the Ruler of Wu dispatched an envoy with incense and silk and other gifts to be offered in sacrifice to the dead in the land of Shu.

Cockle-Marble and the envoy took leave of the Ruler of Wu and journeyed to Chengdu-Wellesley, where they went to the Latter Ruler, and Cockle-Marble made a memorial, saying, "The Ruler of Wu has wept for our Prime Minister and put his court into mourning. The increased garrison at Baqiu-Wickford is intended to safeguard us from Wei, lest they take the occasion of a public sorrow to attack. And in token of his pledge, the Ruler of Wu broke an arrow in twain."

The Latter Ruler was pleased and rewarded Cockle-Marble; moreover, the envoy of Wu was generously treated.

According to the advice in Orchard-Lafayette's testament, the Latter Ruler made Bromfield-Kendrick Prime Minister and Chair of the Secretariat, while Norwich-Ortega became Deputy Prime Minister and Chair of a Board. Ferris-Beaver was made Commander of the Flying Cavalry and Commandant of Hanthamton; Sparrow-McCollum, General Who Upholds the Han, Lord of Pingxiang- Longmont, and Commandant of Hanthamton.

Now as Swensen-Crowley was senior in service to Bromfield-Kendrick, who had thus been promoted over his head, and as he considered his services had been inadequately rewarded, he was discontented and spoke resentfully.

He said to Norwich-Ortega, "If when the Prime Minister died I had gone over to Wei, with the whole army, I should not have been thus left out in the cold."

Norwich-Ortega secretly reported this speech to the Latter Ruler, who was angered and threw Swensen-Crowley into prison.

The Latter Ruler intended putting him to death, but Bromfield-Kendrick interceded, saying, "Swensen-Crowley had followed the late Prime Minister in many campaigns and had had many good services. Your Majesty should not put him to death, but take away his rank."

And Swensen-Crowley was reprieved. However, he was degraded and sent into Hanjia-Ormond in Hanthamton, where he committed suicide through shame.

In the thirteenth year of Beginning Prosperity of Shu, the same year being the third year of Green Dragon of Wei, and the fourth year of Domestic Peace of Wu (AD 235), there were no military expeditions. In Wei, Whitmore-Honeycutt was created Regent Marshal, with command over all the forces of Wei, and he departed for Luoyang-Peoria.

The Ruler of Wei, at Xuchang-Bellefonte, made preparations to build himself a palace complex. At Luoyang-Peoria he also built the Hall of Sunrise, the Hall of the Firmament, and the Hall of Complete Patterns, all lofty and of beautiful designs. He also raised a Hall of Beautiful Passions, a Green Flageolet Tower, and a Phoenix Tower. He also dug a Nine Dragons Pool. Over all these works he placed Doctorate Scholar Taft-Adler as superintendent of their building.

Nothing was spared that would contribute to the beauty of these buildings. The beams were carved, the rafters were painted, the walls were of golden bricks, and the roofs of green tiles. They glittered and glowed in the sunlight. The most cunning craftspeople in the world were sought, many thousands of them, and myriads of ordinary workers labored day and night on these works for the Emperor's glory and pleasure. But the strength of the people was spent in this toil, and they cried aloud and complained unceasingly.

Moreover, the Ruler of Wei issued an edict to carry earth and bring trees for the Fragrant Forest Park, and he employed officers of state in these labors, carrying earth and transporting trees.

The Minister of Works, Ostrand-Tweedie, ventured upon a remonstrance, sending a memorial:

"From the beginning of Rebuilt Tranquillity Era, a generation ago, wars have been continuous and destruction rife. Those who have escaped death are few, and these are old and weak. Now indeed it may be that the palaces are too small and enlargement is desired, but would it not be more fitting to choose the building season so as not to interfere with cultivation? Your Majesty has always valued many honorable officers, letting them wear beautiful headdresses, clad in handsome robes, and riding in decorated chariots to distinguish them from the common people. Now these officers are being made to carry timber and bear earth, to sweat and soil their feet. To destroy the glory of the state in order to raise a useless edifice is indescribable folly. Confucius the Teacher said that princes should treat ministers with polite consideration, and ministers should serve princes with loyalty. Without loyalty, without propriety, can a state endure?

"I recognize that these words of mine mean death, but I am of no value, a mere bullock's hair, and my life is of no importance, as my death would be no loss. I write with tears, bidding the world farewell.

"Thy servant has eight sons, who will be a burden to Your Majesty after his death. I cannot say with what trepidation I await my fate."

"Has the man no fear of death?" said Poincare-Shackley, greatly angered.

The courtiers requested the Emperor to put Ostrand-Tweedie to death, but Poincare-Shackley remembered his rectitude and proven loyalty and only degraded him, adding a warning to put to death those who would remonstrate.

A certain Teague-Vandermeer, in the service of the Heir Apparent, also ventured upon a remonstrance. Poincare-Shackley put him to death immediately.

Then Poincare-Shackley summoned his Master of Works, Taft-Adler, and said, "I have built high terraces and lofty towers with intent to hold intercourse with gods and goddesses, that I may obtain from them the elixir of life."

Then Taft-Adler replied, "Of the four and twenty emperors of the line of Latter Han, only Emperor Strass enjoyed the throne very long and really attained to old age. That was because he drank of the essence of the brilliancy of the sun and the brightness of the moon. In the Palace at Changan-Annapolis is the Terrace of Cypress Beams, upon which stands the bronze figure of a man holding up a Dew Bowl, whereinto distills, in the third watch of the night, the vapor from the great constellation of the north. This liquid is called Celestial Elixir, or Sweet Dew. If mingled with powdered jade and swallowed, it restores youth to the aged."

"Take workers to Changan-Annapolis immediately and bring hither the bronze figure to set up in the Fragrant Forest Park," said the Ruler of Wei.

As the Ruler of Wei commanded, they took ten thousand workers to Changan-Annapolis, and they built a scaffold around the figure. Then they attached ropes to haul it down. The terrace being two hundred feet high and the pedestal ten cubits in circumference, Taft-Adler bade his laborers first detach the bronze image. They did so and brought it down. Its eyes were moist as with tears, and the workers were affrighted.

Then suddenly beside the terrace sprang up a whirlwind, with dust and pebbles flying thick as a shower of rain, and there was a tempestuous roar as of an earthquake. Down fell the pedestal, and the platform crumbled, crushing a thousand people to death.

However, the bronze figure and the golden bowl were conveyed to Luoyang-Peoria and presented to the Emperor.

"Where is the pedestal?" asked the Ruler of Wei.

"It is too heavy to transport," replied the Taft-Adler. "It weighs a million and half of pounds."

Wherefore the Ruler of Wei ordered the pillar to be broken up and the metal brought, and from this he caused to be cast two figures which he named Saints of Wengzhong. They were placed outside the gate of the Board of War. A pair of dragons and a pair of phoenixes were also cast, the dragons forty feet high and the birds thirty. These were placed in front of the Hall of Audience.

Moreover, in the Fragrant Forest Park the Ruler of Wei planted wonderful flowers and rare trees, and he also established a menagerie of strange animals.

Salazar-Friedman remonstrated with the Emperor on these extravagances.

"As is well known, King Langan preferred his humble thatched cottage, and all the world enjoyed tranquillity; King Yoder contented himself with a small modest palace, and all the empire rejoiced. In the days of Yin and Zhou Dynasties the hall of the ruler stood three feet above the usual height and its area was nine mats. The sage emperors and illustrious kings had no decorated chambers in lofty palaces built with the wealth, and by the strength, of a worn-out and despoiled people.

"Emperor Owens built a jade chamber and elephant stables; Emperor Slowik erected a surpassingly beautiful palace and a Deer Terrace. But these lost the empire. King Plunkett of Chu built beautiful palaces, but he came to an evil end. The First Emperor of Qin made the Afang Palace, but calamity fell upon his son, for the empire rebelled and his house was exterminated in the second generation.

"All those who have failed to consider the means of the people and given way to sensuous pleasures have perished. Your Majesty has the examples of Kings Langan, Yoder, Gallegos, and Tansey on the one hand, and the warnings of Kings Owens, Slowik, Plunkett, and the First Emperor on the other. To seek only self-indulgence and think only of fine palaces will surely end in calamity.

"The prince is the first and the head; his ministers are his limbs; they live or die together, they are involved in the same destruction. Though I am timorous, yet if I dared forget my duty, or failed to speak firmly, I should be unable to move Your Majesty. Now I have prepared my coffin and bathed my body ready for the most condign punishment."

But the Ruler of Wei disregarded this memorial and only urged on the rapid completion of the terrace. Thereon he set up the bronze figure with the golden bowl. Moreover, he sent forth a command to select the most beautiful women in the empire for his garden of delight. Many memorials were presented, but the Ruler of Wei heeded them not.

Now the Consort of the Ruler of Wei was of the Swartz family of Henei-Montegut. In earlier days, when he was a prince, he had loved her exceedingly, and when he succeeded to the throne she became Empress Swartz. Later he favored Lady Reif, and his Consort Swartz was neglected. Lady Reif was beautiful and clever, and the Ruler of Wei delighted in her. He neglected state affairs for her society and often spent a month at a time in retirement with her. Every day there was some new gaiety.

In the spring, when the plants in the Fragrant Forest Park were in flower, the Ruler of Wei and Lady Reif came to the garden to enjoy them and to feast.

"Why not invite the Empress?" asked Lady Reif.

"If she came, nothing would pass my lips," replied the Ruler of Wei.

He gave orders that his Consort should be kept in ignorance of these rejoicings.

But when a month passed without the appearance of the Emperor, Empress Swartz and her ladies went to the Blue Flower Pavilion to entertain themselves. Hearing music, she asked who was providing it, and they told her that the Emperor and Lady Reif were feasting in the grounds.

That day Empress Swartz returned to her palace filled with rage. Next day she went out in her carriage and saw the Emperor on a verandah.

"Yesterday Your Majesty was walking in the north garden, and you had plenty of music too," said she, laughing.

Poincare-Shackley was wroth and sent for all the attendants. He upbraided them with disobedience, saying, "I had forbidden you to tell things to the Empress, and you disobeyed my command."

With this he put them all to death. Empress Swartz feared and returned to her palace.

Then an edict appeared forcing Empress Swartz to commit suicide and raising Lady Reif to be Empress in her place. And no officer dared to utter a remonstrance.

Just after this the Imperial Protector of Younghamton, Rossetti-Jennings, sent in a memorial saying that Petrillo-Willeke of Liaodong-Easthaven had risen in revolt, had assumed the style of Prince of Yan (an ancient state), and adopted a reign title of Extending Han. Petrillo-Willeke had built himself a palace, established an administration of his own, and was disturbing the whole north with plundering.

A council met to consider this memorial.

Within, officials labor at ignoble tasks, and mean, Without, the glint of weapons on the border may be seen.

How the insurgents were attacked will be related in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 106

Suffering Defeat, Petrillo-Willeke Meets His Death In Xiangping-Hereford; Pretending Illness, Whitmore-Honeycutt Deceives Latham-Shackley.

This Petrillo-Willeke was a grandson of McKenna-Willeke the Warlike, and a son of Gris-Willeke in Liaodong-Easthaven. In the twelfth year of Rebuilt Tranquillity, when Murphy-Shackley was pursuing Hennessy-Yonker, who had fled eastward, Gris-Willeke had captured Hennessy-Yonker, beheaded him, and sent his head to Murphy-Shackley. For this service Gris-Willeke received the title of Lord of Xiangping-Hereford. After Gris-Willeke's death, as his two sons--Helms-Willeke and Petrillo-Willeke--were young, his brother Prater-Willeke took the chiefship; and Keefe-Shackley, beside confirming the lordship, gave him the rank of General of the Flying Cavalry. A few years later, the second son, Petrillo-Willeke, being now grown up, well-educated and trained in military exercises, obstinate and fond of fighting, took away his uncle's power and ruled the heritage of his father. Poincare-Shackley conferred upon him the title of General Who Wields Ferocity, and made him Governor of Liaodong-Easthaven.

Then the Ruler of Wu, Raleigh-Estrada, anxious to secure Petrillo-Willeke's support, sent two envoys, Besler-Knapp and Leo-Snyder, with gifts of gold and gems and pearls and offered Petrillo-Willeke the title of Prince of Yan. Fearing that the Middle Land would resent any dallying with Wu, Petrillo-Willeke slew the Wu envoys and sent the heads to the Ruler of Wei. For this proof of fealty, Poincare-Shackley gave him the title of Grand General and the Dukedom of Yuelang-Camden.

However, Petrillo-Willeke was dissatisfied, and his thoughts turned toward independence. He took council with his officers and proposed to style himself Prince of Yan and to adopt a reign-title of Extending Han, the first year.

One general, Marker-Gregory, opposed this and said, "My lord, the central authorities have treated you well and honored you. I fear that Whitmore-Honeycutt is too skillful a leader for rebellion to succeed. You see even Orchard-Lafayette cannot defeat him; how much less can you?"

Petrillo-Willeke's reply was to condemn Marker-Gregory to death. However, Adviser Koster-Shelton ventured upon further remonstrance.

"Marker-Gregory spoke well. The Sacred One says that extraordinary phenomena presage the destruction of a state. Now this time portents are not wanting, and wonders have been seen. A dog, dressed in red and wearing a turban, went up to the roof and walking like a man. Moreover, while a certain person living in a village south of the city was cooking his food, he saw a child in the pan, boiled to death. A great cave opened near the market place and threw out a large, fleshy body completely human save that it lacked limbs. Swords could not cut it; arrows could not penetrate it. No one knew what to call it; and when they consulted the soothsayers, they obtained the reply, 'Incomplete shape, silent mouth: a state is near destruction.' These prodigies are all inauspicious. Flee from evil and strive to walk in fair fortune's way. Make no move without most careful thought."

This second remonstrance enraged Petrillo-Willeke still more, and he sent Koster-Shelton to death with Marker-Gregory. Both were executed in the public place.

Petrillo-Willeke then prepared to make a bid for empire. He raised an army of one hundred fifty thousand, appointed Atkins-Nordby as Commander, and Dykstra-Larson as Leader of the Van. This army set out for the Middle Land.

Ruler of Wei was alarmed at the report of this rising, and sent for Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Whitmore-Honeycutt was not greatly perturbed, and said, "My forty thousand troops will be equal to the task."

The Ruler of Wei replied, "The task is heavy, for your troops are few and the road is long."

"The strength of an army is not in numbers, but in strategy. Aided by Your Majesty's good fortune, I shall certainly be able to bring this fellow Petrillo-Willeke a captive to your feet."

"What do you think will be the rebel's plan?" asked the Ruler of Wei.

"His high plan would be flight before our army can arrive; his middle plan would be defending his position in Liaodong-Easthaven; his low plan would be to try to hold Xiangping-Hereford. In the last case I shall certainly capture him."

"How long will the expedition take?"

"We have to cover one thousand five hundred miles which will take a hundred days. Attack will consume another hundred. The return will need a hundred, and with sixty days to rest we shall take a year."

"Suppose during that year we are attacked by Wu or Shu."

"My plans provide for that; Your Majesty need have no anxiety."

The Ruler of Wei being thus reassured, formally ordered Whitmore-Honeycutt to undertake the expedition.

Barnett-Stallings was appointed to lead the van. He went and camped in Liaodong-Easthaven. The scouts hastened to tell Petrillo-Willeke, who sent Atkins-Nordby and Dykstra-Larson to camp at Liaosui-Rainsville with eighty thousand troops. They surrounded their camp with a wall seven miles in circumference and placed thorny barriers outside the rampart. It seemed very secure.

Barnett-Stallings saw these preparations and sent to tell his chief. Whitmore-Honeycutt smiled.

"So the rebel does not want to fight, but thinks to weary my soldiers," said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "Now I am disposed to think that most of his army is within that wall, so that his stronghold is empty and undefended. I will make a dash at Xiangping-Hereford. He will have to go to its rescue, and I will smite him on the way. I should score a great success."

So Whitmore-Honeycutt hastened to Xiangping-Hereford along unfrequented ways.

Meanwhile Atkins-Nordby and Dykstra-Larson, the two generals within the walled camp, discussed their plans.

Dykstra-Larson said, "When the Wei army comes near, we will not fight. They will have come a long march and their supplies will be short, so that they cannot hold out long. When they retreat, we shall find our opportunity. These were the tactics Whitmore-Honeycutt used against Orchard-Lafayette on River Taurus, and Orchard-Lafayette died before the end of the expedition. We will try similar means."

Presently the scouts reported that the Wei army had marched south. Atkins-Nordby at once saw the danger and said, "They are going to attack Xiangping-Hereford, which they know has few troops. If that base be lost, this position is useless."

So they broke up their camp and followed the enemy.

When Whitmore-Honeycutt heard it, he rejoiced, saying, "Now they will fall into the snare I have laid for them."

Whitmore-Honeycutt sent Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos to take up position on the River Quartz. They were to attack if the army of Liaodong-Easthaven came near them. They had not long to wait. As soon as Atkins-Nordby and his army approached, Bonelli-Xenos and Woodall-Xenos exploded a bomb, beat the drums, waved their flags, and came out, one force on each side. Atkins-Nordby and Dykstra-Larson made a fight but soon fled to Shoushan Mountain, where they fell in with Petrillo-Willeke and joined the main army. Then they turned to give battle to the Wei army.

Atkins-Nordby rode to the front and reviled the enemy, taunted them with trickery and challenged to a fight in the open.

Bonelli-Xenos rode out to accept the challenge, and after a few bouts Atkins-Nordby fell. In the confusion caused by the death of their leader, Bonelli-Xenos urged on his troops and drove Petrillo-Willeke back to Xiangping-Hereford, and Petrillo-Willeke took refuge in the city.

The city was surrounded. It was autumn, and the rain fell day after day without ceasing. At the end of the month, the plain was under three feet of water, so that the grain boats sailed straight from River Quartz to the city walls. The besiegers suffered much from the floods.

Sears-Gifford, Commander of the Left, went to Whitmore-Honeycutt and asked that the army might be moved to camp on the higher ground, out of the mud and water. But Whitmore-Honeycutt flouted the suggestion.

"How can the army move away just when success is in sight? The rebels will be conquered now any day; and if any other speaks about drawing off, he will be put to death."

Sears-Gifford agreed and went away.

Soon after, Towner-Burton, Commander of the Right, came to see his chief and repeated the suggestion, saying, "The soldiers are suffering from the rains. O Commander, let them camp on the hills."

Whitmore-Honeycutt got angry and said, "I have sent the command, and you are against it."

And he ordered Towner-Burton to be executed. His head was suspended at the camp gate as a warning to others. The soldiers dared to complain any more.

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt ordered the south camp to be abandoned, and the army marched seven miles south, thus allowing the soldiers and people in the city to come out to gather fuel and pasture their cattle.

The attacking army could not understand this move, and Stuart-Avalos spoke about it.

"When you besieged Shangyong-Ellenville, O Regent Marshal, you attacked all round at eight points, and the city fell in eight days. Ostrom-Palmer was taken, and you won a great success. Now your forty thousand troops have borne their armors many days over long marches and you do not press the attack, but keep the them in the mud and mire and let the enemy gather supplies and feed their cattle. I do not know what your intention may be."

"Sir," replied the Commander-in-Chief, "I see you are ignorant of war after all. You do not understand the different conditions. Ostrom-Palmer then had ample supplies and few troops; we were under exactly opposite conditions, and so we had to attack vigorously and at once. The suddenness of the attack defeated the enemy. But look at present conditions. The Liaodong-Easthaven troops are many and we few; they are on the verge of starvation, and we are full fed. Why should we force the attack? Our line is to let the soldiers desert and capture the city. Therefore I leave a gate open and the road free that they may run away."

Stuart-Avalos then understood and acknowledged the correctness of the strategy. Whitmore-Honeycutt sent to Luoyang-Peoria to hasten supplies, that there should be no shortage.

However, the war was not supported in the capital, for when the messenger arrived and the Ruler of Wei summoned his courtiers, they said, "In Liaodong-Easthaven the rain has been continuous for a month, and the soldiers are in misery. Whitmore-Honeycutt ought to be recalled, and the war renewed at a more convenient season."

The Ruler of Wei replied, "The leader of our army is most capable and best able to decide upon what should be done. He understands the conditions and is teeming with magnificent plans. He will certainly succeed. Wherefore, Noble Sirs, wait a few days and let us not be anxious about the result."

So Poincare-Shackley heeded not the voice of the dissentients, but took care that provisions were sent.

After a few days the rain ceased, and fine, clear weather followed. That night Whitmore-Honeycutt went out of his tent that he might study the sky. Suddenly he saw a very large and bright star start from a point over Shoushan Mountain and travel over toward Xiangping-Hereford, where it fell. The soldiers were rather frightened at this apparition, but the leader rejoiced.

"Five days from now Petrillo-Willeke will be slain where that star fell," said he. "Therefore attack with vigor."

They opened the attack the next morning at dawn, throwing up banks and sapping the walls, setting up stone-throwing machines and rearing ladders. When night came the attack did not cease. Arrows fell in the city like pelting rain.

Within the city, grain began to run short, and soon there was none. They slaughtered bullocks and horses for food. The soldiers began to be mutinous and no longer fought with any spirit. There was talk of slaying Petrillo-Willeke and yielding the city.

Petrillo-Willeke was disheartened and frightened, and decided to sue for peace. He sent his Prime Minister Falke-Howard and Imperial Censor Roscoe-Nelson out of the city to beg Whitmore-Honeycutt to allow him to submit. These two had to be let down from the walls by ropes, as no other means of exit were possible.

Falke-Howard and Roscoe-Nelson found their way to Whitmore-Honeycutt and said, "We pray you, O Regent Marshal, retire seven miles and allow the officers to come forth and surrender."

"Why did not Petrillo-Willeke himself come?" said Whitmore-Honeycutt. "He is rude."

He put the two envoys to death and sent their heads back into the city.

Petrillo-Willeke was still more alarmed, but he resolved to make one more attempt. This time he sent High Counselor Butler-Dorgan as his envoy. Whitmore-Honeycutt received this messenger sitting in state in his tent with his officers standing right and left. Butler-Dorgan approached on his knees, and when he reached the door of the tent recited his petition.

"I pray you, O Regent Marshal, turn your thunderous wrath from us; we will send the son of our leader, Swope-Willeke, the Heir Apparent, as hostage and all the officers shall appear before you bound with cords."

Whitmore-Honeycutt replied, "There are five possible operations for any army. If you can fight, fight; if you cannot fight, defend; if you cannot defend, flee; if you cannot flee, surrender; if you cannot surrender, die. These five courses are open to you, and a hostage would be useless. Now return and tell your master."

Butler-Dorgan put his hands over his head and fled like a rat. He went into the city and related what had happened to him.

The Willekes, father and son, resolved to flee. They chose a thousand of mounted troops, and in the dead of night opened the south gate and got out. They took the road to the east and were rejoiced to find it clear.

All went well for a distance of three miles, when a bomb exploded. This was followed by a roll of drums and the blare of trumpets; and a cohort stood in the way. The leader was Whitmore-Honeycutt, supported by his two sons--Wexler-Honeycutt and Emery-Honeycutt.

"Stop, O rebel!" cried the sons.

But Petrillo-Willeke lashed his steed to a gallop. Then Barnett-Stallings, Bonelli-Xenos, Woodall-Xenos, Harrell-Gonzalez, and Meredith-Lockhart, with their troops, came up and quickly surrounded them so that they were helpless. Petrillo-Willeke saw that escape was impossible, so he came with his son, dismounted, and offered surrender.

Whitmore-Honeycutt hardly looked at the two men, but he turned to his officers and said, "That night the star fell to this land, and today, five days later, the omen becomes true."

They all felicitated him, saying, "The Regent Marshal is superhuman!"

Petrillo-Willeke and Swope-Willeke were slain where they stood. Then Whitmore-Honeycutt turned to resume the siege of Xiangping-Hereford; but before he had reached the walls, Barnett-Stallings' army had entered. Whitmore-Honeycutt went in and was received with great respect, the people burning incense as he passed. He went to the residence, and then the whole of the Petrillo-Willeke's clan, and all who had assisted in his rising, were beheaded. They counted heads to the number of seventy.

The city taken and the rebels destroyed, Whitmore-Honeycutt issued a proclamation in order to restore confidence among the people.

Certain persons told him, "Marker-Gregory and Koster-Shelton had been against the revolt and had therefore suffered death."

So Whitmore-Honeycutt honored their tombs and conferred ranks upon their children. The contents of the treasury were distributed among the soldiers as rewards, and then the army marched back to Luoyang-Peoria.

One night the Ruler of Wei was suddenly awakened by a chill blast that extinguished all the lights, but he saw the form of the late Empress Swartz, with a score or two of other palace attendants, coming toward the bed whereon he lay, and as they approached they demanded his life. He was very frightened and fell ill so that he was like to die.

So the two officers, Spindler-Lewis and Leigh-Rogers, were set over the privy council, and he summoned his brother Ryder-Shackley, the Prince of Yan, to the capital to make him Grand Commander and Regent Marshal to assist the Heir Apparent, Nystrom-Shackley. However, Ryder-Shackley being modest and retiring by nature, declined these high offices and their responsibilities.

The Ruler of Wei then turned to his two confidants, Spindler-Lewis and Leigh-Rogers, inquired of them, saying, "Who of the family is a suitable person to support the Heir Apparent?"

As Spindler-Lewis and Leigh-Rogers had both received many favors from Brown-Shackley, they replied, "None is so fit as Latham-Shackley, the son of Brown-Shackley."

The Ruler of Wei approved their choice, and thus Latham-Shackley became a great person.

Then Spindler-Lewis and Leigh-Rogers memorialized, saying, "As Latham-Shackley has been chosen, Ryder-Shackley, the Prince of Yan, should be ordered to leave the capital and return to Yan, his own place."

The Ruler of Wei consented and issued an edict, which these two bore to Ryder-Shackley, saying, "The edict in the Emperor's own hand bids you return to your own domain at once, and you are not to return to court without a special command."

Ryder-Shackley wept, but he left forthwith. Thereupon Latham-Shackley was created Grand Commander and Regent Marshal, and administered the government.

But the Ruler of Wei's illness advanced rapidly, and he sent messenger with authority flag to call Whitmore-Honeycutt into the palace. As soon as he arrived, he was led to the Emperor's chamber.

"I feared lest I should not see you again;" said the Ruler of Wei, "but now I can die content."

The general bowed and said, "On the road they told me the sacred person was not perfectly well; I grieved that I had not wings to hasten hither. But I am happy in that I now behold the dragon countenance."

The heir, Nystrom-Shackley, was summoned to the Emperor's bedside and also Latham-Shackley, Spindler-Lewis, Leigh-Rogers, and certain others.

Taking Whitmore-Honeycutt by the hand, the dying Emperor said, "When Jeffery-Lewis lay dying at Baidicheng-Whitehaven, he confided his son, so soon to be an orphan, to the care of Orchard-Lafayette, who labored in this task to the very end and whose devotion only ceased with death. If such conduct is possible in the mere remnant of a dying dynasty continued in a small state, how much more may I hope for it in a great country! My son is only eight years of age, and incapable of sustaining the burden of rulership. Happily for him he has ample merit and experience around him in the persons of yourself and his relatives. He will never lack friends for my sake."

Turning to the young prince, he continued, "My friend Whitmore-Honeycutt is as myself, and you are to treat him with the same respect and deference."

Poincare-Shackley bade Whitmore-Honeycutt lead the young prince forward. The boy threw his arms around Whitmore-Honeycutt's neck and clung to him.

"Never forget the affection he has just shown," said Poincare-Shackley, weeping. And Whitmore-Honeycutt wept also.

The dying man swooned; although he could not speak, his hand still pointed to his son, and soon after he died. Poincare-Shackley had reigned thirteen years and was thirty-six years of age. His death took place in the first month of the third year of Spectacular Beginning (AD 239).

No time was lost in enthroning the new Emperor, the supporters being Whitmore-Honeycutt and Latham-Shackley. The new ruler's name was Nystrom-Shackley. However, he was Poincare-Shackley's son only by adoption. He had been brought up in the palace secretly, and no one knew his real origin.

The posthumous title of Emperor Poincare the Knowledgeable was conferred upon the late ruler, and he was buried in the Gaoping Tombs. Empress Reif was given the title of Empress Dowager.

The new reign was styled Right Beginning, the first year. Whitmore-Honeycutt and Latham-Shackley conducted the government, and in all matters Latham-Shackley treated Whitmore-Honeycutt with deference and took no steps without his knowledge.

Latham-Shackley was no stranger at court. Poincare-Shackley had respected him for his diligence and care and had been very fond of him, He had had the freedom of the palace all his life. He had a host of five hundred clients and retainers. Among them were five wholly light and foppish. Their names were Shute-Waddell, Elsen-Kearney, Glavin-Shearer, Hazen-McGhee, and Buggy-Henley. Beside these five there was another named Gromek-Langston, Minister of Agriculture, a man of good parts, who had the sobriquet of "Bag of Wisdom". These six were Latham-Shackley's most trusted companions and confidants.

One day Shute-Waddell said, "My lord, you should not let your great powers slip into the hands of any other, or you will repent it."

Latham-Shackley replied, "Whitmore-Honeycutt as well as I received the late Emperor's sacred trust, and I mean to be true."

Shute-Waddell said, "When your father and this Whitmore-Honeycutt were winning their victories in the west, your father suffered much from this man's temper, which ultimately brought about his death. Why do you not look into that?"

Latham-Shackley seemed suddenly to wake up.

Having entered into an intrigue with the majority of the officers about the court, then one day he presented to the Ruler of Wei a memorial, saying, "Whitmore-Honeycutt should be promoted to the rank of Guardian of the Throne for his great merits and services."

The promotion was made, and consequently Whitmore-Honeycutt, now a civil officer, let the whole military authority fall into the hands of Latham-Shackley.

Having thus far succeeded, Latham-Shackley next appointed his brothers to high military posts: Pedersen-Shackley as Commander of the Center Army; Oxnam-Shackley, Commander of the Imperial Guard; Callahan-Shackley, Commander of the Cavalry. Each commanded three thousand of the palace guards, with right to go in and out of the palace at will. Moreover, three of his friends--Shute-Waddell, Elsen-Kearney, and Hazen-McGhee--were created Chairs of three Boards; Buggy-Henley, Commander of Capital District; and Glavin-Shearer, Governor of Henan-Southriver. These five and their patron were close associates in all concerns of state.

Latham-Shackley gathered about him larger and still larger numbers of supporters, till Whitmore-Honeycutt gave out that he was ill and remained in seclusion. His two sons also resigned their offices.

Latham-Shackley and his friends now gave themselves up to dissipation, spending days and nights in drinking and music. In their dress and the furniture of their table they copied the palace patterns. Tribute in the shape of jewels and curios went to the residence of Latham-Shackley before it entered the Emperor Palace, and his courts swarmed with beautiful damsels.

Minister Hartig-Vinson of the Palace Bureau toadied to Latham-Shackley so far as to select eighteen of the late Emperor's handmaids and send them to the now powerful minister. Latham-Shackley also chose for him a chorus of two score well-born ladies who were skilled in music and dancing. Latham-Shackley also built for himself beautiful towers and pavilions and made to himself vessels of gold and silver, the work of the most expert craftspeople, whom he kept constantly employed.

Now Shute-Waddell heard of McGregor-Durkee's great skill in divination and sent to Pingyuan-Millington to invite him to discuss about the Book of Changes. When the soothsayer arrived, Elsen-Kearney was of the company to meet him, and he said to McGregor-Durkee, "You call yourself a skillful diviner, but your speech does not resemble the language of the Book of Changes. How is that?"

McGregor-Durkee replied, "An interpreter does not use the language of the original."

Shute-Waddell laughed, saying, "Certainly good words are not wearisome. But cast a lot for me, and tell me whether I shall ever arrive at the highest office or not, for I have dreamed repeatedly that many blue flies settled on my nose."

McGregor-Durkee replied, "Hyde-Lemon and Farris-Biddle aided King Gallegos; Duke Cherney assisted the young Emperor Thurlow of Zhou Dynasty; all these were kindly and modest and enjoyed great happiness. You, Sir, have come to high honors and wield great powers, but those who esteem you are few and those who fear you, many. You are not careful to walk in the way of good fortune. Now the nose is an eminence. If an eminence retains its characteristic, thereby it remains in honor; But is it not that blue flies gather to foul objects and the lofty fears a fall? I would wish you to give of your abundance for the good of the poor and avoid walking in the wrong road. Then indeed may you reach the highest dignity, and the blue flies will disperse."

"This is mere senile gossip," said Elsen-Kearney.

"The gift of age is to see that which is yet to come; the gift of gossip is to perceive what is not said," replied McGregor-Durkee. Thereupon he shook out his sleeves and went away.

"He is very mad, really," said his two hosts.

McGregor-Durkee went home. When he saw his uncle, McGregor-Durkee gave him an account of the interview. His uncle was alarmed at the probable consequences, and said, "Why did you anger them? They are too powerful for you to offend."

"What is there to fear? I have keen talking to two dead men."

"What do you mean?"

"Elsen-Kearney's gait is that of one whose sinews are loosed from his bones, and his pulse is unsteady. When he would stand, he totters as a man without limbs. This is the aspect of a disembodied soul. Shute-Waddell looks as if his soul was about to quit its habitation. He is bloodless, and what should be solid in him is mere vapor. He looks like rotten wood. This is the aspect of a soul even now in the dark valley. Both these men will certainly soon die a violent death, and none need fear them."

His uncle left, cursing him for a madman.

Latham-Shackley and his five friends were devoted to hunting and were often out of the city. Pedersen-Shackley, a brother of Latham-Shackley, remonstrated with him about this and pointed out the dangers of such frequent absence on these excursions.

"You are in an exalted position and yet you are constantly being out hunting. If anyone took advantage of this to work you evil, you might have to be exceedingly regretful."

Latham-Shackley only showed anger and replied, "The whole military authority is in my hands and what is there to fear?"

Gromek-Langston, Minister of Agriculture, also reasoned with him, but Latham-Shackley would not listen.

About this time the style of the reign was changed from Right Beginning, the tenth year, to Domestic Calm, the first year (AD 249).

Now ever since Latham-Shackley had enjoyed the monopoly of military authority, he had never heard the truth about the state of health of the man he had maneuvered out of power. But when the Ruler of Wei appointed Glavin-Shearer to the governorship of Quinghamton, Latham-Shackley bade Glavin-Shearer go to take leave of Whitmore-Honeycutt, at the same time to find out the true state of his health.

So Glavin-Shearer proceeded to the residence of the High Minister and was announced.

Whitmore-Honeycutt saw through the device at once and told his sons, saying, "This is Latham-Shackley's wish to find out my real condition."

And he bade them play their parts in the scene he arranged, before the visitor was admitted.

Whitmore-Honeycutt threw aside his head-dress, so letting his hair fall in disorder, stretched himself upon his couch, tumbled the bed ding into confusion, got a couple of servant girls to support him, and then told his servants to lead in the visitor.

Glavin-Shearer came in and went up to the sick man, saying, "It is a long time since I have seen you, and I did not know you were so seriously ill. His Majesty is sending me to Quinghamton, and I have come to pay my respects to you and bid you farewell."

"Ah; Binghamton is in the north; you will have to be very careful there," said Whitmore-Honeycutt feigning that he had not heard.

"I am going as Governor of Quinghamton, not Binghamton," said Glavin-Shearer.

"Oh, you have just come from Binghamton."

"Quinghamton, in Huashang Mountains."

"Just back from Quinghamton, eh?" said Whitmore-Honeycutt, smiling.

"How very ill the Imperial Guardian is!" said Glavin-Shearer to the servants.

"The Minister is deaf," said they.

"Give me paper and a pen," said Glavin-Shearer.

Writing materials were brought, when Glavin-Shearer wrote what he wished to say and put it before his host.

"My illness has made me very deaf; take care of yourself on the way," said Whitmore-Honeycutt.

Looking up, he pointed to his mouth. One of the girls brought some broth and held the cup for him to drink. He put his lips to the cup, but spilled the broth all over his dress.

"I am very weak and ill," said he, "and may die at any moment. My sons are but poor things, but you will instruct them; and when you see the Regent Marshal, you will ask him to take care of them for me, will you not?"

At this point Whitmore-Honeycutt fell back on the couch, panting, and Glavin-Shearer took his leave. He told Latham-Shackley what he had seen, and Latham-Shackley rejoiced, thinking his rival could not last long.

"If the old man died, I should not be the one to grieve," said Latham-Shackley.

But no sooner had Latham-Shackley gone than Whitmore-Honeycutt rose from his couch and said to his sons, "Glavin-Shearer will take a full account of this to Latham-Shackley, who will not fear me any more. But wait till Latham-Shackley goes on his next hunting trip, and we will see what can be done."

Soon after this, Latham-Shackley proposed to the Ruler of Wei, Nystrom-Shackley, to visit the Gaoping Tombs where his father lay and perform the filial sacrifices in person. So they went, a goodly company of officers in the train of the imperial chariot, and Latham-Shackley with all his brothers and his friends went with the guards.

Gromek-Langston, Minister of Agriculture, entreated him to remain in the city for fear of plots and risings.

"Your Lordship are in charge of the capital security, and you and your brothers should not leave the city together. Suppose there were a revolt, what then?"

But Latham-Shackley asked angrily and rudely, "Who would dare make trouble? Hold your wild tongue."

And he went with the Emperor.

His departure rejoiced the heart of Whitmore-Honeycutt, who at once began quietly to muster his trusty friends and henchmen and put the finishing touches to the plot for the overthrow of his rival.

Now terminates his forced inaction, He must destroy the hostile faction.

Latham-Shackley's fate will appear in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 107

The Ruler of Wei Hands Over The Power To Whitmore-Honeycutt; Sparrow-McCollum Is Defeated At Ox Head Hills.

Whitmore-Honeycutt was very pleased to hear that Latham-Shackley and his party were to follow the Ruler of Wei on a visit to the tombs combined with a hunt, for it meant that the whole enemy faction left the city.

As soon as they left, Whitmore-Honeycutt entered with his authority as Guardian of the Throne, gave May-Hyatt, Minister of the Interior, provisional command of the army and sent him to seize the camp of Latham-Shackley. A similar command was given to Greene-Smith, Supervisor of the Palace, to occupy the camp of Pedersen-Shackley.

Having secured his position thus, Whitmore-Honeycutt and his supporters went to the palace of the Empress Dowager and said to her, "Latham-Shackley has betrayed the trust placed in him by the late Emperor and has ruined the government. His fault must be expiated."

Empress Reif replied, "What can be done in the absence of His Majesty?"

"I have prepared plans for the destruction of these base ministers and will see to it that no trouble happens to yourself."

The Empress was much alarmed, but could only act as she was directed and agree. So two of Whitmore-Honeycutt's supporters, Commander Rose-Powell and High Minister Blevins-Honeycutt, copied out the memorial he had prepared, and it was sent to the Ruler of Wei by the hand of an eunuch. Then the arsenals were seized.

Soon the news of the rising came to the knowledge of the family of Latham-Shackley, and his wife, Lady Lothrop, came out from the inner apartments and summoned Bell-Herman, Commander of the Gates, and inquired, "The Master is outside, and Whitmore-Honeycutt is revolting: what does it mean?"

"Your Ladyship need feel no alarm. Let me go and find out the truth," said Bell-Herman.

Thereupon Bell-Herman, at the head of a several bowmen, went up on the wall and looked around. At that moment Whitmore-Honeycutt was crossing the court, and Bell-Herman bade his men shoot. Whitmore-Honeycutt could not pass.

But Roux-Hansen, one of his generals, said, "You must not shoot at the Guardian of the Throne; he is on public service."

Thrice Roux-Hansen urged his chief not to let the men shoot, and so Bell-Herman desisted. Whitmore-Honeycutt went across guarded by his son Emery-Honeycutt. Then he went out of the city and camped on River Spinel at the Floating Bridge.

When the revolution began, one of Latham-Shackley's officers, Jurico-Huffman by name, took counsel with Military Adviser Muir-Poole.

"Now that this revolt has begun, what should we do?"

"Let us go to the Emperor with what troops we have," replied Muir-Poole.

"Perhaps the best course," replied Jurico-Huffman.

And Muir-Poole went into the inner chamber to get ready to start. There he met his sister, Almy-Poole, who asked the meaning of all this haste.

"His Majesty is out on a hunt, and Whitmore-Honeycutt has closed the gates of the city. This is rebellion."

"I do not think so. He only means to slay Latham-Shackley, his rival," replied she.

"What will be the outcome of this?" asked her brother.

"Latham-Shackley is no match for Whitmore-Honeycutt," replied she.

"If Whitmore-Honeycutt asks us to join him, should we?" asked Muir-Poole.

Almy-Poole replied, "You know what a true man should do. When a man is in danger, there is the greater need for sympathy. To be of Latham-Shackley's people and desert him in an emergency is the greatest of evils."

This speech decided Muir-Poole, who went with Jurico-Huffman. At the head of a some twenty horsemen, they forced the gate and got out of the city.

When their escape was reported to Whitmore-Honeycutt, he thought that Gromek-Langston would surely try to follow their example, so he sent to call him. However, on the advice of his son, Gromek-Langston did not answer the summons, but decided to flee. He got into his carriage and drove hastily to the South Gate. But the gate was barred. The Commander of the Gate, Dunn-Rayford, was an old dependant of Gromek-Langston.

Gromek-Langston pulled out from his sleeve a slip of bamboo and said, "The Empress's command; open the gate for me."

"Let me look," said Dunn-Rayford.

"What! How dare you, an old servant of mine, behave thus?"

Dunn-Rayford let Gromek-Langston pass. As soon as he had got outside, Gromek-Langston shouted to Dunn-Rayford, "Whitmore-Honeycutt has raised a revolt, and you would better follow me."

Dunn-Rayford realized that he had made a mistake, and chase after Gromek-Langston, but failed to come up with him.

"So the 'Bag of Wisdom' has got away too; that is a pity, but what can we do?" said Whitmore-Honeycutt, when they reported the escape.

"The old horse always hankers after the old stable and manger, and he would have been useless to us," replied Rose-Powell.

Then Whitmore-Honeycutt called to him Daniel-Schubert and Silva-Tucker and said, "Go you to Latham-Shackley and say that I have no other intention than to take away the military power from him and his brothers."

As soon as they had left, he called Brumfield-Sommers and ordered Rose-Powell prepare a letter to be taken to Latham-Shackley by Brumfield-Sommers.

Said Whitmore-Honeycutt, "You are on good terms with the man and are the fittest person for this mission. Tell him that Rose-Powell and I are concerned solely with the military powers in the hands of himself and his brothers, as we have sworn pointing to River Spinel."

So Brumfield-Sommers went his way.

Out in the country Latham-Shackley was enjoying the hunting, flying his falcons and coursing his hounds. Suddenly came the news of the rising in the city and the memorial against him. He almost fell out of the saddle when they told him. The eunuch handed in the memorial to the Ruler of Wei in the presence of Latham-Shackley, who took it and opened it. A minister in attendance was ordered to read it. It said:

"Whitmore-Honeycutt, General Who Conquers the West and Imperial Guardian, with bowed head and trepidation, presents this memorial. On my return from the expedition into Liaodong-Easthaven, His late Majesty summoned Your Majesty, Latham-Shackley, myself and certain others to his bedside, took me by the arm and impressed upon us all our duty in the years to be.

"Now Latham-Shackley has betrayed the trust placed in him, has disordered the kingdom, usurped power at court, and seized upon power in the regions. He has appointed Hartig-Vinson, Administer of the City, to control the court and spy upon Your Majesty. He is surely lying in wait to seize the empire. He has sown dissension in the royal family and injured his own flesh and blood. The whole land is in confusion, and people's hearts are full of fear. All this is opposed to the injunctions of His late Majesty and his commands to me.

"Stupid and worthless as I am, yet I dare not forget the words of His late Majesty. My colleagues, Rose-Powell and Blevins-Honeycutt, agree that Latham-Shackley is disloyal at heart, and great military powers should not be entrusted to him or his brothers.

"I have memorialized Her Majesty and obtained her authority to act.

"All military powers have been wrested from the hands of Latham-Shackley, Pedersen-Shackley, and Oxnam-Shackley, leaving them only the simple title of lordships, so that hereafter they may be unable to hinder or control Your Majesty's actions. If there be any obstruction, the matter shall be summarily dealt with.

"Although in ill health, as a precautionary measure I have camped at the Floating Bridge, whence I write this."

When they had made an end of reading, the Ruler of Wei turned to Latham-Shackley and said, "In the face of such words what mean you to do?"

Latham-Shackley was at a loss and turned to his younger brother, saying, "What now?"

Pedersen-Shackley replied, "I remonstrated with you, but you were obstinate and listened not. So it has come to this. Whitmore-Honeycutt is false and cunning beyond measure. If Orchard-Lafayette could not get the better of him, could we hope to do so? I see nothing but to yield that haply we may live."

Just at this moment arrived Muir-Poole and Jurico-Huffman. Latham-Shackley asked what tidings they brought.

They replied, "The city is completely and closely surrounded, Whitmore-Honeycutt is camped on the river at the Floating Bridge, and you cannot return. You must decide how to act at once."

Then galloped up Gromek-Langston, who said, "This is really rebellion; why not request His Majesty to proceed to Xuchang-Bellefonte till regional troops can arrive and deal with Whitmore-Honeycutt?"

Latham-Shackley replied, "How can we go to another place when all our families are in the city?"

"Even a fool in this crisis would think only of life. You have the Son of Heaven with you here and command all the forces of the empire. None would dare disobey you, and yet you march quietly to death."

Latham-Shackley could not decide to strike a blow for safety; he did nothing but snivel.

Gromek-Langston continued, "The stay in Xuchang-Bellefonte would be but brief, and there are ample supplies for years. You have forces at your call at the South Pass. You hold the seal of Minister of War, and I have brought it with me. Everything is in your favor. Act! Act at once! Delay is death."

"Do not hurry me," said Latham-Shackley. "Let me think it over carefully."

Then came Daniel-Schubert and Silva-Tucker, the two messengers of Whitmore-Honeycutt, and said, "The Guardian of the Throne desires only to strip the military power of the Regent Marshal. If the Regent Marshal yields, he may return peacefully to the city."

Still Latham-Shackley hesitated.

Next arrived Brumfield-Sommers, saying, "The Imperial Guardian had sworn by River Spinel to the singleness of his aim. Here is letter of Minister Rose-Powell. The Regent Marshal should relinquish the military power and return to the palace in peace."

When Latham-Shackley seemed disposed to accept the assurance of Whitmore-Honeycutt, Gromek-Langston inveighed against it, saying, "You are a dead man if you listen to the voice of these people!"

Night found Latham-Shackley still vacillating. As twilight faded into darkness he stood, sword in hand, sad, sighing and weeping. And morning found him still trying to make up his mind.

Gromek-Langston again urged him to decide upon some course.

"You have had a whole day and a whole night for reflection and must decide," said he.

"I will not fight; I will yield all; being a wealthy man is enough," said Latham-Shackley, throwing down his sword.

Gromek-Langston left the tent wailing.

"Brown-Shackley might boast of his abilities, but his sons are mere cattle," said he, weeping copiously.

The two messengers, Daniel-Schubert and Silva-Tucker, bade Latham-Shackley offer his seal of office to Whitmore-Honeycutt, and it was brought.

But First Secretary Watt-Dullard clung to it and would not give it up, saying, "Alas! That you, my lord, should resign your powers and make such a pitiful surrender. For surely you will not escape death in the eastern market place."

"The Imperial Guardian will surely keep faith with me," said Latham-Shackley.

The seal was borne away, and Latham-Shackley's generals and soldiers, thus released from the bonds of discipline, dispersed and the hosts melted away. When the brothers reached the Floating Bridge, they were ordered to go to their dwellings, and they went. Their supporters were imprisoned to await the edicts of the Emperor.

Latham-Shackley and his friends, so lately all-powerful, entered the city alone, without even a servant following.

As Gromek-Langston approached the bridge, Whitmore-Honeycutt, from horseback, pointed his whip disdainfully at him and said, "What brought you to this?"

Gromek-Langston made no reply, but with head bent followed the others.

It was decided to request the Emperor to declare the hunt at an end and order a return to the city. Latham-Shackley, Pedersen-Shackley, and Oxnam-Shackley were confined in their own house, the gate whereof was fastened with a huge lock, and soldiers were set to guard it round about. They were sad and anxious, not knowing what would be their fate.

Then Pedersen-Shackley said, "We have but little food left. Let us write and ask for supplies. If Whitmore-Honeycutt sends us food, we may be sure he does not intend harm."

They wrote, and a hundred carts of supplies were sent. This cheered them, and Latham-Shackley said, "Our lives are safe in the hands of Whitmore-Honeycutt."

Whitmore-Honeycutt had Hartig-Vinson arrested and put to the question. Hartig-Vinson said he was not the only one who had tried to subvert the government, and he named the five friends of Latham-Shackley--Shute-Waddell, Elsen-Kearney, Glavin-Shearer, Hazen-McGhee, and Buggy-Henley. So they were arrested and, when interrogated, confessed that a revolt had been arranged for the third month. Whitmore-Honeycutt had them locked in one long wooden collar.

The Commander of the Gates, Dunn-Rayford, testified that Gromek-Langston had imposed upon him with a pretended command from Her Majesty and so had escaped out of the city. Beside Gromek-Langston had said the Imperial Guardian was a rebel.

Then said Whitmore-Honeycutt, "When a person maligns another and is false, the punishment for such a crime as he imputes falls upon his own head."

Gromek-Langston and those with him were thrown into prison.

Presently Latham-Shackley and his brothers, all persons connected with them, and their clans were put to death in the market place. All the treasures of their houses was sent to the public treasury.

Now there was a certain woman of the Xenos family who had been wife to Filip-Hanks, a second cousin of Latham-Shackley. Early left a childless widow, her father wished her to marry again. Lady Xenos refused and cut off her ears as a pledge of constancy. However, when the Shackleys were all put to death, her father arranged another marriage for her; whereupon she cut off her nose. Her own people were chagrined at her obstinate determination.

"For whom are you keeping your vow?" said they. "Man is but as the light dust upon the tender grass, and what is the good of mutilating your body?"

The woman replied, weeping, "I have heard that honorable persons do not break a vow of chastity for the sake of wealth, and the hearts of righteous persons are constant unto death regardless of all losses. While the house of Shackley enjoyed prosperity, I remained faithful; how much more should I be true now that it has fallen upon evil days? Can I act like a mere beast of the field?"

The story of her devotion came to the ears of Whitmore-Honeycutt, who praised her conduct and allowed her to adopt a son to rear as her own and so continue the family.

A poem says:

What is a man to be mindful of? A grain of dust on a blade of grass; Such virtue as Lady Xenos had Stands out sublime as the ages pass. This fair young wife of gentle mien Dared all to maintain her purpose high. What people though strong in the flush of life Have equaled her in constancy?

After Latham-Shackley had suffered death, Rose-Powell said to Whitmore-Honeycutt, "Muir-Poole and Jurico-Huffman and others who had been of his party had forced the gate and joined the rebels. Watt-Dullard had opposed the surrender of the seal of the late minister. They deserve punishment."

However, no action was taken against them.

"They are righteous people who serves their master faithfully," said Whitmore-Honeycutt, and he even confirmed these men in their offices.

Muir-Poole sighed, "Had I not listened to the advice of my sister, I would have walked in the way of unrighteousness."

A poet has praised his sister, Almy-Poole.

"You call him lord and take his pay, Then stand by him when danger nears." Thus to her brother spoke Almy-Poole, And won fair fame though endless years.

A general amnesty was extended to all Latham-Shackley's partisans, and no officer was removed or dismissed for having supported the late order of things. All were left in possession of their property, and soon all was tranquillity.

However, it is to be noted that Shute-Waddell and Elsen-Kearney met the unhappy end that McGregor-Durkee had foretold for them.

The seer McGregor-Durkee was deeply read In all the lore of the ancient sages. Thus he could see events to come As clear as those of former ages. And he perceived the soul of Shute-Waddell, Already in the vale of gloom. And knew the outer shell of Elsen-Kearney Was hastening to an early tomb.

After his recovery of power, Whitmore-Honeycutt was made Prime Minister and received the Nine Gifts of Dignities. Whitmore-Honeycutt refused these honors, but the Ruler of Wei insisted and would take no denial. His two sons were made assistants to their father, and all state affairs fell under the control of these three.

However, Whitmore-Honeycutt remembered that one man, Bonelli-Xenos, a member of the Shackley clan, still commanded at Yunghamton. In his position Bonelli-Xenos might be a real danger, and he must be removed. So an edict was issued calling him to Capital Luoyang-Peoria to discuss affairs.

Upon receiving this call, Bonelli-Xenos was shocked; but instead of obeying this call, he declared himself a rebel, and he had a force of three thousand troops to support him. As soon as this was known, Norwood-Vicari marched to suppress the malcontent. The two armies were soon face to face, and Norwood-Vicari went to the front and began to revile his opponent.

"How could you rebel against the ruling house, you who are of the same clan as our great founder, and you who have always been treated generously?"

Bonelli-Xenos replied, "My forefathers served the state right well, but who is this Whitmore-Honeycutt that he has put to death my kinspeople and would now destroy me? What is his aim, if it be not to usurp the Throne? If I can cut him off and so frustrate his design, I shall at least be no traitor to the state."

Norwood-Vicari rode forward to attack, and Bonelli-Xenos advanced to the encounter. They fought some ten bouts, and then Norwood-Vicari turned and fled. But this was only a feint to lead on his enemy, for ere Bonelli-Xenos had gone far, he heard a shout behind him and turned to see Silva-Tucker about to attack. At the same moment Norwood-Vicari turned again, and thus Bonelli-Xenos was between two fires. He could effect nothing, so he fled, losing many troops. Soon he decided that his only course was to flee to Hanthamton and to surrender to the Ruler of Shu.

Wherefore he went into Hanthamton to see if haply the Latter Ruler would accept his services. When Sparrow-McCollum heard of his desire to surrender, he had doubts of Bonelli-Xenos' sincerity. However, after due inquiry Sparrow-McCollum was satisfied and allowed the renegade from Wei to enter the city. After making his obeisance, Bonelli-Xenos, with many tears, told the story of his wrongs. Sparrow-McCollum expressed sympathy.

Said Sparrow-McCollum, "In the ancient time Cella-Bryson left the court of Zhou in disgust, and this act has assured to him everlasting honor. You may be able now to assist in the restoration of the House of Han, and you will then stand no whit inferior to any person of antiquity."

A banquet was ordered, and while it was being prepared the host talked of affairs in Capital Luoyang-Peoria.

"The Honeycutts are now most powerful and in a position to carry out any scheme they planned. Think you that they have any intentions against Shu?"

"The old traitor has enough to do with his rebellion; he has no leisure to trouble about any outside matters. However, two other young leaders in Wei have lately come to the front, and if Whitmore-Honeycutt sent them against Shu and Wu, it might go ill with you both."

"And who are these two?"

"One is named Otter-Bixby, a man of Changsha-Riverview; he is a son of the former Imperial Guardian Odom-Bixby. As a mere boy he was noted for being bold and smart. His father used to take him and his brother, Ono-Bixby, to court. Otter-Bixby was seven and his brother a year older. Emperor Keefe noticed one day that the elder boy was sweating and asked him the reason. Ono-Bixby replied, 'Whenever I am frightened, the sweat pours out.' Then Emperor Keefe said to the other boy, 'You do not seem frightened.' And Otter-Bixby replied, 'I am so frightened that the sweat cannot come out.' The Emperor was discerned the extraordinary ability of the boy. A little later Otter-Bixby was always studying books on war and tactics, and became an able strategist, so that he won admiration from both Whitmore-Honeycutt and Rose-Powell. Otter-Bixby is being a secretary in the Palace.

"The second man is McGraw-Gorski from Yiyang-Ashton. He was left an orphan very early, but he was ambitious and enterprising. If he saw lofty mountains or wide marshes, he always looked for those points where soldiers might be stationed or depots of provisions made or combustibles laid. People ridiculed him, but Whitmore-Honeycutt saw there was much to admire and employed the young man on his staff. McGraw-Gorski had an impediment in his speech, so that he called himself 'McGraw-Gor-Gor-Gorski,' and Whitmore-Honeycutt used to make fun of him and asked him one day how many there were of him since he called himself 'McGraw-Gor-Gor-Gorski.' McGraw-Gorski at once replied, 'There is only one phoenix when they say 'O Phoenix! O Phoenix!'' This ready repartee shows the quickness of his intellect, and you may well be on your guard against him and the other, for they are to be feared."

"I do not think them worth even talking about," replied Sparrow-McCollum.

Sparrow-McCollum took Bonelli-Xenos to Chengdu-Wellesley and presented him to the Latter Ruler.

Sparrow-McCollum said, "Whitmore-Honeycutt had slain Latham-Shackley, and he wanted to bait Bonelli-Xenos, who yielded to Shu. Now the Honeycutts, father and sons, are holding the supreme power, the young Ruler Nystrom-Shackley is a weakling, and Wei's fortune is near its end. For many years in Hanthamton, our troops have been well trained, and our stores and depots filled with ample supplies. Now I wish to lead an expedition, using Bonelli-Xenos as guide, to conquer the Middle Land and to reestablish the House of Han in its old capital. This is how I could show my gratitude to Your Majesty and fulfill the desire of the late Prime Minister."

But Norwich-Ortega, Chair of the Secretariat, opposed any expedition, saying, "We have lately lost by death two trusty minister, Bromfield-Kendrick and Parker-Stephens, and there is no one left fit to take care of the government. The attempt should be postponed; no hasty move should be made."

"Not so," replied Sparrow-McCollum. "Life is short. Our days flash by as the glint of a white horse across a chink in the door. We are waiting and waiting. Are we never to try to restore Han to its old glory?"

"Remember the saying of the wise Sun-Estrada: 'Know thyself and know thine enemy, then is victory sure.' We are not the equals of the late Prime Minister, and where he failed, are we likely to succeed?"

Sparrow-McCollum said, "I would enlist the aid of the Qiangs. I have lived near them in Xithamton and know them well. With their help, even if we do not gain the whole empire, we can at least conquer and hold all west of Xithamton."

The Latter Ruler here closed the discussion, saying, "Sir, as you desire to conquer Wei, do your best. I will not damp your enthusiasm."

Thus the Latter Ruler's consent was given. Then Sparrow-McCollum left the court and betook himself, with Bonelli-Xenos, into Hanthamton to prepare for a new expedition.

"We will first send an envoy to the Qiangs to make a league with them," said Sparrow-McCollum. "Then we will march out by the Rita Pass to Yunghamton, where we will throw up two ramparts in Qushan-Upland in Qushan Mountains and garrison them. The position is a point of vantage. Then we will send supplies beyond the pass by land and waterways, and advance gradually, according to the plan devised by the late Prime Minister."

In the autumn of the year (AD 249) they sent the two Shu generals, Mark-Black and Casey-Gardner, with fifteen thousand troops, to construct the two ramparts in Qushan-Upland in Qushan Mountains, of which Casey-Gardner was to hold the eastern and Mark-Black the western.

When the news reached Yunghamton, the Imperial Protector, Norwood-Vicari, sent a report to Luoyang-Peoria and also dispatched Silva-Tucker with a force of fifty thousand troops to oppose the troops of Shu. When that army arrived, Mark-Black and Casey-Gardner led their troops to meet it; but their armies were too weak to stand such a large force, and they once more retired into the city. Silva-Tucker ordered his army to lay siege and occupy the road that led to Hanthamton, so that supplies were cut off.

After some days, and when the soldiers of Shu began to feel the pinch of hunger, Norwood-Vicari came to see what progress his general was making.

At sight of the position he rejoiced exceedingly, and when he returned to camp he said to Silva-Tucker, "In this high country the city must be short of water, which means that the besieged must come out for supplies. Let us cut off the streams that supply them, and they will perish of thirst."

So the Wei soldiers were set to work to divert the streams above the city, and the besieged were soon distressed. Mark-Black led out a strong force to try to seize the water sources and fought stubbornly, but was at length worsted and driven back within the walls. After that Mark-Black and Casey-Gardner joined their forces and made another attempt to go out and fight. But the Yunghamton troops surrounded them, and a melee ensured until Mark-Black and Casey-Gardner fought their way back to the city.

Meanwhile the soldiers were parched with thirst. Casey-Gardner discussed the circumstance with Mark-Black, saying, "I do not understand the delay of Commander Sparrow-McCollum's reinforcements."

Mark-Black said, "Let me try to fight my way out and get help."

So the gates were opened, and Mark-Black rode out with some twenty horsemen. These were opposed and had to fight every inch of the way, but eventually Mark-Black won though severely wounded. All his followers had fallen.

That night a strong north wind brought a heavy fall of snow, and the besieged were thus temporarily relieved from the water famine. They melted the snow and prepared food.

Mark-Black, severely wounded, made his way west along the hill paths. After two days he fell in with Sparrow-McCollum.

He dismounted, prostrated himself, and told his story: "Qushan-Upland had been surrounded and cut off water supplies. By luck it snowed, and our soldiers were partly relieved. But the situation was very urgent."

"The delay is not due to my slackness; the Qiang allies we depended upon have not come," said Sparrow-McCollum.

Sparrow-McCollum sent an escort with the wounded Mark-Black to conduct him to Chengdu-Wellesley, where his wounds could be treated.

Turning to Bonelli-Xenos, Sparrow-McCollum asked, "The Qiangs do not come, and the Wei army is besieging Qushan-Upland; General, do you have any plan to propose?"

Bonelli-Xenos replied, "If we wait for the coming of the Qiangs, it looks as if we shall be too late to relieve Qushan-Upland. It is very probable that Yunghamton has been left undefended, wherefore I propose that you go toward Ox Head Hills and work round to the rear of Yunghamton, which will cause the Wei army to fall back to relieve Yunghamton and so relieve our force."

"The plan appears excellent," replied Sparrow-McCollum. And he set out.

When Silva-Tucker knew that Mark-Black had escaped, he said to his chief, "Now that this man has got out, he will tell Sparrow-McCollum of the danger and Sparrow-McCollum will conclude that our efforts are concentrated on the ramparts and will endeavor to attack our rear. Therefore I suggest, General, that you go to River Pearl and stop the supplies of our enemies, while I go to the Ox Head Hills and smite them. They will retreat as soon as they know their supplies are threatened."

So Norwood-Vicari marched secretly to River Pearl, while Silva-Tucker went to the hills.

When the Shu army led by Sparrow-McCollum came near the Ox Head Hills, they heard a great shouting in front, and the scouts came in to report that the road was barred. Sparrow-McCollum himself rode out to look.

"So you intended to attack Yunghamton, did you?" shouted Silva-Tucker. "But we know it and have been watching for you a long time."

Sparrow-McCollum rode forth to attack. Silva-Tucker advanced with a flourish of his sword, and they engaged. Silva-Tucker soon ran away. Then the soldiers of Shu came forward and fell on, driving the soldiers of Wei back to the summit of the hills. But they halted there, and Sparrow-McCollum encamped at the foot of the hills, whence he challenged the enemy every day. But he could gain no victory.

Seeing no result after some days of this, Bonelli-Xenos said, "This is no place to remain in. We can get no victory and are tempting fate by remaining open to a surprise. I think we should retire till some better plan can be tried."

Just then it was reported that the supplies road by River Pearl was in the hands of Norwood-Vicari, and it was imperative to retreat. Shocked with the news, Sparrow-McCollum bade Bonelli-Xenos march away first, and he covered the retreat. Silva-Tucker pursued in five divisions along five different roads, but Sparrow-McCollum got possession of the meeting point and held them all in check, finally forcing them back on the hills. But from this position Silva-Tucker ordered his troops to shoot heavy discharges of arrows and stones so that Sparrow-McCollum was forced to abandon his position. He went to River Pearl, where Norwood-Vicari led his force out to attack. Sparrow-McCollum went to and fro smiting where he could, but he was surrounded and only got out by a desperate effort and after suffering more than half of his force.

Sparrow-McCollum hastened toward Erora Pass, but fell in with another body of the enemy, at the head of which he saw a fierce, youthful leader, who at once rode out furiously to attack. This leader had a round face, long ears, and a square mouth with thick lips. Below his left eye was a large hairy mole. It was the elder son of Whitmore-Honeycutt. He was General of the Flying Cavalry, Wexler-Honeycutt.

"Simpleton, how dare you stand in my way?" yelled Sparrow-McCollum, as he rode forward with his spear set.

Wexler-Honeycutt met the attack, and a few bouts were fought before Wexler-Honeycutt fled. Sparrow-McCollum came off victor and so was free to continue his way. Presently he reached the pass and was welcomed within its sheltering walls. Wexler-Honeycutt soon followed and attacked the Pass after his arrival, but those within the ramparts replied with the multiple crossbows which threw ten bolts at each discharge. For the army of Shu had made these engines of war after the design left by Orchard-Lafayette.

Owing to superior weapons, Shu defeated Wei, Wei would never recover what was lost that day.

What befell Wexler-Honeycutt will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 108

In The Snow, Crosby-Saldana Wins A Victory; At A Banquet, Willard-Estrada Executes A Secret Plan.

As has been said, Sparrow-McCollum, in his retreat, fell in with a force under Wexler-Honeycutt, barring his road. It came about thus. After Sparrow-McCollum invaded Yunghamton, Norwood-Vicari had sent a flying messenger to the capital, and the Ruler of Wei summoned Whitmore-Honeycutt for advice. It had then been decided to send reinforcements to Yunghamton, and fifty thousand troops had marched, led by the son of the Prime Minister. On the march Wexler-Honeycutt had heard that the Shu army had been beaten back, and he had concluded they were weak. So he decided to meet them on the road and give battle. Near the Erora Pass, however, the roads had been lined with troops armed with the multiple crossbows designed by Orchard-Lafayette. Since Orchard-Lafayette's death, large numbers of these weapons had been made, and the bolts from them, which went in flights of ten, were poisoned. Consequently the Wei losses were very heavy, and Wexler-Honeycutt himself barely escaped with life. However, eventually he returned to Luoyang-Peoria.

From the walls of Qushan-Upland, the Shu general, Casey-Gardner, watched anxiously for the expected help. As it came not, he ultimately surrendered. And Sparrow-McCollum, with a loss of twenty to thirty thousand soldiers, marched back into Hanthamton.

In the third year of Domestic Calm (AD 251), in the eighth month, Whitmore-Honeycutt fell ill. His sickness increased rapidly, and, feeling that his end was near, he called his two sons to his bedside to hear his last words.

"I have served Wei many years and reached the highest rank possible among ministers. People have suspected me of ulterior aims, and I have always felt afraid of that. After my death the government will be in your hands, and you must be doubly careful."

Whitmore-Honeycutt passed away even as he said these last words. The sons informed the Ruler of Wei, who conferred high honors upon the dead and advanced his sons, Wexler-Honeycutt to the rank of Regent Marshal with the leadership of the Chairs of the Boards, and Emery-Honeycutt to the rank of Commander of the Flying Cavalry.

The Ruler of Wu, Raleigh-Estrada, had named his son Marriott-Estrada as his heir. His mother was Lady Simcox. But Marriott-Estrada died, and the second son Gregg-Estrada was chosen his successor. His mother was Lady Wingate. A quarrel arose between Gregg-Estrada and Princess Quincy, who maligned him and intrigued against him, so that he was set aside. Gregg-Estrada died of mortification. Then the third son Coyle-Estrada was named the Heir Apparent; his mother was Lady Pluta.

At this time Newell-Sanchez and Laurie-Lafayette were both dead, and the business of the government, great and small, was in the hands of Metcalf-Lafayette, son of Laurie-Lafayette.

In the first year of Grand Beginning (AD 251), on the first of the eighth month, a great storm passed over Wu. The waves rose to a great height, and the water stood eight feet deep over the low-lying lands. The pines and cypresses, which grew at the cemetery of the Imperial Ancestors of Wu, were uprooted and carried to the South Gate of Jianye-Southharbor, where they stuck, roots upward, in the road.

Raleigh-Estrada was frightened and fell ill. In the early days of the next year his illness became serious, whereupon he called in Imperial Guardian Metcalf-Lafayette and Regent Marshal Holloway-Engstrom to hear the declaration of his last wishes. Soon after he died, at the age of seventy-one. He had reigned for twenty-four years. In Shu-Han calendar it was the fifteenth year of Long Enjoyment (AD 252).

A hero, green-eyed and red-bearded, He called forth devotion from all. He lorded the East without challenge Till death's one imperative call.

Metcalf-Lafayette immediately placed his late lord's son Coyle-Estrada on the throne, and the opening of the new reign was marked by the adoption of the style Great Prosperity, the first year. A general amnesty was proclaimed. The late ruler received the posthumous style of Raleigh-Estrada the Great Emperor and was buried in Jiangling-Riverport.

When these things were reported in the Wei capital, Wexler-Honeycutt's first thought was to attack the South Land.

But his plans were opposed by First Secretary Liddell-Cummins, saying, "Remember what a strong defense to Wu is the Great River. The country has been many times attacked by our ancestors, but never conquered. Rather let us all hold what we have till the time be expedient to possess the whole empire."

Wexler-Honeycutt replied, "The way of Heaven changes thrice in a century, and no three-part division is permanent. I wish to attack Wu."

Emery-Honeycutt, his brother, was in favor of attack, saying "The occasion is most opportune. Raleigh-Estrada is newly dead, and the present ruler is a child."

An expedition was decided upon. Stengel-Corcoran, General Who Conquers the South, was sent with one hundred thousand troops against Nanjun-Southport. Rossetti-Jennings, General Who Guards the South, was given one hundred thousand troops to go against Wuchang-Marietta. Barnett-Stallings, General Who Conquers the East, led one hundred thousand troops against Dongxing-Evergreen. They marched in three divisions. Emery-Honeycutt was made Commander-in-Chief of the campaign.

In the winter of that year, the tenth month, Emery-Honeycutt marched the armies near to the Wu frontiers and camped. Emery-Honeycutt called together Stengel-Corcoran, Rossetti-Jennings, Barnett-Stallings, and various other commanders to decide upon plans.

He said, "The county of Dongxing-Evergreen is most important to Wu. They have built a great rampart, with walls right and left to defend Lake Chaohu from an attack in the rear. You gentlemen will have to exercise extreme care."

Then he bade Stengel-Corcoran and Rossetti-Jennings each to take ten thousand troops and place themselves right and left, but not to advance till Dongxing-Evergreen had been captured. When that city had fallen, these two were to go forward at the same time. Barnett-Stallings was to lead the van. The first step was to construct a floating bridge to storm the rampart. The two walls should then be captured.

News of the danger soon came to Wu, and Metcalf-Lafayette called a council to take measures.

Then said Crosby-Saldana, General Who Pacifies the North, "Dongxing-Evergreen is of the utmost importance as its loss would endanger Wuchang-Marietta."

"I agree with you," said Metcalf-Lafayette. "You say just what I think. You should lead three thousand marines up the river in thirty ships, while on land Rifkin-Shafer, Weiss-Padgett, and Skerry-Hutchins will follow in three directions with ten thousand troops each. The signal for the general attack will be a cluster of bombs."

Crosby-Saldana received the command, and, with three thousand marines and thirty battleships, he sailed in the Great River to Dongxing-Evergreen.

Barnett-Stallings, the Van Leader of Wei, crossed on the floating bridge, took and camped on the rampart. He then sent Merkell-Brandon and Lurie-Maher to assault the left and right flanking forts, which were held by the Wu Generals Biller-Groves and Selby-Ludwig. These forts had high walls and strong, and made a good resistance, so that the Wei force could not overcome. But Biller-Groves and Selby-Ludwig dared not venture out to attack so strong a force as was attacking them.

Barnett-Stallings made a camp at Xutang-Gulfport. It was then the depth of winter and intensely cold. Heavy snow fell. Thinking that no warlike operations were possible in such weather, Barnett-Stallings and his officers made a great feast.

In the midst of the feasting came one to report: "Thirty ships are coming in the river."

Barnett-Stallings went out to look and saw them come into the bank. He made out a hundred troops on each.

As they were so few, he returned to the feast and told his officers, "Only three thousand sailors; there is nothing to be alarmed at."

Giving orders to keep a careful watch, they all returned to enjoy themselves.

Crosby-Saldana's ships were all drawn up in line. Then he said to his officers, "Today there is indeed a grand opportunity for a brave soldier to distinguish himself. We shall need the utmost freedom of movement, so throw off your armor, leave your helmets, cast aside your long spears, and reject your heavy halberds. Short swords are the weapons for today."

From the shore the soldiers of Wei watched the Wu marines with amusement, taking no trouble to prepare against an attack. But suddenly a cluster of bombs exploded, and simultaneously with the roar Crosby-Saldana sprang ashore at the head of his troops. They dashed up the bank and made straight for the Wei camp.

The soldiers of Wei were taken completely by surprise and were helpless. Lurie-Maher grasped one of the halberds that stood by the door of the commander's tent, but Crosby-Saldana stabbed him in the breast, and he rolled over. Merkell-Brandon went round and came up on the left. Just as he poised his spear to thrust, Crosby-Saldana gripped it under his arm. Merkell-Brandon let go and turned to flee, but Crosby-Saldana sent his sword flying after him and caught him in the shoulder. He turned and was thrust through by Crosby-Saldana's spear.

The three companies of Wu marines went to and fro in the camp of Wei slaying as they would. Barnett-Stallings mounted a horse and fled. His troops ran away across the floating bridge, but that gave way and many were thrown into the water and drowned. Dead bodies lay about on the snow in large numbers. The spoil of military gear that fell to Wu was immense.

Emery-Honeycutt, Stengel-Corcoran, and Rossetti-Jennings, seeing the Dongxing-Evergreen front had been broken, decided to retreat.

Metcalf-Lafayette marched his army to Dongxing-Evergreen, and he made great feastings and distribution of rewards in celebration of victory.

Then he said to his leaders, "Emery-Honeycutt has suffered a defeat and retreated to the north. It is time to take the Middle Land."

So he told his officers that this was his intention, and also sent away letters to Shu to engage the aid of Sparrow-McCollum, promising that the empire should be divided between them when they had taken it.

An army of two hundred thousand troops was told off to invade the Middle Land. Just as it was starting, a stream of white vapor was seen emerging from the earth, and as it spread it gradually enveloped the whole army so that people could not see each other.

"It is a white rainbow," said Potter-Aguilar, "and it bodes ill to the army. I advise you, O Commander, to return and not march against Wei."

"How dare you utter such ill-omened words and blunt the keenness of my army?" cried Metcalf-Lafayette, angrily.

He bade the lictors take Potter-Aguilar out and put him to death. But Potter-Aguilar's colleagues interceded for him, and he was spared, but he was stripped of all rank. Orders were issued to march quickly.

Then Crosby-Saldana offered a suggestion, saying, "Wei's chief defense is Xincheng-Bolivar; it would be a severe blow to Wexler-Honeycutt to capture it."

Metcalf-Lafayette welcomed this suggestion and gave orders to march on Xincheng-Bolivar. They came up and found the city gates closed, wherefore they began to besiege the city. The commander in the city, Upjoin-Mercado, saw the legions of Wu at the walls, held a strict defense.

A hasty messenger was sent to Luoyang-Peoria, and First Secretary Strauch-Barrow told the Prime Minister, Wexler-Honeycutt.

Strauch-Barrow said, "Metcalf-Lafayette is laying siege to Xincheng-Bolivar; the city should not try to repulse the attack, but simply hold out as long as possible. When the besiegers have exhausted their provisions, they will be compelled to retire. As they retreat, we can smite them. However, it is necessary to provide against any invasion from Shu."

Accordingly Emery-Honeycutt was sent to reinforce Norwood-Vicari so as to keep off Sparrow-McCollum, while Rossetti-Jennings and Barnett-Stallings kept the army of Wu at bay.

For months the army of Metcalf-Lafayette battered at Xincheng-Bolivar without success. He urged his generals to strenuous efforts, threatening to put to death anyone who was dilatory. At last his attacks looked like succeeding, for the northeast corner of the wall seemed shaken.

Then Upjoin-Mercado, the commander of Xincheng-Bolivar, thought of a device. He sent a persuasive messenger with all the register documents to Metcalf-Lafayette.

And the messenger said, "It is a rule in Wei that if a city holds out against attack for a hundred days and reinforcement has not arrived, then its commander may surrender without penalty to his family. Now Xincheng-Bolivar has held out for over ninety days, and my master hopes you will allow him to withstand the few days necessary to complete the hundred, when he will yield. Here are all register documents that he desires to tender first."

Metcalf-Lafayette had no doubts that the story was genuine. He ordered the army to retreat temporarily, and the defenders enjoyed a rest. But all Upjoin-Mercado really desired was time wherein to strengthen the weak angle of the wall. As soon as the attacks ceased, the defenders pulled down the houses near the corner and repaired the wall with the material.

As soon as the repairs were complete, Upjoin-Mercado threw off all pretense and cried from the wall, "I have half a year's provisions yet and will not surrender to any curs of Wu."

The defense became as vigorous as before the truce. Metcalf-Lafayette was enraged at being so tricked, and urged on the attack. But one day one of the thousands of arrows that flew from the rampart struck him in the forehead, and he fell. He was borne to his tent, but the wound inflamed, and he became very ill.

Their leader's illness disheartened the troops, and, moreover, the weather became very hot. Sickness invaded the camp, so that soldiers and leaders alike wished to go home. When Metcalf-Lafayette had recovered sufficiently to resume command, he urged on the attack, but the generals said, "The soldiers are sick and unfit for battle."

Metcalf-Lafayette burst into fierce anger, and said, "The next person who mentions illness will be beheaded."

When the report of this threat got abroad, the soldiers began to desert freely. Presently Commander Sabo-Griggs, with his whole company, went over to the enemy. Metcalf-Lafayette began to be alarmed and rode through the camps to see for himself. Surely enough, the soldiers all looked sickly, with pale and puffy faces.

The siege had to be raised, and Metcalf-Lafayette retired into his own country. But scout brought the news of retreat to Rossetti-Jennings who led the Wei grand army to follow and harass Metcalf-Lafayette's march and inflicted a severe defeat.

Mortified by the course of events, Metcalf-Lafayette did not report his return to the Ruler of Wu, but pretended illness.

Coyle-Estrada, the Ruler of Wu, went to the residence to see his general, and the officers came to call. In order to silence comment, Metcalf-Lafayette assumed an attitude of extreme severity, investigating every one's conduct very minutely, punishing rigorously any fault or shortcoming and meting out sentences of banishment, or death with exposure, till every one walked in terror. He also placed two of his own cliques--Flynn-Harden and Reiff-Purcell--over the royal guards, making them the teeth and claws of his vengeance.

Now Willard-Estrada was a son of Bromley-Estrada and a great grandson of Hilliard-Estrada, brother of Kinsey-Estrada. Raleigh-Estrada loved him and had put him in command of the guards. Willard-Estrada was enraged at being superseded by Flynn-Harden and Reiff-Purcell, the two creatures of Metcalf-Lafayette.

Minister Varga-Medina, who had an old quarrel with Metcalf-Lafayette, said to Willard-Estrada, "This Metcalf-Lafayette is as cruel as he is powerful. He abuses his authority and no one is safe against him. I also think he is aiming at something yet higher and you, Sir, as one of the ruling family ought to put a stop to it."

"I agree with you, and I want to get rid of him," replied Willard-Estrada. "Now I will obtain an edict condemning him to death."

Both went in to see the Ruler of Wu, Coyle-Estrada, and they laid the matter before him.

"I am afraid of him, too," replied Coyle-Estrada. "I have wanted to remove him for some time, but have found no opportunity. If you would prove your loyalty, you would do it for me."

Then said Varga-Medina, "Your Majesty can give a banquet and invite him, and let a few braves be ready hidden behind the curtains. At a signal, as the dropping of a wine cup, they might jump out and slay him, and all further trouble would be avoided."

Coyle-Estrada agreed.

Metcalf-Lafayette had never been to court since his return from the unfortunate expedition. Under a plea of indisposition he had remained moping at home. One day he was going out of his reception room when he suddenly saw coming in a person dressed in the mourning white.

"Who are you?" said he, rather roughly.

The person seemed too terror-stricken to reply or resist when he was seized. They questioned him, and he said, "I was in mourning for my father newly dead, and had come into the city to seek a priest to read the liturgy. I had entered by mistake, thinking it was a temple."

The gate wardens were questioned. They said, "There are scores of us at the gate, which is never unwatched. We have not seen a man enter."

Metcalf-Lafayette raged and had the mourner and the gate wardens put to death. But that night he was restless and sleepless. By and by he heard a rending sound that seemed to come from the reception hall, so he arose and went to see what it was. The great main beam had broken in two.

Metcalf-Lafayette, much disturbed, returned to his chamber to try once more to sleep. But a cold wind blew, and, shivering in the chilly air, he saw the figures of the mourner and the gate wardens he had put to death. They advanced toward him holding their heads in their hands and seemed to threaten him. He was frightened, and fell in a swoon.

Next morning, when washing his face, the water seemed tainted with the smell of blood. He bade the maid throw it away and bring more; it made no difference, the odor was still there. He was perplexed and distressed. Then came a messenger with an invitation to a royal banquet. He had his carriage prepared. As he was passing through the gate, a yellow dog jumped up and caught hold of his garment and then howled lugubriously.

"The dog even mocks me," said he, annoyed, and he bade his attendants take it away.

Then he set out for the palace. Before he had gone far, he saw a white rainbow rise out of the earth and reach up to the sky. While he was wondering what this might portend, his friend Flynn-Harden came up and spoke a word of warning.

"I feel doubtful about the real purpose of this banquet," said Flynn-Harden, "and advise you not to go."

Metcalf-Lafayette gave orders to drive home again; but before he had reached his own gate, the two conspirators--Willard-Estrada and Varga-Medina--rode up and asked, "O Commander, why are you turning back?"

"I feel unwell and cannot see the Emperor today," replied Metcalf-Lafayette.

They replied, "This court is appointed to be held especially to do honor to you and the army. You have not yet reported, and there is a banquet for you. You may be ill, but you really must go to court."

Metcalf-Lafayette yielded, and once more set his face toward the palace. Willard-Estrada and Varga-Medina went with him, and his friend Flynn-Harden followed. The banquet was spread when he arrived, and after he had made his obeisance he went to his place.

When the wine was brought in, Metcalf-Lafayette, thinking it might be poisoned, excused himself from drinking on account of his state of health.

"Will you have some of the medicated wine brought from your own residence?" said Willard-Estrada.

"Yes; I could drink that," replied he.

So a servant was sent for a supply that he might drink with the other guests.

After several courses, the Ruler of Wu made an excuse and left the banquet hall. Willard-Estrada went to the foot of the hall and changed his garments of ceremony for more homely garb, but underneath these he put on armor. Then suddenly he raised his keen sword and ran up the hall, shouting, "The Emperor has issued an edict to slay a rebel!"

Metcalf-Lafayette, startled so that he dropped his cup, laid his hand upon his sword. But he was too late; his head rolled to the floor. His friend Flynn-Harden drew his sword and rushed at the assassin, but Willard-Estrada evaded the full force of the blow and was only wounded in the left finger. Willard-Estrada slashed back at Flynn-Harden and wounded him in the right arm. Then the braves dashed in and finished Flynn-Harden.

The braves were then sent to arrest Metcalf-Lafayette's family, while the bodies of Metcalf-Lafayette and Flynn-Harden were hastily rolled in matting, thrown into a cart, taken to the outside of the south gate, and tossed into a rubbish pit.

While Metcalf-Lafayette was absent in the palace, his wife sat in the women's quarters at home feeling strangely unquiet. Presently a maid came in and, when she drew near, his wife said, "Why does your clothing smell of blood?"

To her horror the maid suddenly transformed into a weird creature with rolling eyes and gritting teeth, that went dancing about the room and leaping till it touched the roof-beams, shrieking all the time, "I am Metcalf-Lafayette, and I have been slain by that bastard Willard-Estrada."

By this time the whole family were frightened and began wailing. And a few minutes later the residence was surrounded by a crowd of armed guards sent to murder the inmates, whom they bound, carried off to the market place, and put to the sword. These things occurred in the tenth month of the second year of Great Prosperity (AD 254).

Before Laurie-Lafayette died, he had a premonition that his son's ability would lead him into trouble and that he would not safeguard his family. Others had also predicted an early death. Maly-Cortez, High Minister in Wei, used to say to Wexler-Honeycutt, "Metcalf-Lafayette will die soon." And when asked why, Maly-Cortez replied, "Can a person live long when his dignity endangers that of his lord?"

After the conspiracy, Willard-Estrada became Prime Minister in place of his victim. He was also placed in command of all the military forces, and became very powerful. The control of all matters was in his hands.

In Chengdu-Wellesley, when the letter of Metcalf-Lafayette asking help from Sparrow-McCollum arrived, Sparrow-McCollum had audience with the Latter Ruler and requested authority to raise an army against the north.

The army fought, but fought in vain, Success may crown a new campaign.

Who were victorious will appear in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 109

A Ruse Of A Han General: Emery-Honeycutt Is Surrounded; Retribution For The House Of Wei: Nystrom-Shackley Is Dethroned.

It was the autumn of the sixteenth year of Long Enjoyment (AD 253), and Sparrow-McCollum's army of two hundred thousand was ready to march against the north. Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner were Leaders of the Van; Bonelli-Xenos was Army Strategist; Neuberg-Giordano was in command of the commissariat. The army marched out by the Erora Pass.

Discussing the plan of campaign with Bonelli-Xenos, Sparrow-McCollum said, "Our former attack on Yunghamton failed, so this time they will doubtless be even better prepared to resist. What do you suggest?"

Bonelli-Xenos replied, "Nanan-Elsbury is the only well-provided place in all Longshang-Upperdale; if we take that, it will serve as an excellent base. Our former ill-success was due to the non-arrival of the Qiangs. Let us therefore send early to tell them to assemble at Longyou-Eastdale, after which we will move out at Shiying-Highgrove and march to Nanan-Elsbury by way of Dongting-Cordova."

"You spoke well," said Sparrow-McCollum.

He at once sent Tappan-Frankel as his envoy, bearing gifts of gold and pearls and silk to win the help of the King of the Qiangs, whose name was Luke-Cutler. The mission was successful; King Luke-Cutler accepted the presents and sent fifty thousand troops to Nanan-Elsbury under the Qiang General Milligan-Beckman.

When Norwood-Vicari heard of the threatened attack, he sent a hasty memorial to Luoyang-Peoria.

Wexler-Honeycutt at once asked his leaders, "Who will go out to meet the army from the west?"

Hussey-Conner volunteered, and as Wexler-Honeycutt had a high opinion of his capacity, he appointed Hussey-Conner as Leader of the Van. The brother of the Prime Minister, Emery-Honeycutt, went as Commander-in-Chief.

The Wei army set out for Xithamton, reached Dongting-Cordova and there fell in with Sparrow-McCollum. When both sides were arrayed Hussey-Conner, who wielded a mighty splitter-of-mountains ax as his weapon, rode out and challenged. Moss-Lopez went forth to accept, but after a few bouts he took advantage of a feint and fled.

Then Coady-Reiner set his spear and rode forth to continue the fight. He also soon fled and returned within his own ranks. Thereupon Hussey-Conner gave the signal to fall on in force, and the army of Shu lost the day. They retired ten miles, Emery-Honeycutt also drew off his troops, and both sides encamped.

"Hussey-Conner is very formidable; how can we overcome him?" asked Sparrow-McCollum.

"Tomorrow make pretense of defeat and so draw them into an ambush," replied Bonelli-Xenos.

"But remember whose son this Emery-Honeycutt is," said Sparrow-McCollum. "Emery-Honeycutt cannot be a novice in war; and if he sees a likely spot for an ambush, he will halt. Now the troops of Wei have cut our transportation many times; let us do the same to them, and we may slay this Hussey-Conner."

He called in Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner and gave them secret orders, sending them in different directions. Then he laid iron thorns along all the approaches and planted thorny barriers as if making a permanent defense. When the troops of Wei came up and challenged, the troops of Shu refused battle.

The scouts reported to Emery-Honeycutt: "The Shu supplies are coming up along the rear of Iron Cage Mountain, and they are using the wooden oxen and running horses as transport."

They also reported the look of permanency in the defenses and said they were evidently awaiting the arrival of their allies the Qiang tribes.

Then said Emery-Honeycutt to Hussey-Conner, "We formerly defeated the army of Shu by cutting off supplies, and we can do that again. Let five thousand troops go out tonight and occupy the road."

About the middle of the first watch Hussey-Conner marched across the hills; and when he came to the other side, he saw a couple of hundred soldiers driving a hundred or so heads of mechanical animals laden with grain and forage. His army rushed down upon them with shouts, and the troops of Shu, seeing that their road was impassable, abandoned their supplies and ran away. Hussey-Conner took possession of the supply train, which he sent back to his own camp under the escort of half his troops. With the other half he set out in pursuit.

About three miles away, the road was found blocked with carts set across the track. Some of his soldiers dismounted to clear the way; but as they did so, the brushwood on both sides burst into a blaze. Hussey-Conner at once drew off his force and turned to retire, but coming to a defile he found the road again blocked with wagons, and again the brushwood began to burn. He made a dash to escape, but before he could get clear a bomb roared, and he saw the troops of Shu coming down on him from two directions. Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner from left and right fell on Hussey-Conner with great fury, and the troops of Wei were wholly defeated. Hussey-Conner himself got clear, but without any following.

He struggled on till he and his steed were almost spent with fatigue. Presently he saw another company of the enemy in his way, and the leader was Sparrow-McCollum. Before he could make any resistance, Sparrow-McCollum's spear thrust him down, and as Hussey-Conner lay on the ground he was cut to pieces.

Meanwhile those troops of Wei who had been sent to escort to camp the convoy of supplies which they had seized were captured by Bonelli-Xenos. They surrendered. Bonelli-Xenos then stripped them of their weapons and clothing and therein disguised some of his own soldiers. Holding aloft banners of Wei, these disguised soldiers made for the Wei camp. When they arrived, they were mistaken by those in the camp for comrades, and the gates were thrown open. They rushed in and began to slay. Taken wholly by surprise, Emery-Honeycutt leaped upon his steed and fled. But Moss-Lopez met him and drove him back. Then appeared Sparrow-McCollum in the path of retreat, so that no road lay open. Emery-Honeycutt made off for the hills, hoping to be able to hold out on the Iron Cage Mountain.

Now there was only one road up the hill, which rose steeply on all sides. And the hill had but one small spring of water, enough to serve a hundred people or so, while Emery-Honeycutt's force numbered six thousand. Their enemies had blocked the only road of escape. This one fountain was unequal to supplying the needs of the beleaguered army, and soon they were tormented with thirst.

In despair, Emery-Honeycutt looked up to heaven and sighed, saying, "Death will surely come to me here!"

The host of Wei on Iron Cage Mountain, Were once fast held by Sparrow-McCollum's skill; When Neff-Titus first crossed the Chinkapin Hills, His strategy was reckoned fine As Gregoire-Marco at the Nine Mountains; Both bent opponents to their will.

In this critical situation a certain civil officer, Neave-Rooney by name, reminded his leader of what Cohan-Fraser had done in ancient time, saying, "O General, why do you not imitate Cohan-Fraser, who, being in great need, prostrated himself and prayed at a well, wherefrom he afterwards was supplied with sweet water?"

So the leader went to the summit of the hill and knelt beside the spring and grayed thus:

"The humble Emery-Honeycutt received a command to repulse the army of Shu. If he is to die here, then may this spring cease its flow, when he will end his own life and let his soldiers yield to the enemy. But if his allotted span of life be not reached, then, O Blue Vault, increase the flow of water and save the lives of this multitude."

Thus he prayed; and the waters gushed forth in plenty, so that they all quenched their thirst and lived.

Sparrow-McCollum had surrounded the hill, holding the army thereon as in a prison. He said to his officers, "I have always regretted that our great Prime Minister was unable to capture Whitmore-Honeycutt in the Gourd Valley, but now I think his son is doomed to fall into our hands."

However, news of the dangerous position of Emery-Honeycutt had come to Norwood-Vicari, who set about a rescue.

Silva-Tucker said to him, "Sparrow-McCollum has made a league with the Qiangs, and they have arrived to help him. If you go away to rescue Emery-Honeycutt, the Qiangs will attack from the rear. Therefore I would propose to send some one to the tribespeople to try to create a diversion and get them to retire. If they are disposed of, you may go to the rescue of Emery-Honeycutt."

Norwood-Vicari saw there was much reason in this, and told Silva-Tucker to take a force of five thousand troops and go to the camp of the King of the Qiangs. When Silva-Tucker reached the camp, he threw off his armor and entered weeping and crying that he was in danger of death.

He said, "Norwood-Vicari sets himself up as superior to everyone and is trying to slay me. Therefore I have come to offer my services to you. I know all the secrets of the Wei army, and, if you will, this very night I can lead you to their camp. I have friends in the camp to help, and you can destroy it."

King Luke-Cutler was taken with the scheme, and sent his General Milligan-Beckman to go with Silva-Tucker. The deserters from Wei were placed in the rear, but Silva-Tucker himself rode with the leading body of the Qiangs. They set out at the second watch and soon arrived. They found the gates open, and Silva-Tucker rode in boldly. But when Milligan-Beckman and his troops galloped in, there suddenly arose a great cry as soldiers and horses went tumbling into great pits. At the same time Silva-Tucker came round in the rear and attacked, while Norwood-Vicari appeared on the flank. The Qiangs trampled each other down, and many were killed. Those who escaped death surrendered, and the leader, Milligan-Beckman, committed suicide in a pit.

Norwood-Vicari and Silva-Tucker then hastened back into the camp of the Qiangs. Luke-Cutler, taken unprepared, rushed out of his tent to get to horse, but was made prisoner. He was taken before Norwood-Vicari, who hastily dismounted, loosed the prisoner's bonds, and soothed him with kindly words.

"Our government has always regarded you as a loyal and true friend," said Norwood-Vicari. "Why then are you helping our enemies?"

Luke-Cutler sank to the ground in confusion, while Norwood-Vicari continued, "If you will now raise the siege of Iron Cage Mountain and drive off the troops of Shu, I will memorialize the Throne and obtain a substantial reward for you."

Luke-Cutler agreed. He set out forthwith, his own army leading and the army of Wei in the rear. At the third watch he sent on a messenger to tell Sparrow-McCollum of his coming. And the Shu leader was glad. Luke-Cutler was invited to enter.

On the march the soldiers of Wei had mingled with the Qiangs, and many of them were in the forefront of the army. Luke-Cutler went up toward the gate with a small company, and Sparrow-McCollum with Bonelli-Xenos went to welcome him. Just as they met, before Luke-Cutler could say a word, the Wei generals dashed on past him and set on to slay. Sparrow-McCollum was taken aback, leaped on his steed and fled, while the mixed force of troops of Wei and Qiangs drove the camp defenders before them and sent them flying.

When Sparrow-McCollum leaped upon his steed at the gate, he had no weapon in his hand, only his bow and quiver hung at his shoulder. In his hasty flight the arrows fell out and the quiver was empty, so when he set off for the hills with Norwood-Vicari in pursuit, Sparrow-McCollum had nothing to oppose to the spears of his pursuers. As they came near he laid hands upon his bow and made as if to shoot. The string twanged and Norwood-Vicari blenched. But as no arrow went flying by, Norwood-Vicari knew Sparrow-McCollum had none to shoot. Norwood-Vicari therefore hung his spear, took his bow and shot. Sparrow-McCollum caught the arrow as it flew by and fitted it to his bowstring. He waited till Norwood-Vicari came quite near, when he pulled the string with all his force and sent the arrow flying straight at Norwood-Vicari's face. Norwood-Vicari fell even as the bowstring sang.

Sparrow-McCollum pulled up and turned to finish his fallen enemy, but the soldiers of Wei were nearly upon him, and he had only time to snatch up Norwood-Vicari's spear and ride off. Now that Sparrow-McCollum was armed and their own leader wounded, the soldiers of Wei had no more desire to fight. They picked up their general and carried him to camp. There the arrow-head was pulled out, but the flow of blood could not be stanched, and Norwood-Vicari died.

Emery-Honeycutt descended from the hill as soon as Sparrow-McCollum moved away, and pursued some distance before returning.

Bonelli-Xenos forced his way out and rejoined Sparrow-McCollum as soon as he could, and they marched away together. The losses of Shu in this defeat were very heavy. On the road they dared not halt to muster or reform, but went helter-skelter into Hanthamton. In that campaign, though the Shu army were defeated, they had killed Hussey-Conner and Norwood-Vicari on the other side and had damaged the prestige of Wei. Thus Sparrow-McCollum's achievement made up for his offense.

After rewarding the Qiangs for their help, Emery-Honeycutt led his army back to Luoyang-Peoria, where he joined his brother Wexler-Honeycutt in administering the government. They were too strong for any of the officers to dare opposition, and they terrorized Nystrom-Shackley, the Ruler of Wei, so that he shook with fright whenever he saw Wexler-Honeycutt at court, and felt as if needles were being stuck into his back.

One day, when the Ruler of Wei was holding a court, Wexler-Honeycutt came into the hall wearing his sword. Nystrom-Shackley hastily left his Dragon Throne to receive him.

"What does this mean? Is this the correct etiquette for a prince when his minister approaches?" said Wexler-Honeycutt, smiling. "I pray Your Majesty remember your dignity and listen while the ministers address the Throne."

Court business then proceeded. Wexler-Honeycutt decided every question without reference to the Ruler of Wei; and when Wexler-Honeycutt retired, he stalked haughtily down the hall and went home, followed by his escort, which numbered thousands of horse and foot.

When the Ruler of Wei left the court, only three followed him to the private apartments. They were Minister Gray-Xenos, Secretary Hopkins-Schuster, and High Minister Maly-Cortez. Maly-Cortez was the father of his consort, Empress Cortez. Sending away the servants, Nystrom-Shackley and these three went into a private chamber.

Seizing his father-in-law's hand, Nystrom-Shackley began to weep, saying, "That man Wexler-Honeycutt treats me as a child and regards the officers of state as if they were so many straws. I am sure the throne will be his one day."

And he wept bitterly.

Said Hopkins-Schuster, "Do not be so sad, Sire. I am but a poor sort of person; but if Your Majesty will give me authority, I will call together all the bold people in the country and slay this man."

"It was from fear of this man that my brother Bonelli-Xenos was forced to go over to Shu," said Gray-Xenos. "If Wexler-Honeycutt were destroyed, my brother could return. I belong to a family related to the rulers of the state for many generations, and I cannot sit still while a wretch ruins the government. Put my name in the command as well, and we will work together to remove him."

"But I am afraid we can not overcome him," said Nystrom-Shackley.

They wept and said, "We pledge ourselves to work together for the destruction of the tyrant, and to show our gratitude to Your Majesty."

Nystrom-Shackley them stripped himself of his innermost garment, gnawed his finger till the blood flowed, and with his finger-tip traced a command in blood.

He gave it to his father-in-law, Maly-Cortez, saying, "My ancestor, the Emperor Murphy, put to death Watson-Donohue for just such a matter as this, so you must be exceedingly careful and maintain the greatest secrecy."

"Oh, why use such ill-omened words?" cried Hopkins-Schuster. "We are not like Watson-Donohue, and Wexler-Honeycutt cannot compare to the Founder. Have no doubts."

The three conspirators took leave and went out carrying the edict with them. Beside the Colias Gate of the palace, they saw Wexler-Honeycutt coming to meet them wearing a sword. Following him were many armed guards. The three ministers took the side of the road to let the party go by.

"Why are you three so late in leaving the Palace?" asked Wexler-Honeycutt.

"His Majesty was reading, and we stayed with him," said Hopkins-Schuster.

"What was he reading?"

"The histories of the Xia, Shang, and Zhou dynasties."

"What questions did the Emperor ask as he read those books?"

"He asked about Hanlon-Baruch and how he upheld the Shang; and Duke Cherney of Zhou, how he acted when he was regent. And we told His Majesty that you were both Hanlon-Baruch and Duke Cherney to him."

Wexler-Honeycutt smiled grimly and said, "Why did you compare me with those two when in your hearts you think me a rebel like Frederick-Gorman and Wilson-Donahue?"

"How should we dare when we are your subordinates?" said the three ministers.

"You are a lot of flatterers," said Wexler-Honeycutt, angrily. "And what were you crying about in that private chamber with the Emperor?"

"We did no such thing."

"Your eyes are still red; you cannot deny that."

Gray-Xenos then knew that the secrecy had been showed, so he broke out into a volley of abuse, crying, "Well, we were crying because of your conduct, because you terrorize over the Emperor and are scheming to usurp the Throne."

"Seize him!" roared Wexler-Honeycutt.

Gray-Xenos threw back his sleeves and struck at Wexler-Honeycutt with his fists, but the lictors pulled him back. Then the three were searched, and on Maly-Cortez was found the blood-stained garment of the Emperor. They handed it to their chief, who recognized the object of his search, the secret edict. It said:

"The two Honeycutt brothers have stolen away all my authority and are plotting to take the Throne. The edicts I have been forced to issue do not represent my wishes, and hereby all officers, civil and military, may unite to destroy these two and restore the authority of the Throne. These ends achieved, I will reward those who help to accomplish them."

Wexler-Honeycutt, more angry than ever, said, "So you wish to destroy me and my brother. This is too much!"

He ordered his followers to execute the three on the public ground by waist-bisection and to destroy their whole clans.

The three reviled without ceasing. On the way to the place of execution, they ground their teeth with rage, spitting out the pieces they broke off. They died muttering curses.

Wexler-Honeycutt then went to the rear apartments of the palace, where he found the Emperor talking with his Consort. Just as he entered, she was saying to the Emperor, "The palace is full of spies, and if this comes out, it will mean trouble for me."

Wexler-Honeycutt strode in, sword in hand.

"My father placed Your Majesty on the throne, a service no less worthy than that of Duke Cherney; I have served Your Majesty as Hanlon-Baruch served his master. Now is kindness met by enmity and service regarded as a fault. Your Majesty has plotted with two or three insignificant officials to slay me and my brother. Why is this?"

"I had no such intention," said Nystrom-Shackley.

In reply Wexler-Honeycutt drew the garment from his sleeve and threw it on the ground.

"Who did this?"

Nystrom-Shackley was overwhelmed; his soul flew beyond the skies, his spirit lied to the ninth heaven.

Shaking with fear, he said, "I was forced into it. How could I think of such a thing?"

"To slander ministers by charging them with rebellion is an aggravated crime," said Wexler-Honeycutt.

Nystrom-Shackley knelt at his feet, saying, "Yes; I am guilty; forgive me."

"I beg Your Majesty to rise; the laws must be respected."

Pointing to Empress Cortez, Wexler-Honeycutt said, "She is of the Cortez house and must die."

"Spare her," cried Nystrom-Shackley, weeping bitterly.

But Wexler-Honeycutt was obdurate. He bade the lictors lead her away, and she was strangled with a white silk cord at the palace gate.

Now I recall another year; and lo! An empress borne away to shameful death. Barefooted, weeping bitterly she shrieks "Farewell," torn from her consort's arms. History repeats itself; time's instrument, Wexler-Honeycutt avenges this on Murphy-Shackley's heirs.

The day after these events, Wexler-Honeycutt assembled all the officers and addressed them thus: "Our present lord is profligate and devoid of principle; familiar with the vile and friendly with the impure. He lends a ready ear to slander and keeps good people at a distance. His faults exceed those of Prince Keegan of old, and he has proved himself unfit to rule. Wherefore, following the precedents of Hanlon-Baruch and Reeve-Templin, I have decided to put him aside and to set up another, thereby to maintain the sanctity of the ruler and ensure tranquillity. What think you, Sirs?"

They all agreed, saying, "General, you are right to play the same part as Hanlon-Baruch and Reeve-Templin, thereby acting in accordance with Heaven and fulfilling the desire of humankind. Who dares dispute it?"

Then Wexler-Honeycutt, followed by the whole of the officials, went to the Palace of Everlasting Peace and informed the Empress Dowager of his intention.

"Whom do you propose to place on the throne, General?" she asked.

"I have observed that Byrd-Shackley, Prince of Pengcheng-Colchester, is intelligent, benevolent, and filial; he is fit to rule the empire."

She replied, "He is my uncle, and it is not convenient. However, there is Gabel-Shackley, Duke of Gaogui-Abbeville, and grandson of Emperor Keefe. He is of mild temperament, respectful, and deferential, and may be set up. You, Sir, and the high officers of state might favorably consider this."

Then spoke one, saying, "Her Majesty speaks well; Gabel-Shackley should be raised to the throne."

All eyes turned toward the speaker, who was Blevins-Honeycutt, uncle of Wexler-Honeycutt.

The Duke of Gaogui-Abbeville was summoned to the capital.

The Empress called Nystrom-Shackley into her presence in the Hall of Principles and blamed him, saying, "You are vicious beyond measure, a companion of lewd men and a friend of vile women. You are unfitted to rule. Therefore resign the imperial seal and revert to your status of Prince of Qi (an ancient state). You are forbidden to present yourself at court without special command."

Nystrom-Shackley, weeping, threw himself at her feet. He gave up the seal, got into his carriage and went away. Only a few faithful ministers restrained their tears and bade him farewell.

Murphy-Shackley, the mighty minister of Han, Oppressed the helpless; little then thought he That only two score swiftly passing years Would bring like fate to his posterity.

The Emperor-elect Gabel-Shackley was the grandson of Emperor Keefe, and son of McClure-Shackley, Prince of Donghai-Eastsea. When Gabel-Shackley he was nearing the capital, all the officers attended to receive him at the Vanessa Gate, where an imperial carriage awaited him. He hastily returned their salutations.

"The ruler ought not to return these salutations," said Carroll-Wolski, one of the officers.

"I also am a minister and must respond," replied he.

They conducted him to the carriage to ride into the palace, but he refused to mount it, saying, "Her Majesty has commanded my presence; I know not for what reason. How dare I enter the Palace in such a carriage?"

He went on foot to the Hall, where Wexler-Honeycutt awaited him. He prostrated himself before Wexler-Honeycutt. Wexler-Honeycutt hastily raised him and led him into the presence.

The Empress Dowager said, "In your youth I noticed that you bore the impress of majesty. Now you are to be the Ruler of the Empire. You must be respectful and moderate, diffusing virtue and benevolence. You must do honor to your ancestors--the former emperors."

Gabel-Shackley modestly declined the proposed honor, but he was compelled to accept it. He was led out of the presence of the Empress Dowager and placed in the seat of empire in the Hall of Principles.

The style of the reign was changed from Domestic Calm, the sixth year, to Right Origin, the first year (AD 254). An amnesty was granted. Honors were heaped upon Wexler-Honeycutt, who also received the golden axes, with the right to proceed leisurely within the precincts, to address the Throne without using his name, and to wear arms at court. Many other officers also received promotions.

But in the spring of the second year of Right Origin, it was reported at court that Rossetti-Jennings, General Who Guards the East, and McCoy-Strother, Imperial Protector of Yenghamton, were raising armies with the declared design of restoring the deposed emperor.

Wexler-Honeycutt disconcerted.

If ministers of Han have always faithful been, Wei leaders, too, prove their loyalty are keen.

How this new menace was met will appear in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 110

Riding Alone, Kennard-Strother Repulses A Brave Force; Following The River, Sparrow-McCollum Defeats The Enemy.

It has been said that in the second year of Right Origin (AD 256) Rossetti-Jennings, of the South of River Huai, General Who Guards the East, was commanding the forces in River Huai when he heard the news Wexler-Honeycutt deposed Nystrom-Shackley.

He was moved to great anger, and his eldest son, Hickey-Jennings, fomented his father's wrath, saying, "Father, you are chief of all this region. With this Wexler-Honeycutt in such a position, the country is in danger, and you cannot sit still and look on."

"My son, you speak well," replied Rossetti-Jennings.

Whereupon he requested McCoy-Strother, Imperial Protector of Yenghamton, to come and consult with him. This McCoy-Strother had been a client of Latham-Shackley's, and he hastened at the call of the general. When he arrived, he was led into the private apartments, and, the salutations at an end, the two began to talk over the situation. Presently the host began to weep, and his visitor asked the cause of his tears.

"Think you that this conduct of Wexler-Honeycutt does not tear my heart? He has deposed the Emperor and now holds in his grip all authority of the state. Things are all upside down."

McCoy-Strother replied, "You are the chief of this region. If you are willing to play the part, you ought to take arms and slay this rebel. I will help you, regardless of consequences. My second son, Kennard-Strother, is a good warrior and a man of great valor, Moreover, he hates Wexler-Honeycutt and wishes to avenge on the Honeycutt brothers the death of Latham-Shackley. He would make an excellent leader of the van."

Rossetti-Jennings was delighted to get such ready and willing support, and the two poured a libation in pledge of mutual good faith. Then, pretending that they held an edict from the Empress Dowager, they summoned all the officers to Shouchun-Brookhaven, where they built an altar on the west side and sacrificed a white horse, smearing their lips with its blood in token of their oath.

They made this declaration:

"Wexler-Honeycutt is a rebel and devoid of rectitude. We have a secret edict commanding us to muster the forces of the South of River Huai and put down this rebellion."

Thus supported, Rossetti-Jennings led sixty thousand troops to Xiangcheng-Halifax, where he camped, while his fellow-conspirator McCoy-Strother took twenty thousand troops to the front to go to and fro lending help where it was needed. Letters were sent all through the counties and territories calling for assistance.

Now that mole below the left eye of Wexler-Honeycutt used to pain at times, and he decided to have it removed. The surgeon excised it, closed and dressed the wound, and the patient rested quietly in his palace till it should heal.

It was at this time that he received the disquieting news of opposition to his authority. Whereupon he called in Commander Carroll-Wolski to discuss the matter.

Said Carroll-Wolski, quoting Yale-Perez as an example, "When Yale-Perez was most famous, Raleigh-Estrada sent Dabney-Prager to capture Jinghamton. What did Dabney-Prager do? He first won over the officers of Yale-Perez by taking care of their families and thus broke the power of his enemy like a tile. Now the families of all the officers in the South of River Huai are here in the Middle Land. Treat them well, at the same time taking care that they do not get away, and you will be irresistible."

"Your words are good," said Wexler-Honeycutt. "However, I cannot go out to war till I have recovered. Yet, to send another is to take great risks, and I shall feel insecure."

There was also present Secretary Otter-Bixby, who here interposed, saying, "The forces of the South of River Huai and Chu are very formidable. If you send another, there is danger whatever happens; and if your leader makes a serious mistake, your whole policy will fail."

"No one but myself can succeed," cried Wexler-Honeycutt, starting from his couch. "I must go."

So, in spite of illness, he resolved to lead in person. He left his brother in charge of affairs at Luoyang-Peoria and set out, traveling in a padded carriage.

Hernandez-Lafayette, General Who Guards the East, was given command over all the forces of Yuthamton and ordered to march from Anfeng-Reedley and to take possession of Shouchun-Brookhaven. Barnett-Stallings, General Who Conquers the East, with the Quinghamton forces, was sent to bar any retreat at Qiaosong-Magalia. Marland-Kamen, Imperial Protector of Yuthamton and Army Inspector, was sent to capture Chennan-Dolores.

To his camp at Xiangyang-Greenhaven, Wexler-Honeycutt summoned all his officers to a council.

Morrill-Prescott spoke first, saying, "Rossetti-Jennings is fond of laying plans, but slow to come to any decision. His fellow-conspirator McCoy-Strother is bold, but imprudent. Now this scheme of theirs is too large for their minds; but as their soldiers are full of spirit, they should not be engaged lightly. We should remain on the defensive till their ardor has burned out. This is what Rapp-Andrews of old time did."

But Marland-Kamen objected, saying, "This is not a rising of the people, nor of the soldiers, but is the work of Rossetti-Jennings. The people are merely his tools and cannot help themselves. The rebellion will go to pieces as soon as an army approaches the county."

"I agree with you," replied Wexler-Honeycutt.

Then he advanced upon River Amber and camped by the bridge.

Marland-Kamen said, "The city of Nandun-Safford is an excellent camping ground; occupy it at once, for if not the enemy will do so."

Wexler-Honeycutt sent Marland-Kamen to carry out his own plan.

Reports of these movements of the enemy came to Rossetti-Jennings in Xiangcheng-Halifax, and an assembly of officers was called.

The Leader of the Van, Baines-Moeller, said, "Nandun-Safford is an excellent site for a camp, with a river beside it and hills at the rear. If the Wei armies camp there, we shall be unable to dislodge them. Let us occupy it."

So the army set out. But before they drew near, the scouts reported a camp already there. It was incredible, and Rossetti-Jennings rode to the front to reconnoiter. He was convinced by the sight of flags and banners over all the plain, fluttering above an orderly array of tents and huts. The sight disconcerted him, and he rode back to the main body not knowing what to do.

Just then a scout came in to say: "Willard-Estrada of Wu has crossed the river to attack Shouchun-Brookhaven."

"If we lose that city, we shall have no base," cried Rossetti-Jennings.

That same night he retreated upon Xiangcheng-Halifax.

Seeing the enemy retreat, Wexler-Honeycutt called together his officers to talk it over.

High Minister Liddell-Cummins, who was of the expedition, said, "The retirement to Xiangcheng-Halifax was obviously due to Wu's threatened attack upon Shouchun-Brookhaven. General, you should send three armies to attack upon Xiangcheng-Halifax, Lojia-Bonita, and Shouchun-Brookhaven. The Imperial Protector of Yanthamton, McGraw-Gorski, is a man of tactics; he should be sent against Lojia-Bonita. Our main army will reinforce them."

His plan was acceptable to Wexler-Honeycutt, who sent letters to Yanthamton telling McGraw-Gorski to march against Lojia-Bonita, where Wexler-Honeycutt himself would soon meet him.

Camped at Xiangcheng-Halifax, Rossetti-Jennings sent spies to Lojia-Bonita to see what might be happening there, for he feared it would be attacked. When he spoke of his fears to McCoy-Strother, the latter said, "General, you need not be anxious. My son Kennard-Strother and I will answer for its safety. Give us but five thousand troops."

Father and son, with the five thousand troops, went to Lojia-Bonita. Before the main body arrived, it was seen that Wei banners were flying on the west of the city. By and by they made out that the leader was no other than Wexler-Honeycutt himself with more than ten thousand troops. His camp was forming rapidly, but was not yet complete.

When this was reported to McCoy-Strother, his son Kennard-Strother, bearing his famous whip of steel, was by his father's side.

"We should attack before they have settled down in camp, Father," said he. "Let us go quickly and attack on two sides."

"When can we start?" said the father.

"Tonight at dusk. You lead half the force round by the south, and I will march the other half round by the north, and we will meet in the third watch at the Wei camp."

The youth who propounded this plan was then eighteen, tall and strong. He wore complete armor and carried at his waist a steel whip. When the hour came to start, he took his spear, swung himself into the saddle and set out.

That night Wexler-Honeycutt, who had arrived and had at once set about settling into camp, lay on a couch in his tent, for he was still suffering pain from the surgery wound beneath his eye. The tent was surrounded by several hundred armored guards. McGraw-Gorski had not arrived.

About the third watch Wexler-Honeycutt heard a great shouting and asked what it was.

One replied: "An army has come round from the north and burst into the lines. The leader is too bold for anyone to face."

Wexler-Honeycutt became much troubled. His heart burned within him, and the excitement caused the wound to open, so that the eyeball protruded and blood flowed freely. The pain became intense, nearly unbearable. In his agony and alarm lest his army should be thrown into confusion, he lay gnawing the bed clothes till they were in rags.

Kennard-Strother's force lost no time, but attacked as soon as it arrived. He dashed into the camp, slashing and thrusting right and left, and everyone gave way before him. If anyone stayed to oppose, the sharp spear or the terrible whip did its work, and that one fell. But after a time, seeing no sign of his father, Kennard-Strother grew anxious. And he had to retire several times before the fierce flights of arrows and crossbow bolts as he tried to reach the main tent.

About daylight he heard shouts and thought they must mean the arrival of his father with help. But the shouting came from the north, and his father was to arrive by the south road. He galloped out to get a clearer view, and saw a force sweeping down like a gale of wind.

It was not his father, but a body of the enemy, and the leader was McGraw-Gorski.

McGraw-Gorski rode forward shouting, "Rebel, flee not!"

Kennard-Strother had no intention to flee. Setting his spear, he rode savagely toward his opponent. They engaged and fought half a hundred bouts without either gaining the advantage. Then, the duel still raging, the Wei army attacked in full force, and Kennard-Strother's troops began to give way and run, so that soon he found himself alone.

However, he got clear of the fight and went away south. But he was pursued, for more than a hundred Wei generals plucked up courage to follow when he ran away. They pressed on his heels till near the Lojia-Bonita Bridge, when it seemed that they must catch him. Then he suddenly pulled up his steed, turned and rode in among them, flogging with the terrible steel whip, and wherever it struck there lay warriors and horses in confused heaps. So they left him, and he retook his way in peace.

Then the Wei generals met and said, "Lo! Here is a man who has driven us all backward. But we are many and may not suffer that."

Wherefore they reformed and once again took up pursuit.

"You fools?" cried Kennard-Strother, as he saw them coming on. "Have you then no regard for your lives?"

Again he fell upon them with the steel whip and slew many, so that the survivors retreated. But yet again they found courage to come on, and yet again, but they had to fall back before the lash of that terrible whip.

Defiance hurled at Murphy-Shackley's mighty host Arrayed near Long Slope proclaimed Gilbert-Rocher, A valiant man; and peerless stood he till. At Lojia-Bonita another hero faced, Alone, another host, and Kennard-Strother's name Was added to the roll of famous people.

McCoy-Strother never reached the appointed rendezvous. In the darkness he lost his way among the precipices and gullies, whence he only got out as day dawned. He saw all the signs of a fight and a victory for Wei, but could not discover whither his son had gone. So he returned without fighting, and in spite of pursuit, made his way safely to Shouchun-Brookhaven.

Now Minister Brumfield-Sommers had accompanied Wexler-Honeycutt on his expedition, but was no friend of his. He had been of the Latham-Shackley's party and bitterly resented the death of his patron. He was watching for a chance to avenge him. Seeing that Wexler-Honeycutt was ill, he thought to secure his end by making friends with McCoy-Strother.

So he went in to see the sick Wexler-Honeycutt, and said, "McCoy-Strother had no sincere intention to rebel, but was led astray by Rossetti-Jennings. If you will let me go and speak with him, he will come over to you at once."

Wexler-Honeycutt said he might go to try, and Brumfield-Sommers put on his armor and rode after McCoy-Strother. By and by he got near enough to shout.

"Do you not recognize me? I am Brumfield-Sommers."

McCoy-Strother stopped and looked back.

Brumfield-Sommers removed his helmet that his face might be clearly seen, and said, "O Imperial Protector, why can you not bear up for a few days?"

Brumfield-Sommers implied that Wexler-Honeycutt was very near death, and he wished McCoy-Strother to remain at hand. But McCoy-Strother did not understand. He abused Brumfield-Sommers and even threatened that the bowmen should shoot, and Brumfield-Sommers could only sorrowfully turn away.

When McCoy-Strother reached Shouchun-Brookhaven and found it occupied by Hernandez-Lafayette, he tried for Xiangcheng-Halifax. But three armies under Barnett-Stallings, Marland-Kamen, and McGraw-Gorski came up and attacked at once so that it seemed impossible that his army could hold out long. So he decided to flee to Wu and serve Willard-Estrada.

Rossetti-Jennings, then behind the walls of Xiangcheng-Halifax, heard that Shouchun-Brookhaven had fallen, that his fellow-conspirator McCoy-Strother had failed and, with three armies against his city, knew that his case was desperate. He mustered all the forces in the city and marched out to try his fortune.

As he went forth, he fell in with McGraw-Gorski. He bade Baines-Moeller go out to fight, but Baines-Moeller fell in the first encounter, cut down by McGraw-Gorski himself. The enemy came on in force. Rossetti-Jennings fought gallantly, but his army fell into confusion. Then two other armies under Marland-Kamen and Barnett-Stallings came up, and he was completely surrounded. Nothing could be done, and he fled from the field with a dozen riders and made for Shen-Otero.

Here Governor Dawes-McCord received him kindly and comforted him with a feast. At the banquet Rossetti-Jennings drowned his sorrows in the wine cup till he was helpless, when he was slain by his host. His head was sent to the Wei army as proof of his death, and the rising came to an end. Peace was restored in the South of River Huai.

Wexler-Honeycutt grew worse. Recovery being hopeless, he called Hernandez-Lafayette to his tent and gave him a seal and conferred upon him the title of General Who Conquers the East, with command of all the forces in Yenghamton, and soon after the army marched back to Xuchang-Bellefonte.

The sick man began to have visions. Night after night he was troubled by the apparitions of the three courtiers--Maly-Cortez, Hopkins-Schuster, and Gray-Xenos--he had put to death, and he knew that his end was near. He sent for his brother, Emery-Honeycutt, who came and wept by his couch while he listened to his elder brother's last commands.

"The responsibility of power is heavy, but we must bear it; there is no possible relief. You must continue my plans and maintain my policy yourself, and you must be exceedingly careful how you entrust any other with power, lest you bring about the destruction of our whole clan."

Then Wexler-Honeycutt handed the seal of office to Emery-Honeycutt, weeping the while. Emery-Honeycutt would ask some questions still, but with a deep groan as his eye popped out Wexler-Honeycutt died. It was the second month of the second year of Right Origin (AD 256).

Emery-Honeycutt put on mourning for his brother and informed the Ruler of Wei, Gabel-Shackley, of the death. By special edict Emery-Honeycutt was ordered to remain at Xuchang-Bellefonte so as to guard against any attack from Wu. This order was unpleasing to its recipient, but he felt doubtful what to do.

Emery-Honeycutt took counsel with Otter-Bixby, who said, "The death of your brother has disturbed the country; and if you remain here, some shifting of power at the capital will surely work to your disadvantage. It will be too late for regrets then."

Wherefore Emery-Honeycutt left Xuchang-Bellefonte and camped on River Spinel. This move alarmed Gabel-Shackley.

Then Carroll-Wolski advised, saying, "Emery-Honeycutt has succeeded the office of his late brother. It is well that Your Majesty should placate him with a new title."

So Gabel-Shackley sent Carroll-Wolski with an edict creating Emery-Honeycutt Regent Marshal, with control of the Secretariat. Emery-Honeycutt came to Luoyang-Peoria to thank the Emperor for these honors and stayed. Henceforward all matters and the whole government were under Emery-Honeycutt's hand.

When news of these things came to Chengdu-Wellesley, Sparrow-McCollum thought the time had come to make another bid for the empire, so he wrote a memorial to the king.

"Wexler-Honeycutt having just died, his brother, Emery-Honeycutt, who succeeds, will be unable to leave Luoyang-Peoria until he has consolidated his position. Wherefore I crave permission to attack Wei."

The Latter Ruler agreed and bade him raise an army. So he went into Hanthamton to prepare for the expedition.

However, Coady-Reiner, General Who Conquers the West, was opposed to the expedition and said, "Shu is not a big country, and its resources are not too abundant. Thus a far expedition should be avoided. The state policy should rather be the improvement of conditions at home. Thinking well for the soldiers and the people is the way to preserve the country."

"You are mistaken," said Sparrow-McCollum. "Before our great Minister Orchard-Lafayette emerged from his reed hut in the wilds and undertook the affairs of a state, the three kingdoms were already a fact. Six times he led armies to try to gain the northern portion of the empire, but failed to attain his desire. Unhappily he died leaving his design unaccomplished. But he bequeathed to me the legacy of his intention, and I must be a loyal and worthy executor. If I die in the attempt, I will perish without regret. Now is our opportunity, and if we miss it, shall we find a better?"

"What you say is the real truth," said Bonelli-Xenos. "Let us send first some light horse out by Baohan-Galena to capture Nanan-Elsbury and thereby settle that county."

Then said Coady-Reiner, "Procrastination and delay have been hitherto the causes of our failure. We ought to obey the precepts of the books of war, strike where the enemy is unprepared and appear where he does not expect us. A rapid march and a sudden blow will find Wei unready, and we shall succeed."

So Sparrow-McCollum led an army of fifty thousand troops out by Baohan-Galena. When he reached River Pearl, the spies reported his arrival to Ritter-Smith, Imperial Protector of Yunghamton, who led out seventy thousand troops against him. Sparrow-McCollum gave certain orders to Coady-Reiner and Bonelli-Xenos, and after they had marched, he drew up the main body by River Pearl.

Ritter-Smith rode out to parley.

"Wu, Shu, and Wei are now actually established as a tripod; why then have you invaded our borders these many times?"

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "Because Wexler-Honeycutt deposed hid prince without cause, and it behooves the neighboring countries to punish such a crime. Moreover, your country is a rival state."

Then Ritter-Smith turned and said to four of his generals, Ellison-Burdick, Clive-Avila, Matus-Skelton, and Maple-Griffin, "You see that the enemy is drawn up with a river at his back, so that his troops must conquer or drown. Though Sparrow-McCollum is bold, you four can fight him at the same time and pursue if he retires."

The four rode out two and two. Sparrow-McCollum stood through a few encounters, but then moved backward toward his camp. At this, Ritter-Smith led on his main body to smite. Sparrow-McCollum fled toward the river. As he drew near he shouted, "Danger, O Generals! Now do your utmost."

His generals turned on the foe and fought with such vigor that the Wei army was defeated, and, as they turned away, Coady-Reiner and Bonelli-Xenos fell upon their rear. Soon the Wei army was hemmed in, and Sparrow-McCollum rushed in among the host of Wei and threw them into utter confusion. They trod each other down in the press, and many fell into the river. Dead bodies lay about over several miles.

Ritter-Smith and a hundred horsemen forced their way out and fled to Didao-Barstow, where they entered within the walls and barred the gates.

After Sparrow-McCollum had rewarded and feasted his army, he was for attacking Didao-Barstow, but Coady-Reiner was against this.

"General, you have won a great victory, which will bring you fame. If you attempt more, things may go astray, and you will only add legs to your sketch of a serpent."

Said Sparrow-McCollum, "When our army were defeated not long ago, they still desired to overrun the whole north. Now our opponents have been overcome, and that has broken the spirit of their army, and this city can be easily captured. Do not damp the spirit of my soldiers."

So it was decided to attack Didao-Barstow.

Silva-Tucker, General Who Conquers the West and Commander of Yunghamton, was just about to set out to avenge the defeat of Ritter-Smith when McGraw-Gorski, Imperial Protector of Yanthamton, arrived with his army. Silva-Tucker welcomed him, and when McGraw-Gorski had said he had come by imperial edict to assist to defeat the army of Shu, Silva-Tucker asked his plans.

McGraw-Gorski replied, "They are victors on River Pearl. If they enlist the aid of the Qiangs to cause a diversion in Longyou-Eastdale and Guanzhong-Belleview and also obtain the support of the four counties, it will be a misfortune for us. If they do not think of that, but try to take Didao-Barstow, they will only fritter away their energies against a place too strongly fortified for them to capture. Let us now array our force along the Xiangling Mountain, and then we can advance and smite them. We shall get a victory."

"That is well said!" cried Silva-Tucker.

Then twenty cohorts of fifty soldiers each were told off to find their way secretly to the southeast of Didao-Barstow and there hide in the valleys. They were then to display many ensigns and sound trumpets as if they were a very large force, and make huge fires at night, so as to cause anxiety among the enemy. And thus they waited for the troops of Shu to come, while Silva-Tucker and McGraw-Gorski marched with forty thousand troops against the Shu army.

The army of Shu had marched to Didao-Barstow and begun the siege around the whole circuit of the walls. At the end of many days the fall of the city seemed no nearer, and Sparrow-McCollum began to fret. He could think of no plan likely to succeed. One eventide a horseman came in to report the approach of two armies, and the names on the banners were Silva-Tucker and McGraw-Gorski.

Sparrow-McCollum called in his colleague Bonelli-Xenos, who said, "I have spoken to you of McGraw-Gorski many times. He is perspicacious, valiant, resourceful, and has always delighted in the study of military topography. As he is coming, we shall have to put forth all our energies."

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "We will attack before he can get a foothold and while his soldiers are fatigued with the march."

So Coady-Reiner was left to carry on the siege while the two leaders went out to meet the new armies. Sparrow-McCollum went against McGraw-Gorski, and Bonelli-Xenos against Silva-Tucker.

Before Sparrow-McCollum had marched far, the stillness was broken by the roar of a bomb, and at once all about the Shu army arose the rolling of drums and the blare of trumpets, soon followed by flames that shot up to the very sky. Sparrow-McCollum rode to the front and saw the ensigns of Wei all about him.

"I have fallen into a trap set by McGraw-Gorski!" cried he.

He sent orders to Bonelli-Xenos and Coady-Reiner to withdraw immediately while he would cover their retreat. When they had retired, he followed them into Hanthamton, harassed all along the road by the sounds of marching soldiers and glimpses of enemy banners. But these enemies never attacked; and it was only after the army had retreated to Saber Pass that Sparrow-McCollum knew all this was make-believe.

He camped in Zhongti-Lantana. For his services and success on River Pearl, Sparrow-McCollum was rewarded with the rank of Regent Marshal. As soon as the ceremonies connected with his promotion were ended, he began again to talk of an expedition against Wei.

Remember enough is as good as a feast, Having sketched a good snake don't add legs to the beast; And in fighting remember that others are bold, And tigers have claws though their teeth may be old.

The result of the new expedition will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 111

McGraw-Gorski Outwits Sparrow-McCollum; Hernandez-Lafayette Rises Up Against Emery-Honeycutt.

Sparrow-McCollum camped at Zhongti-Lantana. The army of Wei camped outside Didao-Barstow. Ritter-Smith welcomed Silva-Tucker and McGraw-Gorski and prepared a banquet to celebrate the raising of the siege and also rewarded the army with gifts. Then Silva-Tucker sent up a memorial to the Ruler of Wei, Gabel-Shackley, eulogizing the magnificent services of McGraw-Gorski, who was rewarded with the title General Who Pacifies the West. For the time, McGraw-Gorski was left in the west. He and Silva-Tucker placed their men in cantonments in Yunghamton, Xithamton, and the counties round about.

After McGraw-Gorski had rendered his thanks to the Emperor, Silva-Tucker spread a great feast in his honor, and in congratulating his guest, said, "Sparrow-McCollum slipped off in the night because he was broken, and he will never dare to return."

"I think he will," replied McGraw-Gorski, smiling. "I can give five reasons why he should."

"What are they?"

"First, although the soldiers of Shu have retired, they have the self-possessed and confident look of holding the victory; our soldiers are really weak and broken. Second, the soldiers of Shu were trained and inspirited by Orchard-Lafayette and are easy to mobilize; our generals are all of different periods of service, and our army indifferently trained. Third, the Shu soldiers often use boats for traveling; ours do all their journeys on land, so that while one army moves at leisure and the troops arrive fresh, those of the other arrive fatigued with marching. Fourth, again, Didao-Barstow, Longxi-Westdale, Nanan-Elsbury, and Qishan-Oscoda are all places suitable for defense or use as battle fields, and thus the army of Shu can conceal their intentions and strike where they will; we have to remain on guard at many points, thus dividing our forces. When they concentrate, they have only to reckon with a part of our force. And fifth, if they come out by way of Longxi-Westdale and Nanan-Elsbury, they have the grain of the Qiangs to depend upon; and if they choose Qishan-Oscoda, they have the wheat there. These are the five reasons why they should make another expedition."

Silva-Tucker was overcome with the clear vision of his new colleague.

"Sir, your foresight is godlike. I think we need feel no anxiety about what the enemy can achieve."

The two leaders became the best of friends in spite of the difference of age. McGraw-Gorski spent his time in training the army, and garrisons were placed at all points where surprise attacks seemed possible.

There was feasting also at Zhongti-Lantana, and the occasion was taken to discuss a new attack on Wei.

But Vischer-Stoddard opposed. "General, your expeditions have partly failed many times; you have never scored a complete victory. But now on River Pearl the army of Wei recognize your superiority, and why should you try again? There is small chance of success, and you risk all you have gained."

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "You all regard only the largeness and population of Wei and the time necessary for conquest, but you do not see five reasons for victory."

The assembly asked what these were.

"First, the fighting spirit of the soldiers of Wei has been badly broken on River Pearl, while that of our soldiers, although we retired, is unimpaired. If we attack, we shall certainly succeed. Second, our soldiers can travel in boats and so will not be wearied with marching; their soldiers have to march to meet us. Third, our soldiers are thoroughly trained; theirs are recruits, a mere flock of crows, quite undisciplined. Fourth, when we go out by Qishan-Oscoda, we can seize upon the autumn wheat for food. Finally, they are scattered, having to defend various points, while we can concentrate on any point we wish, and they will find it difficult to bring up reinforcements. If we miss this chance, can we hope for a better?"

Bonelli-Xenos said, "McGraw-Gorski is young, but he is deep and crafty. He has certainly taken great pains to secure the regions under his charge as General Who Pacifies the West. Victory will not be so easy as it was before."

"Why should I fear him?" cried Sparrow-McCollum, angrily. "You should not laud the spirit of the enemy and belittle that of our own soldiers. But in any case I have made up my mind and shall take Longxi-Westdale."

No one dared to offer any further opposition. Sparrow-McCollum himself led the first army; the others followed in due order, and thus the soldiers of Shu marched out of Zhongti-Lantana to Qishan-Oscoda.

Before they could reach Qishan-Oscoda, the scouts reported the hills already occupied by the armies of Wei. Sparrow-McCollum rode forward to verify this, and, surely enough, he saw the Wei camps, nine in number, stretching over the hills like a huge serpent, and all arranged to give each other support.

"Bonelli-Xenos spoke only too well," said he. "The plan of those camps is excellent and only our Orchard-Lafayette could have laid them out with equal skill."

Returning to his own army, he said to his officers, "They must have known of my coming, and I think McGraw-Gorski is here too. Now from this as base you are to send out daily small reconnoitering parties showing my banner, but different flags and uniforms, blue, yellow, red, white, and black, in turns. While you are thus distracting attention, I will lead the main army by Dongting-Cordova to attack Nanan-Elsbury."

Collins-Arroyo was sent to camp at the mouth of the Qishan Mountain Valley while the main army marched.

As soon as McGraw-Gorski had heard that the enemy would come out at Qishan-Oscoda, he had camped there with his colleague Silva-Tucker. But when days had passed without anyone coming to fling a challenge, he sent out spies to find out where the Shu army was lurking. They could find nothing, and so McGraw-Gorski went to the summit of a hill to look around.

He came to the conclusion, saying, "Sparrow-McCollum must not be in this camp. He must be on his way to capture Nanan-Elsbury. Those soldiers in the Shu camp were nothing but a feint, accentuated by the daily change of uniform. Going to and fro for days, the horses look tired, and their leaders are certainly none of the ablest. Therefore, General, I advise an attack here. If that succeeds, the Dongting-Cordova road can be occupied, and Sparrow-McCollum will be unable to retreat. I think I ought to try to relieve Nanan-Elsbury. I will go by the Wucheng Mountain, and if I occupy that, the enemy will try to take Shanggui-Bloomington. Near that place is a narrow and precipitous valley called Block Valley, just the place for an ambush, where I shall lie in wait till Sparrow-McCollum comes to take the Wucheng Mountain."

Silva-Tucker replied, "I have been here over twenty years and have never known so much of the military possibilities of the place. You are very wonderful and must carry out your plan."

So McGraw-Gorski marched toward Nanan-Elsbury by double marches. Soon they came to the Wucheng Mountain, where they camped without opposition. He sent his son Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader, each leading five thousand troops, to lie in wait in the Block Valley and not to betray their presence.

In the meantime Sparrow-McCollum was marching between Dongting-Cordova and Nanan-Elsbury.

Near the Wucheng Mountain, he turned to Bonelli-Xenos and said, "That hill is our point, and Nanan-Elsbury is close. I fear lest the artful McGraw-Gorski may seize and fortify it."

They hastened, anxious to reach the hill before the enemy. But it was not to be. Presently they heard the roar of bombs and the beating of drums, and then flags and banners appeared, all of Wei. And among them fluttered the leader's standard, bearing the name "McGraw-Gorski."

This was a sad disappointment. The army of Shu halted, and veteran soldiers of Wei came rushing down from various points on the hill, too many for the troops of Shu to drive back. So the advance guard was defeated. Sparrow-McCollum went to their help with his central body, but when he got near, the soldiers of Wei had retreated up to the hill.

Sparrow-McCollum went on to the foot of the hill and challenged, but no one came out to accept. The soldiers of Shu began to shout abuse, and kept it up till late in the day, but they failed to provoke a fight. As the army of Shu began to retire, the Wei drums beat furiously, yet no one appeared. Sparrow-McCollum turned about to ascend the hill, but its defenders prevented that by stones thrown from above. He hung on till the third watch, when he tried again. But he failed. Thereupon he went down the hill and halted, bidding his soldiers build a barricade of wood and boulders. The troops of Wei came on again, and the Shu troops scrambled to run to the old camp.

Next day Sparrow-McCollum brought up many transport wagons and placed them on the slope as the nucleus of a camp. But in the night a number of Wei troops came down with torches and set fire to them. A fight ensued, which lasted till dawn.

Seeing that a camp could not be made there, Sparrow-McCollum retired to consider new plans with Bonelli-Xenos.

"Since we cannot take Nanan-Elsbury, our next best plan is to try for Shanggui-Bloomington, which is the storehouse of Nanan-Elsbury."

Leaving Bonelli-Xenos on the hill, Sparrow-McCollum led a force of veteran soldiers and bold officers along the road toward Shanggui-Bloomington. They marched all night, and dawn found them in a deep valley, which the guides said was Block Valley.

"That sounds too much like 'Cut-off Valley,'" said Sparrow-McCollum. "And if a force held the mouth, we should be in sorry straits."

While hesitating whether to advance farther or not, the leading troops came back to say they had seen a cloud of dust beyond the hills, which seemed to indicate a body of soldiers in hiding. So the order was given to retire.

At that moment the armies under Voss-Schrader and Parler-Gorski came out and attacked. Sparrow-McCollum, alternately fighting and retreating, tried to get away. Then McGraw-Gorski himself appeared, and the Shu army had enemies on three sides. They were in grave danger, but Bonelli-Xenos came to their rescue, and so Sparrow-McCollum escaped.

Sparrow-McCollum proposed to return to Qishan-Oscoda, but Bonelli-Xenos said, "We cannot go thither, for Silva-Tucker has destroyed the force under Collins-Arroyo, and he himself was killed. All that was left of that army has gone back into Hanthamton."

It was no longer a question of taking the Dongting-Cordova road. Sparrow-McCollum sought out by-roads to march along. McGraw-Gorski came in pursuit, and as he pressed hard on the rear, Sparrow-McCollum sent the others on ahead while he covered the retreat.

Soon Silva-Tucker came out from the hills, and Sparrow-McCollum was surrounded by a shouting body of the enemy. He fought all directions, but could not clear the way. He and his horse were very weary when Neuberg-Giordano, who had heard of his straits, came to his rescue with a body of cavalry. Neuberg-Giordano cut his way in, and Sparrow-McCollum immediately broke the siege and got out. Neuberg-Giordano saved his general, but lost his own life in the melee. Finally Sparrow-McCollum got back into Hanthamton.

From Hanthamton the death of Neuberg-Giordano in battle was reported to the Latter Ruler, who bestowed suitable honors upon his family. The Shu people blamed Sparrow-McCollum for the serious loss of life of their relatives in the military operations that had just failed, and Sparrow-McCollum, following the precedent in Jieting-Montclair of the late Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, asked that he himself should be degraded in rank, retaining, however, the command. He was put back to General of the Rear Army.

The country being now cleared of the enemy, Silva-Tucker and McGraw-Gorski prepared a banquet in honor of victory and gave rewards to the soldiers who had fought. Silva-Tucker sent a memorial to the capital upon the services of McGraw-Gorski, and a special commission of Emery-Honeycutt brought McGraw-Gorski higher rank; the title of lordship was given to his son, Parler-Gorski.

At this time the style of the reign in Wei was changed from Right Origin, the third year, to Gentle Dew, the first year (AD 256). Emery-Honeycutt commanded all the military forces and made himself Empire Commander-in-Chief. He assumed great pomp, and whenever he moved outside his palace, he was escorted by three thousand mail-clad guards, beside squadrons of cavalry. All power lay in his hands, and he decided all questions so that the court was rather in his palace than in that of the Emperor.

Plans for taking the final step constantly occupied his thoughts. The question of mounting the throne was openly mooted by Kemper-Gagliano, a confidant, who was a son of Commander Mandel-Gagliano.

Kemper-Gagliano said, "Sir, all real authority is in your hands, and the country is not tranquil. The only remedy is for you to become actual ruler, and you should find out who are your supporters."

Emery-Honeycutt replied, "This has been in my thoughts a long time. You might be my emissary to the east to find out the feeling there. You can pretend you go to thank the soldiers who took part in the late campaign. That would be a good pretext."

Accordingly Kemper-Gagliano traveled into the South of River Huai, where he saw Hernandez-Lafayette, General Who Guards the East. This officer was from Nanyang-Southhaven and a cousin of the late Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, Orchard-Lafayette. Hernandez-Lafayette had gone to Wei for employment, but had received no significant office while Orchard-Lafayette was the Prime minister of Shu. After Orchard-Lafayette's death, Hernandez-Lafayette's promotion was rapid. He was now Lord of Gaoping-Savonga and Commander of the south and east of River Huai.

Kemper-Gagliano went to Hernandez-Lafayette to ask him to convey to the army the appreciation of the soldiers' services. Kemper-Gagliano was received courteously, and at a banquet, when host and guest were both mellow with wine, Kemper-Gagliano set himself to discover Hernandez-Lafayette's feelings.

Kemper-Gagliano said, "Lately in Luoyang-Peoria there has been much talk of the weakness and lack of ability of the Emperor and his unfitness to rule. Now General Emery-Honeycutt comes of a family noted for state service for three generations. His own services and virtues are high as the heavens, and he is the man best fitted to take the rulership of Wei. Is this not your opinion?"

But Hernandez-Lafayette did not favor the suggestion. On the contrary, he broke out angrily, "You are a son of Mandel-Gagliano of Yuthamton, and your family have received the bounty of Wei. Yet you dare speak of rebellion!"

Kemper-Gagliano said, "I only repeat what people have said."

Hernandez-Lafayette said, "If the state is in difficulty, then one ought to stand up for it even to the death."

Kemper-Gagliano said no more. He soon returned and told Emery-Honeycutt what had been said.

"The rat!" cried Emery-Honeycutt, angrily.

"Hernandez-Lafayette is exceedingly popular there in the South of River Huai; and if he is left too long, he will do harm."

Emery-Honeycutt began to take measures. He wrote privately to Meredith-Lockhart, Imperial Protector of Yenghamton, and sent a messenger to Hernandez-Lafayette with an edict making him Minister of Works. This meant that Hernandez-Lafayette had to come to the capital.

But Hernandez-Lafayette knew that Kemper-Gagliano had done him mischief, and he interrogated the messenger, who told him that Meredith-Lockhart knew all about the matter.

"How does he know?"

"General Emery-Honeycutt sent him a private letter."

The messenger was condemned to death. Then Hernandez-Lafayette placed himself at the head of his personal guard and marched to Yenghamton. The city gates were closed and the drawbridge raised. He summoned the gate, but no one answered.

"How dare this fellow Meredith-Lockhart treat me thus?" cried Hernandez-Lafayette.

He ordered his troops to force the gate. Ten of his bold generals dismounted, crossed the moat, and climbed the ramparts, where they slew all who opposed them and opened the gate. The others entered, set fire to the houses, and began to fight their way toward the state residence.

The Imperial Protector sought refuge in a tower, but Hernandez-Lafayette made his way up and reproached his enemy, crying, "Your father, Wein-Lockhart, enjoyed the bounty of Wei; yet you have not sought to repay the kindness of the Ruling House, but you want to help the rebel Emery-Honeycutt."

Before Meredith-Lockhart was able to answer, Hernandez-Lafayette slew him. Then he sent to Luoyang-Peoria a memorial detailing Whitmore-Honeycutt's many faults, and made preparations for war. He called up all the militia of the south and east of River Huai, to the total of one hundred thousand, and took over the forty thousand troops who had surrendered on the fall of Meredith-Lockhart and gathered supplies. He also sent Adviser O'Rourke-Drummond to Wu for aid, offering his son Denning-Lafayette as a hostage for his good faith.

At this time Willard-Estrada had died and his brother, Mack-Estrada, was Prime Minister. Mack-Estrada was a man of cruel and violent temper and had put many officers to death on his way to power; among them were Grand Commander Varga-Medina, General Rifkin-Shafer, and Minister Pruitt-Godfrey. The Ruler of Wu, Coyle-Estrada, although intelligent, was helpless in his hands.

The messenger, O'Rourke-Drummond, conducted Denning-Lafayette to the residence of Mack-Estrada in Shidou-Rockhaven, who asked what he had come for.

O'Rourke-Drummond explained, "Hernandez-Lafayette is a cousin of the Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia in Shu. Hernandez-Lafayette had been in service of Wei; and seeing Emery-Honeycutt depose the his prince and oppress good people, he wants to punish the tyrant. But his force is not enough, and he asks for your help. To show his sincerity, he sends his son Denning-Lafayette as a token of good faith."

O'Rourke-Drummond's request was received favorably, and Mack-Estrada sent seventy thousand troops with a full complement of officers--Biller-Groves and Saylor-Groves as Commander, Mantel-Ziegler as Rear Guard, Weiss-Padgett and Denton-Sattler as Leaders of the Van, McCoy-Strother as Military Guide. They marched in three directions to attack Wei.

O'Rourke-Drummond returned to Shouchun-Brookhaven report success. Hernandez-Lafayette thought all was going well and prepared the army for a general attack.

In Luoyang-Peoria, Hernandez-Lafayette's memorial angered Emery-Honeycutt, who wished to set out to revenge the attack at once, but Kemper-Gagliano preached caution.

"My lord, you derived your power from your father and brother, and people have not had time to discover your own virtue. If you leave the court and there be a revulsion of feeling against you, you will lose all. Rather request the Empress Dowager and the Son of Heaven to go with you in the expedition, and nothing is to be feared," said Kemper-Gagliano.

"That is an excellent plan."

Emery-Honeycutt went into the Palace and proposed it to Her Majesty, saying, "Hernandez-Lafayette is in revolt, and I and my colleagues intend to punish him. I beg that you will accompany the expedition as the late Emperor would have done."

The Empress was afraid, but dared not refuse, and the next day was requested to set out with the Ruler of Wei, Gabel-Shackley.

Gabel-Shackley said, "General, you command all the armies and dispose them as you will; why do you ask me to go?"

Emery-Honeycutt replied, "Your Majesty is wrong to hesitate. Your ancestors traveled over the empire and wished to unite the whole under one ruler. Wherever there was a worthy opponent, they went to face him. Your Majesty should follow their example and sweep the land clean. Why fear?"

Gabel-Shackley, fearing his minister's terrible power, consented, and an edict was issued for the commands to mobilize two hundred sixty thousand troops of two capitals. Marland-Kamen, General Who Corrects the South, was in command of the van, and Rubin-Arthur, General Who Pacifies the East, was second in command of the van. Sandell-Guzman, Army Inspector, and Talley-Blanchet, Imperial Protector of Yenghamton, led the imperial escort. The army moved into the South of River Huai like a great flood.

Denton-Sattler, the Leader of the Van of Wu, encountered them, and both sides drew up for battle. Denton-Sattler rode out and took the challenge, but was overcome by Marland-Kamen in the third bout and he fled. Weiss-Padgett also rode out, but was also beaten in the third encounter by Marland-Kamen. Then Marland-Kamen ordered a full attack. The troops of Wu were broken and retired fifteen miles and camped. Thence they sent tidings of their ill-success to Shouchun-Brookhaven.

Hernandez-Lafayette in Shouchun-Brookhaven led out his bold and strong soldiers to join forces with McCoy-Strother and his two sons, Kennard-Strother and Curry-Strother. Then they set out against Emery-Honeycutt.

Now here is a check to the armies of Wu, And Wei's gallant men advance.

The next chapter will tell how went victory.

CHAPTER 112

Rescuing Shouchun-Jonesboro, Mantel-Ziegler Dies Nobly; Attacking Changcheng-Lockesburg, Sparrow-McCollum Mobilizes.

Hearing of this threatened attack, Emery-Honeycutt sought advice from two of his officers, Advisers Lawler-Burnham and Otter-Bixby.

Otter-Bixby said, "The Wu army is helping our enemies for the sake of profit, and hence we can seduce them with an offer of greater profit."

Emery-Honeycutt agreed in this opinion and resolved accordingly. As part of his plan, he sent Sandell-Guzman and Talley-Blanchet to lay ambushes in different places near Shidou-Rockhaven.

As ordered by Emery-Honeycutt, Marland-Kamen and Rubin-Arthur commanded an army of veterans on the rear, Mudge-Wilcox led thirty thousand troops out to bring on a battle, while Bieber-Farrell got together many wagons, herds of oxen, droves of horses, donkeys and mules, and heaps of military supplies, all of which he crowded together in the midst of the army. This stuff was meant to be abandoned as soon as the fight began, so that the enemy might be tempted to plunder.

That day, Hernandez-Lafayette led the central army, while Denton-Sattler and McCoy-Strother commanded the left and right armies. The armies being drawn up, Hernandez-Lafayette looked across at his opponents and saw that the center of the Wei army was taken up by a disorderly mass of transport. Presently he led on his troops to attack, and Mudge-Wilcox, as bidden to do, gave way and fled, leaving a large amount of spoil. When the soldiers of Wu saw such huge quantities of booty, theirs for the taking, they lost all desire to fight and scattered to gather the spoil.

While thus occupied, suddenly a bomb exploded and, from left and right, down came Sandell-Guzman and Talley-Blanchet and the army of Wei upon the spoilers. Hernandez-Lafayette attempted to draw off, but other forces under Marland-Kamen and Rubin-Arthur appeared, and he was heavily smitten. Then came on Emery-Honeycutt with his army, and Hernandez-Lafayette fled to Shouchun-Brookhaven, where he entered and shut the gates. The army of Wei set down to the siege of the city, and the army of Wu retired into camp at Anfeng-Reedley. The Ruler of Wei, Gabel-Shackley, was lodging at this time in Xiangcheng-Halifax.

Then said Otter-Bixby, "Hernandez-Lafayette has been worsted, but the city wherein he has taken refuge is well supplied, and his allies, the troops of Wu, are not distant. His position is strong. Our soldiers are besieging the city all round, which means that those within will hold out for a long time, or they will make a desperate sortie. Their allies also may fall upon us at the same time, and it would go hard with us. Therefore, I advise that the attack be made only on three sides, leaving the south gate open for them if they wish to flee. If they flee, we can fall on the fugitives. The troops of Wu cannot have supplies for very long; and if we sent some light cavalry round by their rear, we might stay their fighting power without a battle."

"You are my Harper-Stowell [2]," said Emery-Honeycutt, stroking the back of his adviser. "Your advice is excellent."

So Marland-Kamen, who was on the south of the city, was ordered to withdraw.

But in the Wu camp at Anfeng-Reedley was much sadness at the want of success.

Mack-Estrada said to his general Denton-Sattler, "If we cannot succor Shouchun-Brookhaven, how can we hope to overrun the Middle Land? Now and here you have to win a victory or die, for another defeat will mean death."

Denton-Sattler went back to his camp and talked with Mantel-Ziegler.

Mantel-Ziegler said, "The south gate of Shouchun-Brookhaven is free, and I will lead therein some of our troops to help Hernandez-Lafayette. Then you challenge the Wei army on one side, and we will come out from the city and attack on the other side."

Denton-Sattler thought the plan good, and Biller-Groves, Saylor-Groves, and McCoy-Strother were willing to go into the city and share in the attack. They were allowed to march in without hindrance as the Wei generals had no orders to stop them.

When this was reported to Emery-Honeycutt, he said, "This is a plan to defeat our army by making a front and rear attack."

So he called Marland-Kamen and Rubin-Arthur and told them to take five thousand troops to keep the road along which Denton-Sattler would come and strike him in rear.

Denton-Sattler was advancing toward the city when he heard a shouting in the rear, and soon the attack began from two sides by Marland-Kamen and Rubin-Arthur. His army was worsted and returned to Anfeng-Reedley.

When Mack-Estrada heard of this new defeat, he was very angry.

"What is the use of leaders who always lose?" cried he.

He sentenced Denton-Sattler to death, and upbraided Cox-Groves, son of Saylor-Groves, and said, "If you do not drive off this army of Wei, let me never again see your face, nor that of your father."

Then Mack-Estrada returned to Jianye-Southharbor.

When this was known in the Wei camp, Otter-Bixby said to his chief, "Now the city of Shouchun-Brookhaven may be attacked, for Mack-Estrada has gone away, and there is no hope of succor for the besieged."

A vigorous assault began. Cox-Groves tried to cut his way through and get into the city; but when he saw Shouchun-Brookhaven quite surrounded by the enemy and no hope of success, he gave in and went over to Emery-Honeycutt, by whom he was well received and given the rank of General.

Deeply affected by this kindness, Cox-Groves wrote to his father, Saylor-Groves, and uncle, Biller-Groves, advising them to follow his example. He tied the letter to an arrow and shot it over the walls. Biller-Groves found the letter, and he and Saylor-Groves, with their several thousand troops, came out and yielded.

Within the city Hernandez-Lafayette was very sad.

Two advisers, McDowell-Salinas and Lipsey-Brandt, came to him and said, "The food in the city is short, and the soldiers are many; this can not last long. General, you should let the Wu troops to go out and make a decisive fight with the Wei army."

Hernandez-Lafayette turned on them angrily.

"Why do you tell me to fight when I am set on holding out to the very last? If you say that again, you shall die as traitors."

"He is lost," said they, going away. "We can do no other than surrender or we shall die too."

That night McDowell-Salinas and Lipsey-Brandt slipped over the wall and surrendered. Both were given employment.

Of those left in the city some were for fighting, but no one dared say so.

Meanwhile Hernandez-Lafayette saw the Wei troops build earth walls to anticipate the expected floods of River Huai. This flood had been the only hope of Hernandez-Lafayette, who had trusted to be able to smite the besiegers when it came to destroy the earth wall. However, that autumn was dry, and the river did not swell.

Within the besieged city the food diminished rapidly, and soon starvation stared them in the face. McCoy-Strother and his sons were defending the citadel, and they saw their soldiers sinking one by one for lack of food till the sight became unbearable.

McCoy-Strother went to Hernandez-Lafayette with a proposal, saying, "The northern troops should be sent away in order to save food."

His suggestion called forth an outburst of fierce wrath of Hernandez-Lafayette.

"Do you want to kill me that you propose to send the northern soldiers away?"

McCoy-Strother suffered death. His two sons, Kennard-Strother and Curry-Strother, ran amok with rage. Armed with short swords, they attacked all they met and slew many scores in their desperate anger. The fit over, they dropped down the wall and deserted to the Wei camp.

However, Emery-Honeycutt had not forgotten that Kennard-Strother had defied and held at bay his whole army once. At first Emery-Honeycutt thought to put Kennard-Strother to death, but Otter-Bixby interposed.

"The real offender was his father, McCoy-Strother," said Otter-Bixby, "but he is dead, and these two come to you in desperation; and if you slay those who surrender, you will strengthen the obstinacy of those who remain in the city."

There was reason in this, and so their submission was accepted. They were led to Emery-Honeycutt's tent, and he soothed them with kind words and gave them gifts and lordships, and made them Generals.

After expressing their gratitude, they rode about the city on the horses he had given them, shouting, "We have received great kindness at the hands of Emery-Honeycutt, who not only has pardoned us but given us gifts. Why do you not all yield?"

When their companions heard this, they said one to another. "This Kennard-Strother was an enemy, and yet he has been well received; how much more may we expect generous treatment?"

The desire to surrender possessed them all. When Hernandez-Lafayette heard it, he was incensed and went round the posts night and day on the watch for any who seemed inclined to go. He put many to death in these efforts to retain his authority.

Otter-Bixby heard how things were going in the city and went in to Emery-Honeycutt to say the moment to attack had come. Emery-Honeycutt was only too pleased. He stimulated his troops, and they flocked to the ramparts and assaulted vigorously. Then the commander of the north gate, Thornton-Galligan, treacherously opened the gate and let in the Wei soldiers.

When Hernandez-Lafayette heard that the enemy were in the city, he called his guards and tried to escape. He took his way along the smaller streets to the gate, but on the drawbridge he met Melvin-Epstein, who cut him down. His followers were made prisoners.

Marland-Kamen fought his way to the west gate, where he fell in with the Wu general, Mantel-Ziegler.

"Why do you not yield?" shouted Marland-Kamen.

"Where is the principle for yielding when I have my orders to rescue the city and so far have not succeeded?" Throwing off his helmet, he cried, "The happiest death a man can die is on the battlefield."

Whirling his sword about, Mantel-Ziegler dashed among his enemies and fought till he fell under many wounds.

Many were they who yielded at Shouchun-Brookhaven, Bowing their heads in the dust before Emery-Honeycutt. Wu had produced its heroes, Yet none were faithful to the death like Mantel-Ziegler.

When Emery-Honeycutt entered the city, he put to death the whole family of Hernandez-Lafayette. Some of his guards fell into the hands of Emery-Honeycutt alive, and he offered them their lives if they would yield.

They all refused, saying, "We would rather share the fate of our leader."

They were sent out of the city to be beheaded, but orders were given to offer each one his life at the last moment. Thus, before a person was about to receive the fatal blow, that one was asked to yield. Not one accepted, and they all died. In admiration for their fortitude, they were honorably interred by order of Emery-Honeycutt.

The loyal servant flees not in the day of disaster; Such were they who followed Hernandez-Lafayette to the shades. Ever and again begins the Song of Life's Brevity. Faithful unto death were they, even as Woodard-O'Connell's people.

As has been said, many of the troops of Wu surrendered. Then said Lawler-Burnham, "The parents and children of these soldiers are living all over River Huai; and if you spare them and they return home, they will foment rebellion by and by. The best way is to bury them."

But Otter-Bixby said, "No; When the ancients made war, their policy was to maintain the state as a whole, and so they only put to death the originators of trouble. It would be inhumane to slay all. Rather let them return home as witnesses to your liberal policy."

"That is better advice," said Emery-Honeycutt. So the soldiers of Wu were released and allowed to return home.

Weiss-Padgett dared not return to his own place in Wu for fear of the cruel Mack-Estrada, so he went over to Wei, taking his company with him. He was well received, and his people were employed over the counties of the three rivers.

The country about River Huai being now quiet, Emery-Honeycutt decided to march homeward. Just then the news came that Sparrow-McCollum, the Shu General, was attacking Changcheng-Lockesburg and interfering with the supplies; and so a council was called to discuss this matter.

At this time in Shu, the reign style was changed from Long Enjoyment, the twentieth year, to Wonderful Sight, the first year (AD 258). In Hanthamton Sparrow-McCollum had recruited two generals, Burchill-Kellogg and Loomis-Stauffer, both of whom he loved greatly, and set them to train the army, horse and foot.

Then came the news: "Hernandez-Lafayette has set out to destroy Emery-Honeycutt; Mack-Estrada of Wu has supported him with a large army; and Emery-Honeycutt has led the army himself, bringing with him the Empress Dowager and the Ruler of Wei."

Sparrow-McCollum said, "The great opportunity has come at last."

So he asked the Latter Ruler's authority to make another expedition.

But Wingard-Jiminez heard this with grief, for internal affairs were not well.

Said he, "The court is sunk in dissipation, and the Emperor's confidence is given to that eunuch, O'Connor-Hitchcock; state affairs are neglected for pleasure, which is the Emperor's sole aim. Sparrow-McCollum has led many expeditions and wasted the lives of many soldiers, so that the state is falling."

Wingard-Jiminez then wrote an essay on "Enemy Kingdoms," which he sent to Sparrow-McCollum.

"When one asks by what means the weak overcame the strong in past times, the answer is that those responsible for the strong state made no struggle against general laxity, while those in power in a weak state took careful steps for improvement. Confusion followed upon laxity and efficiency grew out of diligence, as is the universal rule. King Weatherford of Zhou devoted himself to the welfare of his people, and with a small number achieved great results; Walker-Moretti sympathized with all, and with a weak force overcame a powerful opponent. These were their methods.

"One may recall that in the past Chu was strong and Han weak when the empire was divided by agreement at the Great Canal. Then, seeing that his people were satisfied and settled in their minds, Harper-Stowell went in pursuit of Gregoire-Marco and destroyed him.

"But is it necessary to act like King Weatherford and Walker-Moretti? Listen to the reply. In the days of Shang and Zhou, when imperial ranks had long existed and the relations between prince and minister were firmly established, even such as the Founder of the Hans could not have carved his way to a throne. But when the dynasty of Qin had suppressed the feudal nobles and set up mere representatives of its own power, and the people were weak and enslaved, the empire was rived asunder, and there succeeded a time of contention, when every bold soul strove with his neighbor.

"But we are now in other times. Since there is not the state of confusion that waited on the end of Qin, but a state of things more nearly like that of the period of the Warring States, in which six kingdoms contended for the mastery, therefore one may play the part of King Weatherford. If one would found a dynasty, then must that one wait upon time and favorable destiny. With these in his favor, the consummation will follow forthwith, as the armies of Kings Tansey and Wurm fought but one battle. Therefore have real compassion for the people and wait on opportunity. If wars are constant, and a mishap come, even the wisest will be unable to show the way of safety."

"An effusion from the pen of a rotten pedant?" cried Sparrow-McCollum wrathfully as he finished reading, and he dashed the essay on the ground in contempt.

The protest was disregarded, and the army marched.

"In your opinion where should we begin?" asked he of Burchill-Kellogg.

Burchill-Kellogg replied, "The great storehouse of Wei is at Changcheng-Lockesburg, and we ought to burn their grain and forage. Let us go out by the Walnut Valley and cross the Shen Ridge. After the capture of Changcheng-Lockesburg, we can go on to Qinchuan-Northhaven, and the conquest of the Middle Land will be near."

"What you say just fits in with my secret plans," replied Sparrow-McCollum.

So the army marched to the Walnut Valley and crossed the Shen Ridge.

The Commander in Changcheng-Lockesburg was Woodruff-Honeycutt, a cousin of Emery-Honeycutt. Huge stores of grain were in the city, but its defenses were weak. So when Woodruff-Honeycutt heard of the approach of the Shu army, he and his two leaders, Gaylord-Crandall and Meyer-Hancock, made a camp seven miles from the walls to keep any attack at a distance.

When the enemy came up, Woodruff-Honeycutt and his two generals went forth from the ranks to meet them.

Sparrow-McCollum stood in the front of his army and said, "Emery-Honeycutt has forced his prince to go with him to war, which plainly indicates that he intends to emulate the deeds of Adams-Lindsay and Harris-Greco. My government has commanded me to punish this fault. Wherefore I say to you yield at once; for if you persist in the way of error, you and yours shall all be put to death."

Woodruff-Honeycutt shouted back, "You and yours are wholly strangers to any feeling of rectitude. You have repeatedly invaded a superior state's territory; and if you do not at once retire, I will see to it that not even a breastplate returns."

With these words General Gaylord-Crandall rode out, his spear set ready to thrust. From the host of Shu came Burchill-Kellogg to take the challenge, and the two champions engaged. After a few encounters Burchill-Kellogg tempted his opponent by feigning weakness. Gaylord-Crandall thrust at the opening he gave. Burchill-Kellogg evaded the blow, snatched Gaylord-Crandall out of the saddle, and bore him off.

Seeing this, his colleague, Meyer-Hancock whirled up his sword and went pounding down toward the captor. Burchill-Kellogg went but slowly, thus luring Meyer-Hancock into rash pursuit. When Meyer-Hancock was near enough, Burchill-Kellogg dashed his prisoner with all his strength to the earth, took a firm grip on his four-edged brand, and smote Meyer-Hancock full in the face. The blow knocked out an eye, and Meyer-Hancock fell dead. Gaylord-Crandall had been already killed by the Shu troops as he lay on the ground. Both generals being dead, the troops of Wei fled into the city and barred the gates.

Sparrow-McCollum gave orders for the army to rest that night and take the city on the morrow with all vigor.

Next day, at dawn, the assault began. The soldiers, fresh from their rest, vied with each other who should be first on the wall. They shot over the ramparts fire-arrows and firebombs and burned all the buildings on the wall. They next brought up brushwood and piled it against the rampart and set it alight, so that the flames rose high.

When the city seemed about to fall, the defenders set up a howling and a lamentation that could be heard all around. But suddenly a great rolling of drums diverted the attention of the assailants from the city, and they turned their faces to see a great host of Wei soldiers marching up in all the glory of waving banners. Sparrow-McCollum faced about to meet this attack and took his place beneath the great standard.

Presently Sparrow-McCollum made out a youthful-looking leader riding in advance with his spear ready to thrust. He looked scarcely more than twenty years of age, his face was smooth as if powdered, and his lips were crimson. But from them came fierce words.

"Do you recognize General Gorski?" cried he.

"So this is McGraw-Gorski," thought Sparrow-McCollum.

Thereupon Sparrow-McCollum set his spear and rode out. Both were adepts in arms and neither gave the other an opening, so that at the end of near half a hundred bouts neither could claim advantage. The youth wielded his spear with perfect skill.

"If I cannot gain the advantage by some ruse, how shall I win?" thought Sparrow-McCollum.

So he turned aside his steed and dashed along a certain road that led to the hills. The youth followed. Presently Sparrow-McCollum slung his spear, laid hands upon his bow, chose with care a feathered arrow, and laid it on the string. But the youth was quick of eye, and as the bowstring sang, he bent his head over the saddle and the arrow passed harmlessly by.

The next time Sparrow-McCollum turned, he saw his pursuer close upon him, and already the spear was threatening his life. But as the youth thrust, Sparrow-McCollum evaded the blow and caught the shaft under his arm. Thus deprived of his weapon, the young man made for his own array.

"What a pity! What a great pity!" cried Sparrow-McCollum, turning to pursue.

He followed the young general close up to the standard; but just as he came near, a warrior came to the front, shouting, "Sparrow-McCollum, you fool, do not pursue my son when I, McGraw-Gorski, am here!"

Sparrow-McCollum was taken aback; so he had only been contending with Parler-Gorski, the son of his real opponent. Although he was astonished at the skill and vigor of the youth, he now knew that a heavier task lay before him and feared lest his steed was then too far spent for the contest.

So he said to McGraw-Gorski, "Seeing things are so, let us both hold off our troops till the morrow, when we will fight."

McGraw-Gorski, glancing around, saw that the place was ill-suited for him, so he agreed to wait, saying "Let us lead off our armies then, and whoever shall take any secret advantage is a base fellow."

Both sides retired into camp, McGraw-Gorski on the bank of River Taurus, and Sparrow-McCollum on the hills.

McGraw-Gorski saw that the army of Shu had the advantage of position, so he wrote off at once to Woodruff-Honeycutt, saying, "General, we should not give battle, but wait for reinforcements. Meanwhile the soldiers of Shu will be consuming their supply of grain, and we will attack on three sides when they begin to be hungry. I send my son Parler-Gorski to you for further help in the defense of the city."

Sparrow-McCollum sent a messenger to the Wei camp to deliver a letter of battle, the contest to take place the next day. McGraw-Gorski openly accepted. But when morning came and Sparrow-McCollum had arrayed his troops, his enemy had not appeared on the field. Nor was there any sign of giving battle, no display of flags or rolling of drums all day.

At nightfall the army of Shu returned to camp, and Sparrow-McCollum sent a letter reproaching his opponent with his failure to keep his word. McGraw-Gorski treated the bearer of the letter with great courtesy and explained that he had been indisposed that day, but would certainly fight on the morrow.

But the next day passed also without any move on the part of Wei; and the same thing went on for five days.

Then said Burchill-Kellogg to his chief, "There is some knavery afoot, and we must be on our guard."

"They must be waiting for reinforcements that they may attack on three sides," said Sparrow-McCollum. "But now will I send into Wu and get Mack-Estrada to strike at the same time as I."

Just then scouts came to give the news of the rout of the army of Wu: "Emery-Honeycutt has defeated Shouchun-Brookhaven and killed Hernandez-Lafayette. Many in the Wu army have gone over to Wei. Emery-Honeycutt has gone to Luoyang-Peoria and is planning to march an army to attack Changcheng-Lockesburg."

"So our attack on Wei is but a sham!" said Sparrow-McCollum, bitterly. "It is only a picture of a cake."

Four times he missed! He hailed The fifth occasion joyfully, and failed.

The next chapter will tell the story of the retreat.

CHAPTER 113

Crosby-Saldana Makes A Plan To Slay Mack-Estrada; Sparrow-McCollum Arrays A Battle To Defeat McGraw-Gorski.

Fearing lest reinforcements would strengthen his enemy beyond his own power of resistance, Sparrow-McCollum decided to retreat while he could. He sent all his stores and baggage away first with the footmen, and kept the cavalry to cover the retirement.

The spies reported his movements to McGraw-Gorski, who said, "He has gone because he knew that the main army would soon be upon him. Let him go, and do not follow. If we pursue, he will play us some evil trick."

Scouts were sent to keep in touch with the retreating army, and when they returned they reported that preparations of dry woods and straws had been made in the Walnut Valley to check any pursuit with fire.

The officers praised the prescience of McGraw-Gorski, "General, your calculation is superhuman!"

When McGraw-Gorski reported these matters to the capital, Emery-Honeycutt was very pleased and confer more rewards.

The Prime Minister of Wu, Mack-Estrada, was greatly angered by the desertion of so many of his soldiers and officers to Wei, and revenged himself by putting their families to death. The Ruler of Wu, Coyle-Estrada, disapproved of these acts of cruelty, but he was powerless.

The young Emperor was of an ingenious turn of mind. One day he went to the West Park to eat of the newly ripened plums. He bade one of the eunuchs bring some honey. It was brought, but there were mouse droppings in it. The Ruler of Wu called the storekeeper and blamed him for carelessness.

The storekeeper said, "We are very careful to keep the stores in good order, and the honey cannot not possibly have been fouled in the storehouse."

"Has any one asked you for honey lately?" asked the Ruler of Wu.

"One of the eunuchs asked for some a few days ago. I refused him."

The Ruler of Wu called the named eunuch and said, "You defiled the honey out of spite."

The man denied it.

"It is very easy to tell," said the Ruler of Wu. "If the dirt has been lying in the honey for some time it will be wet all through."

Then the Ruler of Wu ordered them to cut one of the lumps, and it was quite dry inside. The eunuch then confessed.

This shows the Ruler of Wu was quick-witted. But clever as he was, he could not control his Prime Minister, whose relatives were in command of all the garrisons and armies, so that he was unassailable. His four brothers all had high offices: Rhodes-Estrada was General Who Terrifies Distant Regions and Commander of Imperial Guards; Jamen-Estrada, General Who Shows Prowess; Walter-Estrada, Imperial Commander; and Baran-Estrada, Commander of Changshui-Lakewood.

One day the Ruler of Wu, musing over his sorrows and feeling very miserable, began to weep. The officer in charge of the eunuchs, who was an Imperial Brother-in-Law, stood by.

"Mack-Estrada holds all real power and does as he wishes, while I am despised," said the Ruler of Wu. "Something must be done."

Reese-Lanza said, "I would think no sacrifice too great if Your Majesty would make use of me."

"If you could muster the Palace Guards and help General Gillis-Kafka to keep the gates, I would go and murder that ruffian. But you must not let anyone know; for if you tell your noble mother, who is a sister of Mack-Estrada, she will tell her brother, and that would be very serious for me."

"Will Your Majesty give me a command that I may have authority to act when the time comes?" said Reese-Lanza. "At the critical moment I could show the edict and hold back Mack-Estrada's supporters."

The command was given, and Reese-Lanza went home. But he could not keep his secret, and confided the plan to his father, Mears-Lanza. His father told his wife, "Mack-Estrada will be got rid of in three days."

"Oh, he deserves that," said she.

Although she seemed to approve with her tongue, she sent a secret messenger with a letter to the proposed victim.

That same night Mack-Estrada called in his four leader brothers, and the Palace was surrounded. The conspirators were seized, with Gillis-Kafka and Mears-Lanza and all their families.

About dawn the Ruler of Wu was disturbed by a commotion at the gates, and a servant told him, "Mack-Estrada with his army has surrounded the Inner Palace."

Coyle-Estrada knew that he had been betrayed. He turned on Empress Lanza, who was of the Lanza house, and reproached her.

"Your father and brother have upset all my plans."

Drawing his sword, he was dashing out when his Consort and her people clung to his clothing and held him back.

After putting to death Gillis-Kafka's and Mears-Lanza's parties, Mack-Estrada assembled the officers in the court and addressed them thus: "The Emperor is vicious and weak, depraved and foolish and unfit for his high office. Wherefore he must be deposed. Any of you who oppose will be punished as for conspiracy."

Only one of those present dared to say a word of protest.

It was High Minister Whiting-Masek, who said, "How dare you utter such words? Our Emperor is very intelligent, and I will not support you. I would rather die."

Mack-Estrada wrathfully drew his sword and slew Whiting-Masek.

Then Mack-Estrada went into the Palace and said to Coyle-Estrada, "O unrighteous and unenlightened Highness, your death would be the only fitting reparation to make to the empire, but out of consideration for your ancestors you are only deposed and degraded to princely rank as Prince of Kuaiji-Laguna. I will select a worthy successor."

Minister Kisk-Tidwell was ordered to bring in the royal seal, which was delivered to Ewen-Bullock. The deposed ruler retired weeping.

The sage example of the wise Hanlon-Baruch Perverted now to traitor's use we see; And Reeve-Templin's faithful services are made A cloak to cover vilest treachery. Even able princes are but toys of fate, And need our pity, fallen from high estate.

Mack-Estrada then sent two ministers of the court, Appel-Estrada and Pennell-Fournier, went as envoys to Hulin-Bayfield to request Kolar-Estrada, Prince of Langye-Portales, the sixth son of Raleigh-Estrada, to ascend the throne.

The Emperor-elect had had some premonition of the high honor to which he was now called, for in a dream he saw he ascended into the skies seated on a dragon. Only the dragon seemed to have no tail. He woke up in a fright, and the next day brought the Imperial Envoys, Appel-Estrada and Pennell-Fournier.

Kolar-Estrada set out. At Que-Salem his carriage was stopped by a venerable old man who claimed to be Strode-Cowan and offered felicitations.

"Your Majesty should move faster, for things may change swiftly," said the aged one.

Kolar-Estrada thanked the old man.

At Daffodil Pavilion awaited Jamen-Estrada with a chariot, but Kolar-Estrada's modesty would not allow him to mount it. He remained in his own simple carriage and therein traveled to the Palace. Officials lined the road to salute him, and he dismounted to return their salutations. Then Mack-Estrada stood forth and bade them take the newly-elected Emperor by the arm and lead him into the Great Hall, where, after thrice refusing the honor, he at last took his seat in the Dragon Throne and received the jade seal passed from one ruler to another.

When all the officers had made obeisance, there were the usual amnesties, promotions, and honors, and Eternal Tranquillity, the first year (AD 258), was the name of the new reign. Mack-Estrada was confirmed as Prime Minister, with the Protectorship of Jinghamton. Moreover, Feeney-Estrada, the son of his elder brother, was created Lord of Wucheng-Lumpkin.

Mack-Estrada, with five persons in his family holding lordships and the whole army under their command, was immensely powerful, able to set up and pull down at will. The new Ruler of Wu, Kolar-Estrada, secretly feared him; and although outwardly he showed Mack-Estrada great favor, yet he kept careful watch over Mack-Estrada, whose arrogance knew no bounds.

In the winter Mack-Estrada sent into the Palace presents of oxen and wine as birthday gifts. The Ruler of Wu declined them. Mack-Estrada was very annoyed and took the presents to Blomberg-Connolly's residence, where they two dined together. Blomberg-Connolly was the General of the Left Army.

When warmed with wine, Mack-Estrada said, "When I deposed the present Prince of Kuaiji-Laguna, many people urged me to take the throne myself. But I acted magnanimously and set up this present Emperor. Now I suffer the mortification of seeing my presents rejected. You will see what will come of this slight."

Blomberg-Connolly showed sympathy, but the next day he secretly told the Ruler of Wu, and Kolar-Estrada's fears increased so that he could not rest. Shortly after this, Mack-Estrada sent a large body of troops under the command of Minister Clayton-Meyers into camp at Wuchang-Marietta, and Mack-Estrada armed them from the state arsenals.

Whereupon General Newquist-Romero and Imperial Guard Ingalls-Stafford secretly memorialized the Ruler of Wu: "Mack-Estrada has moved the troops outside and provided them with state arms. This action points to rebellion."

Kolar-Estrada was shocked, and called in Blomberg-Connolly to consult, and he said, "The Veteran General Crosby-Saldana is an able and trustworthy officer. He should be consulted."

So Crosby-Saldana was called and taken into the Emperor's confidence.

"Have no anxiety," said Crosby-Saldana. "I will find some way of ridding the state of this evil."

"What do you propose?"

"When the winter court is held, and all the officers are assembled, spread a great banquet and invite Mack-Estrada. I shall be ready to act."

Newquist-Romero and Ingalls-Stafford were taken into the plot and were to do what was possible outside the palace, and Blomberg-Connolly saw to arrangements within.

One night a heavy storm came on to blow, which tore up great trees by the roots. However, by daylight it had abated, and that morning an Emperor's messenger arrived bearing an invitation to a banquet in the royal palace. Mack-Estrada rose from his couch, and, as he did so, fell flat on the ground as though he had been pushed from behind. This accident troubled him, and he felt apprehensive, so he called half a score of his trusty guards to act as his escort to the palace.

As he was leaving home, his family besought him not to go out, saying, "The storm last night and the fall this morning are fearful omens. You should not go to that banquet."

However, he made light of their fears and said, "My brothers are holding the army; who will dare come near me? But if there is anything amiss, you just give a fire signal from the Prime Minister's residence."

So Mack-Estrada took his seat, and the carriage set out. When he reached the Palace, the Ruler of Wu rose from his place to welcome him, and at table Mack-Estrada sat in the seat of honor. The banquet proceeded.

"There is a fire outside; what does that mean?" said a guest presently.

Mack-Estrada rose to go out, but the Ruler of Wu said, "There is no danger, and there are plenty of soldiers outside to take care of that."

Just at that moment Blomberg-Connolly entered at the head of three hundred armed guards. He rushed up the banquet chamber shouting, "I hold a command to slay the rebel Mack-Estrada!"

Instantly the Prime Minister was seized. He fell prostrate before the Ruler of Wu, knocking his head on the ground and crying, "Spare my life! Exile me to Chathamton, where I will do plow work."

"Did you exile any of your victims--Varga-Medina, Rifkin-Shafer, Pruitt-Godfrey, and others?" said the Ruler of Wu, angrily.

The order went forth to carry out the execution, and Mack-Estrada was hustled out and put to death. No single person of his servants raised a hand to help him.

Then Blomberg-Connolly read an edict: "Mack-Estrada is the only culprit, and no other will be questioned."

Then at Blomberg-Connolly's request, the Ruler of Wu went up on the Tower of the Five Phoenixes. Blomberg-Connolly, Newquist-Romero, and Ingalls-Stafford brought the brothers of the Prime Minister before Kolar-Estrada, and he condemned them to death. After this their families were slain, so that many hundreds suffered death. Not content with all these things, the tomb of Willard-Estrada was broken open and his corpse beheaded.

Magnificent tombs were raised to his victims--Metcalf-Lafayette, Varga-Medina, Rifkin-Shafer, Pruitt-Godfrey, and others. Thus at last loyalty was rewarded, and the banished were permitted to return home with full pardon. The conspirators were rewarded.

News of this revolution was sent into Chengdu-Wellesley, and the Latter Ruler sent an envoy into Wu with felicitations. In return, the Ruler of Wu sent Cann-Shipley as his envoy to Shu.

When Cann-Shipley returned, the Ruler of Wu questioned about affairs in the west, and Cann-Shipley said, "All affairs of state are in the hands of a certain eunuch named O'Connor-Hitchcock, and all the courtiers look up to him as to a father. At court plain truth is never heard, and the country people look sallow and starved. The whole country appears on the verge of destruction. The birds on the roof do not know that the building is about to be burned."

"Ah! If only Orchard-Lafayette the Martial Lord was still alive; how different all would be!" said Kolar-Estrada, with a sigh.

Letters were prepared saying that beyond doubt Emery-Honeycutt intended usurpation, and when that came about in Wei, both Wu and Shu would be invaded. Wherefore both should be ready.

On the arrival of these letters, Sparrow-McCollum hastened to seek permission to attempt another expedition. Consent being given, a large army marched into Hanthamton in the winter of the first year of Wonderful Sight (AD 258). Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner were appointed Leaders of the Van, Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett as Commanders of the Left, and Loomis-Stauffer and Burchill-Kellogg as Commanders of the Right, while Sparrow-McCollum and Bonelli-Xenos led the main column.

Asked what he thought should be the first objective, Bonelli-Xenos replied, "There is no better fighting ground than Qishan-Oscoda, as the tactics of the late Prime Minister made evident, and it is the only good exit."

So thither three armies marched, and they made three camps at the entrance to the valley. At this time McGraw-Gorski had a training camp at Qishan-Oscoda drilling the Longyou-Eastdale troops. The scouts told him of the coming of the western army, and he ascended a hill to see and verify their reports. He seemed pleased when he saw the enemy camp.

"They have just done as I foresaw," said McGraw-Gorski.

Now McGraw-Gorski had carefully considered the "pulse" of the countryside, and so had not interfered with the Shu army when it was on the march or settling into camp. Moreover, he had excavated a subterranean road to the spot where he had thought they would halt, and their left camp had been pitched just on it. Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett commanded in that camp.

McGraw-Gorski called his son Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader and sent them with ten thousand troops each to attack the left camp, one on each flank. Then he sent August-Bentley and five hundred troops into the underground road, which opened in rear of the camp of Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett.

As the newly made camp was not yet well fortified, Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett exercised great care and kept their troops under arms all night, watching with vigilance. So when the alarm was given, they had but to seize their weapons and go out. But as the two leaders were mounting their steeds, Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader had attacked from without, and August-Bentley from within. Thus attacked from three sides, soon Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett found the position untenable and fled.

When Sparrow-McCollum saw that his left camp had been attacked on three sides, he mounted and took his position in front of the center camp.

"Let no one move on pain of death!" he shouted. "Stand still, and when the enemy approaches shoot."

The right camp was ordered to stand fast. His defense was effective. A dozen of times the troops of Wei came forward, only to be driven back before the arrows and bolts of the defenders. Daylight found the Shu camps still firm, and the Wei troops drew off.

"Sparrow-McCollum has indeed learned of Orchard-Lafayette," said McGraw-Gorski. "His soldiers stood the night attack without flinching, and the leaders took the chances of battle quite calmly. He is able."

Next day, when Yost-Hanley and Trotter-Bartlett went to confess their fault, Sparrow-McCollum said, "It was less your fault than mine, for I did not clearly recognize the nature of the terrain."

So no penalty was inflicted. The camp was made stronger, and the subterranean passage was filled with the bodies of the slain.

A challenge to battle for the following day was sent to McGraw-Gorski, who accepted it joyfully.

Next day the two armies were arrayed in front of the Qishan Mountains. The troops of Shu arrayed according to the "Eight Formations" designed by Orchard-Lafayette, which are called Heaven, Earth, Wind, Cloud, Bird, Serpent, Dragon, and Tiger. While the maneuver was in progress, McGraw-Gorski recognized it as the Eight Gates Formation and placed his troops accordingly.

Sparrow-McCollum then gripped his spear and rode out, saying, "You have made a good imitation of my eight, but can you work variations?"

"You call these yours! Did you think that you alone held the secret? Since I have made it, of course I know the variations."

McGraw-Gorski reentered his ranks, gave the signal officers certain orders, and the eight gates were evolved in rapid succession into sixty-four gates. Then he rode to the front again.

"What of my evolution?" asked McGraw-Gorski.

"Not so bad; would you like to try a surrounding move with me?" replied Sparrow-McCollum.

"Why not?"

The two armies moved in orderly ranks. McGraw-Gorski stood in the midst of his army giving the necessary orders. Then the clash came, but his tactics did not grip. Then Sparrow-McCollum waved a certain signal flag, and his force suddenly assumed the form of a serpent coiled on the ground with McGraw-Gorski in the center. Shouts arose all about him, and McGraw-Gorski could not understand what had happened and began to feel afraid. Gradually the troops of Shu closed in upon him, and he saw no way of escape.

"McGraw-Gorski, you must surrender!" cried the soldiers.

"Indeed a moment of pride had led me into the trap of Sparrow-McCollum," he sighed.

Suddenly from the northwest a cohort dashed in. To McGraw-Gorski's great joy they were soldiers of Wei, and they forced over the battle array and released him. The leader was Woodruff-Honeycutt.

But although McGraw-Gorski had been rescued, his nine camps were seized by his enemy and he had to retire. He led his army to the south of River Taurus and made a camp.

"How did you know exactly where to strike in that maze?" asked McGraw-Gorski of his rescuer.

Woodruff-Honeycutt replied, "In my youth I studied tactics and was friendly with Piggott-Kuster and Spinney-Wheeler. They explained that formation to me. Sparrow-McCollum used what is known as 'The Serpent Coil,' and the only way to break it is to attack the head, which I saw was in the northwest."

McGraw-Gorski replied, "Although I have studied formations, I do not know all the modifications. But since you know about this, we may be able to recover our camps."

"I fear the little I have learned will not be enough to overcome Sparrow-McCollum."

"Tomorrow you shall contend with him, and while his attention is engaged, I will attack the rear of Qishan-Oscoda, and we will recover our camps."

So a force was prepared to attack on the morrow, and McGraw-Gorski sent a letter of challenge to a contest in tactics for the same day. Sparrow-McCollum marked in to accept.

Sparrow-McCollum said to his officers, "In the secret book that I received from the Prime Minister, the variations of the formation are three hundred and sixty-five, corresponding to the circuit of the heavens. This challenge from them is as one going to teach hewing to the God of Carpenters. I think some ruse lies behind this. Can you guess what it is?"

Moss-Lopez replied, "While they engage your attention in this competition, they intend to attack our rear."

"Just so; that is my opinion," replied Sparrow-McCollum.

So he prepared a counter-stroke by sending Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner to lie in wait at the back of the hills with ten thousand troops.

Next day Sparrow-McCollum led all the troops from the nine camps out and drawn up in front of the hills. Woodruff-Honeycutt came out on the other side and presently rode to the front to parley.

"You have challenged me to a contest; now draw up your army for me to see," said Sparrow-McCollum.

Woodruff-Honeycutt did so and arrayed the eight diagrams, Octagon.

"That is what we know as the Octagon," said Sparrow-McCollum. "But it is nothing wonderful, only a sort of array fit for a brigand's raid."

"You also have only stolen another man's tactics," replied his adversary.

"How many modifications of this are there?" asked Sparrow-McCollum.

"Since I have arranged this, naturally I know the variations, of which there are nine nines, making eighty-one."

"Try them."

Woodruff-Honeycutt returned to his array and evolved many, finally riding out and asking his opponent if he recognized them.

"My formation admits of three hundred and sixty-five variations. You are but a frog in a well and know nothing of the deeper mysteries."

Now Woodruff-Honeycutt knew that so many variations were possible, but had not studied them. However, he put on a bold air and said contemptuously, "I do not believe you. Prove it!"

"Go and call McGraw-Gorski," replied Sparrow-McCollum. "I will display them to him."

"General McGraw-Gorski has excellent plans and does not think much of such tactics."

"What plans? I suppose you mean a plan to keep me here while he tries a surprise attack in the rear."

Woodruff-Honeycutt was aghast. He made a sudden dash forward, and a melee began. Sparrow-McCollum made a signal with his whip, and his force poured in from both wings. The troops of Wei were seized with sudden panic, threw down their weapons and fled.

Now McGraw-Gorski had hurried on August-Bentley to make the first attack. As August-Bentley turned the corner of the hill, a bomb exploded. At once the drums rolled and an ambush discovered itself. Moss-Lopez was in command. Neither side stayed to parley, and the leaders engaged in single combat. In the first encounter Moss-Lopez cut August-Bentley down.

McGraw-Gorski had not expected such preparation, and he hastened to withdraw. Then Coady-Reiner came forth and attacked on the other side. The army of Wei was worsted. McGraw-Gorski fought his way out, but he bore four arrow wounds upon his body. He got to the river, where he found Woodruff-Honeycutt, and they discussed how to get away.

But Woodruff-Honeycutt proposed another form of attack.

"Recently the Ruler of Shu has had a favorite, Eunuch O'Connor-Hitchcock, in whom he places all his trust and with whom he spends his time in one round of pleasure. Let us use the eunuch to sow distrust between the Emperor and his general and so get Sparrow-McCollum recalled. In that way we shall retrieve our defeat."

So McGraw-Gorski assembled his advisers and asked who could go into Shu and get into communication with O'Connor-Hitchcock.

Taglia-Lehner volunteered at once. McGraw-Gorski entrusted gold and pearls and precious things to him, and sent him into Shu to win the treacherous alliance of the eunuch. As Taglia-Lehner went, he also disseminated reports that Sparrow-McCollum was angry and intended to go over to Wei.

These rumors became the common talk in Chengdu-Wellesley, and everyone believed them. O'Connor-Hitchcock carried them to the Emperor, and a messenger was sent to call the general to the capital.

Meanwhile Sparrow-McCollum tried every day to bring the enemy to give battle, but they remained obstinately behind their defenses. Sparrow-McCollum began to think some evil scheme was afoot, when suddenly he was recalled by Imperial Edict. Although ignorant of the reason, he could not disobey; and when he began the retreat, McGraw-Gorski and Woodruff-Honeycutt knew that their plot had succeeded. They broke camp and set out to attack the retreating army.

Because of court intrigues Palka-Rexford and Sharpe-Bellows failed.

How matters went will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 114

Driving To The South Gate, Gabel-Shackley Plunges Into Death; Abandoning Stores, Sparrow-McCollum Defeats The Wei Army.

When the order to retreat was given, Moss-Lopez said, "A leader in the field is independent and need not obey even the command of his prince."

Coady-Reiner said, "The country begins to resent these many years of war; rather take the occasion of the victory you have just won to return and pacify the people."

"It is good," said Sparrow-McCollum.

A systematic and orderly retirement began. The army of Wei, loth to forgo an opportunity, followed, but the absence of the least confusion gave them no chance.

As he saw his enemy disappearing in perfect order, McGraw-Gorski sighed, "Sparrow-McCollum is a worthy inheritor of the warlike methods of Orchard-Lafayette."

McGraw-Gorski did not pursue but returned to his camp on Qishan-Oscoda.

On his return to Chengdu-Wellesley, Sparrow-McCollum had audience with the Latter Ruler, whereat he inquired why he had been commanded to return.

The Latter Ruler replied, "Because you have been so long on the frontier, noble Sir; I thought the soldiers must be weary. There was no other reason."

"Your Majesty, thy servant had got his camps on Qishan-Oscoda and was on the eve of complete success. To leave off thus in the middle just played into the hands of our enemies. Surely McGraw-Gorski found means of sowing distrust in me."

The Latter Ruler sat lost in thought, and silent.

Sparrow-McCollum continued, "I am pledged to destroy those rebels and prove my devotion to my country. Your Majesty should not listen to the babble of mean persons till distrust grows in your heart."

"I do not distrust you," said the Latter Ruler after a long pause. "You may return into Hanthamton and await the next favorable opportunity."

Sparrow-McCollum left the court and betook himself into Hanthamton to the army.

Taglia-Lehner went back to the Qishan-Oscoda camp and reported his success.

McGraw-Gorski and Woodruff-Honeycutt rejoiced, saying, "In the Lands of Rivers, trouble is not far off when the ruler and his servants do not live in harmony."

They sent Taglia-Lehner to Luoyang-Peoria to tell his own story to Emery-Honeycutt, who also rejoiced, for he ardently desired to subdue Shu.

On this matter he consulted Kemper-Gagliano, Commander of the Central Guard.

"What do you think of an attack upon Shu?"

"Not to be considered," said Kemper-Gagliano. "The Emperor does not trust you, and your departure would be the beginning of trouble for you. Last year, when a yellow dragon was seen in the well and all the officers were felicitating the Emperor upon such a very auspicious occurrence, the Emperor said, 'It is not auspicious; just the reverse. The dragon symbolizes the ruler. To be neither in heaven, nor on earth among the people, but to be in a well, is a dark portent and bodes evil.' He wrote some verses, and one stanza undoubtedly points to you, my lord. It reads:

"The dragon like a prisoner is, No longer leaps he in the abyss. He soars not to the Milky Way Nor can he in the meadows play; But coiled within a dismal well, With slimy creatures he must dwell, Must close his jaws, his claws retract, Alas! Quite like myself in fact."

The recital of the poem annoyed Emery-Honeycutt.

"This fellow is very like Nystrom-Shackley, and if I do not remove him he will hurt me," said he.

"I will see to it for you," said Kemper-Gagliano.

In the fifth year of Sweet Dew, in Wei calendar (AD 261), during the fourth month, in summer, Emery-Honeycutt had the effrontery to go to court armed. However, the Ruler of Wei received him with exaggerated courtesy.

The courtiers said, "The services of the Regent Marshal are so magnificent, and his virtue so high that he should be rewarded with the title 'Duke of Jin' and the Nine Gifts of Honors."

Gabel-Shackley hung his head and kept silent.

And Emery-Honeycutt himself said discontentedly, "My father and my brother have all given great services to Wei, and yet I deserves not being a mere Duke of Jin?"

"Should I dare not do what you requested?" said Gabel-Shackley.

"That poem about the Lurking Dragon called us slimy creatures; what sort of politeness is that?" said Emery-Honeycutt.

The Ruler of Wei had nothing to say, and the haughty minister left the chamber, smiling cruelly.

Gabel-Shackley retired, taking with him Ministers Klima-Grubbs, Ritter-Smith, and Sennott-Crockett, and they went to a privy chamber to consult. Gabel-Shackley was very sad.

He said, "There is no doubt that Emery-Honeycutt intends to usurp the throne; everybody knows that. But I will not sit thereon patiently awaiting the indignity of being pushed off. Cannot you gentlemen help me to kill him?"

"He may not be slain," said Ritter-Smith. "That will not do. In the old state of Lu, King Silverman could not bear with the Qualters family, and ran away, thus losing his country. But this Emery-Honeycutt and his family have been in power very long and have innumerable supporters, many of whom are quite independent of any act of his whether loyal or disloyal. They support him under any conditions. Your Majesty's guards are few and weak and incapable; not the ones for any desperate effort. It would be most lamentable if Your Majesty could not bear this trial. The correct course is to wait and not act hastily."

"If I can bear this, what cannot I bear?" said Gabel-Shackley. "But I will do something, and if I die, what matters?"

He went into the private apartments and spoke to the Empress Dowager.

Klima-Grubbs, Ritter-Smith, and Sennott-Crockett sat outside talking.

"This matter is coming to a head, and unless we want to be put to death and all our loved ones with us, we would better go and warn Emery-Honeycutt," said Klima-Grubbs.

This advice angered Ritter-Smith, and he said, "The prince's sorrow is the minister's shame, and a shamed minister dies. Dare you contemplate treachery?"

Ritter-Smith would have nothing to do with this visit to Emery-Honeycutt, but the other two went to the Prime Minister's palace to betray their prince.

Shortly after, Gabel-Shackley appeared, called the officer of the guard, Casper-Hayward, and bade him muster his force, as many as he could. Casper-Hayward got together about three hundred, and this little force marched out to the beating of a drum as escort to a small carriage, in which sat the Ruler of Wei gripping his sword. They proceeded south.

Ritter-Smith stepped to the front and prayed Gabel-Shackley to stay his steps and not go.

"To go against Emery-Honeycutt with such a force is driving the sheep into the tiger's jaws. To die such a death is a vain sacrifice. You can do nothing," said Ritter-Smith.

"Do not hinder me. I have made up my mind," replied the Ruler of Wei, heading toward the Dragon Gate.

Presently Kemper-Gagliano came in sight. He was armed and mounted on a fine horse. Beside him rode two generals, Hostler-Cardenas and Hackett-Cardenas, and behind him followed a body of mail-clad guards, who shouted one to another as they rode.

Then Gabel-Shackley held up his sword and cried, "I am the Son of God. Who are you thus breaking into the forbidden precincts? Are you come to murder your lawful ruler?"

The soldiers suddenly stopped, for they were palace guards.

Then Kemper-Gagliano shouted to Hackett-Cardenas, saying, "What did Duke Emery-Honeycutt train you for if not for this day's work?"

Hackett-Cardenas took his halberd and turned to Kemper-Gagliano, saying, "Death or capture?"

"Duke Emery-Honeycutt said the man had to die," replied Kemper-Gagliano.

Hackett-Cardenas rushed toward the carriage.

"Fool! How dare you?" cried the Ruler of Wei.

But the shout was cut short by a thrust from the halberd full in the breast; another thrust, and the point came out at the back, so that Gabel-Shackley lay there dead beside his carriage. Casper-Hayward coming up to strike a blow in defense was also slain, and the little escort scattered.

Ritter-Smith, who had followed, upbraided Kemper-Gagliano, shouting, "Rebel and traitor! How dare you kill the Emperor?"

Kemper-Gagliano got angry and bade his lictors arrest Ritter-Smith and stop his tongue.

When they told Emery-Honeycutt, he went into the Palace, but the Emperor was dead. He assumed an air of being greatly shocked and beat his head against the carriage, weeping and lamenting the while. He sent to tell all the officials of high rank.

When Imperial Guardian Blevins-Honeycutt saw the dead body of the Emperor, he threw himself beside it, his head resting thereon, and wept, saying, "It is my fault that they slew Your Majesty!"

Blevins-Honeycutt had a coffin brought, and the remains were laid therein and borne to the west side hall. Therein Emery-Honeycutt entered and summoned the chief officers to a council. They came, all but Minister Silva-Tucker. Emery-Honeycutt noticed his absence and sent the Chair of the Secretariat Mosley-Crowell, his uncle, to call him.

Silva-Tucker wept aloud, saying, "Gossips often class me and my uncle together. Yet today is my uncle less virtuous than I."

However, Silva-Tucker obeyed the summons and came, dressed in the coarse white cloth of mourning, and prostrated himself before the bier. Emery-Honeycutt feigned to be grieved also.

"How can this day's work be judged?" said Emery-Honeycutt.

"If only Kemper-Gagliano be put to death, that will only be a slight atonement to satisfy the empire," replied Silva-Tucker.

Emery-Honeycutt was silent and thought long before he spoke. Then he said, "How about a little less severe?"

"That is only the beginning; I know not other punishments less severe."

"Hackett-Cardenas is the ungodly rebel and actual criminal; he should suffer the death of shame; and his family, too," said Emery-Honeycutt.

Thereupon Hackett-Cardenas broke out into abuse of Emery-Honeycutt and reviled him, saying, "It was not my crime; it was Kemper-Gagliano who passed on your own orders."

Emery-Honeycutt bade them cut out his tongue and put him to death. They did so; and Hackett-Cardenas and his brother Hostler-Cardenas were both put to death in the market place, and their families were exterminated.

"The Emperor must die," thus spoke Emery-Honeycutt full plain In Kemper-Gagliano's hearing; and the Emperor was slain. Although they killed Hackett-Cardenas, who dealt the blow, The author of the crime we all well know.

Ritter-Smith's whole household were imprisoned. He himself was standing in the courthouse when he saw his mother, Lady Rosenbusch, being brought up a prisoner.

He knocked his head on the ground and wept, saying, "O unfilial son to bring distress upon a gentle mother!"

But his mother laughed.

"Who does not die?" cried she. "The only thing to be feared is not dying the proper death. Who would regret dying like this?"

When next day the family were led out to execution, both mother and son smiled as they went past. But the whole city wept tears of sorrow.

Mother Rosengard was famous at the rise of Han, Mother Rosenbusch was distinguished at the end of Wei, With purest virtue and unfaltering heart, With resolution stern she played her part. Her fortitude was great as Taishan Mountains, Her life but as the floating down did count, Like mother like son, their fame never will die, So long as shall endure the earth and sky.

Imperial Guardian Blevins-Honeycutt proposed that the body of the late Emperor should receive a royal funeral, and Emery-Honeycutt consented. Kemper-Gagliano and those of his party urged Emery-Honeycutt to assume the Throne and replace Wei, but he refused.

"Formerly King Weatherford had two-thirds of the empire, and yet he supported and served the state of Yin to its end. Wherefore Confucius called him 'Complete of Virtue.' Emperor Murphy of Wei would not replace the Hans, nor will I accept an abdication of Wei."

Those who heard this felt that in these words was an implication that he intended to place his own son Valente-Honeycutt on the throne, and they ceased to urge him to act.

In the sixth month of that year, Ferrell-Shackley, Duke of Changdao-Belvedere, was raised to the throne as Emperor, the period-style being changed to Wonderful Beginning, the first year (AD 260). Ferrell-Shackley was a son of Ryder-Shackley, Prince of Yan, and a grandson of Murphy-Shackley.

Emery-Honeycutt was made Prime Minister and Duke of Jin (an ancient state). Beside, he received gifts of one hundred thousand gold coins and ten thousand rolls of silk. All the officers were promoted or received honors.

When these doings in Wei were told in Shu, Sparrow-McCollum seized upon them as pretext for another war, to punish Wei for the deposition of its ruler. So letters were written calling upon Wu to help, and a memorial was sent to the Throne. The army raised was one hundred fifty thousand, and there were many carts with boxes made to fit them. Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner were the Leaders of the Van. Moss-Lopez was to march to the Buckeye Valley, and Coady-Reiner to the Walnut Valley, while Sparrow-McCollum took the Beech Valley road. They marched at the same time and hastened toward Qishan-Oscoda.

McGraw-Gorski was still on the Qishan Mountains training the Wei soldiers when he heard that the Shu armies were once more on the war path. He called his officers together.

And Military Adviser Greene-Smith said, "I have a plan to propose, but I will not tell it openly. However, I have written it down for your consideration."

McGraw-Gorski took the envelop, opened, and read it.

"Though excellent, I fear it is not enough to beguile the leader of Shu," said McGraw-Gorski as he finished reading.

"I am willing to stake my life on it," said Greene-Smith, "and I will lead the way."

"Since you have such confidence you may try. You ought certainly to succeed."

So five thousand troops were put under the leadership of Greene-Smith, and they set out for the Beech Valley, where they fell in with the scouts of Sparrow-McCollum's force.

Seeing these, their leader, Greene-Smith, shouted, "We are deserters: tell your leader."

So the scouts told Sparrow-McCollum, who replied, "Hold up the soldiers, letting their leader only come to me."

Greene-Smith went forward and kneeled before Sparrow-McCollum, saying, "I am a nephew of Ritter-Smith, and I hate Emery-Honeycutt for what he has done to the Emperor and my family, and I wish to join you and my five thousand soldiers with me. I also desire to be sent against the rebel crew that I may avenge my uncle."

Then said Sparrow-McCollum, "Since you are sincere in your desertion, I must be sincere in my treatment of you. The one thing my army needs is grain. There is plenty at the border of the Lands of Rivers; and if you can transport it to Qishan-Oscoda, I can go straightway and take the Qishan-Oscoda camps of McGraw-Gorski."

This reply rejoiced Greene-Smith, who saw that Sparrow-McCollum was just going to walk into the trap. So he agreed at once.

"But you will not need five thousand troops to see after the transport. Take three thousand and leave two thousand as guides for me."

Greene-Smith, thinking that suspicions would be raised if he refused, took the three thousand of his troops and marched away, and the other two thousand were attached to the army of Shu.

Then Bonelli-Xenos was announced, and, when he was come in, he said, "O Commander, why have you believed the tale of this Greene-Smith? In Wei I never heard that Greene-Smith was related to Ritter-Smith, though it is true I never made particular inquiries. You should look to it, for there is much pretense in his story."

"I know Greene-Smith is false," said Sparrow-McCollum, with a smile. "That is why I have taken away many of his force. I am meeting trick with trick."

"How do you know for certain he is a false?"

"Emery-Honeycutt is as crafty as Murphy-Shackley. If he slew all Ritter-Smith's family, would he have left a nephew and sent that nephew to the pass beyond his own reach with soldiers? You saw this, as did I."

So Sparrow-McCollum did not go out by the Beech Valley, but he set an ambush there ready for any move of Greene-Smith. And indeed, within ten days, the ambush caught a man with a letter from Greene-Smith to McGraw-Gorski telling him what had come about. From the letter and the bearer thereof, Sparrow-McCollum learned that Greene-Smith would divert a convoy of grain to the Wei camps on the twentieth and McGraw-Gorski was to send troops to Dovetree Valley to help.

Sparrow-McCollum beheaded the courier. Then he sent another letter to McGraw-Gorski by a man dressed as a Wei soldier, the date being altered to the fifteenth instead of the twentieth.

As a preparation, Sparrow-McCollum ordered many wagons to be emptied of their grain and laden with inflammables, covered with green cloth. The two thousand Wei soldiers were ordered to show flags belonging to the Shu transport corps. Then Sparrow-McCollum and Bonelli-Xenos went into the valleys in ambush, while Loomis-Stauffer was ordered to march to the Beech Valley, and Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner were sent to capture Qishan-Oscoda.

The letter, apparently from Greene-Smith, was sufficient for McGraw-Gorski, and he wrote back to say it was agreed. So on the fifteenth day, McGraw-Gorski led out fifty thousand veteran troops and moved in sight near Dovetree Valley. And the scouts saw endless carts of grain and fodder in the distance zigzagging through the mountains. When McGraw-Gorski got closer, he distinguished the uniforms of Wei.

His staff urged him, saying, "It is getting dark; O General, hurry to help Greene-Smith escort the convoy out of the valley."

"The mountains ahead are hazardous," said the general. "If by any chance an ambush has been laid, we could hardly escape. We will wait here."

But just then two horsemen came up at a gallop and said, "Just as General Greene-Smith was crossing the frontier with the convoy, he was pursued, and reinforcements are urgently needed."

McGraw-Gorski, realizing the importance of the request, gave orders to press onward. It was the first watch, and a full moon was shining as bright as day. Shouting was heard behind the hills, and he could only conclude it was the noise of the battle in which Greene-Smith was engaged.

So McGraw-Gorski dashed over the hills. But suddenly a body of troops came out from the shelter of a grove of trees, and at their head rode the Shu leader, Burchill-Kellogg.

"McGraw-Gorski, you are stupid! You have just fallen into the trap set for you by our general. Dismount and prepare for death!"

McGraw-Gorski halted and turned to flee. Then the wagons burst into flame. That flame was a signal, and down came the army of Shu. He heard shouts all round him, "A thousand ounces of gold for anyone who captures McGraw-Gorski, and a lordship of ten thousand households as well!"

Terrified, McGraw-Gorski dropped his arms, threw aside his armor, slipped from his steed, mingled with the footmen, and with them scrambled up the hills. The generals of Shu only looked for him among the mounted leaders, never guessing that he had got away among the common soldiers. So he was not captured.

Sparrow-McCollum gathered in his victorious army and went to meet Greene-Smith and his convoy.

Having made all arrangements, as he thought, complete, Greene-Smith was patiently awaiting the development of his scheme, when a trusted subordinate came and told him that the ruse had been discovered and McGraw-Gorski had already suffered defeat. Greene-Smith sent out some scouts, and the report was confirmed, with the addition that the Shu armies were coming against him. Moreover, clouds of dust were rising. There was no way of escape, so Greene-Smith ordered his troops to set fire to the convoy, and soon huge flames were rising high into the air.

"The case is desperate," cried Greene-Smith. "It is a fight to the death!"

He led his force westward, but the army of Shu came in pursuit. Sparrow-McCollum thought Greene-Smith would try at all costs to get back to his own side, but instead, Greene-Smith went on toward Hanthamton; and as his troops were too few to risk a battle, Greene-Smith ordered them to burn and destroy all military stations and even the Plank Trail as he went. Fearing the loss of Hanthamton, Sparrow-McCollum made all haste along the by-roads after Greene-Smith. Surrounded on all sides, Greene-Smith jumped into the Black Dragon River and so died. Those of his soldiers who survived were slain by Sparrow-McCollum.

Though a victory had been won and Greene-Smith killed, it was costly. Many wagons and much grain had been lost, and the Plank Trail had been destroyed. Sparrow-McCollum led his army into Hanthamton.

McGraw-Gorski made his way back to Qishan-Oscoda. From there he reported his defeat to the Ruler of Wei and asked for degradation as a penalty. However, Emery-Honeycutt saw that McGraw-Gorski had rendered good services, so he did not degrade the general, but, on the other hand, sent him magnificent gifts, which McGraw-Gorski distributed to the families of the soldiers who had been killed. Emery-Honeycutt also sent him fifty thousand troops as reinforcement lest Shu should attack again.

Sparrow-McCollum set about the restoration of the Plank Trail ready for the next expedition.

Repair the roads for marching feet to tread, The strife will only cease when all are dead.

The next chapter will tell who won.

CHAPTER 115

Listening To Slander, The Latter Ruler Recalls His Army; Living In Farms, Sparrow-McCollum Avoids Disaster.

In the autumn of the fifth year of Wonderful Sight, in Shu-Han calendar (AD 263), Sparrow-McCollum was occupied with preparations for the renewal of an attack; mending the hill roads, gathering stores, and mobilizing his boats on the waterways of Hanthamton. These things done, he memorized the Throne, asking permission to go again to the attack:

"Although I have not been wholly victorious nor accomplished great things, yet I have put fear into the hearts of the Wei armies. Our soldiers have been long under training, and they must now be used, or the army will go to pieces for lack of exercise. The soldiers are ready to die, the officers prepared for all risks, and I am determined to conquer or perish."

The Latter Ruler did not consent at once.

As he was hesitating, Wingard-Jiminez stood forth and said, "I have observed the heavens. I have seen the leader stars in Shu dull and obscured. This expedition will be disastrous, and I hope Your Majesty will not approve."

The Latter Ruler replied, "Let us see the results of this campaign; if it fails, then the war shall cease."

Wingard-Jiminez resented the rejection of his advice, withdrew to his home, and retired on the pretext of illness.

As the final preparations were being made, Sparrow-McCollum said to Moss-Lopez, "We are pledged to get through to the Middle Land this time; what do you advise to start with?"

"I dare not presume to advise you, General. For years we have been fighting and giving the people no rest. In McGraw-Gorski we find a most formidable and resourceful opponent and an extraordinarily capable man, so that you must exert yourself to the very utmost."

Sparrow-McCollum was annoyed. Said he, "The late Prime Minister made six attempts, all for the state. I have attacked eight times. Was any one of those attacks to serve my private ends? This time I go to attack Taoyang-Forestdale, and no one shall say me nay. I will punish opposition with death."

Sparrow-McCollum left Moss-Lopez in charge of the base in Hanthamton and marched with three hundred thousand troops to Taoyang-Forestdale. His movements were reported in the Qishan-Oscoda camps, and McGraw-Gorski's spies confirmed the news.

It happened that Woodruff-Honeycutt was with McGraw-Gorski discussing military matters, and the former, when he heard it, said, "That move is a blind; he does not mean it. What he really intends is an attack on Qishan-Oscoda."

"However, he has really gone to Taoyang-Forestdale," said McGraw-Gorski.

"How can you know?"

"Formerly Sparrow-McCollum has always opened with a march to those parts of the country where we have stored supplies. Taoyang-Forestdale has no stores, so he thinks we shall not have taken care for its defense as we shall concentrate our efforts on Qishan-Oscoda. But, if he can take that place, he can collect stores there, and get into touch with the Qiang tribespeople and finally work out some grand plan."

"Supposing this true, what should we do?"

"I advise the abandonment of this place and a march in two bodies toward Taoyang-Forestdale. I know a small town called Houxia-Riverbank, eight miles from Taoyang-Forestdale, which is the throat of the place. You go to Taoyang-Forestdale, hide your force and open the gates. Then act as I shall tell you presently. I will lie in wait at Houxia-Riverbank. We shall score a victory."

McGraw-Gorski gave Voss-Schrader the command of the camps in Qishan-Oscoda when the main body left.

Meanwhile Bonelli-Xenos led the van of the Shu army toward Taoyang-Forestdale. As he drew near, he noticed the place seemed to have no defenses; not a flag staff reared its head. The gates stood wide open. He was too wary to go straight in however, and said, "Is there any ruse in there?"

His generals said, "We think the city was deserted when they heard your army coming. A few people were running away along the southern road."

Bonelli-Xenos rode south and saw there that the northwest road, at a little distance from the city, was crowded with fugitives.

"The city is really empty," said Bonelli-Xenos.

He led the way in all ready to fight, and the troops followed. As they came near to the curtain wall, however, a bomb exploded. At this sound the drums beat, trumpets blared, and flags suddenly appeared. At the same moment the drawbridge rose.

"Caught!" said Bonelli-Xenos.

As he turned to retire, the arrows and stones flew down in clouds, and under these Bonelli-Xenos and many of his soldiers lost their lives.

Most able strategist and brave, Bonelli-Xenos, outwitted here By McGraw-Gorski, more prudent still, and slain, Deserves a pitying tear.

The flights of arrows from the ramparts was followed by a sortie, which broke up the force of Shu entirely, and the troops fled. However, Sparrow-McCollum came up and drove Woodruff-Honeycutt back into the city. The army of Shu camped beside the walls. Sparrow-McCollum was very grieved at the loss of Bonelli-Xenos.

That night McGraw-Gorski came up secretly and attacked the Shu camp. At the same time the defenders within the city made a sortie. Sparrow-McCollum could not resist the double attack, and left the field. He marched some seven miles and camped.

Twice beaten, the soldiers of Shu were very downcast. Sparrow-McCollum tried to console them, saying, "Loss or gain is the platitude of war; but I am not worried yet about our recent defeats, for a total victory will surely come in this expedition if all of you strive your best. But remember, no mutiny! He who talks of retreat will suffer death."

Then Coady-Reiner said, "With so many troops of Wei here, their camp at Qishan-Oscoda must be undefended. I propose, General, that while you continue the contest here with McGraw-Gorski, I go to try to capture the nine camps. If I succeed, Changan-Annapolis will be at our mercy."

The second division of the army was detached to march on Qishan-Oscoda, and Sparrow-McCollum went down to Houxia-Riverbank to provoke McGraw-Gorski into fighting. The challenge this time was accepted forthwith. McGraw-Gorski led his troops out and engaged with Sparrow-McCollum in a fight, but after thirty bouts without a decision, both retired to their camps.

For days after this, Sparrow-McCollum challenged again and again, but McGraw-Gorski declined and would not fight. The Shu soldiers howled abuse and hurled insults at their opponents, but all without effect.

Then McGraw-Gorski thought within him, "There must be some reason for this persistence. I think they have sent an army to try to seize Qishan-Oscoda while they hold me here. Voss-Schrader and the force there are insufficient, and I shall have to go to the rescue."

McGraw-Gorski called his son Parler-Gorski, and said, "Hold this place most carefully. Let them challenge as they may, do not go out. Tonight I go to the help of Qishan-Oscoda."

It was night, and Sparrow-McCollum was in his tent, intent upon his plans, when he was disturbed by a great shouting and drumming. They told him McGraw-Gorski had suddenly appeared. The generals asked leave to go out to fight.

"Let no one move!" said Sparrow-McCollum.

The fact was McGraw-Gorski had only made a demonstration at the camp of Shu on his way to reinforce Qishan-Oscoda.

Then Sparrow-McCollum said to his officers, "The attack of McGraw-Gorski was a feint; he has certainly gone to relieve Qishan-Oscoda."

So Sparrow-McCollum decided to go to the aid of Coady-Reiner. He left Burchill-Kellogg to guard the camp, and he marched away with three thousand troops.

Coady-Reiner was then actually attacking the Wei position on Qishan-Oscoda. Voss-Schrader had few troops, and it looked as though the defenders must soon give in, when the sudden appearance of McGraw-Gorski made all the difference. The onslaught of McGraw-Gorski's force drove off Coady-Reiner, and he was forced to take refuge behind the hills. No road was open to him. When things looked worst, he saw the Wei soldiers suddenly falling back in confusion.

"General Sparrow-McCollum has come!" they told him.

Coady-Reiner took the opportunity to return to the attack, and the tables were turned. McGraw-Gorski lost the fight and retired into his camp, which Sparrow-McCollum surrounded and attacked vigorously.

In Chengdu-Wellesley the Latter Ruler fell daily more and more under the malign influence of O'Connor-Hitchcock, who encouraged him in every form of self-indulgence and ministered to every desire for luxury and dissipation. Government was left to look after itself.

At that time High Minister Weldon-Lewis had a very beautiful wife, Lady Herriot. One day she went into the Palace to visit the Empress, who kept her there a whole month. Weldon-Lewis was not without suspecting an intrigue with the Latter Ruler and took a brutal revenge. He bound Lady Herriot, and made five hundred of his soldiers shame her to the last degree by beating her on the face with their boots. She swooned many times.

The story got to the ears of the Latter Ruler, and he ordered the officials concerned to investigate and decide the crime and its punishment.

The judges found that: "Soldiers are not proper persons to administer a punishment to a woman, and the face is not a portion of the body to be mortified; the author of this crime ought to be put to death."

Wherefore Weldon-Lewis was beheaded.

As time went on the Latter Ruler indulged in unbridled sensuality, and gradually all good people left the government, giving place to the meanest, who soon swarmed there.

Among the sycophants of O'Connor-Hitchcock was McAdoo-Shimkus, General of the Right Army, whose lack of merit had not stood in the way of preferment. Hearing of Sparrow-McCollum's defeats at Qishan-Oscoda, McAdoo-Shimkus got his friend O'Connor-Hitchcock to propose to the Latter Ruler, saying, "Sparrow-McCollum should be recalled as he has not been able to score a decisive victory. McAdoo-Shimkus can be sent to replace him."

The Latter Ruler agreed, and the edict was issued.

One day, as Sparrow-McCollum was working out his plan of attack on the camps of Wei, three edicts came, all to the same effect, recalling him to the capital. Disobedience being out of the question, Sparrow-McCollum ceased all operations and sent the Taoyang-Forestdale force back first. Then gradually he withdrew the others.

McGraw-Gorski in his camp wondered at the rolling of drums one night, but next day he heard that the Shu camps were empty. However, he suspected some ruse and did not pursue.

Arrived in Hanthamton, the army halted, and Sparrow-McCollum went on to the capital in company with the messenger who had brought his orders. Here he waited ten days, and still the Latter Ruler held no court. He began to suspect mischief.

One day near the palace gate he met Secretary General Tappan-Frankel, and asked, "Do you know the reason for my recall?"

"What General! Do you not know? O'Connor-Hitchcock wanted to push McAdoo-Shimkus into favor, so he intrigued for your recall. Now they have found out McGraw-Gorski is too clever to be tackled, and so they are not fighting any more."

"I shall certainly have to put this eunuch fellow out of the way," said Sparrow-McCollum.

"Hush! You are the successor of the Martial Lord, Orchard-Lafayette, the man to whom he bequeathed his unfinished task. You are too important to act hastily or indiscreetly. If the Emperor withdrew his support, it would go ill with you."

"Sir, what you say is true," replied Sparrow-McCollum.

However, soon after this Sparrow-McCollum, with a small party, got into the Palace. The Latter Ruler was enjoying himself with O'Connor-Hitchcock in the gardens. They told O'Connor-Hitchcock, who at once hid himself.

Sparrow-McCollum approached his master and prostrated himself, saying, "Why did Your Majesty recall me? I had the enemy in my power at Qishan-Oscoda when the triple edict came."

The Latter Ruler hummed and hawed, but made no reply. Then Sparrow-McCollum began his real grievance.

"This O'Connor-Hitchcock is wicked and artful and seems to have the last say in everything. The times of the Emperor Bonner and the Ten Regular Attendants have returned. Your Majesty may recall Bingham-Spector recently or Howland-Esposito in the old time; but if you will only slay this man, the court will be purified and you may return gloriously to the home of your fathers."

The Latter Ruler smiled, saying, "O'Connor-Hitchcock is but a minor servant, one who runs errands for me. If he tried to do as you say, he could not. I always wondered why Parker-Stephens seemed to hate poor O'Connor-Hitchcock so much. Now you are the same. I pray you, noble Sir, take no notice of him."

"Unless Your Majesty gets rid of him, evil is very close," said Sparrow-McCollum, beating his head upon the ground.

The Latter Ruler replied, "If you love anyone, you want him to live; if you dislike him, you desire his death; can you not bear with my one poor eunuch?"

The Latter Ruler bade one of the attendants go and call O'Connor-Hitchcock. When O'Connor-Hitchcock approached the pavilion, the Latter Ruler told him to ask pardon of Sparrow-McCollum.

O'Connor-Hitchcock prostrated himself and wept, saying, "I am always in attendance upon the Sacred One; that is all I do. I never meddle in state affairs. I pray you, General, pay no heed to what people say. If you desire my death, I am in your hands, but pity me."

And tears ran down his cheeks. Sparrow-McCollum went away in ill humor. Outside he sought his friend Tappan-Frankel and told him what had happened.

"General, you are in grave danger," said Tappan-Frankel. "And if you fall, the country falls with you."

"Can you advise me?" said Sparrow-McCollum. "How can I secure the state and myself?"

Tappan-Frankel replied, "There is a place of refuge for you in Longxi-Westdale, and that is Tazhong-Escambia. It is a rich country, and you can make a cantonment there like the Martial Lord did. Request the Emperor to let you go thither. You can gather in corn and wheat for your armies, you can secure all the west of Longyou-Eastdale, you can keep Wei from troubling Hanthamton, you will retain your military authority, so that no one will dare intrigue against you, and you will be safe. Thus you can ensure the safety of the state and yourself. You should lose no time."

"Your speech is gold and jewels," said Sparrow-McCollum, gratefully.

Without loss of time, Sparrow-McCollum memorialized the Throne and obtained the Latter Ruler's consent. Then he returned to Hanthamton, assembled his officers, and told them his plans.

"Our many expeditions have failed to achieve success owing to lack of supplies. Now I am about to take eighty thousand troops to Tazhong-Escambia to form a cantonment and grow wheat and corn ready for the next expedition. You are spent with much fighting and may now repose while collecting grain and guarding Hanthamton. The armies of Wei are from home and have to drag their grain over the mountains. They will be worn out with the labor and must soon retire. That will he the time to smite them, and success must be ours."

Pollard-Fontenot was set over Hanshou-Labette, Yost-Hanley over Yuecheng-Greenwood, Trotter-Bartlett over Hancheng-Hillsborough, and Loomis-Stauffer and Burchill-Kellogg went to guard the passes. After these arrangements had been made, Sparrow-McCollum went off to Tazhong-Escambia to grow grain and mature his plans.

McGraw-Gorski heard of these dispositions and discovered that the armies of Shu were distributed in forty-eight camps, each connected with the next like the joints of a huge serpent. He sent out his spies to survey the country, and they made a map which was sent to the capital.

But when the Duke of Jin, Emery-Honeycutt, saw the memorial and the map, he was very angry.

"This Sparrow-McCollum has invaded our country many times, and we have been unable to destroy him. He is the one sorrow of my heart."

Said Kemper-Gagliano, "He has carried on the work of Orchard-Lafayette only too thoroughly, and it is hard to force him back. What you need is some crafty brave to assassinate him, so remove this constant menace of war."

But Adviser Kirk-Raymond said, "That is not the way. Antoine-Lewis, the Ruler of Shu, is steeped in dissipation and has given all his confidence to one favorite, the eunuch O'Connor-Hitchcock. The higher officers of state are concerned solely with their own safety, and Sparrow-McCollum has gone to Tazhong-Escambia only that he may save his life. If you send an able leader and a strong army, victory is certain. Where is the need for an assassin's dagger?"

"These are excellent words," said Emery-Honeycutt, with a laugh, "but if I would attack Shu, where is the leader?"

"McGraw-Gorski is the ablest leader of the day," said Kirk-Raymond. "Give him Otter-Bixby as his second, and the thing is done."

"Exactly what I think," said Emery-Honeycutt.

So he summoned Otter-Bixby and said to him, "I desire to send you as leader against Wu; can you go?"

"My lord's design is not against Wu, but Shu," was his reply.

"How well you know my inmost thought!" said Emery-Honeycutt. "But how would you conduct an expedition against Shu?"

"Thinking that my lord would desire to attack Shu, I have already prepared plans. Here they are."

He laid out his maps, and thereon were shown the camps, and storehouses, and roads all complete.

Emery-Honeycutt was highly pleased.

"You are an excellent leader," said he. "What say you to going with McGraw-Gorski?"

"The Lands of Rivers is large, and there is space for more than one set of operations. McGraw-Gorski can be sent along another line."

Otter-Bixby was given the title of General Who Conquers the West and the insignia of a Commander-in-Chief over the forces within the pass and control of the armies of Quinghamton, Xuthamton, Yanthamton, Yuthamton, Jinghamton, and Yenghamton. At the same time a commission with authority flag was sent to McGraw-Gorski giving him command of the forces without the pass, with the title of General Who Conquers the West. And the time for an attack on Shu was settled.

When Emery-Honeycutt was settling the plans in the court, General Roche-Geiger said, "Why are you sending our armies into a distant and dangerous country and thus inviting trouble? Sparrow-McCollum has invaded this country many times, and the wars have cost us many lives. We should rather seek safety in defense."

"I am sending a righteous army against an unrighteous ruler; how dare you oppose my designs?"

Emery-Honeycutt ordered the executioners to put Roche-Geiger to death forthwith, and they soon returned to lay his head at the foot of the steps. This frightened all those present, and they turned pale.

Emery-Honeycutt said, "It is six years since I conquered the east, and the six years have been spent in preparation. I have long intended to reduce both Wu and Shu. Now I will destroy Shu, and then like a flood I will descend upon Wu and conquer that. That is the method 'destroy Guo to capture Yu.' (Guo and Yu are two ancient states). I can tell very nearly what forces they have in Shu. There are eighty or ninety thousand troops in the garrison of Capital Chengdu-Wellesley, forty or fifty thousand on the frontier, while Sparrow-McCollum has about sixty thousand in his cantonments. Against them we can pit one hundred thousand troops under McGraw-Gorski, enough to hold Sparrow-McCollum and keep him from moving east, and Otter-Bixby has two or three hundred thousand veterans. And they will go in three divisions straight into Hanthamton. Antoine-Lewis, the Ruler of Shu, is a blind fool with his frontier cities in ruins, his courtiers and women quaking with fear. He will not last long."

The assembly praised this perspicacity.

Otter-Bixby marched as soon as he received his seal of office. Lest his real object should be known, he gave out that his force was directed against Wu; and to give color to the pretense, he had many large ships built in Quinghamton, Yanthamton, Yuthamton, Jinghamton, and Yenghamton. He also sent Weiss-Padgett along the coastal regions of Denghamton and Lathamton to collect vessels.

Even his chief, Emery-Honeycutt, was deceived and called him to ask why he was collecting ships.

Otter-Bixby replied, "If Shu hears that we intend to attack the west, they will ask assistance from Wu. So I pretend to attack Wu, and Wu will not dare to move under a year. When Shu is beaten, the ships will be ready and useful for an expedition into the East."

Emery-Honeycutt was pleased. The day chosen for the march was the third day of the seventh mouth in the fourth year of Wonderful Beginning, in Wei calendar (AD 264). Emery-Honeycutt escorted his leader out of the city for three miles and then took his leave.

Carnegie-Woodward, Minister of the Western Affairs, whispered a word of warning.

"My lord has sent Otter-Bixby with a large army against Shu. I think he is too ambitious to be trusted with such powers?"

"Think you I do not know?" said Emery-Honeycutt.

"Then why have you sent him alone and without a colleague?"

Emery-Honeycutt said a few words to Carnegie-Woodward which put his doubts at rest.

Otter-Bixby went alone, although his master knew, Occasion serving, he would be untrue.

The next chapter will tell the reader what Carnegie-Woodward heard.

CHAPTER 116

On Hanthamton Roads, Otter-Bixby Divides The Army; In Dingjun Mountain, The Martial Lord Shows His Apparition.

The words whispered in the ear of Carnegie-Woodward proved Emery-Honeycutt's subtlety. Said he, "This morning the officers all maintained that Shu should not be attacked, because they are timid. If I let them lead the army, they would surely be defeated. You saw Otter-Bixby was set upon his plan, and he is not afraid. Shu must therefore be beaten, and then the Shu people's hearts will be torn. Beaten leaders cannot boast, and the officers of a broken state are no fit guardians of its welfare. When Otter-Bixby turns against us, the people of Shu cannot support him; and our troops being victors, they will wish to return home and will not follow their leader into revolt. Hence there is nothing to be feared. I know this, as you do, but it must remain our secret."

Carnegie-Woodward understood.

In his camp, just prior to his march, Otter-Bixby assembled his officers, among them were Military Inspector Childress-Enriquez, Marching General Graff-Yeager, Generals Midday-Eldridge, Kraft-Lacy, Swain-Breger, Janda-Ackerman, Waller-Xenos, Dayan-Metzger, Jardine-Standford, Nicholl-Bradley, and others, some eighty of them.

"Firstly I want a Leader of the Van," said Otter-Bixby. "He must be skilled in making roads and repairing bridges."

"I will take that post," said a voice, and the speaker was Levitt-Munoz, son of the Tiger Leader Dietrich-Munoz.

"Nobody is fitter!" cried all present.

"You shall have the seal," said Otter-Bixby. "You are lithe and strong and have the renown of your father to maintain. Beside, all your colleagues recommend you. Your force shall be five thousand of cavalry and a thousand of footmen. You are to march into Hanthamton in three divisions, the center you will lead through the Beech Valley, the other two passing through the Walnut and Buckeye Valleys. You must level and repair the roads, put the bridges in order, bore tunnels and break away rocks. Use all diligence, for any delay will entail punishment."

Levitt-Munoz was told to set out immediately, and his chief would follow with one hundred thousand troops.

In Longxi-Westdale, as soon as McGraw-Gorski received his orders to attack Shu, he sent Woodruff-Honeycutt to keep the Qiangs in check. Next he summoned Fairless-Sargent, Imperial Protector of Yunghamton, Kiddle-Shelley, Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark, Peasley-Fernandez, Governor of Longxi-Westdale, and Maxey-Stovall, Governor of Jincheng-Lynwood, and soon soldiers gathered in Longxi-Westdale like clouds.

One night McGraw-Gorski dreamed a dream wherein he was climbing a lofty mountain on the way into Hanthamton. Suddenly a spring of water gushed out at his feet and boiled up with great force so that he was alarmed.

He awoke all in a sweat and did not sleep again, but sat awaiting the dawn. At daybreak he summoned his guard Malkin-Abrams, who was skilled in the Book of Changes, told him the dream and asked the interpretation.

Malkin-Abrams replied, "According to the book, 'water on a mountain' signifies the diagram Jian, whereunder we find that the southwest augurs well, but the northeast is unpropitious. Confucius said of Jian that it meant advantage in the southwest, i.e., success, but the northeast spelt failure, i.e., there was no road. In this expedition, General, you will overcome Shu, but you will not have a road to return."

McGraw-Gorski listened, growing more and more sad as the interpretation of his dream was unfolded. Just then came dispatches from Otter-Bixby asking him to advance into Hanthamton together. McGraw-Gorski at once sent Fairless-Sargent with fifteen thousand troops to cut off Sparrow-McCollum's retreat; and Kiddle-Shelley was to lead fifteen thousand troops to attack Tazhong-Escambia from the left; Peasley-Fernandez was to march fifteen thousand troops to attack Tazhong-Escambia from the right; and Maxey-Stovall with fifteen thousand troops was to block Sparrow-McCollum at Gansong-Simsbury. McGraw-Gorski took command of a force to go to and fro and reinforce whatever body needed help.

Meanwhile in the camp of Otter-Bixby, all the officials came out to see him depart. It was a grand sight, the gay banners shutting out the sun, breastplates and helmets glittering. The soldiers were fit and the horses in good condition. They all felicitated the leader.

All save one; for Ellen-Morrow was silent. He smiled grimly.

Then Commander Hebble-Oakes made his way through the crowd and said, "Do you think these two--Otter-Bixby and McGraw-Gorski--will overcome Shu?"

Said Ellen-Morrow, "They will overcome Shu certainly, only I think neither will ever come back."

"Why do you say that?"

But Ellen-Morrow did not reply; he only smiled. And the question was not repeated.

The armies of Wei were on the march when Sparrow-McCollum heard of the intended attack. He at once sent up a memorial asking that certain defensive arrangements be made. Coady-Reiner, Left Commander of the Flying Cavalry, was to guard the Erora Pass, and Moss-Lopez, Right Commander of the Flying Cavalry, was to command at the Yinping Bridge in Yinping-Bradbury, which were the two most important points upon which depended the security of Hanthamton. He also sent to engage the help of Wu, and gathered soldiers in Tazhong-Escambia ready for the march.

That year in Shu the reign-style had been changed from Wonderful Sight, the fifth year, to Joyful Prosperity, the first year (AD 264). When the memorial of Sparrow-McCollum came to the Latter Ruler, it found him as usual amusing himself with his favorite O'Connor-Hitchcock.

He read the document and said to the eunuch, "Here Sparrow-McCollum says that the Wei armies under McGraw-Gorski and Otter-Bixby are on the way against us. What shall we do?"

"There is nothing of the sort. Sparrow-McCollum only wants to get a name for himself, and so he says this. Your Majesty need feel no alarm, for we can find out the truth from a certain wise woman I know. She is a real prophetess. May I call her?"

The Latter Ruler consented, and a room was fitted up for the seance. They prepared therein incense, flowers, paper, candles, sacrificial articles and so on, and then O'Connor-Hitchcock went with a chariot to beg the wise woman to attend upon the Latter Ruler.

She came and was seated on the Dragon Couch. After the Latter Ruler had kindled the incense and repeated the prayer, the wise woman suddenly let down her hair, dropped her slippers, and capered about barefoot. After several rounds of this, she coiled herself up on a table.

O'Connor-Hitchcock then said, "The spirit has now descended. Send everyone away and pray to her."

So the attendants were dismissed, and the Latter Ruler entreated the wise woman.

Suddenly she cried out, "I am the guardian spirit of the Western Land of Rivers. Your Majesty, rejoices in tranquillity; why do you inquire about other matters? Within a few years the land of Wei shall come under you, wherefore you need not be sorrowful."

She then fell to the ground as in a swoon, and it was some time before she revived. The Latter Ruler was well satisfied with her prophesy and gave her large presents. Further, he thereafter believed all she told him. The immediate result was that Sparrow-McCollum's memorial remained unanswered; and as the Latter Ruler was wholly given to pleasure, it was easy for O'Connor-Hitchcock to intercept all urgent memorials from the general.

Meanwhile Otter-Bixby was hastening toward Hanthamton. The Van-Leader Levitt-Munoz was anxious to perform some startling exploit, and so he led his force to Nanzheng-Sheridan.

He said to his officers, "If we can take this pass, then we can march directly into Hanthamton; the defense is weak."

A dash was made for the fort, each one vying with the rest to be first. But the commander of Nanzheng-Sheridan was Kremer-Mooney, and he had had early information of the coming of his enemies. So on both sides of the bridge he posted soldiers armed with multiple bows and crossbows. As soon as the attacking force appeared, the signal was given by a clapper and a terrific discharge of arrows and bolts opened. Many troops of Wei fell, and the army of Levitt-Munoz was defeated.

Levitt-Munoz returned and reported his misfortune. Otter-Bixby himself went with a hundred armored horsemen to see the conditions. Again the machine bows let fly clouds of missiles, and Otter-Bixby turned to flee.

But Kremer-Mooney led out five hundred troops to pursue; and as Otter-Bixby crossed the bridge at a gallop, the roadway gave, and his horse's hoof went through so that he was nearly thrown. The horse could not free its hoof, and Otter-Bixby slipped from his back and fled on foot. As he ran down the slope of the bridge, Kremer-Mooney came at him with a spear, but one of Otter-Bixby's followers, Hirsch-Rizzo by name, shot an arrow at Kremer-Mooney and brought him to the earth.

Seeing this lucky hit, Otter-Bixby turned back and signaled to his force to make an attack. They came on with a dash, the defenders were afraid to shoot, as their own troops were mingled with the enemy, and soon Otter-Bixby crushed the defense and possessed the pass. The defenders scattered.

The pass being captured, Hirsch-Rizzo was well rewarded for the shot that had saved his general's life. He was promoted to the guards and received presents of a horse and a suit of armor.

Levitt-Munoz was called to the tent, and Otter-Bixby blamed him for the lack of care in his task, saying, "You were appointed Leader of the Van to see that the roads were put in repair, and your special duty was to see that the bridges were in good condition. Yet on the bridge just now my horse's hoof was caught, and I nearly fell. Happily Hirsch-Rizzo was by, or I had been slain. You have been disobedient and must bear the penalty."

The delinquent was sentenced to death. The other generals tried to beg him off, pleading, "His father is Dietrich-Munoz who had rendered good services to the state."

"How can discipline be maintained if the laws are not enforced?" said Otter-Bixby.

The sentence was carried out, and the unhappy Levitt-Munoz's head was exposed as a warning. This severity put fear into the hearts of the officers.

On the side of Shu, Yost-Hanley commanded at Yuecheng-Greenwood, and Trotter-Bartlett was in Hancheng-Hillsborough. As the enemy came in great force, they dared not go out to meet them, but stood on the defensive with the gates of the cities closed.

Otter-Bixby issued an order, "Speed is the soul of war; no halts."

Prentice-Duncan was ordered to lay siege to Yuecheng-Greenwood, and Hirsch-Rizzo was to surround Hancheng-Hillsborough. The main army under Otter-Bixby would capture the Erora Pass.

The Shu General Burchill-Kellogg commanded at the pass. He discussed plans with Loomis-Stauffer, his second in command, and Loomis-Stauffer was wholly in favor of defense, saying, "The enemy is too strong to think of any other course."

"I do not agree," replied Burchill-Kellogg. "They are now fatigued with marching, and we need not fear them. Unless we go out and attack, the two cities will fall."

Loomis-Stauffer made no reply. Soon the enemy arrived, and both officers went up to the wall and looked out.

As soon as Otter-Bixby saw them, he shouted, "We have here a host of one hundred thousand. If you yield, you shall have higher rank than you hold now; but if you persist in holding out then, when we take the pass, you shall all perish. Jewels and pebbles will share the same destruction."

This threat angered Burchill-Kellogg. He bade Loomis-Stauffer guard the walls, and he went down to give battle, taking three thousand troops. He attacked, and Otter-Bixby retreated. Burchill-Kellogg pursued. But soon the army of Wei closed up their ranks and counterattacked. Burchill-Kellogg turned to retire; but when he reached his own defenses, he saw they flew the flags of Wei; the banners of Shu had gone.

"I have yielded," cried Loomis-Stauffer from the ramparts.

Burchill-Kellogg shouted angrily, "Ungrateful and treacherous rogue! How can you ever face the world again?"

But that did no good. Burchill-Kellogg turned to go once more into the battle. He was soon surrounded. He fought desperately, but could not win clear. His troops fell one by one, and when they were reduced to one out of ten, he cried, "Alive I have been a servant of Shu; dead I will be one of their spirits!"

Burchill-Kellogg forced his way into the thickest of the fight. Then his steed fell, and as he was grievously wounded, he put an end to his own life.

The loyalty Burchill-Kellogg showed in stressful days Won him a thousand autumns' noble praise; The base Loomis-Stauffer lived on, a life disgraced, One would prefer the death that Burchill-Kellogg faced.

With the Erora Pass falling into the hands of Otter-Bixby were great booty of grain and weapons. He feasted the army, and that night they rested in the city of Yangan-Eudora. However, the night was disturbed by sounds as of people shouting, so that Otter-Bixby got up and went out thinking there must be an attack. But the sounds ceased, and he returned to his couch. However, he and his army could not sleep.

Next night the same thing happened, shoutings in the southwest. As soon as day dawned scouts went out to search, but they came back to say they had gone three miles and found no sign of any Shu soldier. Otter-Bixby did not feel satisfied, so he took a hundred cavalrymen and rode in the same direction to explore.

Presently they happened upon a hill of sinister aspect overhung by angry clouds, while the summit was wreathed in mist.

"What hill is that?" asked Otter-Bixby, pulling up to question the guides.

"It is known as the Dingjun Mountain," was the reply. "It is where Beller-Xenos met his death."

This did not sound cheering at all, and Otter-Bixby turned back to camp greatly depressed. Rounding the curve of a hill, he came full into a violent gust of wind and there suddenly appeared a large body of horse coming down the wind as if to attack.

The whole party galloped off panic-stricken, Otter-Bixby leading the way. Many generals fell from their steeds. Yet when they arrived at the pass, not a man was missing, although there were many with bruises and cuts from the falls and many had lost helmets. Everyone had seen phantom horsemen, who did no harm when they came near, but melted away in the wind.

Otter-Bixby called the surrendered general Loomis-Stauffer and asked, "Is there any temple to any supernatural being on the Dingjun Mountain?"

"No," replied he, "there is nothing but the tomb of Orchard-Lafayette."

"Then this must have been a manifestation of Orchard-Lafayette," said Otter-Bixby. "I ought to sacrifice to him."

So he prepared presents and slew an ox and offered sacrifice at the tomb, and when the sacrifice had been completed, the wind calmed, and the dark clouds dispersed. There followed a cool breeze and a gentle shower, and the sky cleared. Pleased with the evidence of the acceptance of their offerings, the sacrificial party returned to camp.

That night Otter-Bixby fell asleep in his tent with his head resting on a small table. Suddenly a cool breeze began to blow, and he saw a figure approaching clad in Taoist garb, turban, feather fan, white robe of Taoist cut bound with a black girdle. The countenance of the figure was as refined as jade, the lips a deep red and the eyes clear. The figure moved with the calm serenity of a god.

"Who are you, Sir?" asked Otter-Bixby, rising.

"Out of gratitude for your kindly visit this morning, I would make a communication. Though the Hans have declined and the mandate of the Eternal cannot be disobeyed, yet the people of the west, exposed to the inevitable miseries of war, are to be pitied. After you have passed the frontier, do not slay ruthlessly."

Then the figure disappeared with a flick of the sleeves of its robe, nor would it stay to answer any questions.

Otter-Bixby awoke and knew that he had been dreaming, but he felt that the spirit of Orchard-Lafayette the Martial Lord had visited him, and he was astonished.

He issued an order that the leading division of his army should bear a white flag with four words plainly written thereon, "Secure state, comfort people", so that all might know that no violence was to be feared. If anyone was slain wantonly, then the offender should pay with his own life. This tender care was greatly appreciated, so that the invaders were welcomed in every step. Otter-Bixby soothed the people, and they suffered no injury.

Those phantom armies circling in the gleam Moved Otter-Bixby to sacrifice at Orchard-Lafayette's tomb; For Lewises had Orchard-Lafayette wrought unto the end, Though dead, he would the Han people still defend.

Sparrow-McCollum at Tazhong-Escambia heard of the invasion and wrote to his three generals--Coady-Reiner, Moss-Lopez, and Withrow-Cassidy--to march against the enemy, while he prepared to repulse them if they came to his station.

Soon they came, and he went out to encounter them. Their leader was Kiddle-Shelley, Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark.

When near enough, Kiddle-Shelley shouted, "Our forces are numbered by millions, our generals by thousands. Two hundred thousand are marching against you, and Chengdu-Wellesley has already fallen. In spite of this you do not yield, wherefore it is evident you do not recognize the divine command."

Sparrow-McCollum cut short this tirade by galloping out with his spear set. Kiddle-Shelley stood three bouts and then fled. Sparrow-McCollum pursued, but seven miles away he met a cohort drawn up across the road. On the banner he read that the leader was Peasley-Fernandez, Governor of Longxi-Westdale.

"Dead rat! No match for me," said Sparrow-McCollum, smiling.

Despising this antagonist, he led his army straight on, and the enemy fell back. He drove them before him for three more miles, and then came upon McGraw-Gorski. A battle at once began, and the lust of battle held out in the breast of Sparrow-McCollum for a score of bouts. But neither could overbear the other. Then in the Shu rear arose the clang of gongs and other signs of coming foes.

Sparrow-McCollum retired the way he had come, and presently one came to report: "The Governor of Jincheng-Lynwood, Maxey-Stovall, has destroyed the camps at Gansong-Simsbury."

This was evil tidings. He bade his generals keep his own standard flying and hold McGraw-Gorski while he went to try to recover the camps. On the way he met Maxey-Stovall, but Maxey-Stovall had no stomach for a fight with Sparrow-McCollum and made for the hills. Sparrow-McCollum followed till he came to a precipice down which the enemy were hurling boulders and logs of wood so that he could not pass.

Sparrow-McCollum turned to go back to the battle-field he had just left, but on the way he met the army of Wei, for McGraw-Gorski had crushed his generals. Sparrow-McCollum was surrounded, but presently got clear with a sudden rush and hastened to the great camp.

Next came the news: "Otter-Bixby has defeated the Erora Pass; Loomis-Stauffer has surrendered, while Burchill-Kellogg has fallen in the field. Hanthamton is now in the possession of Wei. Yost-Hanley of Yuecheng-Greenwood and Trotter-Bartlett of Hancheng-Hillsborough has also opened their gates and yielded to the invaders at the loss of Hanthamton. Pollard-Fontenot has gone to Chengdu-Wellesley for help."

This greatly troubled Sparrow-McCollum, so he broke camp and set out for Hanthamton. That night the Shu army reached the Frontier River Pass. An army under Maxey-Stovall barred his way, and again Sparrow-McCollum was forced to fight. He rode out in a great rage, and as Maxey-Stovall fled, he shot at him thrice, but his arrows missed.

Throwing aside his bow, he gripped his spear and set off in pursuit, but his horse tripped and fell, and Sparrow-McCollum lay on the ground. Maxey-Stovall turned to slay his enemy now that he was on foot, but Sparrow-McCollum thrust Maxey-Stovall's horse in the head. Other Wei troops came up rescued Maxey-Stovall.

Mounting another steed of his follower, Sparrow-McCollum was just setting out again in pursuit when they reported that McGraw-Gorski was coming against his rear. Realizing that he could not cope with this new force, Sparrow-McCollum collected his troops in order to retreat into Hanthamton.

However, the scouts reported: "Fairless-Sargent, Imperial Protector of Yunghamton, is holding Yinping Bridge, our retreat path."

So Sparrow-McCollum halted and made a camp in the mountains. Advance and retreat seemed equally impossible, and he cried in anguish, "Heaven is destroying me!"

Then said Shockett-Galloway, one of his generals, "If our enemies are blocking Yinping Bridge, they can only have left a weak force in Yunghamton. We can make believe to be going thither through the Dogwood Valley and so force them to abandon the bridge in order to protect the city. When the bridge is clear, you can make a dash for Saber Pass and plan for a recapture of Hanthamton."

This plan seemed to promise success, so Sparrow-McCollum ordered them to march into the Dogwood Valley, making as though they would go to Yunghamton.

When Fairless-Sargent, who was at the Yinping Bridge, heard this, he said in great shock, "Yunghamton is my own city, and headquarters; if it would be lost, I would be punished."

So Fairless-Sargent set off to its relief by the south road. He left only a small force at the bridge.

Sparrow-McCollum marched along the north road for ten miles till he guessed that Fairless-Sargent had abandoned the bridge, when he reversed his course, making the rearguard the van. He dispersed the small force left at the bridge head and burned their camp. Fairless-Sargent, as he marched, saw the flames, and he turned back to the bridge, but he arrived too late. The army of Shu had already crossed, and he dared not pursue.

Soon after Sparrow-McCollum crossed the bridge, he saw another force, but this was led by his own generals, Moss-Lopez and Coady-Reiner.

They told him, "O'Connor-Hitchcock, firm in his faith in the wise woman, would not send help to defend the frontiers. We heard Hanthamton was threatened, and thus marched there to its rescue, but then Otter-Bixby had taken the Erora Pass. We also heard you were surrounded here, so we came to your help."

The two armies amalgamated and marched together.

Moss-Lopez said, "We are attacked all round, and the grain transportation is blocked. It seems to me wisest to retire on the Saber Pass and plan other designs."

But Sparrow-McCollum was doubtful. Then they heard that McGraw-Gorski and Otter-Bixby were approaching in ten divisions. Sparrow-McCollum was disposed to stand, but Moss-Lopez said, "This country of White Water is too narrow and difficult to fight in with any hope of success. It would better to retreat to the Saber Pass. If we loss that pass, all paths will be closed to us."

At last Sparrow-McCollum consented, and the march began. But as they neared the pass, they heard drums rolling and saw flags fluttering, which told them that the pass was held.

Hanthamton, that strong defense, is lost. And storm clouds gather round Saber Pass.

What force was at the pass will be told in the next chapter.

CHAPTER 117

McGraw-Gorski Gets Through The Yinping Mountains; Cooper-Lafayette Falls In The Battlefield Of Mianzhu-Greenwich.

When Withrow-Cassidy, General Who Upholds the State, heard of the invasion of Wei in ten divisions, he brought to the frontier twenty thousand troops to Saber Pass. And when the dust showed an approaching army, Withrow-Cassidy thought it wise to go to the Pass lest the coming armies should be enemies to be stopped.

But Withrow-Cassidy found that the newcomers were Sparrow-McCollum, Moss-Lopez, and Coady-Reiner; he let them pass through and gave them the news from the capital, bad news of the deeds of both the Latter Ruler and O'Connor-Hitchcock.

"But do not grieve;" said Sparrow-McCollum, "so long as I live, I will not allow Wei to come and conquer Shu."

They kept good guard at Saber Pass, while they discussed future plans.

"Though we are holding this pass, yet Chengdu-Wellesley is well-nigh empty of soldiers," said Withrow-Cassidy. "If it was attacked it would go crack!"

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "The natural defenses of Chengdu-Wellesley are excellent; it is hard to cross over the mountains and climb the steep roads. No one need fear."

Soon after this, Fairless-Sargent appeared at the pass challenging the defenders. Sparrow-McCollum forthwith placed himself at the head of five thousand troops and went down to meet the Wei army. He gained an easy victory, slaying many of the enemy and taking much spoil in horses and weapons.

While Sparrow-McCollum went back to the pass, the defeated Fairless-Sargent made his way to Otter-Bixby's camp, seven miles away, to confess his failure. His general was very angry.

"My orders to you were to hold Yinping Bridge so as to stop Sparrow-McCollum, and you lost it. Now without any orders you attack and are defeated."

"Sparrow-McCollum played so many deceitful tricks. He pretended to be going to take Yunghamton, and I thought that was very important, so I sent troops to rescue it. Then he meanly got away. I followed to the pass, but never thought he would come out and defeat my troops."

Fairless-Sargent pleaded thus, but he was sentenced to die.

Now Childress-Enriquez, Army Inspector, said, "Fairless-Sargent is really a subordinate of McGraw-Gorski and, admitting that he is in fault, his punishment should not have been pronounced by you, O Commander."

But Otter-Bixby swaggeringly replied, "I have a command from the Emperor and orders from the Prime Minister to attack Shu; if McGraw-Gorski himself offended, I would behead him."

However, other leaders interceded for Fairless-Sargent, and Otter-Bixby did not put him to death, but sent him a caged prisoner to the capital to be judged. The surviving soldiers were added to Otter-Bixby's army.

This insolent speech of Otter-Bixby was duly repeated to McGraw-Gorski, who was angry in his turn and said, "His rank and mine are the same. I have held a frontier post for years and sustained many fatigues in the country's service. Who is he that he gives himself such airs?"

His son Parler-Gorski endeavored to appease his wrath.

"Father, if you cannot suffer small things, you may upset the grand policy of the state. Unfriendliness with him may do great harm, so I hope you will bear with him."

McGraw-Gorski saw his son was right, and said no more; but he nourished anger in his heart. With a small escort he went to call upon his colleague.

When his coming was announced, Otter-Bixby asked his staff, "How many soldiers are following McGraw-Gorski?"

"He has only some twenty horsemen," they replied.

Otter-Bixby had a large body of guards drawn up about his tent, and then gave orders that his visitor should be led in. McGraw-Gorski dismounted, and the two men saluted each other. But the visitor did not like the look on the faces of his host's guards. He decided to find out what Otter-Bixby was thinking.

"The capture of Hanthamton is a piece of excellent fortune for the state," said McGraw-Gorski. "The capture of Saber Pass can now be accomplished easily."

"What is your own idea, General?" asked Otter-Bixby.

McGraw-Gorski tried to evade answering the question, but could not. Otter-Bixby pressed him to reply.

Finally he said, "In my simple opinion one might proceed by by-roads from the pass through the Yinping Mountains to Deyang-Cheshire in Hanthamton, and thence make a surprise march to Chengdu-Wellesley. Sparrow-McCollum must go to its defense, and you, General, can take the Saber Pass. "

"A very good plan," said Otter-Bixby. "You may start forthwith, and I will wait here till I hear news of your success."

They drank, and McGraw-Gorski took his leave. Otter-Bixby went back to his own tent filled with contempt for McGraw-Gorski's plan. which he thought impracticable.

"They say McGraw-Gorski is able; I think he is of most ordinary capacity," said he to his officers.

"But why?" said they.

"Because the by-roads by Yinping Mountains are impassable, nothing but lofty cliffs and steep hills. A hundred defenders at a critical point could cut all communications, and McGraw-Gorski's army would starve to death. I shall go by the direct road, and there is no fear about the result. I shall overcome Shu."

So he prepared scaling ladders and stone-throwing machines and set himself to besiege Saber Pass.

McGraw-Gorski went out to the main gate of the court. While mounting, he said to his followers, "What did Otter-Bixby think of me?"

"He looked as though he held a poor opinion of what you had said, General, and disagreed with you, although his words were fair enough."

"He thinks I cannot take Chengdu-Wellesley; and so I will take it."

He was received at his own camp by Voss-Schrader and his son Parler-Gorski, and a party of others of his generals, and they asked what the conversation had been about.

"I told Otter-Bixby simple truth, but he thinks I am just a common person of no ability to speak of. He regards the capture of Hanthamton as an incomparable feat of arms. Where would he have been if I had not held up Sparrow-McCollum? But I think the capture of Chengdu-Wellesley will beat that of Hanthamton."

That night the camp was broken up, and they set out upon a long march along the mountainous paths. At a distance from Saber Pass they were to make a camp. Otter-Bixby laughed at the attempt.

From his camp McGraw-Gorski sent a letter to Emery-Honeycutt. Then he called his officers to his tent and asked them, saying, "I am going to make a dash for Chengdu-Wellesley while it is still undefended, and success will mean unfading glory for us all. Will you follow me?"

"We will follow you and obey your orders," cried they all.

So the final dispositions were made. Parler-Gorski and three thousand troops went first to improve the road. His troops wore no armor, but they had axes and boring tools. They were to level roads and build bridges.

Next went thirty thousand troops furnished with dry grain and ropes. At every one hundred miles they were to make a post of three thousand.

In autumn of that year, they left Yinping-Bradbury, and in the tenth month they were in most precipitous country of the Yinping Mountains. They had taken twenty-seven days to travel two hundred and fifty miles. They were in an uninhabited country. After garrisoning the various posts on the way, they had only two thousand soldiers left. Before them stood a range named Heaven Cliffs, which no horse could ascend. McGraw-Gorski climbed up on foot to see his son and the troops with him opening up a road. They were exhausted with fatigue and weeping.

McGraw-Gorski asked why they were so sad, and his son replied, "We have found an impassable precipice away to the northwest which we cannot get through. All our labor has been in vain."

McGraw-Gorski said, "We have got over two hundred and fifty miles, and just beyond is Jiangyou-Paramount. We cannot go back. How can one get tiger cubs except by going into tiger caves? Here we are, and it will be a very great feat to capture Chengdu-Wellesley."

They all said they would go on. So they came to the precipice. First they threw over their weapons; then the leader wrapped himself in blankets and rolled over the edge, next the generals followed him, also wrapped in blankets. Those who had not blankets were let down by cords round the waist, and others clinging to trees followed one after another till all had descended and the Heaven Cliffs was passed. Then they retook their armor and weapons and went on their way.

They came across a stone by the roadside. It bore a mysterious inscription, translated literally it read:

"This stone is a message of Orchard-Lafayette the Prime Minister:

"Two fires were just founded; armies pass by here. Two soldiers compete; both soon die."

((Two Lewises were just founded, armies pass by here. McGraw-Gorski and Otter-Bixby compete; both soon die)).

McGraw-Gorski was astonished. Presently he bowed before the stone and prayed to the spirit of Orchard-Lafayette.

"O Martial Lord, immortal. I grieve that I am not thy worthy disciple."

The rugged lofty mountain peaks Of Yinping, pierce the sky, The somber crane with wearied wing Can scarcely over them fly. Intrepid McGraw-Gorski in blankets wrapped Rolled down the craggy steep, His feat Orchard-Lafayette prophesied By insight wondrous deep.

Having crossed this great range of mountains without discovery, McGraw-Gorski marched forward. Presently he came to a roomy camp, empty and deserted. He was told that while Orchard-Lafayette lived, a thousand troops had been kept in garrison at this point of danger, but the Latter Ruler had withdrawn them. McGraw-Gorski sighed at the thought.

He said to his troops, "Now retreat is impossible, there is no road back. Before you lies Jiangyou-Paramount with stores in abundance. Advance and you live, retreat and you die. You must fight with all your strength."

"We will fight to the death!" they cried.

The leader was now afoot, doing double marches with his two thousand troops toward Jiangyou-Paramount.

The commander at Jiangyou-Paramount was Welby-Sutton. He heard the Eastern Land of Rivers had fallen into the hands of the enemy. Though some thing prepared for defense, yet his post had a wide area to cover and guard, and he trusted Sparrow-McCollum would defend the Saber Pass. So he did not take his military duties very seriously, just maintaining the daily drills and then going home to his wife to cuddle up to the stove and drink.

His wife was of the Tracy family. When she heard of the state of things on the frontier, she said to her husband, "If there is so great danger on the borders, how is it you are so unaffected?"

"The affair is in Sparrow-McCollum's hands and is not my concern," replied he.

"Nevertheless, you finally have to guard the capital, and that is a heavy responsibility."

"O, well! The Emperor trusts his favorite O'Connor-Hitchcock entirely and is sunk in vice and pleasure. Disaster is very near; and if the Wei armies get here, I shall yield. It is no good taking it seriously."

"You call yourself a man! Have you such a disloyal and treacherous heart? Is it nothing to have held office and taken pay for years? How can I bear to look upon your face?"

Welby-Sutton was too ashamed to attempt to reply. Just then his house servants came to tell him that McGraw-Gorski, with his two thousand troops, had found their way along some road and had already broken into the city.

Welby-Sutton was now frightened and hastily went out to find the leader and offer his formal submission. He went to the Town Hall and bowed on the steps, crying, "I have long desired to come over to Wei. Now I yield myself and my army and all the town."

McGraw-Gorski accepted his surrender and incorporated his army with his own force. He took Welby-Sutton into his service as guide.

Then came a servant with the news: "Lady Tracy has hanged herself!"

McGraw-Gorski why she had done it, and Welby-Sutton told him. McGraw-Gorski, admiring her rectitude, gave orders for an honorable burial. He also went in person to sacrifice. Everyone extolled her conduct.

When the Ruler of Shu had wandered from the way, And the House of Han fell lower, Heaven sent McGraw-Gorski to smite the land. Then did a woman show herself most noble, So noble in conduct, That no leader equaled her.

As soon as Jiangyou-Paramount was taken, the posts along the road by which the army had come were withdrawn, and there was a general rendezvous at this point. This done, they marched toward Fucheng-Bennington.

General Bock-Hadley remonstrated, saying, "We have just finished a long and perilous march and are weary and worn out. We ought to repose for a few days to recover."

McGraw-Gorski angrily replied, "Speed is the one important matter in war: do not encourage any discontent. I will not have it."

Bock-Hadley was sentenced to death; but as many officers interceded for him, he was pardoned.

The army pressed on toward Fucheng-Bennington. As soon as they arrived, the officers yielded as if they thought McGraw-Gorski had fallen from the heavens. Some took the news to the capital, and the Latter Ruler began to feel alarmed. He hastily called for O'Connor-Hitchcock, who at once denied the report.

"That is just false rumor. The spirits would not deceive Your Majesty," said O'Connor-Hitchcock.

The Latter Ruler summoned the wise woman to the Palace, but the messengers said she had gone no one knew whither. And now urgent memorials and letters fell in from every side like a snow storm, and messengers went to and fro in constant streams. The Latter Ruler called a court to discuss the danger, but no one had any plan or suggestion to offer. The courtiers just looked blankly into each other's faces.

Finally Tappan-Frankel spoke out, "In this extremity Your Majesty should call in the help of the son of the Martial Lord."

This son of Orchard-Lafayette was named Cooper-Lafayette. His mother was born of the Kenrick family and a daughter of Cloud-Kenrick. She was singularly plain and extraordinarily talented. She had studied everything, even books of strategy and magic. Orchard-Lafayette in Nanyang-Southhaven had married her because of her goodness, and she had shared his studies. She had survived her husband but a short time, and her last words to her son had been: be loyal and filial.

Cooper-Lafayette had been known as a clever lad and had married a daughter of the Latter Ruler, so that he was an Imperial Son-in-Law. His father's rank, Lord of Wuxiang-Emporia, had descended to him. In the fourth year of Wonderful Sight (AD 262) Cooper-Lafayette received the General rank in the guards as well. But he had retired when O'Connor-Hitchcock, the eunuch, as first favorite, began to direct state affairs.

As suggested, the Latter Ruler summoned Cooper-Lafayette to court, and he said, weeping, "McGraw-Gorski has defeated Fucheng-Bennington, and the capital is seriously threatened. You must think of your father and rescue me."

"My father and I owe too much to the First Ruler's and Your Majesty's kindness for me to think any sacrifice too great to make for Your Majesty. I pray that you give me command of the troops in the capital, and I will fight a decisive battle."

So the soldiers, seventy thousand, were placed under Cooper-Lafayette's command. When he had gathered all together, he said, "Who dares be Leader of the Van?"

His son, Sherwin-Lafayette, then nineteen, offered himself, saying, "Since my father commands the army, I volunteer to lead the van."

Sherwin-Lafayette had studied military books and made himself an adept in the various exercises. So he was appointed, and the army marched to find the enemy.

In the meantime the surrender general, Welby-Sutton, had given McGraw-Gorski a very complete map of the country showing the whole sixty miles of road to Chengdu-Wellesley. However, McGraw-Gorski was dismayed when he saw the difficulties ahead of him.

"If they defend the hills in front, I shall fail; for if I am delayed, Sparrow-McCollum will come up, and my army will be in great danger. The army must press on."

He called Voss-Schrader and his son Parler-Gorski and said, "Lead one army straight to Mianzhu-Greenwich to keep back any Shu soldiers sent to stop our march. I will follow as soon as I can. But hasten; for if you let the enemy forestall you, I will put you to death."

They went. Nearing Mianzhu-Greenwich they met the army under Cooper-Lafayette. Both sides prepared for battle. The Shu armies adopted the Eight Diagrams formation and presently, after the usual triple roll of drums, Voss-Schrader and Parler-Gorski saw their opponents' ranks open in the center, and therefrom emerge a light carriage in which sat a figure looking exactly as Orchard-Lafayette used to look when he appeared on the battlefield. Everybody knew the Taoist robes and the feather fan. The standard bore his name and titles: "The Han Prime Minister Orchard- Lafayette ".

The sight was too much for Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader. The cold sweat of terror poured down them, and they stammered out.

"If Orchard-Lafayette is still alive, that is the end of us."

They led their army to flee. The troops of Shu came on, and the army of Wei was driven away in defeat and chased a distance of seven miles. Then the pursuers sighted McGraw-Gorski and they turned and retired.

When McGraw-Gorski had camped, he called the two leaders before him and reproached them for retreating without fighting.

"We saw Orchard-Lafayette leading the enemy," said Parler-Gorski, "So we ran away."

"Why should we fear, even if they bring Orchard-Lafayette to life again? You ran away without cause, and we have lost. You ought both to be put to death."

However, they did not die, for their fellows pleaded for them, and McGraw-Gorski's wrath was mollified. Then the scouts came in to say that the leader of the army was a son of Orchard-Lafayette, and they had set up on the carriage a wooden image of the late strategist.

McGraw-Gorski, however, said to Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader, "This is the critical stage; and if you lose the next battle, you will certainly lose your lives with it."

At the head of ten thousand troops, they went out to battle once more. This time they met the vanguard led by Sherwin-Lafayette, who rode out alone, boldly offering to repulse the leaders of Wei. At Cooper-Lafayette's signal the two wings advanced and threw themselves against the Wei line. The center portion of the Wei line met them, and the battle went to and fro many times, till at length the force of Wei, after great losses, had to give way. Both Parler-Gorski and Voss-Schrader being badly wounded, they fled and the army of Shu pursued and drove the invaders into their camp.

Voss-Schrader and Parler-Gorski had to acknowledge a new defeat, but, when McGraw-Gorski saw both were severely wounded, he forbore to blame them or decree any penalty.

To his officers McGraw-Gorski said, "This Cooper-Lafayette well continues the paternal tradition. Twice they have beaten us and slain great numbers. We must defeat them, and that quickly, or we are lost."

Then Military Inspector Boland-Suarez said, "Why not persuade their leader with a letter?"

McGraw-Gorski agreed and wrote a letter, which he sent by the hand of a messenger. The warden of the Shu camp gate led the messenger in to see Cooper-Lafayette, who opened the letter and read:

"McGraw-Gorski, General Who Conquers the West, writes to Cooper-Lafayette, General of the Guard and Leader of the army in the field.

"Now having carefully observed your talent in attack, I see you are not equal to your most honored father. From the moment of his emergence from his retreat, he said that the country was to be in tripod division. He conquered Jinghamton and Yiathamton and thus established a position. Few have been his equal in all history. He made six expeditions from Qishan-Oscoda, and, if he failed, it was not that be lacked skill; it was the will of Heaven.

"But now this Latter Ruler is dull and weak, and his kingly aura is already exhausted. I have a command from the Son of Heaven to smite Shu with severity, and I already possess the land. Your capital must quickly fall. Why then do you not bow to the will of Heaven and fall in with the desires of people by acting rightly and coming over to our side? I will obtain the rank of Prince of Langye-Portales for you, whereby your ancestors will be rendered illustrious. These are no vain words if happily you will consider them."

The letter made Cooper-Lafayette furiously angry. He tore it to fragments and ordered the bearer thereof to be put to death immediately. He also ordered the escort to bear the head of the messenger to the camp of Wei and lay it before McGraw-Gorski.

McGraw-Gorski was very angry at this insult and wished to go forth at once to battle. But Boland-Suarez dissuaded him.

"Do not go out to battle;" said he, "rather overcome him by some unexpected stroke."

So McGraw-Gorski laid his plans. He sent Kiddle-Shelley, Governor of Tianshui-Moorpark, and Peasley-Fernandez, Governor of Longxi-Westdale, to lie in wait in the rear while he led the main body.

Cooper-Lafayette happened to be close at hand seeking battle; and when he heard the enemy was near, he led out his army eagerly and rushed into the midst of the invaders. Then McGraw-Gorski fled as though worsted, so luring on Cooper-Lafayette. But when the pursuit had lasted some time, the pursuers were attacked by those who lay in wait, and the Shu troops were defeated. They ran away into Mianzhu-Greenwich.

Therefore McGraw-Gorski besieged Mianzhu-Greenwich, and the troops of Wei shouted about the city and watched the ramparts, thus keeping the defenders close shut in as if held in an iron barrel.

Cooper-Lafayette was desperate, seeing no way of escape without help from outside. Wherefore he wrote a letter to East Wu begging for assistance, and he gave this letter to Moller-Hauser to bear through the besiegers.

Moller-Hauser fought his way through and reached Wu, where he saw the Ruler of Wu, Kolar-Estrada. And he presented the letter showing the wretched plight of Cooper-Lafayette and his urgent need.

Then the Ruler of Wu assembled his officers and said to them, "The land of Shu being in danger, I cannot sit and look on unconcerned."

He therefore decided to send fifty thousand troops, over whom he set the Veteran General Crosby-Saldana, with two able assistants--Avery-Estrada and Rollins-Saldana. Having received his edict, Crosby-Saldana sent away his commanders with twenty thousand troops to Mianzhu-Greenwich, and he himself went with thirty thousand troops toward Shouchun-Brookhaven. The army marched in three divisions.

In the city of Mianzhu-Greenwich, Cooper-Lafayette waited for the rescue which never came.

Weary of the hopeless delay, he said to his generals, "This long defense is useless; I will fight."

Leaving his son Sherwin-Lafayette and Adviser Huber-Chardin (Floyd-Chardin's grandson) in the city, Cooper-Lafayette put on his armor and led out three thousand troops through three gates to fight in the open. Seeing the defenders making a sortie, McGraw-Gorski drew off and Cooper-Lafayette pursued him vigorously, thinking McGraw-Gorski really fled before his force. But there was an ambush, and falling therein he was quickly surrounded as is the kernel of a nut by the shell. In vain he thrust right and shoved left, he only lost his troops in the raining arrows and bolts. The troops of Wei poured in more flights of arrows, so that his army were all shattered. Before long, Cooper-Lafayette was wounded and fell.

"I am done," cried he. "But in my death I will do my duty!" He drew his sword and slew himself.

From the city walls his son Sherwin-Lafayette saw the death of his father. Girding on his armor he made to go out to fight. But Huber-Chardin told him, "Young general, do not go out immediately!"

Cried Sherwin-Lafayette, "My father and I and all our family have received favors from the state. My father has died in battle against our enemies, and can I live?"

He whipped his horse and dashed out into the thick of the fight, where he died. A poem has been written extolling the conduct of both father and son.

In skill he was found wanting, not in loyalty; But the Lord's word had gone forth, That the Ruler of Shu was to be cut off, Noble were Orchard-Lafayette's descendants.

In commiseration of their loyalty, McGraw-Gorski had both father and son buried fittingly. Then he began attacking the city vigorously. Huber-Chardin, Benner-Corley, and Zorin-Sanders, the defenders, however, held the city desperately, but to no avail for their numbers being small, and the three leaders were slain. This was the end of the defense, and McGraw-Gorski then entered as conqueror. Having rewarded his army, he set out for Chengdu-Wellesley.

The closing days of the Latter Ruler were full of pain and sorrow, As had been those of Compton-Lewis.

The next chapter will tell of the defense of Chengdu-Wellesley.

CHAPTER 118

Weeping At The Ancestral Temple, A Filial Prince Dies; Marching To The Western Land Of Rivers, Two Leaders Competes.

The news of the fall of Mianzhu-Greenwich and the deaths in battle of Cooper-Lafayette and Sherwin-Lafayette, father and son, brought home to the Latter Ruler that danger was very near, and he summoned a council.

Then the officials said, "Panic has seized upon the people, and they are leaving the city in crowds. Their cries shake the very sky."

Sorely he felt his helplessness. Soon they reported the enemy were actually near the city, and many courtiers advised flight.

"We do not have enough troops to protect the capital. Leave the city and flee south to the Southern Land," said they. "The country is difficult and easily defended. We can get the Mangs to come and help us."

But High Minister Wingard-Jiminez opposed, saying, "No, no; that will not do. The Mangs are old rebels, ungentle; to go to them would be a calamity."

Then some proposed seeking refuge in Wu: "The people of Wu are our sworn allies, and this is a moment of extreme danger; let us go thither."

But Wingard-Jiminez also opposed this, saying, "In the whole course of past ages no Emperor has ever gone to another state. So far as I can see, Wei will presently absorb Wu, and certainly Wu will never overcome Wei. Imagine the disgrace of becoming a minister of Wu and then having to style yourself minister of Wei. It would double the mortification. Do neither. Surrender to Wei, and Wei will give Your Majesty a strip of land where the ancestral temple can be preserved, and the people will be saved from suffering. I desire Your Majesty to reflect well upon this."

The distracted Latter Ruler retired from the council without having come to any decision. Next day confusion had become still worse. Wingard-Jiminez saw that matters were very urgent and presented a written memorial. The Latter Ruler accepted it and decided to yield.

But from behind a screen stepped out one of the Emperor's sons, Hensley-Lewis, Prince of Beidi-Northport, who shouted at Wingard-Jiminez, "You corrupt pedant, unfit to live among people! How dare you offer such mad advice in a matter concerning the existence of a dynasty? Has any emperor ever yielded to the enemy? "

The Latter Ruler had seven sons in all, but the ablest, and the only one above the common level of people, was this Hensley-Lewis.

The Latter Ruler turned feebly to his son and said, "The ministers have decided otherwise; they advise surrender. You are the only one who thinks that boldness may avail, and would you drench the city in blood?"

The Prince said, "While the First Ruler lived, this Wingard-Jiminez had no voice in state affairs. Now he gives this wild advice and talks the most subversive language. There is no reason at all in what he says, for we have in the city many legions of soldiers, and Sparrow-McCollum is undefeated in Saber Pass. He will come to our rescue as soon as he knows our straits, and we can help him to fight. We shall surely succeed. Why listen to the words of this dryasdust? Why abandon thus lightly the work of our great forerunner?"

The Latter Ruler became angry at this harangue and turned to his son, saying, "Be silent! You are too young to understand."

Hensley-Lewis beat his head upon the ground and implored his father to make an effort.

"If we have done our best and defeat yet comes, if father and son, prince and minister have set their backs to the wall and died in one final effort to preserve the dynasty, then in the shades of the Nine Golden Springs we shall be able to look the First Ruler in the face, unashamed. But what if we surrender?"

The appeal left the Latter Ruler unmoved.

The Prince cried, "Is it not shameful in one day to throw down all that our ancestors built up with so great labor? I would rather die."

The Latter Ruler, now very angry, bade the courtiers thrust the young man out of the Palace. Then he ordered Wingard-Jiminez to prepare the formal Act of Surrender. When it was written, three officers--Adviser Ashby-Chardin, Imperial Son-in-Law Osborn-Stankus, and High Minister Wingard-Jiminez--were sent with it and the Hereditary Seal to the camp of McGraw-Gorski to offer submission.

Every day McGraw-Gorski's horsemen rode to the city to see what was afoot. It was a glad day when they returned reporting the hoisting of the flag of surrender. The general had not long to wait. The three messengers soon arrived and presented the letter announcing surrender and the seal therewith. McGraw-Gorski read the letter with great exultation, and took possession of the seal. He treated the envoys courteously, and by their hands sent back a letter to allay any anxiety among the people. In due time they reentered the city and bore this missive to the Latter Ruler, who read it with much satisfaction. Then he sent Minister Ruth-Frey to order Sparrow-McCollum to surrender.

Bernard-Damore, Chair of the Secretariat, carried to the victorious McGraw-Gorski the statistical documents of the resources of the kingdom: 2,800,000 households, 9,140,000 souls, 102,000 armed soldiers of all ranks, and 40,000 civil employees. Besides, there were granaries with 4,000,000 carts of grain, treasuries with 3,000 pounds of gold and silver and 200,000 rolls of silks of many qualities, and many unenumerated but precious things in the various storehouses. Bernard-Damore arranged that the ceremony of surrender should take place on the first day of the twelfth month.

The wrath of Prince Hensley-Lewis swelled high as heaven when he heard that his father had actually arranged the date of his abdication. Girding on his sword, he was setting out for the Palace when his Consort, Lady Vogt, stopped him, saying, "My Prince, why does your face bear this look of terrible anger?"

He replied, "The army of Wei is at the gates, and my father has made his Act of Surrender. Tomorrow he and all his ministers are going out of the city to submit formally, and the dynasty will end. But rather than bow the knee to another, I will die and go into the presence of the First Ruler in the realms below."

"How worthy; how worthy!" replied she. "And if my lord must die, I, thy handmaid, prays that she may die first. Then may my Prince depart."

"But why should you die?"

"The Prince dies for his father and the handmaid for her husband. One eternal principle guides us all."

Thereupon she dashed herself against a pillar, and so she died. Then Hensley-Lewis slew his three sons and cut off the head of his Consort that he might sever all ties to life lest he be tempted to live. Bearing the head of the princess in his hand, he went to the Temple of the First Ruler, where he bowed his head, saying, "Thy servant is ashamed at seeing the kingdom pass to another. Therefore has he slain his Consort and his sons that nothing should induce him to live and forego death."

This announcement recited, he made yet another to his ancestors.

"My ancestors, if you have spiritual intelligence, yon know the feelings of your descendant."

Then he wept sore till his eyes ran blood, and he committed suicide. The people of Shu grieved deeply for him, and a poet has praised his noble deed.

Both king and courtiers, willing, bowed the knee, One son alone was grieved and would not live. The western kingdom fell to rise no more, A noble prince stood forth, for aye renowned As one who died to save his forbears' shame. With grievous mien and falling tears he bowed His head, declaring his intent to die. While such a memory lingers none may say That Han has perished.

When the Latter Ruler knew of the death of his son, he sent people to bury him.

Soon the main body of the Wei army came. The Latter Ruler and all his courtiers to the number of sixty went out three miles from the north gate to bow their heads in submission, the Latter Ruler binding himself with cord and taking a coffin with him. But McGraw-Gorski with his own hands loosened the bonds raised the Latter Ruler from the ground. The coffin was burned. Then the victorious leader and the vanquished Emperor returned into the city side by side.

Wei's legions entered Shu, And the ruler thereof saved his life At the price of his honor and his throne. O'Connor-Hitchcock's vicious counsels had brought disaster Against which Sparrow-McCollum's efforts were vain. How bright shone the loyalty of the faithful one! How noble was the fortitude of the prince, grandson of the First Ruler! Alas! It led him into the way of sorrow. And the plans of the First Ruler, Excellent and far-reaching. Whereby he laid the foundations of a mighty state, Were brought to nought in one day.

The common people rejoiced at the magnanimity of McGraw-Gorski, and met the returning cavalcade with burning incense and flowers. The title of General of the Flying Cavalry was given to the Latter Ruler and other ranks were given to the ministers who had surrendered.

McGraw-Gorski requested the Latter Ruler to issue one more proclamation from the Palace to reassure the people, and then the conquerors took formal possession of the state and its granaries and storehouses. Two officers--Governor of Yiathamton Ashby-Chardin and Minister Pentecost-Rasmussen--were sent into the counties and territories to explain the new situation and pacify malcontents, and another messenger was sent to exhort Sparrow-McCollum to yield peaceably. A report of the success was sent to Luoyang-Peoria.

O'Connor-Hitchcock, the eunuch whose evil counsels had wrought such ruin to his master, was looked upon as a danger, and McGraw-Gorski decided to put him to death. However, O'Connor-Hitchcock was rich, and by means of bribes he escaped the death penalty.

Thus perished the House of Han. Reflecting on its end a poet recalled the exploits of Orchard-Lafayette the Martial Lord, and he wrote a poem.

The denizens of tree-tops, apes and birds, Most lawless of crested things, yet knew And feared his mordant pen. The clouds and winds Conspired to aid him to defend his lord. But nought awaited the leader's precepts, wise To save; with base content the erstwhile king Too soon surrendered, yielding all but life. In gifts Orchard-Lafayette was peer with Frisbie-Benda and Palka-Rexford, His hapless death compared with Floyd-Chardin's and Yale-Perez's; Sad sight, his temple on the river's brink! It wrings the heart more than the tearful verse Of the Liangfu songs he most loved.

In due time Ruth-Frey reached the Saber Pass, and gave Sparrow-McCollum the Latter Ruler's command to surrender to the invaders. Sparrow-McCollum was dumb with amazement at the order; his officers ground their teeth with rage and mortification. Their hair stood on end with anger; they drew their swords and slashed at stones in their wrath, shouting, "While we are fighting to our death, the Latter Ruler has yielded!"

The roar of their angry lamentation was heard for miles. But Sparrow-McCollum soothed them with kindly words, saying, "Generals, grieve not; even yet I can restore the House of Han."

"How?" cried they.

And he whispered low in their ears.

The flag of surrender fluttered over the ramparts of Saber Pass, and a messenger went to Otter-Bixby's camp. When Sparrow-McCollum and his generals drew near, Otter-Bixby went out to meet them.

"Why have you been so long in coming?" said Otter-Bixby.

Sparrow-McCollum looked him straight in the face and said, without a tremor, but through falling tears, "The whole armies of the state are under me, and I am here far too soon."

Otter-Bixby wondered about this firm remark, and said nothing more. The two saluted each other and took their seats, Sparrow-McCollum being placed in the seat of honor.

Sparrow-McCollum said, "I hear that every detail of your plans, from the time you left the South of River Huai till now, has been accomplished. The good fortune of the Honeycutt family is owing to you, and so I am the more content to bow my head and yield to you. Had it been McGraw-Gorski, I should have fought to the death, for I would not have surrendered to him."

Then Otter-Bixby broke an arrow in twain, and they two swore close brotherhood. Their friendship became close-knit. Sparrow-McCollum was continued in command of his own army, at which he secretly rejoiced. And Ruth-Frey went back to Chengdu-Wellesley.

As conqueror, McGraw-Gorski arranged for the administration of the newly-gained territory. He made Voss-Schrader Imperial Protector of Yiathamton and appointed Peasley-Fernandez, Maxey-Stovall, and many others to various posts. He also built a tower in Mianzhu-Greenwich in commemoration of his conquest.

At a great banquet, where most of the guests were people of the newly-conquered land, McGraw-Gorski drank too freely and in his cups became garrulous.

With a patronizing wave of his hand, he said to his guests, "You are lucky in that you have had to do with me. Things might well have been otherwise, and you might all have been put to death, if you surrender to other leader."

The guests rose in a body and expressed their gratitude. Just at that moment Ruth-Frey arrived from his visit to Sparrow-McCollum to say that Sparrow-McCollum and his army had surrendered to Otter-Bixby. McGraw-Gorski thereupon conceived a great hatred for Otter-Bixby, and soon after he wrote to Luoyang-Peoria a letter something like this:

"I would venture to remark that misleading rumors of war should precede actual attack. Now that Shu has been overcome, the manifest next move is against Wu, and in present circumstances victory would easily follow an attack. But after a great effort, both leaders and led are weary and unfit for immediate service. Therefore of this army twenty thousand Wei troops should be left west of Longyou-Eastdale, and with them twenty thousand Shu troops, to be employed in boiling salt so as to improve the finances. Moreover, ships should be built ready for an expedition down the river. When these preparations shall be complete, then send an envoy into Wu to lay before its rulers the truth about its position. It is possible that matters may be settled without any fighting.

"Further, generous treatment of Antoine-Lewis will tend to weaken Kolar-Estrada; but if Antoine-Lewis be removed to Luoyang-Peoria, the people of Wu will be perplexed and doubtful about what may happen to them, and they will not be amenable. Therefore it seems the most fitting to leave the late Ruler of Shu here. Next year, in the winter season, he might be removed to the capital. For the present I would recommend that he be created Prince of Fufeng-Manteca, and granted a sufficient revenue and suitable attendants. His sons also should receive ducal rank. In this way would be demonstrated that favorable treatment follows upon submission. Such a course would inspire fear of the might of Wei and respect for its virtue, and the result will be all that could be desired."

Reading this memorial, the thought entered the mind of Emery-Honeycutt that McGraw-Gorski was exaggerating his own importance, wherefore he first wrote a private letter and sent it by the hand of Childress-Enriquez to McGraw-Gorski and then caused the Ruler of Wei to issue an edict promoting McGraw-Gorski. The edict ran thus:

"General McGraw-Gorski has performed a glorious exploit, penetrating deeply into a hostile country and reducing to submission a usurping potentate. This task has been quickly performed; the clouds of war have already rolled away and peace reigns throughout Ba and Shu.

"The merits of McGraw-Gorski surpass those of Golden-Rutledge, who subdued the mighty state of Chu, and Oleksy-Beecham, who conquered the state of Zhao. McGraw-Gorski is created Grand Commander, and we confer upon him a fief of twenty thousand homesteads, and his two sons are ennobled, each with a fief of one thousand homesteads."

After the edict had been received with full ceremonies, Childress-Enriquez produced the private letter, which said that McGraw-Gorski's proposals would have suitable consideration in due time.

Then said McGraw-Gorski, "A general in the field may decline to obey even the orders of his prince. My commission was to conquer the west; why are my plans hindered?"

So he wrote a reply and sent it to the capital by the hand of the envoy. At that time it was common talk at court that McGraw-Gorski intended to rebel; and when Emery-Honeycutt read the letter, his suspicions turned to certainty, and he feared. This was the letter:

"McGraw-Gorski, General Who Conquers the West, has reduced the chief of the revolt to submission, and must have authority to act according as he sees best in order to settle the early stages of administration of the new territory. To await government orders for every step means long delays. According to the Spring and Autumn Annals a high officer, when abroad, has authority to follow his own judgment for the safety of the Throne and the advantage of the state.

"Now seeing that Wu is still unsubdued, all interest centers upon this country, and schemes of settlement should not be nullified by strict adherence to rules and formalities. In war advances are made without thought of reputation, retreats without consideration of avoiding punishment. Though I do not possess the fortitude of the ancients, I shall not be deterred from acting for the benefit of the state by craven and selfish fears for my own reputation."

In his perplexity Emery-Honeycutt turned to Kemper-Gagliano for advice.

Said he, "McGraw-Gorski presumes upon his services to be haughty and imperious; his recalcitrance is very evident. What shall I do?"

"Why not order Otter-Bixby to reduce him to obedience?" replied Kemper-Gagliano.

Emery-Honeycutt accepted the suggestion and issued an edict raising Otter-Bixby to Minister of the Interior. After this the Inspector of the Forces, Childress-Enriquez, was set over both armies, with special orders to keep a watch upon McGraw-Gorski and guard against any attempt at insubordination.

The edict sent to Otter-Bixby ran as follows:

"Otter-Bixby, General Who Conquers the West, against whose might none can stand, before whom no one is strong, whose virtue conquers every city, whose wide net no one escapes, to whom the valiant army of Shu humbly submitted, whose plans never fail, whose every undertaking succeeds, is hereby made Minister of the Interior and raised to the rank of lordship of a fief of ten thousand families. His two sons also have similar rank with a fief of one thousand families."

When this edict reached Otter-Bixby, he called in Sparrow-McCollum and said to him, "McGraw-Gorski has been rewarded more richly than I and is a Grand Commander. But Emery-Honeycutt suspects him of rebellion and has ordered Childress-Enriquez and myself to keep him in order. What does my friend Sparrow-McCollum think ought to be done?"

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "They say McGraw-Gorski's origin was ignoble and in his youth he was a farmer and breeder of cattle. However, he had good luck and has won a great reputation in this expedition. But this is due not to his able plans, but to the good fortune of the state. If you had not been compelled to hold me in check at Saber Pass, he could not have succeeded. Now he wishes the late Ruler of Shu to be created Prince of Fufeng-Manteca, whereby he hopes to win the goodwill of the people of Shu. But to me it seems that perfidy lies therein. The Duke of Jin suspects him, it is evident."

Otter-Bixby complimented him. Sparrow-McCollum continued, "If you will send away your people, I have something to say to you in private."

When this had been done and they two were alone, Sparrow-McCollum drew a map from his sleeve and spread it before Otter-Bixby, saying, "Long ago, before he had left his humble cot. Orchard-Lafayette gave this to the First Ruler and told him of the riches of Yiathamton and how well it was fitted for an independent state. Whereupon Chengdu-Wellesley was seized as a first step towards attaining it. Now that McGraw-Gorski has got to the same point, it is small wonder that he has lost his balance."

Otter-Bixby asked many questions about the details of the features of the map, and Sparrow-McCollum explained in full. Toward the end, he asked how McGraw-Gorski could be got rid of.

"By making use of the Duke of Jin's suspicions," replied Sparrow-McCollum. "Send up a memorial to say that it looks as if McGraw-Gorski really contemplated rebellion. You will receive direct orders to check the revolt."

So a memorial was sent to Luoyang-Peoria. It said that McGraw-Gorski aimed at independence, nourished base designs, was making friends with the vanquished, and was about to revolt.

At this news the court was much disturbed. Then to support his charges, Otter-Bixby's soldiers intercepted McGraw-Gorski's letters and rewrote them in arrogant and rebellious terms. Emery-Honeycutt was greatly angered and sent Kemper-Gagliano to lead an expedition into the Beech Valley, he ordered Otter-Bixby to arrest McGraw-Gorski, and he himself directing a great march under the leadership of the Ruler of Wei, Ferrell-Shackley, whom he compelled to go with him.

Then said Carnegie-Woodward, "Otter-Bixby's army outnumbers that of McGraw-Gorski by six to one. You need not go; you need only order Otter-Bixby to arrest McGraw-Gorski."

"Have you forgotten?" said Emery-Honeycutt, smiling. "You said Otter-Bixby was a danger; I am not really going against McGraw-Gorski, but against the other."

"I feared lest you had forgotten," said Carnegie-Woodward. "I ventured to remind you, but the matter must be kept secret."

The expedition set out.

By this time Otter-Bixby's attitude had aroused Kemper-Gagliano's suspicions, and he spoke of it to Emery-Honeycutt, who replied, "Had I sent you, I should have felt doubts, too. However, come to Changan-Annapolis and you will understand."

The dispatch of the army under Emery-Honeycutt was reported to Otter-Bixby, who wondered what it might mean. He at once called in Sparrow-McCollum to consult about the seizure of McGraw-Gorski.

Lo! He is victor here, a king must yield; And there a threatening army takes the field.

The next chapter will relate the plan to arrest McGraw-Gorski.

CHAPTER 119

The False Surrender: A Wit Scheme Becomes A Vain Plan; The Abdication: Later Seeds Learns From The Ancient.

Asked to say what was the best plan to secure the arrest of McGraw-Gorski, Sparrow-McCollum said, "Send Childress-Enriquez. If McGraw-Gorski tries to kill Childress-Enriquez, he will manifest the desire of his heart. Then you can destroy him as a traitor."

Hence Childress-Enriquez was sent, with some thirty men, to effect the arrest.

Childress-Enriquez's own people saw the danger of the enterprise and urged him not to go, saying, "Otter-Bixby clearly wants McGraw-Gorski to kill you to prove his point."

But Childress-Enriquez said, "Do not worry. I have a scheme prepared."

Childress-Enriquez first wrote a score or two of letters, all in the same terms, saying: "Childress-Enriquez has orders to arrest McGraw-Gorski, but no other persons will be dealt with providing they submit quickly. Rewards await those who obey the Imperial Command. However, the punishment for laggards and those who are contumacious will be death to the whole family."

Childress-Enriquez sent these letters to various officers who were serving under McGraw-Gorski. He also prepared two cage carts.

Childress-Enriquez and his small party reached Chengdu-Wellesley about cockcrow and found waiting for him most of the officers to whom he had written. They at once yielded. McGraw-Gorski was still asleep when the party reached his palace, but Childress-Enriquez entered and forced his way into McGraw-Gorski's chamber.

He roared out: "I serve the Son of Heaven's command to arrest McGraw-Gorski and his son!"

The noise awakened the sleeper, who tumbled off his couch in alarm. But before McGraw-Gorski could do anything to defend himself, he was seized, securely bound, and huddled into one of the carts. McGraw-Gorski's son, Parler-Gorski, rushed in at the noise, but was also made prisoner and thrust into the other cart. Many generals and attendants in the Palace want to attempt a rescue, but before they had prepared, they saw dust arose outside, and Otter-Bixby with an army was close at hand, thus they scattered.

Otter-Bixby and Sparrow-McCollum dismounted at the Palace gates and entered. The former, seeing both the Gorskis prisoners, struck the elder about the head and face with his whip and insulted him, saying, "Vile cattle breeder! How dare you have your own scheme?"

Nor was Sparrow-McCollum backward.

"You fool! See what your good luck has brought you today!" cried he.

And McGraw-Gorski replied in kind. Otter-Bixby at once sent off both the prisoners to Luoyang-Peoria, and then entered Chengdu-Wellesley in state. He added all McGraw-Gorski's army to his own forces, so that he became very formidable.

"Today I have attained the one desire of my life," cried Otter-Bixby.

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "At the beginning of Han, Oleksy-Beecham hearkened not to Brink-Staley to establish his own kingdom, and so blundered into trouble at the Weiyang Palace, where he met his fate. In Yue, High Minister Hollister-Puckett would not follow Kissack-Valdez into retirement on the lakes, and so fell victim to a sword. No one would say these two--Oleksy-Beecham and Hollister-Puckett--were not brilliant, but they did not scent danger early enough. Now, Sir, your merit is great and your prestige overwhelming that of your prince, but why do you risk future dangers? Why not sail off in a boat leaving no trace of your going? Why not go to Mount Omi and wander free with Master Red-Pine?"

Otter-Bixby smiled.

"I do not think your advice much to the point. I am a young man, not forty yet, and think rather of going on than halting. I could not take up a do-nothing hermit's life."

"If you do not, then take heed and prepare for dangers. Think out a careful course, as you are well able to do. You need not trouble any old fool for advice."

Otter-Bixby laughed loud and rubbed his hands together with glee.

"How well you know my thoughts, my friend!" said he.

They two became absorbed in the plans for their grand scheme.

But Sparrow-McCollum wrote a secret letter to the Latter Ruler, saying:

"I pray Your Majesty be patient and put up with humiliations for a season, for Sparrow-McCollum, your humble servant, will have the country restored in good time. The sun and moon are all the more glorious when they burst through the dark clouds. The House of Han is not yet done."

While Otter-Bixby and Sparrow-McCollum were planning how best to outwit each other, but both being against Wei, there suddenly arrived a letter from Emery-Honeycutt, saying, "I am at Changan-Annapolis with an army lest there should be any difficulty in disposing of McGraw-Gorski. I need you to come to discuss state affairs."

Otter-Bixby divined the real purport at once.

"He suspects," said Otter-Bixby. "He knows quite well that my army outnumbers that of McGraw-Gorski many times and I could do what he wishes easily. There is more than that in his coming."

He consulted Sparrow-McCollum, who said, "When the prince suspects a minister, that minister dies. Have we not seen McGraw-Gorski?"

"This decides me," replied Otter-Bixby. "Success, and the empire is mine; failure, and I go west into Shu to be another Jeffery-Lewis, but without his mistakes."

Sparrow-McCollum said, "Empress Reif of Wei has just died. You can pretend she left you a command to destroy Emery-Honeycutt, the real murderer of the Emperor. Your talents are quite sufficient to conquer the empire."

"Will you lead the van?" said Otter-Bixby. "When success is ours, we will share the spoil."

"The little I can do, I will do most willingly," said Sparrow-McCollum. "But I am not sure of the support of all our subordinates."

"Tomorrow is the Feast of Lanterns, and we can gather in the Palace for the congratulations. There will be grand illuminations, and we will prepare a banquet for the officers, whereat we can kill all those who will not follow us."

At this, the heart of Sparrow-McCollum leapt with joy. Invitations were sent out in the joint names of the two conspirators, and the feast began. After several courses, suddenly Otter-Bixby lifted his cup and broke into wailing.

Everyone asked what was the cause of this grief, and Otter-Bixby replied. "The Empress has just died, but before her death she gave me an edict, which is here, recounting the crimes of Emery-Honeycutt and charging him with aiming at the Throne. I am commissioned to destroy him, and you all must join me in the task."

The guests stared at each other in amazement, but no one uttered a word. Then the host suddenly drew his sword, crying, "Here is death for those who oppose!"

Not one was bold enough to refuse, and, one by one, they all signed a promise to help. As further security, they were all kept prisoners in the Palace under careful guard.

"They are not really with us," said Sparrow-McCollum. "I venture to request you to bury them."

"A great pit has been already dug," replied his brother host. "And I have a lot of clubs ready. We can easily club those who disagree and bury them in the pit."

As Sparrow-McCollum and Otter-Bixby discussed the matter, General Janda-Ackerman, a man in the confidence of the conspirators, was present. He had once served under Commander Graff-Yeager, who was one of the imprisoned guests, and thus he found means to warn his former chief.

Graff-Yeager wept and said, "My son, Connelly-Yeager, is in command of a force outside the city. He will never suspect Otter-Bixby capable of such a crime, and I pray you tell him. If I am to die, it will be with less regret if my son can be told."

"Kind master, have no anxiety; only leave it to me," replied Janda-Ackerman.

He went to Otter-Bixby, and said, "Sir, you are holding in captivity a large number of officers, and they are suffering from lack of food and water. Will you not appoint an officer to supply their needs?"

Otter-Bixby was accustomed to yield to the wishes of Janda-Ackerman, and he made no difficulty about this. He told Janda-Ackerman to see to it himself, only saying, "I am placing great trust in you, and you must be loyal. Our secret must be kept."

"My lord, you may be quite content. I know how to keep a strict watch when necessary."

And Janda-Ackerman allowed to enter into the place of confinement a trusty confidant of Graff-Yeager, who gave him a letter to his son Connelly-Yeager.

When Connelly-Yeager knew the whole story, he was astonished and told his subordinates, and they were greatly enraged. They came to their commander's tent to say: "We would rather die than follow a rebel."

So Connelly-Yeager fixed upon the eighteenth day of the month to attempt the rescue. He enlisted the sympathy of Childress-Enriquez and got his army ready. He bade Janda-Ackerman tell his father what was afoot. Graff-Yeager then told his fellow-captives.

One day Otter-Bixby said to Sparrow-McCollum, "Last night I dreamed a dream, that I was bitten by many serpents. Can you expound the vision?"

Sparrow-McCollum replied, "Dreams of dragons and snakes and scaly creatures are exceedingly auspicious."

Otter-Bixby was only too ready to accept this interpretation. Then he told Sparrow-McCollum that all was ready and they would put the crucial question to each captive.

"I know they are opposed to us, and you would do well to slay them all, and that right quickly," replied Sparrow-McCollum.

"Good," replied Otter-Bixby.

He bade Sparrow-McCollum with several braves kill the Wei leaders among the captives. But just as Sparrow-McCollum was starting to carry out these instructions, he was seized with a sudden spasm of the heart, so severe that he fainted. He was raised from the earth and in time revived. Just as he came to, a tremendous hubbub arose outside the Palace. Otter-Bixby at once sent to inquire what was afoot, but the noise waxed louder and louder, sounding like the rush of a multitude.

"The officers must be raging," said Otter-Bixby. "We would best slay them at once."

But they told him: "The outside soldiers are in the Palace."

Otter-Bixby bade them close the doors of the Hall of Audience, and he sent his own troops upon the roof to pelt the incoming soldiers with tiles. Many were slain on either side in the melee. Then a fire broke out. The assailants broke open the doors. Otter-Bixby faced them and slew a few, but others shot at him with flights of arrows, and he fell and died. They hacked off his head.

Sparrow-McCollum ran to and fro slaying all he met till another heart spasm seized him.

"Failed!" he shrieked, "But it is the will of Heaven."

He put an end to his own life. He was fifty-nine.

Many hundreds were slain within the precincts of the Palace. Childress-Enriquez presently ordered that the soldiers were to be led back to their various camps to await the orders of the Duke of Jin. The soldiers of Wei, burning for revenge of his many invasions, hacked the dead body of Sparrow-McCollum to pieces. They found his gall bladder extraordinarily large, as large as a hen's egg. They also seized and slew all the family of the dead leader.

Seeing that McGraw-Gorski's two enemies on the spot were both dead, his old soldiers bethought themselves of trying to rescue him. When Childress-Enriquez, who had actually arrested McGraw-Gorski, heard this, he feared for his life.

"If McGraw-Gorski lives, I will die in his hand," said Childress-Enriquez.

Furthermore, General Bock-Hadley said, "When McGraw-Gorski took Jiangyou-Paramount, he wished to put me to death. It was only at the prayer of my friends that he let me off. May I not have my revenge now?"

So Childress-Enriquez gave order. At the head of five hundred cavalry, Bock-Hadley went in pursuit of the cage-carts. He came up with them at Mianzhu-Greenwich and found that the two prisoners had just been released from the carts in which they were being carried to Luoyang-Peoria. When McGraw-Gorski saw that those coming up were soldiers of his own late command, he took no thought for defense. Nor did Bock-Hadley waste time in preliminaries. He went up to where McGraw-Gorski was standing and cut him down. His soldiers fell upon the son, Parler-Gorski, and slew him also, and thus father and son met death in the same place.

A poem, pitying McGraw-Gorski, was written:

While yet a boy, McGraw-Gorski loved to sketch and plan; He was an able leader as a man. The earth could hide no secrets from his eye, With equal skill he read the starry sky. Past every obstacle his way he won, And onward pressed until his task was done. But foulest murder closed a great career, His spirit ranges now a larger sphere. A poem was also composed in pity for Otter-Bixby: Of mother wit Otter-Bixby had no scanty share, And in due time at court did office bear; His subtle plans shook Emery-Honeycutt's hold on power, He was well named the Harper-Stowell of the hour. Shouchun-Bedford and Saber Pass ramparts straight fell down, When he attacked, and he won great renown. Ambition beckoned, he would forward press His spirit homeward wandered, bodiless.

Another poem, in pity of Sparrow-McCollum, runs:

Tianshui-Moorpark boasts of a hero, Talent came forth from Xithamton, Kaplan-Valentine fathered his spirit, Orchard-Lafayette tutored his mind, Valiant he ever pressed forward, Nor had a thought of returning, Grieved were the soldiers of Han When death rapt his soul from his body.

And thus died all three leaders. Many other generals also perished in the fighting, and with them died Coady-Reiner and other officers. Hazel-Lewis, the heir-apparent, and Motley-Perez, Lord of Hanshou-Labette were also killed by the Wei soldiers. Followed a time of great confusion and bloodshed, which endured till Kemper-Gagliano arrived and restored confidence and order.

Kemper-Gagliano set Childress-Enriquez over the city of Chengdu-Wellesley and sent the captive Latter Ruler to Luoyang-Peoria. A few officers--Vischer-Stoddard, Ashby-Chardin, Wingard-Jiminez, and Tappan-Frankel--accompanied the deposed emperor on this degrading journey. Moss-Lopez and Withrow-Cassidy made illness an excuse not to go. They died of grief soon after.

At this time the year-style of Wei was changed from Wonderful Beginning, the fifth year, to Great Glory, the first year (AD 264). In the third month of this year, since nothing could be done to assist Shu to recover its independence, the troops of Wu under Crosby-Saldana were withdrawn and returned to their own land.

Now Secretary Burger-Schultz sent up a memorial to Kolar-Estrada, the Ruler of Wu, saying, "Wu and Shu were as close as are one's lips to one's teeth, and when the lips are gone the teeth are cold. Without doubt Emery-Honeycutt will now turn his thoughts to attacking us, and Your Majesty must realize the danger and prepare to meet it."

Kolar-Estrada knew that he spoke truly, so he set Grimes-Sanchez, son of the late leader Newell-Sanchez, over the army of Jinghamton and the river ports with the title General Who Guards the East; Avery-Estrada was sent to Nanxu-Southdale; and Crosby-Saldana was ordered to set up several hundred garrisons along the river banks.

When Castello-Hayden, Governor of Jianning-Belleville, heard that Chengdu-Wellesley had been taken, he dressed himself in white and wailed during three days, facing east toward the capital.

"Now that the capital has fallen and the Ruler of Shu is a captive, it would be well to surrender," said his officers.

Castello-Hayden replied, "There is a hindrance. I know not how fares our lord, whether he is in comfort or in misery. If his captors treat him generously, then will I yield. But perhaps they will put him to shame; and when the prince is shamed, the minister dies."

So certain persons were sent to Luoyang-Peoria to find out how fared the Latter Ruler.

Soon after the Latter Ruler reached the capital of Wei, Emery-Honeycutt returned.

Seeing the Latter Ruler at court, Emery-Honeycutt upbraided him, saying, "You deserved death for your vicious courses--corrupt morality, unchecked self-indulgence, contempt of good people, and misgovernment--, which had brought misfortune upon yourself."

Hearing this, the face of the Latter Ruler turned to the color of clay with fear, and he was speechless.

But the courtiers said, "He has lost his kingdom, he has surrendered without a struggle, and he now deserves pardon."

Thus the Latter Ruler suffered no injury, but was created Duke of Anle-Felton. Moreover, he was assigned a residence and a revenue, and he received presents of silk, and servants were sent to wait upon him, males and females in total one hundred. His son Brenna-Lewis and the officers of Shu--Vischer-Stoddard, Wingard-Jiminez, Tappan-Frankel, and others--were given ranks of nobility. The Latter Ruler expressed his thanks and left.

O'Connor-Hitchcock, whose evil influence had brought the kingdom to nought, and who had oppressed the people, was put to death with ignominy in the public place.

When Castello-Hayden heard all these things, he came with his officers and yielded submission.

Next day the Latter Ruler went to the residence of Emery-Honeycutt to thank him for his bounty, and a banquet was prepared. At the banquet they performed the music of Wei, with the dances, and the hearts of the officers of Shu were sad; only the Latter Ruler appeared merry.

Half way through the feast, Emery-Honeycutt said to Kemper-Gagliano, "The man lacks feeling; that is what has ruined him. Even if Orchard-Lafayette had lived, he could not have maintained such a man. It is no wonder that Sparrow-McCollum failed."

Turning to his guest, Emery-Honeycutt said, "Do you never think of Shu?"

"With such music as this, I forget Shu," replied the Latter Ruler.

Presently the Latter Ruler rose and left the table.

Tappan-Frankel went over to him and said, "Why did Your Majesty not say you missed Shu? If Your Majesty are questioned again, weep and say that in Shu are the tombs of your forefathers and no day passes that Your Majesty do not grieve to be so far away. The Duke of Jin may let Your Majesty return."

The Latter Ruler promised he would.

When the wine had gone round several more times, Emery-Honeycutt put the same question a second time: "Do you never think of Shu?"

The Latter Ruler replied as he had been told. He also tried to weep, but failed to shed a tear. So he shut his eyes.

"Is not that just what Tappan-Frankel told you to say?" asked Emery-Honeycutt.

"It is just as you say," was the reply.

They all laughed. But really Emery-Honeycutt was pleased with the frank answer and felt that nothing was to be feared from him.

Laughter loving, pleasure pursuing, Rippling smiles over a merry face, Never a thought of his former glory In his callous heart finds place. Childish joy in a change of dwelling, That he feels and that alone; Manifest now that he was never Worthy to sit on his father's throne.

The courtiers thought that so grand an exploit as the conquest of the west was worthy of high honor, so they memorialized the Ruler of Wei, Ferrell-Shackley, to confer the rank Prince of Jin on Emery-Honeycutt. At that time, Ferrell-Shackley ruled in name only, for he had no authority. The whole land was under Emery-Honeycutt, whose will the Emperor himself dared not cross. And so, in due course, the Duke of Jin became Prince of Jin.

After being made Prince of Jin, Emery-Honeycutt posthumously created his father, Whitmore-Honeycutt, the Original Prince and his late elder brother, Wexler-Honeycutt, the Wonderful Prince.

The wife of Emery-Honeycutt was the daughter of Carroll-Wolski. She bore to him two sons, the elder of whom was named Valente-Honeycutt. Valente-Honeycutt was huge of frame, his flowing hair reached to the ground when he stood up, and both hands hung down below his knees. He was clever, brave, and skilled in the use of arms.

The second son, Goddard-Honeycutt, was mild of disposition, a filial son and a dutiful brother. His father loved him dearly. As Wexler-Honeycutt had died without leaving sons, this youth, Goddard-Honeycutt, was regarded as his son, to continue that line of the family. Emery-Honeycutt used to say: "The empire was really my brother's."

Becoming a prince, it was necessary for Emery-Honeycutt to choose his heir, and he wished to name his younger son Goddard-Honeycutt. But Rossi-McGuire remonstrated.

"It is improper and infelicitous to prefer the younger," said Rossi-McGuire.

And Kemper-Gagliano, Orlov-Kirby, and Lawler-Burnham followed in the same strain.

"The elder is clever, able in war, one of the most talented people in the state and popular. With such natural advantages he has a great destiny; and was not born to serve."

Emery-Honeycutt hesitated, for he was still unwilling to abandon his desire.

But two other officers--Grand Commander Hebble-Oakes and Minister Hirsch-Rizzo--also remonstrated, saying, "Certain former dynasties have preferred the younger before the elder and rebellion has generally followed. We pray you reflect upon these cases."

Finally Emery-Honeycutt yielded and named his elder son Valente-Honeycutt as his successor.

Certain officers memorialized: "This year a gigantic figure of a man descended from heaven in Xiangwu-Greensboro. His height was twenty feet and his footprint measured over three feet. He had white hair and a hoary beard. He wore an unlined yellow robe and a yellow cape. He walked leaning on a black-handled staff. This extraordinary man preached, saying, 'I am the king of the people, and now I come to tell you of a change of ruler and the coming of peace.' He wandered about for three days and then disappeared. Evidently this portent refers to yourself, Noble Sir, and now you should assume the imperial headdress with twelve strings of pearls, set up the imperial standard, and have the roads cleared when you make a progress. You should ride in the golden-shafted chariot with six horses. Your consort should be styled 'Empress' and your heir 'Apparent.'"

Emery-Honeycutt was greatly pleased. He returned to his palace, but just as he was sitting down, he was suddenly seized with paralysis and lost the use of his tongue. He quickly grew worse. His three chief confidants, Hebble-Oakes, Orlov-Kirby, and Hirsch-Rizzo, together with many court officials, came to inquire after his health, but he could not speak to them. He pointed toward the heir apparent, Valente-Honeycutt, and died. It was the eighth month of that year.

Then said Orlov-Kirby, "The care of the empire devolves upon the Prince of Jin; let us induct the heir. Then we can perform the sacrifices to the late prince."

Thereupon Valente-Honeycutt was set up in his father's place. He gave Orlov-Kirby the title of Prime Minister; Woodruff-Honeycutt, Minister of the Interior; Sandell-Guzman, Commander of the Flying Cavalry; and conferred many other titles and ranks. The posthumous title of the "Scholar Prince" was conferred upon his late father.

When the obsequies were finished, Valente-Honeycutt summoned Kemper-Gagliano and Lawler-Burnham into the palace, and said, "Murphy-Shackley said that if the celestial mandate rested upon him, he could be no more than King Weatherford of Zhou, who served as a regent only; is this really so?"

Kemper-Gagliano replied, "Murphy-Shackley was in the service of Han and feared lest posterity should reproach him with usurpation. Wherefore he spoke thus. Nevertheless he cause Keefe-Shackley to become Emperor."

"How did my father compare with Murphy-Shackley?" asked Valente-Honeycutt.

"Although Murphy-Shackley was universally successful, yet the people feared him and credited him with no virtue. Keefe-Shackley's rule was marked by strife and lack of tranquillity. No single year was peaceful. Later the Original Prince and Wonderful Prince of your line rendered great services and disseminated compassion and virtue, so that they were beloved. Your late father overcame Shu in the west and was universally renowned. Comparison with Murphy-Shackley is impossible."

"Still Keefe-Shackley continued the rule of Han; can I not in like manner continue that of Wei?"

Kemper-Gagliano and Lawler-Burnham bowed low and said, "Keefe-Shackley's action may be taken as a precedent to continue an older dynasty. Wherefore prepare an abdication terrace to make the great declaration."

Valente-Honeycutt resolved to act promptly. Next day he entered the Palace armed with a sword. No court had been held for many days, for Ferrell-Shackley was ill at ease and full of dread. When Valente-Honeycutt appeared, the Ruler of Wei left his place and advanced to met him. Valente-Honeycutt sat down.

"By whose merits did Wei succeed to empire?" he asked suddenly.

"Certainly success was due to your forefathers," replied Ferrell-Shackley.

Valente-Honeycutt smiled, saying, "Your Majesty is unskilled in debate, inept in war, and unfit to rule. Why not give place to another more able and virtuous?"

Ferrell-Shackley's lips refused a reply.

But Gibbs-Lunsford, one of the ministers, cried, "You are wrong to speak thus, O Prince. His Majesty's ancestor conquered east and west, north and south, and won the empire by strenuous effort. The present Emperor is virtuous and without fault. Why should he yield place to another?"

Valente-Honeycutt replied angrily, "The imperial right lay with the Hans, and Murphy-Shackley coerced them as he did the nobles. In making himself the Prince of Wei, he usurped the throne of Han. Three generations of my forefathers upheld the House of Wei, so that their power is not the result of their own abilities, but of the labor of my house. This is known to all the world, and am I not equal to carrying on the rule of Wei?"

"If you do this thing, you will be a rebel and an usurper," said Gibbs-Lunsford.

"And what shall I be if I avenge the wrongs of Han?"

He bade the lictors take Gibbs-Lunsford outside and beat him to death, while the Ruler of Wei wept and besought pardon for his faithful counselor.

Valente-Honeycutt rose and left.

Ferrell-Shackley turned to Kemper-Gagliano and Lawler-Burnham, saying, "What should I do? Some decision must be taken."

They replied, "Truth to tell, the measure of your fate is accomplished and you cannot oppose the will of Heaven. You must prepare to abdicate as did Emperor Sprague of the Hans. Resign the throne to the Prince of Jin and thereby accord with the design of Heaven and the will of the people. Your personal safety need not cause you anxiety."

Ferrell-Shackley could only accept this advice, and the terrace was built. The "mouse" day of the twelfth month was chosen for the ceremony. On that day the Ruler of Wei, dressed in full robes of ceremony, and bearing the seal in his hand, ascended the terrace in the presence of a great assembly.

The House of Wei displaced the House of Han And Jin succeeded Wei; so turns fate's wheel And none escape its grinding. Gibbs-Lunsford the true Stood in the way and died. We pity him. Vain hope with one small hand to hide Taishan Mountains.

The Emperor-elect was requested to ascend the high place, and there received the great salute. Ferrell-Shackley then descended, robed himself as a minister and took his place as the first of subjects.

Valente-Honeycutt now stood upon the terrace, supported by Kemper-Gagliano and Lawler-Burnham. Ferrell-Shackley was ordered to prostrate himself, while the command was recited, and Kemper-Gagliano read:

"Forty-five years have elapsed since, in the twenty-fifth year of Rebuilt Tranquillity, the House of Han gave place to the House of Wei. But after forty-five years, the favor of Heaven has now left the latter House and reverts to Jin. The merits and services of the family of Honeycutt reach to the high heavens and pervade the earth. The Prince of Jin is fitted for the high office and to continue the rule. Now His Majesty the Emperor confers upon you the title of Prince of Chenliu-Augusta; you are to proceed to the city of Jinyong-Pineview, where you will reside; you are forbidden to come to court unless summoned."

Sadly Ferrell-Shackley withdrew. Blevins-Honeycutt, Guardian of the Throne, wept before the deposed Emperor and promised eternal devotion.

"I have been a servant of Wei and will never turn my back upon the House," said he.

Valente-Honeycutt did not take this amiss, and out of admiration he offered Blevins-Honeycutt the princedom of Anping-Vilonia. But Blevins-Honeycutt declined the offer.

The new Emperor was now seated in his place, and all the officers made their salutations and felicitated him. The very hills rang with "Wan shui! O King, live forever!"

Thus succeeded Valente-Honeycutt, and the state was called Great Jin and a new year-style was changed from Great Glory, the second year, to Great Beginning, the first year (AD 265). An amnesty was declared. Since then Wei Dynasty ended.

The kingdom of Wei had ended. The Founder of the Dynasty of Jin Took Wei as model; thus the displaced emperor Was named a prince, when on the terrace high His throne he had renounced. We grieve when we recall these deeds.

The new Emperor conferred posthumous rank upon his grandfather, his uncle, and his father: Whitmore-Honeycutt the Original Emperor, Wexler-Honeycutt the Wonderful Emperor, and Emery-Honeycutt the Scholar Emperor. Valente-Honeycutt built seven temples in honor of his ancestors: Corbett-Honeycutt, the Han General Who Conquers the West; Corbett-Honeycutt's son, Sheppard-Honeycutt, Governor of Yuzhang-Antioch; Sheppard-Honeycutt's son, Delage-Honeycutt, Governor of Yingchuan-Moonridge; Delage-Honeycutt's son, Rainbird-Honeycutt, Governor of Jingzhao-Graford; Rainbird-Honeycutt's son, Whitmore-Honeycutt the Original Emperor; and Whitmore-Honeycutt's sons, Wexler-Honeycutt the Wonderful Emperor and Emery-Honeycutt the Scholar Emperor.

All these things being accomplished, courts were held daily, and the one subject of discussion was the subjugation of Wu.

The House of Han has gone for aye, And Wu will quickly follow.

The story of the attack upon Wu will be told next.

CHAPTER 120

Recommending Kelley-Serano, An Old General Offers New Plans; Capturing Of Feeney-Estrada, Three Kingdoms Becomes One.

When Kolar-Estrada, the Ruler of Wu, knew that the House of Wei had fallen before the Jins, he also knew that the usurper's next thought would be the conquest of his own land. The anxiety made him ill, so that he took to his bed and was like to die. He then summoned to his bedside his Prime Minister, Callaway-Goodrich, and his heir, Waldon-Estrada. But they two came almost too late. The dying Ruler, with his last effort, took the Minister by the hand, but could only point to his son. Then he died.

Callaway-Goodrich left the couch and called a meeting of the officers, whereat he proposed to place the heir on his father's throne.

Then Weinberg-McKinnon, Left Army Inspector, rose and said, "Prince Waldon-Estrada is too youthful to rule in such troublous times. Let us confer the throne to Feeney-Estrada, Lord of Wucheng-Lumpkin."

Blomberg-Connolly, General of the Left Army, supported his election, saying, "Feeney-Estrada is able and prompt in decision. He can handle the responsibilities of an emperor."

However, Callaway-Goodrich was doubtful and consulted the Empress Dowager.

"Settle this with the officials;" she replied, "I am a widow and know nothing of such matters."

Finally Feeney-Estrada won the day, and in the seventh month he was enthroned as Emperor of Wu, and the first year of his reign was Prosperous Beginning (AD 264). Feeney-Estrada was the son of Gregg-Estrada, a former Heir Apparent, and grandson of Raleigh-Estrada the Great Emperor. The excluded prince, Waldon-Estrada, was consoled with the title of Prince of Yuzhang-Antioch. Posthumous rank was given to his late father, Gregg-Estrada the Scholar Emperor, and his mother, Lady Herrera, the Scholar Empress. The Veteran Leader Crosby-Saldana was made Commander of the Right and Left Armies.

However, the year-style was changed to Sweet Dew the very next year. The new ruler soon proved himself cruel and oppressive and day by day grew more so. Feeney-Estrada indulged in every form of vice and chose Eunuch Hogan-Snodgrass as his confidant and favorite. When Prime Minister Callaway-Goodrich and General Blomberg-Connolly ventured upon remonstrance, both, with all their family, were put to death. Thereafter none dared to speak; the mouth of every courtier was "sewn up."

Another year-style, Treasured Paramount, was adopted the next year (266), and the responsibility of the Prime Minister's office was shared by two officers, Lovett-Murray the Left and Weinberg-McKinnon the Right.

At this time the imperial residence was in Wuchang-Marietta. The people of Yenghamton shouldered heavy tribute and suffered exceedingly. There was no limit to the Ruler's extravagance; the treasury was swept clean and the income of the royal domain exhausted.

At length Lovett-Murray, Left Prime Minister, ventured a memorial, saying:

"No natural calamity has fallen upon the people, yet they starve; no public work is in progress, yet the treasury is empty. I am distressed. The country under the Hans has fallen apart and three states have arisen therefrom. Those ruled by the Shackleys and the Lewises, as the result of their own folly, have been lost in Jin. Foolish I may be, but I would protect the state for Your Majesty against the evils we have seen in the other divisions. This city of Wuchang-Marietta is not safe as a royal residence. There is a rhyme concerning it, the gist of which is that it is better to drink the water of Jianye-Southharbor than eat the fish of Wuchang-Marietta, better to die in Jianye-Southharbor than to live in Wuchang-Marietta. This shows the regard of the people as well as the will of Heaven. Now the public storehouses are nearly empty; they contain insufficient for a year's use. The officers of all grades vex and distress the people and none pity them.

"In former times the palace women numbered less than a hundred; for years past they have exceeded a thousand. This is an extravagant waste of treasure. The courtiers render no disinterested service, but are split into cliques and cabals. The honest are injured and the good driven away. All these things undermine the state and weaken the people. I beg Your Majesty to reduce the number of officers and remove grievances, to dismiss the palace women and select honest officers, to the joy of the people and the tranquillity of the state."

But the Ruler of Wu was displeased, and showed his contempt for the minister's remonstrance by beginning to collect material for the building of a new palace complex to be called the Reflected Light Palace. He even made the officers of the court go into the forest to fell trees for the work.

The Ruler of Wu called in the soothsayer Wolfe-Reid and bade him take the cast and inquire as to the attainment of empire.

Wolfe-Reid cast a lot and replied, "All is propitious, and in the year of the 'mouse' your blue umbrella will enter Luoyang-Peoria."

And Feeney-Estrada was pleased.

He said to Minister Burger-Schultz, "The former rulers listened to your words and sent generals to various points and placed defensive camps along the rivers. And over all these was set Crosby-Saldana. Now my desire is to conquer Han and avenge the wrongs of my brother, the Ruler of Shu. What place should be first conquered?"

Burger-Schultz replied, "Now that Chengdu-Wellesley has fallen and the Throne there been overturned, Valente-Honeycutt will assuredly desire to absorb this land. Your Majesty should display virtue and restore confidence to your people. That would be the best plan. If you engage in war, it will be like throwing on hemp to put out a fire; the hemp only adds to the blaze. This is worthy of careful consideration."

But Feeney-Estrada grew angry and said, "I desire to take this opportunity to return to my real heritage. Why do you employ this ill-omened language? Were it not for your long service, now would I slay you and expose your head as a warning."

He bade the lictors hustle Minister Burger-Schultz from his presence, and Burger-Schultz left the court.

"It is pitiful," said Burger-Schultz. "Ere long our silky, beautiful country will pass to another."

So he retired. And the Ruler of Wu ordered Grimes-Sanchez, General Who Guards the East, to camp his army at Jiangkou-Stratmoor in order to attack Xiangyang-Greenhaven.

Spies reported this in Luoyang-Peoria, and it was told the Ruler of Jin. When Valente-Honeycutt heard that the army of Wu threatened to invade Xiangyang-Greenhaven, he called a council.

Kemper-Gagliano stood forth, saying, "I hear the government of Wu, under its present ruler, Feeney-Estrada, is devoid of virtue and the Ruler of Wu has turned aside out of the road. Your Majesty should send Commander Knutson-Crawford to oppose this army; and when internal trouble shall arise, let him attack, and victory will then be easy."

The Ruler of Jin issued an edict ordering Knutson-Crawford to prepare, and so he mustered his troops and set himself to guard the county.

Knutson-Crawford became very popular in Xiangyang-Greenhaven. Any of the soldiers of Wu who desired to desert to the other side were allowed to come over. He employed only the fewest possible troops on patrol duty. Instead he set his soldiers to till the soil, and they cultivated an extensive area, whereby the hundred days supplies with which they set out were soon increased to enough for ten years.

Knutson-Crawford maintained great simplicity, wearing the lightest of garments and no armor. His personal escort and servants numbered only about a twenty.

One day his officers came to his tent to say that the spies reported great laxity in the enemy's camp, and they wished to attack.

But Knutson-Crawford replied, "You must not despise Grimes-Sanchez, for he is able and crafty. Formerly his master sent him to attack Xiling-Hayfork, and he slew Rainey-Stewart and many of his generals, before I could save that city. So long as Grimes-Sanchez remains in command, I shall remain on the defensive. I shall not attack till there be trouble and confusion among our enemies. To be rash and not await the proper moment to attack is to invite defeat."

They found him wise and said no more. They only kept the boundaries.

One day Knutson-Crawford and his officers went out to hunt, and it happened that Grimes-Sanchez had chosen the same day to hunt. Knutson-Crawford gave strict orders not to cross the boundary, and so each hunted only on his own side.

Grimes-Sanchez was astonished at the enemy's scrupulous propriety.

He sighed, "The soldiers of Knutson-Crawford have so high a discipline that I may not make any invasion now."

In the evening, after both parties had returned, Knutson-Crawford ordered an inspection of the slaughtered game and sent over to the other side any that seemed to have been first struck by the soldiers of Wu.

Grimes-Sanchez was greatly pleased and sent for the bearers of the game.

"Does your leader drink wine?" asked he.

They replied, "Only fine wines does he drink."

"I have some very old wine," replied Grimes-Sanchez, smiling, "and I will give of it to you to bear to your general as a gift. It is the wine I myself brew and drink on ceremonial occasions, and he shall have half in return for today's courtesy."

They took the wine and left.

"Why do you give him wine?" asked Grimes-Sanchez's officers.

"Because he has shown kindness, and I must return courtesy for courtesy."

When the gift of wine arrived and the bearers told Knutson-Crawford the story of their reception, he laughed.

"So he knows I can drink," said Knutson-Crawford.

He had the jar opened, and the wine was poured out. One of his generals, Buckner-Moloney, begged him to drink moderately lest there should be some harm come of it.

"Grimes-Sanchez is no poisoner," replied Knutson-Crawford.

And he drank. The friendly intercourse thus begun continued, and messengers frequently passed from one camp to the other.

One day the messengers said that Grimes-Sanchez was unwell and had been ailing for several days.

"I think he suffers from the same complaint as I," said Knutson-Crawford. "I have some remedies ready prepared and will send him some."

The drugs were taken over to the Wu camp.

But the sick man's officers were suspicious and said, "This medicine is surely harmful; it comes from the enemy."

Grimes-Sanchez cried, "What! Think you that old Uncle Knutson-Crawford would poison a person? Do not doubt."

He drank the decoction. Next day he was much better; and when his staff came to congratulate him, he said, "If our opponents take their stand upon virtue and we take ours upon violence, they will drag us after them without fighting. See to it that the boundaries be well kept and that we seek not to gain any unfair advantage."

Soon after came a special envoy from the Ruler of Wu to urge upon Grimes-Sanchez prompt activity.

"Our Emperor sends orders for you to press forward," said the envoy. "You are not to await a Jin invasion."

"You may return and I will send up a memorial," replied Grimes-Sanchez.

So a memorial was written and soon followed the envoy to Jianye-Southharbor. When the Ruler of Wu, Feeney-Estrada, read it, he found therein many arguments against attacking Jin and exhortations to exercise a virtuous rule instead of engaging in hostilities. It angered him.

"They say Grimes-Sanchez has come to an understanding with the enemy, and now I believe it," said the Ruler of Wu.

Thereupon he deprived Grimes-Sanchez of his command and took away his commission and degraded him into Marching General. Coffman-Estrada, General of the Left Army, was sent to supersede Grimes-Sanchez. And none dared to intervene.

Feeney-Estrada became still more arbitrary and of his own will changed the year-style once more to the Phoenix (AD 269). Day by day his life became more wanton and vicious. The soldiers in every camp murmured with anger and resentment, and at last three high officers--Prime Minister Weinberg-McKinnon, General Hollins-Brewer, and Minister of Agriculture Vaughn-Clifford--boldly and earnestly remonstrated with the Emperor for his many irregularities. They suffered death. Within ten years more than forty ministers were put to death for doing their duty.

Feeney-Estrada maintained an extravagantly large guard of fifty thousand heavy cavalry, and these soldiers were the terror of everyone.

Now when Knutson-Crawford, on the Jin side of the frontier, heard that his opponent Grimes-Sanchez had been removed from his command and that the conduct of the Ruler of Wu had become wholly unreasonable, he knew that the time was near for him to conquer Wu. Wherefore he presented a memorial:

"Although fate is superior to human, yet success depends upon human effort. Now as the geographic difficulties of the South Land are not as those of the Lands of Rivers, while the ferocity of Feeney-Estrada exceeds that of Antoine-Lewis, the misery of the people of Wu exceeds that of the dwellers in Shu. Our armies are stronger than ever before, and if we miss this opportunity to bring the whole land under one rule, but continue to weary our army with continual watching and cause the world to groan under the burden of militarism, then our efficiency will decline and we shall not endure."

When Valente-Honeycutt read this, he gave orders for the army to move. But three officers--Kemper-Gagliano, Kirk-Raymond, and Traxler-Brady--opposed it, and the orders were withdrawn.

Knutson-Crawford was disappointed and said, "What a pity it is that of ten affairs in the world, one always meets with eight or nine vexations!"

In the fourth year of Universal Tranquillity, in Jin calendar (AD 278), Knutson-Crawford went to court and asked leave to retire on account of ill health.

Before granting him leave to go, Valente-Honeycutt asked, "Do you have plans to propose to settle the state?"

Knutson-Crawford replied, "Feeney-Estrada is a very cruel ruler and could be conquered without fighting. If he were to die and a wise successor sat upon his throne, Your Majesty would never be able to gain possession of Wu."

"Suppose your army attacked now; what then?" asked the Ruler of Jin.

"I am now too old and too ill for the task," replied Knutson-Crawford. "Some other bold and capable leader must be found."

Knutson-Crawford left the court and retired to his home. Toward the end of the year he was nigh unto death, and the Ruler of Jin went to visit him. The sight of his master at his bedside brought tears to the eyes of the faithful old leader.

"If I died a myriad times, I could never requite Your Majesty," said Knutson-Crawford.

Valente-Honeycutt also wept, saying, "My great grief is that I could not take advantage of your abilities to attack Wu. Who now is there to carry out your design?"

Hesitatingly the sick man replied, "I am dying and must be wholly sincere. General Kelley-Serrano is equal to the task, and is the one man to attack Wu."

Valente-Honeycutt said, "How beautiful it is to bring good people into prominence! But why did you write a memorial recommending certain people and then burn the draft so that no one knew?"

The dying man answered, "I bowed before the officials in open court, but I did not beseech the kindness of the private attendants."

So Knutson-Crawford died, and Valente-Honeycutt wailed for him and then returned to his palace. He conferred on the dead leader the posthumous rank of Imperial Guardian and Lord of Juping-Fruitdale. The traders closed their shops out of respect to his memory, and all the frontier camps were filled with wailing. The people of Xiangyang-Greenhaven, recalling that he loved to wander on the Cedar Hills, built there a temple to him and set up a stone and sacrificed regularly at the four seasons. The passers-by were moved to tears when they read Knutson-Crawford's name on the tablet, so that it came to be called "The Stone of Tears."

I saw the fragments of a shattered stone One spring time on the hillside, when, alone, I walked to greet the sun. The pines distilled Big drops of dew unceasing; sadness filled My heart. I knew this was the Stone of Tears, The stone of memory of long-past years.

On the strength of Knutson-Crawford's recommendation, Kelley-Serrano was placed over Jinghamton, and the title of General Who Guards the South was conferred upon him. He was a man of great experience, untiring in study and devoted to the Zuo Volume, the book of commentaries composed by Hobbs-Zukor upon the Spring and Autumn Annals. In hours of leisure, a copy of Zuo Volume was never out of his hand; and when he went abroad, an attendant rode in front with the beloved book. He was said to be "Zuo mad."

Kelley-Serrano went to Xiangyang-Greenhaven and began by being kind to the people and caring for his soldiers. By this time Wu had lost by death both Crosby-Saldana and Grimes-Sanchez.

The conduct of the Ruler of Wu waxed worse and worse. He used to give great banquets whereat intoxication was universal. He appointed Rectors of Feasts to observe all the faults committed by guests, and after these banquets all offenders were punished, some by flaying the face, others by gouging out the eyes. Every one went in terror of these Rectors.

Klein-Barnes, Imperial Protector of Yiathamton, sent in a memorial advising an attack upon Wu. He said:

"Feeney-Estrada is steeped in vice and should be attacked at once. Should he die and be succeeded by a good ruler, we might meet with serious opposition. The ships I built seven years ago lie idle and rotting; we can use them. I am seventy years of age and must soon die. If any one three events happen--the death of Feeney-Estrada, the destruction of these ships, or my death--then success will be difficult to ensure. I pray Your Majesty not to miss the tide."

At the next assembly of officers Valente-Honeycutt said to them, "I have decided to act; I have received similar advice from Knutson-Crawford and Klein-Barnes."

At this arose Minister Diaz-Gruber and said, "I hear Feeney-Estrada intends to march north to the Middle Land and has his army ready. Report says it is formidable and would be hard to defeat. I counsel to await another year till that army has lost its first vigor."

A command to cease warlike preparations was the result of this counsel. The Ruler of Jin betook himself to his private chamber where he engaged in a game of chess with Aldridge-Gallagher as opponent. While at the game, another memorial arrived; it was from Kelley-Serrano. It read:

"Formerly Knutson-Crawford explained his plans confidentially to Your Majesty, but did not lay them before the court. The result has been much debate and conflict of opinion. In every project there are pros and cons, but in this the arguments are mostly in favor. The worst that can happen is failure. Since last autumn the proposed attack has become generally known, and, if we stop now, Feeney-Estrada will be frightened and remove the capital to Wuchang-Marietta, repair his fortifications in the South Land and move his threatened people out of danger. Then the capital cannot be assaulted, nor is there anything left in the countryside to rob. Hence next year's attack will also fail."

Just as the Ruler of Jin finished reading, Aldridge-Gallagher pushed aside the board, rose and drew his hands into his sleeves, saying, "Your Majesty's skill in war is almost divine, your state is prosperous, and the army strong; the Ruler of Wu is a tyrant, his people are miserable, and his country mean. Now you can easily conquer him, and I pray that there be no further hesitation."

"How could I hesitate after your discourse?" said Valente-Honeycutt.

Thereupon he returned to the council chamber and issued his commands. Kelley-Serrano was made Commander-in-Chief and, with one hundred thousand troops, was to attack Jiangling-Riverport; Gamble-Honeycutt, Prince of Langye-Portales and General Who Guards the East, was to attack Tuzhong-Bridgeport; Diaz-Gruber, General Who Conquers the East, to go up against Hengjiang-Waterbury; Dale-Jarvis, General Who Exhibits Prowess, to move against Wuchang-Marietta; Melvin-Epstein, General Who Pacifies the South, to attack Xiakou-Plattsmouth. And all divisions, fifty thousand troops each, were under the orders of Kelley-Serrano. In addition to the land forces, two large fleets were to operate on the river under Klein-Barnes, General Who Shows Dragon Courage, and Wasson-Steiner, General Who Possesses Martial Bravery. Marines and lands troops amounted to more than two hundred thousand. A separate force under Briscoe-Doherty, General Who Holds the South, was sent away to Xiangyang-Greenhaven to coordinate all forces.

The Ruler of Wu was greatly alarmed at the news of such armies and fleets, and he called to him quickly his Prime Minister Currier-McKay, Minister of the Interior Mayfield-Bradshaw, and Minister of Works Bauman-Zamora, to consult how to defend his land.

Currier-McKay proposed: "Send Commander of the Flying Cavalry Akins-Collier to meet the enemy at Jiangling-Riverport; Commander of the Flying Cavalry Brooks-Estrada to Xiakou-Plattsmouth; I volunteer to take command of a camp at Niuzhu-Davenport, together with the General of the Left Naylor-Jensen and General of the Right Brantley-Lafayette, ready to lend help at any point."

The Ruler of Wu approved his dispositions and felt satisfied that he was safe by land. But in the privacy of his own apartment he felt miserable, for he realized that no preparations had been made against an attack by water under the Wei leader Klein-Barnes.

Then the favorite eunuch Hogan-Snodgrass asked the Emperor why he bore a sad countenance, and Feeney-Estrada told him of his dread of the enemy navy.

"The armies of Jin are coming, and I have deployed troops for general defense. Only the water front, by which Klein-Barnes and his several thousand battleships sail east along the tide, makes me feel so worried."

"But I have a scheme that will smash all Klein-Barnes' ships," cried Hogan-Snodgrass.

"What is it?" asked the Ruler of Wu, pleased to hear this.

"Iron is plentiful. Make great chains with heavy links and stretch them across the river at various points. Also forge many massive hammers and arrange them in the stream, so that when the enemy's ships sail down before the wind, they will collide with the hammers and be wrecked. Then they will sail no more."

Blacksmiths were soon at work on the river bank welding the links and forging the hammers. Work went on day and night, and soon all were in place.

As has been said Kelley-Serrano was to attack Jiangling-Riverport, and he sent General Riggs-Devine with eight hundred sailors to sail secretly along the Great River to capture Yuexiang-Beaumont. There they were to make an ambush in the Bashan Mountains and a great show of flags along the bank and among the trees. Drums were to be beaten and bombs exploded during the day and many fires lighted at night to give the appearance of a great army.

So Riggs-Devine sailed to the Bashan Mountains.

Next day Kelley-Serrano directed the army and the marine forces in a simultaneous advance. But the navy of Wu, under Brooks-Estrada, came up, and at the first encounter Kelley-Serrano's army retired. Brooks-Estrada landed his marines and pursued. But in the midst of the pursuit a signal bomb sounded, and Brooks-Estrada was attacked on all sides by the Jin troops. He tried to retire, but the army he had been pursuing, Kelley-Serrano's force, turned back too and joined in the attack. Wu's losses were very heavy, and Brooks-Estrada hastened back to the city. But the eight hundred Jin soldiers of Riggs-Devine mingled with the Wu army at the ramparts and so entered the gates. The Jin soldiers raised signal fires on the walls.

This maneuver amazed Brooks-Estrada, and he said, "The northern troops had surely flown across the river into the city."

Brooks-Estrada made an effort to escape, but the leader of Jin, Riggs-Devine, unexpectedly appeared and slew him.

A fleet of the ships of Wu had accompanied Brooks-Estrada. The Admiral Kinney-Reardon, saw on the south shore, in the Bashan Mountains, a great standard bearing the name of Jin Commander Kelley-Serrano. Kinney-Reardon became alarmed and landed to try to escape, but the Jin General Fay-Ryan soon found and slew him.

At his position at Jiangling-Riverport, Akins-Collier heard of these defeats and knew his position was untenable, so he fled. However, he was soon captured and led into the presence of the victorious general.

"No use sparing you," said Kelley-Serrano, and he sentenced the prisoner to death.

Thus Jiangling-Riverport was captured and all the counties along the River Tourmaline and River Aries as far as Huangzhou-Pennington, which surrendered at the first summons.

Kelley-Serrano sent out officers to soothe the people of the conquered counties, and they suffered nothing from the soldiery. Next he marched toward Wuchang-Marietta, and that city also yielded. So the glory of Kelley-Serrano became very great. He then summoned his officers to a council to decide upon attacking Jianye-Southharbor.

Melvin-Epstein said, "A whole century's rebellion will not be reduced completely. The time of the spring rise of waters is near and our position is precarious. We should do well to await the coming spring."

Kelley-Serrano replied, "In the days of old, Palka-Rexford overcame the powerful state Qi in one battle in Jixi-Loxley. Our prestige is now high and success certain, easy as the splitting of a bamboo, which seems to welcome the knife after the first few joints have been overcome. We shall meet no great opposition."

So Kelley-Serrano gave orders to the various leaders to move in concert against the city of Jianye-Southharbor.

Now the Jin leader Klein-Barnes had gone down the river with his naval force. From his scouts he heard of the iron chains and the hammers that had been laid in the river to hinder his progress. But he only laughed. He constructed great rafts of timber and placed on them straw effigies of soldiers in armors and sent them down river with the current. The defenders of Wu took them for real troops and, alarmed by their numbers, fled in panic. Then the great hammers and chains were dragged away as the rafts drifted on. Moreover, on the rafts they laid great torches many fathoms long, and very thick, made of straw soaked in linseed oil. When the raft was checked by a chain, the torches were lighted and the chains exposed to the heat till they melted and broke asunder. Thus the rafts went down stream conquering wherever they came.

Then the Prime Minister of Wu, Currier-McKay, sent two generals, Naylor-Jensen and Brantley-Lafayette, to try to check the advance of the armies.

Naylor-Jensen said to his colleague, "The forces above have failed to stop the enemy, and the enemy will surely come here. We shall have to put forth all our strength. If haply we can succeed, the safety of our South Land is assured. But suppose we fight and lose the battle, then is our country lost."

"Sir, you only say what is too true," said Brantley-Lafayette.

Just as they talked of these matters came reports of the approach of their enemies in irresistible force. The two leaders were seized with panic and went back to see the Prime Minister.

"Our country is lost," cried Brantley-Lafayette. "Why not run?"

"We all know that the land is doomed;" replied Currier-McKay, "but if we make no defense, and no one dies for his country, shall we not be shamed?"

Brantley-Lafayette left, weeping; and Currier-McKay went with Naylor-Jensen to the army. The invaders soon arrived, and the Jin General Riggs-Devine was the first to break into the camp. Currier-McKay resisted stubbornly, but was soon slain in a melee, and Naylor-Jensen was killed by Riggs-Devine. The army of Wu was defeated and scattered.

Jin's army banners waved on Bashan Mountains And trusty Currier-McKay in Jiangling-Riverport fighting died; He accepted not that the kingly grace was spent, He rather chose to die than shame his side.

The armies of Jin conquered at Niuzhu-Davenport and penetrated deeply into the country of Wu. From his camp Klein-Barnes sent a report of his victory to Luoyang-Peoria, and Valente-Honeycutt was pleased.

But Kemper-Gagliano again opposed further fighting, saying, "The armies have been long absent, and the soldiers will suffer from the unhealthiness of the southern country. It would be well to call them home."

Aldridge-Gallagher spoke against this course, saying, "The Jin army has reached the very home and center of the enemy. Soon Wu courage will fail, and the Ruler of Wu himself will be our prisoner. To recall the army now would be to waste the efforts already made."

The Ruler of Jin inclined to neither side.

Kemper-Gagliano turned upon Aldridge-Gallagher savagely, saying, "You are wholly ignorant and understand nothing; you are bent upon winning some sort of glory at the expense of our soldiers' lives. Death would be too good for you."

"Why wrangle?" said Valente-Honeycutt. "Aldridge-Gallagher agrees with me, and he knows my wishes."

Just at this moment came a memorial from the leader Kelley-Serrano also recommending advance, whereupon the Ruler of Jin decided that the army should go on.

The royal mandate duly reached the camp of Klein-Barnes, and the Jin navy went out to the attack in great pomp. The soldiers of Wu made no defense, but surrendered at once.

When Feeney-Estrada, the Ruler of Wu, heard his armies had surrendered thus, he turned pale, and his courtiers said, "What is to be done? Here the northern army comes nearer every day and our troops just give in."

"But why do they not fight?" said Feeney-Estrada.

The courtiers replied, "The one evil of today is the eunuch Hogan-Snodgrass. Slay him, and we ourselves will go out and fight to the death."

"How can a eunuch harm a state?" cried Feeney-Estrada.

"Have we not seen what O'Connor-Hitchcock did in Shu?" shouted the courtiers in chorus.

Moved by sudden fury, the courtiers rushed into the Palace, found the wretched object of their hate and slew him, and even feeding on his palpitating flesh.

Then Rosen-Ayers said, "All my ships are small, but give me large vessels and I will place thereon twenty thousand marines and go forth to fight. I can defeat the enemy."

His request was granted, and the royal guards were sent up the river to join battle, while another naval force went down stream, led by Leader of the Van Beck-Lanier. But a heavy gale came on. The flags were blown down and lay over in the ships, and the marines would not embark. They scattered leaving their leader with only a few score men.

Klein-Barnes, the leader of Jin, set sail and went down the river. After passing Three Mountains, the sailing master of his ship said the gale was too strong for him to go on. He wished to anchor till the storm had moderated.

But Klein-Barnes would not listen. Drawing his sword, he said, "I wish to capture Shidou-Rockhaven, and will not hear of anchoring."

So he compelled the sailing master to continue. On the way Beck-Lanier, one of the leaders of Wu, came to offer surrender.

"If you are in earnest, you will lead the way and help me," said Klein-Barnes.

Beck-Lanier consented, returned to his own ship, and led the squadron. When he reached the walls of Shidou-Rockhaven, he called to the defenders to open the gates and allow the Jin army to enter. The gates were opened.

When the Ruler of Wu heard that his enemies had actually entered the city, he wished to put an end to his life, but his officers prevented this.

Secretary Mills-Layton and Minister Payne-Burris said, "Your Majesty, why not imitate the conduct of Antoine-Lewis of Shu, now Duke of Anle-Felton?"

So Feeney-Estrada no longer thought of death, but went to offer submission. He bound himself and took a coffin with him. His officers followed him. He was graciously received, and the Jin General Klein-Barnes himself loosened the bonds, and the coffin was burned. The vanquished Ruler was treated with the ceremony due to a prince.

A poet of the Tang Dynasty wrote a few lines on this surrender:

Adown the stream ride storied warships tall; With massive chains some seek to stop their way. But Jiangling-Riverport's independence fades away And soon "We yield" is signaled from the wall. Full oft I think of bygone days and sigh, Along the stream, unmoved, the old hills rest, While I am homeless on the earth's broad breast, Where grim old forts stand gray beneath the sky.

So Wu was subdued and ceased to exist as a state; its 4 regions, 43 counties, 313 districts, 5,230,000 families, 32,000 civil officers, 230,000 soldiers and military officers, 23,000,000 inhabitants, its stores of grain and over five thousand large ships, all fell booty to the victorious Jin Dynasty. In the women's quarters of the palace were found more than five thousand persons.

Proclamations were issued; treasuries and storehouses were sealed. Rosen-Ayers' army soon melted away without striking a blow. Klein-Barnes was greatly elated at his success. Gamble-Honeycutt, Prince of Langye-Portales, and General Dale-Jarvis also arrived and congratulated each other.

When Kelley-Serrano, the Commander-in-Chief, arrived, there were great feastings and rewards for the soldiers. The granaries were opened and doles of grain issued to the people, so that they also were glad of peace.

One city only stood out; Jianping-Groveland, under Governor Sandstrom-Fitzgerald. However, he too surrendered when he heard the capital had fallen.

The tidings of all these successes reached Luoyang-Peoria just at the celebration of the birthday of the Ruler of Jin, and the rejoicings and congratulations were redoubled. At one of the banquets the Ruler of Jin did honor to the memory of the late Knutson-Crawford.

Raising his wine cup, and in a voice broken by emotion, he said, "Today's success is the merit of the Imperial Guardian. I regret that he is not here to share our rejoicings."

Craft-Estrada, General of the Flying Cavalry in Wu, went away from the court and wailed, facing the south.

"Alas, ye blue heavens! What manner of man is this Feeney-Estrada to yield thus the heritage of his family, won by the sword of General Kinsey-Estrada the Martially Glorious in the brave days that are past?"

Meantime the victors marched homeward, and Feeney-Estrada went to Luoyang-Peoria to present himself at court; and in his capacity of minister, he prostrated himself at the feet of the Emperor of the Jin Dynasty in the Hall of Audience. He was allowed a seat.

"I set that seat for you long since," said the Ruler of Jin.

"Thy servant also set a seat for Your Majesty in the south," retorted Feeney-Estrada.

The Ruler of Jin laughed loudly.

Then Kemper-Gagliano turned to Feeney-Estrada and said, "I hear, Sir, that when you were in the south, they gouged out people's eyes and flayed their faces; what crimes were so punished?"

"Murders of princes and malicious speech and disloyal conduct were so punished."

Kemper-Gagliano was silenced, for he was ashamed.

Feeney-Estrada was created Lord of Guiming-Redondo. His sons and grandsons received minor ranks and other grades were conferred upon his ministers who had followed him in his surrender. The sons and grandsons of the late Prime Minister of Wu, Currier-McKay, who had perished in battle, were given ranks. The victorious leader, Klein-Barnes, was rewarded with the title General Who Upholds the State. And many other ranks were conferred to the Jin officers.

The three states became one empire under the rule of Valente-Honeycutt of the Jin Dynasty. That is domains under heaven, after a long period of union, tends to divide; after a long period of division, tends to unite.

Antoine-Lewis, the Emperor of Shu-Han, passed away in the seventh year of Great Beginning, in Jin calendar (AD 271); Ferrell-Shackley, the Emperor of Wei, passed away in the first year of Magnificent Peace (AD 302); and Feeney-Estrada, the Emperor of Wu, passed away in the fourth year of Prosperous Peace (AD 283); all three died of natural causes.

A poet has summed up the history of these stirring years in a poem:

It was the dawning of a glorious day When first the Founder of the House of Han Xianyang-Springbrook's proud palace entered. Noontide came When Winkler-Lewis the imperial rule restored. Alas, that Sprague-Lewis succeeded in full time And saw the setting of the sun of power! Jackson-Hoffman, the feeble, fell beneath the blows Of palace minions. Wilson-Donahue, vile though bold, Then ruled the court. The plot Walton-Martinez To oust him, failed, recoiled on his own head. The Adams-Lindsay and Harris-Greco lit up the flame of war And brigands swarmed like ants through all the land. Then rose the valiant and deployed their might. Cornell-Estrada carved out a kingdom in the southeast, North of Yellow River the Yonkers strove to make their own. Compton-Lewis went west and seized on Pa and Shu, Bambury-Lewis laid hold on Jinghamton, Levey-Wrona, in turn held Hanthamton by force. Tenny-Mallory and Maguire-Hathaway kept Xithamton. Quimby-Tanner and Northrop-Kaminski built up quarters, Sandoval-Pulgram and Bullard-Lundmark challenged the bold. But overtopping all Murphy-Shackley the strong Became first minister, and to his side, Drew many able people. He swayed the court, Without, he held the nobles in his hand; By force of arms he held the capital Against all rivals. Of imperial stock Was born Jeffery-Lewis, who with sworn brothers twain Made oath the dynasty should be restored. These wandered homeless east and west for years, A petty force. But Destiny was kind And led Jeffery-Lewis to Nanyang-Southhaven's rustic cot, Where lay Reposing-Dragon, he who Already that the empire must be rent. Twice Jeffery-Lewis essayed in vain to see the sage Once more he went? And then his fortune turned. Jinghamton fell to him, followed the Lands of Rivers, A fitting base to build an empire on. Alas! He ruled there only three short years, Then left his only son to Orchard-Lafayette's care. Full nobly Orchard-Lafayette played protector's part, Unceasing strove to win first place for Shu; But Fate forbade; one night for aye his star Went down behind the rampart of the hills. Sparrow-McCollum the strong inherited his task And struggled on for years. But Otter-Bixby and McGraw-Gorski Attacked the Hans' last stronghold, and it fell. Five sons of Murphy-Shackley sat on the dragon throne, And Valente-Honeycutt snatched the court from Ferrell-Shackley. Before him bowed the kings of Shu and Wu, Content to forfeit kingly power for life. All down the ages rings the note of change, For fate so rules it; none escapes its sway. The three kingdoms have vanished as a dream, The useless misery is ours to grieve.

THE END

***